summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/54931-8.txt15108
-rw-r--r--old/54931-8.zipbin271605 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/54931-h.zipbin437173 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/54931-h/54931-h.htm14402
-rw-r--r--old/54931-h/images/cover.jpgbin152848 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 29510 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..3730c0d
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #54931 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/54931)
diff --git a/old/54931-8.txt b/old/54931-8.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index a3dc0c6..0000000
--- a/old/54931-8.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,15108 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Mendel, by Gilbert Cannan
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Mendel
- A Story of Youth
-
-Author: Gilbert Cannan
-
-Release Date: June 19, 2017 [EBook #54931]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MENDEL ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Paul Haxo with special thanks to the University
-of Illinois at Urbana-Champaign, the Hathi Trust Digital
-Library, the University of California, and the Internet
-Archive.
-
-
-
-
-
-MENDEL
-
-
-
-_BY THE SAME AUTHOR_
- ROUND THE CORNER
- OLD MOLE
- YOUNG EARNEST
-_LONDON, T. FISHER UNWIN LTD._
-
- PETER HOMUNCULUS
- LITTLE BROTHER
- THREE PRETTY MEN
- SAMUEL BUTLER
- WINDMILLS
- SATIRE
- THE JOY OF THE THEATRE
- FOUR PLAYS
- ADVENTUROUS LOVE (POEMS)
-
-
-
-MENDEL
-
-A STORY OF YOUTH
-BY GILBERT CANNAN
-
-
-LONDON
-T. FISHER UNWIN LTD
-ADELPHI TERRACE
-
-
-
-_First published in 1916_
-
-(_All rights reserved_)
-
-
-
-_To D. C._
-
-_Shall tears be shed because the blossoms fall,
- Because the cloudy cherry slips away,
- And leaves its branches in a leafy thrall
- Till ruddy fruits do hang upon the spray?_
-
-_Shall tears be shed because the youthful bloom
- And all th'excess of early life must fade
- For larger wealth of joy in smaller room
- To dwell contained in love of man and maid?_
-
-_Nay, rather leap, O heart, to see fulfilled
- In certain joy th'uncertain promised glee,
- To have so many mountain torrents spilled
- For one fair river moving to the sea._
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-BOOK I: EAST
-
- PAGE
-I. LONDON WHERE THE KING LIVES 11
-II. POVERTY 21
-III. PRISON 34
-IV. FIRST LOVE 52
-V. A TURNING-POINT 63
-VI. EDGAR FROITZHEIM AND OTHERS 74
-VII. THE DETMOLD 83
-VIII. HETTY FINCH 96
-IX. THE QUINTETTE 109
-X. MORRISON 134
-
-BOOK II: BOHEMIA
-
-I. THE POT-AU-FEU 145
-II. LOGAN 156
-III. LOGAN SETS TO WORK 167
-IV. BURNHAM BEECHES 183
-V. HAPPY HAMPSTEAD 196
-VI. CAMDEN TOWN 209
-VII. MR. TILNEY TYSOE 221
-VIII. THE MERLIN'S CAVE 235
-IX. "GOOD-BYE" 247
-X. PARIS 259
-
-BOOK III: THE PASSING OF YOUTH
-
-I. EDWARD TUFNELL 283
-II. THE CAMPAIGN OPENS 295
-III. SUCCESS 306
-IV. REACTION 320
-V. LOGAN GIVES A PARTY 331
-VI. REVELATION 346
-VII. CONFLICT 364
-VIII. OLIVER 382
-IX. LOGAN MAKES AN END 404
-X. PASSOVER 415
-
-
-
-BOOK ONE
-
-EAST
-
-
-
-I
-
-LONDON WHERE THE KING LIVES
-
-THE boat-train had disgorged its passengers, who had huddled together
-in a crowd round the luggage as it was dragged out of the vans, and
-then had jostled their way out into the London they had been so long
-approaching. When the crowd scattered it left like a deposit a little
-knot of strange-looking people in brilliant clothes who stared about
-them pathetically and helplessly. There were three old men who seemed
-to be strangers to each other and a handsome Jewess with her
-family--two girls and three boys. The two elder boys carried on their
-backs the family bedding, and the youngest clung to his mother's
-skirts and was frightened by the noise, the hurrying crowds of people,
-the vastness and the ugly, complicated angular lines of the station.
-The woman looked disappointed and hurt. Her eyes searched through the
-crowds, through every fresh stream of people. She was baffled and
-anxious. Once or twice she was accosted, but she could not understand
-a word of what was said to her. At last she produced a piece of paper
-and showed it to a railway official, who came up thinking it was time
-these outlandish folk moved on. He could not read what was written on
-it, for the paper was very dirty and the characters were crabbed and
-awkwardly written. He turned to the old men, one of whom said
-excitedly the only English words he knew--"London--Jewish--Society."
-The official looked relieved. These people did not look like Jews, and
-the eldest girl and the little boy were lovely. He went away, and the
-woman, whose hopes had risen, once more looked disconsolate. The
-little boy buried his face in her apron and wept.
-
-A suburban train came wheezing into the platform, which was at once
-alive with hurrying men in silk hats and tail-coats. Catching sight of
-the brilliantly attired group, the handsome woman and the lovely girl,
-the boys with their heads bowed beneath the billowing piles of feather
-bedding, some of them stopped. The little boy looked up with tears in
-his eyes. One man put his hand in his pocket and threw down a few
-coppers. Others followed his example, and the little boy ran after the
-showering pennies as they bounced in the air, and rolled, span, and
-settled. He danced from penny to penny and a crowd gathered; for, in
-his bright jerkin and breeches and little top-boots, dancing like a
-sprite, gay and wild, he was an astonishing figure to find in the
-grime and ugliness of the station. Silver was thrown among the pennies
-to keep him dancing, but at last he was exhausted and ran to his
-mother with his fists full of money, and the men hurried on to their
-offices.
-
-The official returned with an interpreter, who discovered that the
-woman's name was Kühler, that she had expected to be met by her
-husband, that she had come from Austrian Poland, and that the address
-written on the piece of paper was Gun Street. The number was
-indecipherable.
-
-The three old men were given instructions and they went away. The
-interpreter took charge of the family and led them to a refuge, where
-he left them, saying that he would go and find Mr. Kühler. With a roof
-over her head and food provided for her children, Mrs. Kühler sat
-stoically to wait for the husband she had not seen for two years. She
-had no preconceived idea of London, and this bleak, bare room was
-London to her, quite acceptable. The stress and the anxiety of the
-detestable journey were over. This was peace and good. Her husband
-would find her. He had come to make a home in London. He had sent for
-her. He would come.
-
-Hours passed. They slept, ate, talked, walked about the room, and
-still Mr. Kühler did not come. The peace of the refuge was invaded
-with memories of the journey, the rattle, rattle, rattle of the
-train-wheels, the brusque officials who treated the poor travellers
-like parcels, the soldiers at the frontiers, the wet, bare quay in
-Holland, the first sight of the sea, immense, ominous, heaving,
-heaving up to the sky; the stinking ship that heaved like the sea and
-made the brain oscillate like milk in a pan; the solidity of the
-English quay, wet and bare, and of the English train, astonishingly
-comfortable. . . . And still Mr. Kühler did not come.
-
-The girls were cold and miserable. The boys wrestled and practised
-feats of strength with each other to keep warm, and looked to their
-mother for applause. She gave it them mechanically as she sat by the
-little boy, whom she had laid to sleep on the bedding. He would be
-hungry, she thought, when he woke up, and she must get him food. There
-was the money which had been thrown to him, but she did not know its
-value. People do not throw much money away. At home people do not
-throw even small money away. There such a thing could not happen.
-There money, like everything else, avoids the poor. But this was rich
-England, where it rained money.
-
-When the boy woke up she would go out and buy him something good to
-eat, and if Mr. Kühler did not come to-morrow she would find some work
-and a room, or a corner of a room, to live in. Perhaps Jacob had gone
-to America again. He had been there twice, and both times suddenly.
-People always went to America suddenly. He went out and bought a clean
-collar, and said he was going and would send money for her as soon as
-he had enough. . . . Poor Jacob, he could not endure their poverty and
-he would not steal, but he would always fight the soldiers and the
-bailiffs when they came to take the bedding. . . . The sea heaved, and
-it rained money. The two boys began to fight, a sudden fury in both of
-them. Their sisters rushed to part them and Mrs. Kühler rose.
-
-At the end of the long room she saw Jacob peering from group to group.
-He looked white and ill, as he had done when he came again and again
-to implore her to marry him, and she felt half afraid of him, as she
-had done when the violent fury of love in him had broken down her
-resistance and dragged her from her comfortable home to the bare life
-he had to offer her. He came to her now with the same ungraciousness
-that had marked his wooing, explained to her that he had just got a
-job and could not get away to meet her, and turned from her to the
-children. The boys were grown big and strong, and the eldest girl was
-a beauty. He was satisfied, stooped and picked up little Mendel in his
-strong arms. The child woke up, gave a little grunt of pleasure as he
-recognized the familiar smell of his father, and went to sleep again.
-
-"He's heavy," said Mrs. Kühler. "You cannot carry him all the way."
-
-"His face is like a flower," said Jacob.
-
-He went first, carrying the boy, and his family followed him into the
-roaring streets. The lamps were lit and the shops were dazzling. There
-were barrows of fruit, fish, old iron, books, cheap jewellery, all lit
-up with naphtha flares. The children were half frightened, half
-delighted. The smells and the noise of the streets excited them. Every
-now and then they heard snatches of their own language and were
-comforted. They came to shops bearing Yiddish characters and London no
-longer seemed to them forbiddingly foreign, though they began to feel
-conscious of their clothes, which made them conspicuous. The boys
-cursed and growled under the bedding and began to complain that they
-had so far to go. Mr. Kühler found the child too heavy and had to put
-him down. Mendel took his mother's hand and trotted along by her side.
-
-They turned into a darkish street which ran for some length between
-very tall houses. It was obscure enough to allow the clear sky to be
-seen, patched with cloud and deep blue, starry spaces. At the end of
-it was a building covered with lights and illuminated signs. They
-shone golden and splendid. Never had Mendel seen anything so glorious,
-so rich, so dream-like, so clearly corresponding to that marvellous
-region where all his thoughts ended, passed out of his reach, and took
-on a brilliant and mighty life of their own, a glory greater than that
-of the Emperor at home. But this was England and had only a King.
-
-"Does the King live there?" he asked his mother.
-
-"No; that is a shop."
-
-"Has father got a shop like that?"
-
-"Not yet."
-
-"Will he soon have a shop like that?"
-
-"Very soon."
-
-Mendel would have liked to have stood and gazed at the glorious,
-glittering shop. He felt sure the King must buy his boots there, and
-he thought that if he stayed long enough he would see the King drive
-up in his crystal coach, with his crown on his head, and go into the
-shop. But his father led the way out of the darkish street into
-another that was still darker, very narrow, and flanked with little
-low houses. One of these they entered, and in a small, almost
-unfurnished room they had supper, and Mendel went to sleep hearing his
-father say to his mother, "Thirteen shillings." Just before that his
-father had held his hands out under the candle, and they were raw and
-bleeding.
-
-* * * * *
-
-One room was luxury to them. At home in Austria they had had a corner
-of a room, and the three other corners were occupied by the carpenter,
-the stableman, and the potter. In the centre of the room stood the
-common water-bucket and the common refuse-tub. London had showered
-money on them and provided them with a whole room. They felt hopeful.
-
-Mr. Kühler made thirteen shillings a week polishing walking-sticks,
-and when that trade was bad he could sometimes get work as a furrier.
-He had intended to take his family over to America, but finding work
-in London, he thought it better to stay there. Besides, he had a
-grudge against America, for while there he had invented a device for
-twisting tails of fur, but his invention had been stolen from him and
-he had missed his chance of making a fortune. America was evil and
-living was very dear. London was the more comfortable place for the
-struggle. And in London he had found Abramovich, the friend of his
-boyhood, the one creature in the world upon whom he relied. He had no
-reason for his faith. Abramovich had never done him any good, but he
-was not of those who pass. He might disappear for years, but he always
-came back again, and time made no difference. He was always the same.
-If help was needed he gave it, and if he needed help he asked for it.
-Abramovich was a very strong reason for staying in London. . . . The
-boys would soon be working and the eldest girl was a beauty. The
-match-makers would be busy with her. Another two years, and the
-match-makers would find her a rich man who would help them all and put
-money into a business. That was Jacob's desire, to have a business of
-his own, for he loathed working for another man. He could not do it
-for long. Always he ended with a quarrel, perhaps with blows, or he
-simply walked out and would not return.
-
-He was a devout Jew and despised Christians, as he despised luxury,
-pleasure, comfort, not actively nor with any hatred. He simply did not
-need them. He had lived without them, and he asked nothing of life. He
-was alive; that was enough. Passions seized him and he followed them.
-Without passion he never moved, never stirred a finger except to keep
-himself alive. Passion had chosen his wife for him. Golda, the
-beautiful, was his wife. In her he was bound more firmly to his race
-and his faith, and there was no need to look beyond. He was rooted.
-She had borne him children, but he had no more ambition for them than
-for himself. Leah, the beauty, should wed a rich man, not for
-ambitious reasons, but because, in life, beauty and riches were proper
-mates. There is a certain orderliness about life, and certain things
-can only be prevented by an irruption of passion. If that happens,
-then life takes its revenge and becomes hard and bleak, but it is
-still life, and only a fool will complain. Jacob never complained, and
-he took his Golda's reproaches in silence, unless she became unjust,
-and then he silenced her brutally and callously. She bore with him,
-because she prized his honesty, his steadfast simplicity, and because
-she knew that his passion had never wakened a profound answer in
-herself. She had very slowly been roused to love, which had flowered
-in her with the birth of her youngest child, in whom she had learned a
-power of acceptance almost equal to her husband's. Like him, she clung
-to her race and her faith and never looked beyond.
-
-In London she found that she was left alone and her life was no longer
-hemmed in by a menacing world of soldiers and police and peasants, who
-swore the Jews cheated them and spread terrifying tales of Jewish
-practices upon Christian children. Christian London was indifferent to
-the Jews, and she could be indifferent to Christian London. She had no
-curiosity about it and never went above a mile from her house. She
-made no attempt to learn English, but could not help gleaning a few
-words from her children as they picked it up at school. The synagogue
-was the centre of her life, and from it came all the life she cared to
-have outside her family. She was absorbed in little Mendel, by whom
-her world was coloured. If he was happy, that was sunshine to her. If
-he was oppressed and tearful, her sky was overcast. If he was ill, it
-seemed to her a menace of the end.
-
-He was a strange child and very slow in growing into a boy. The other
-children had seemed to shoot into independence almost as soon as they
-could walk. But Mendel clung to her, would not learn to feed himself,
-and would not go to sleep at night unless she sang to him and rocked
-him in the cradle, in which he slept even after he went to school. As
-long as he could curl up in it he slept in his cradle, and he made her
-learn as much as she could of an English song which had caught his
-fancy. It was the only English song she ever knew, and night after
-night she had to sing it over and over again as she rocked the heavy
-cradle:--
-
- Daisy, Daisy, give me your answer, do;
- I'm half crazy, all for the love of you.
-
-She had no idea what the words meant, but the boy loved the tune and
-her funny accent and intonation, and even when she was ill and tired
-she would sing him to sleep, and then sit brooding over him with her
-fingers just touching his curly hair. And in her complete absorption
-in his odd, unchildlike childhood she was perfectly content, and
-entirely indifferent to all that happened outside him. Brutal things,
-terrible things happened, but they never touched the child, and if she
-could, she hid the knowledge of them from him.
-
-Abramovich collected a little capital and persuaded Mr. Kühler to join
-him in a furrier's business. They were not altogether unsuccessful,
-and Mr. Kühler took a whole house in Gun Street and bought a piano,
-but soon their capital was exhausted and they had given more credit
-than they were accorded and the business trickled through their
-fingers. Mr. Kühler took to his bed, for he could sleep at will and
-almost indefinitely, and so could avoid seeing poverty once more
-creeping up like a muddy sea round his wife and children. It had been
-bad enough when that happened at home, where at the worst there were
-his relations to help, and there were the potato fields to be
-despoiled, and, at least, the children could be happy playing in the
-roads or by the river, or on the sides of the mountain. But here in
-London poverty was black indeed, and there was no one but Abramovich
-to help, and he was in almost as bad case as himself. Yet
-astonishingly Abramovich came again and again to the rescue. He was a
-little squat, ugly man, the stunted product of some obscure Russian
-ghetto, and he seemed to live by and for his enthusiasm for the Kühler
-family. In their presence he glowed, greedily drank in every word that
-Jacob or Golda said, and was always loud in his praises of the
-beautiful children. . . . "The sky is dark now," he used to say, "but
-they will be rich, and they will give you horses and carriages, and
-Turkey carpets, and footmen, and flowers in the winter, and they will
-bring English gentlemen to the house and what you want, that you shall
-have. . . ." "I want nothing," Jacob would say. "I want nothing. I
-will work and be my own master. I will not steal or help other men to
-steal." "You wait," Abramovich would reply. "These children have only
-to go out into London and all will be given to them."
-
-Only the eldest girl listened to these conversations, and she used to
-hold her head high, and her face would go pale as ferociously she
-followed up the ideas they suggested to her.
-
-But Abramovich could bring no consolation. Jacob would not go back to
-the stick-polishing, and at last he could bear it no longer, went out
-and bought a clean collar, clipped his beard, and without a word of
-farewell, went to America.
-
-
-
-II
-
-POVERTY
-
-THEN followed, for Golda, the blackest years of her life. She removed
-once more to one room in Gun Street, and she and the two boys earned
-enough to keep body and soul together. She found work in other
-people's houses, helped at parties, and when nothing else was
-available she went to a little restaurant to assist as scullery-maid,
-and stayed after closing-time to scrub the tables and sweep the floor.
-For this she was given crusts of bread and scraps from the plates. She
-never had a word from her husband, and she knew she would not hear
-unless he made money. If he failed again, as of course he would, he
-would live in silence, solitary, proud, avoiding his fellow-men, who
-would have nothing to do with him except he made the surrender of
-dignity which it was impossible for him to make. She would not hear
-from him, and he would return one day unannounced, without a word, as
-though he had come from the next street; and as likely as not he would
-have given the coat off his back to some one poorer than himself.
-. . . Jacob was like that. He would give away on an impulse things
-that it had cost him weeks of saving to acquire. Low as he stood in
-the world, he seemed always to be looking downwards, as though he
-could believe in what came up from the depths but not in anything that
-went beyond him. Golda could not understand him, but she believed in
-him absolutely. She knew that he suffered even more than she, and she
-had learned from him not to complain. The Jews had always suffered.
-That was made clear in the synagogue, where, in wailing over the
-captivity in Babylon, Golda found a vent for her own sorrows. She
-would weep over the sufferings of her race as she wept for those who
-were dead, her father and her mother, and her father's father and her
-little brother, on the anniversary of their death. However poor she
-might be she had money to buy candles for them, and whatever the cost
-she kept the observances of her religion.
-
-So she lived isolated and proud, untouched by the excitements her
-children found in the houses of their friends and in the streets.
-
-Very wild was the life in the neighbourhood of Gun Street. There were
-constant feuds between Jews and Christians, battles with fists and
-sticks and stones. Old Jews were insulted and pelted by Christian
-youths, and the young Jews would take up their cause. There were
-violent disputes between landlords and tenants, husbands and wives,
-prostitutes and their bullies. Any evening, walking along Gun Street,
-you might hear screaming and growling in one of the little houses.
-Louder and louder it would grow. Suddenly the male voice would be
-silent, the female would rise to a shriek, the door would open, and
-out into the street would be propelled a half-naked woman. She would
-wail and batter on the door, and, if that were of no avail, she would
-go to the house of a friend and silence would come again. . . . Or
-sometimes a door would open and a man would be shot out to lie limp
-and flabby in the gutter.
-
-Harry, the second boy, took to this wild life like a duck to water. He
-practised with dumb-bells and learned the art of boxing, and so
-excited Mendel with his feats of strength that he too practised
-exercises and learned to stand on his hands, and cheerfully allowed
-his brother to knock him down over and over again in his ambition to
-learn the elements of defence and the use of the straight left. In
-vain: his brain was not quick enough, or was too quick. His hands
-would never obey him in time, but he dreamed of being a strong man,
-the strongest man in the world, who by sheer muscle should compel
-universal admiration and assume authority.
-
-In the family the child's superiority was acknowledged tacitly. He had
-his way in everything. He wanted such strange things, and was adamant
-in his whims. If he were not allowed to do as he wished, he lay on the
-ground and roared until he was humoured; or he would refuse to eat; or
-he would go out of the house with the intention of losing himself. As
-he was known all through the neighbourhood for his beauty that was
-impossible. He was an object of pride to the neighbours, and whenever
-he was found far from home, there was always some one who knew him to
-take him back. But Golda could not realize this, and she suffered
-tortures.
-
-The boy loved the streets and the shops, the markets with their
-fruit-stalls and fish-barrows, the brilliant colours in Petticoat
-Lane. He would wander drinking in with his eyes colour and beauty,
-shaking with emotion at the sight of the pretty little girls with
-their little round faces, their ivory skins, and their brilliant black
-eyes. Ugliness hurt him not at all. It was the condition of things,
-the dark chaos out of which flashed beauty. But cruelty could drive
-him nearly mad, and he would tremble with rage and terror at the sight
-of a woman with a bloody face or a man kicking a horse.
-
-He had a friend, a Christian boy, named Artie Beech, who adored him
-even as Abramovich adored his father. Golda was alarmed by this
-friendship, thinking no good could come out of the Christians, and she
-tried to forbid it, but the boy had his way, and he loved Artie Beech
-as a child loves a doll or a king his favourite. Together the two boys
-used to creep home from school gazing into the shop windows. One day
-they saw a brightly coloured advertisement of a beef extract: a
-picture of a man rending a lion. "It will make you stronger than a
-lion," said Mendel. "Yes," said Artie, "one drop on the tip of your
-tongue." "I would be stronger than Harry if I ate a whole bottle,"
-replied Mendel, and they decided to save up to buy the strength-giving
-elixir. It took them seven weeks to save the price of it. Then with
-immense excitement they bought the treasure, took it home, and,
-loathing the taste of it, gulped it down and tossed a button for the
-right to lick the cork. Feeling rather sick, they gazed at each other
-with frightened eyes, half expecting to swell so that they would burst
-their clothes. But nothing happened. Mendel took off his coat and felt
-his biceps and swore that they had grown. Artie took off his coat:
-yes, his biceps had grown too.
-
-They went through the streets with growing confidence, and at school
-they were not afraid. Mendel's new arrogance led him into the only
-fight he ever had and he was laid low. Aching with humiliation, he
-shunned Artie Beech and went alone to gaze at the picture of the man
-rending the lion. It took him a week of hard concentrated thought to
-realize that the picture and its legend were not to be taken
-literally, and his close study led him to another and a strangely
-emotional interest in the picture. His eyes would travel up the line
-of the man's body along his arms to the lion's jaws, and then down its
-taut back to its paws clutching the ground. The two lines springing
-together, the two forms locked, gave an impression of strength, of
-tremendous impact, which, as the boy gazed, became so violent as to
-make his head ache. At the same time he began to develop an appetite
-for this shock, and unconsciously used his eyes so as to obtain it. It
-would sometimes spring up in him suddenly, without his knowing the
-cause of it, when he watched his mother sitting with her hands folded
-on her stomach, or cooking with her hand--her big, strong, working
-hand--on a fish or a loaf of bread.
-
-One day in Bishopsgate, that lordly and splendid thoroughfare which
-led from the dark streets to the glittering world, he came on a man
-kneeling on the pavement with coloured chalks. First of all the man
-dusted the stones with his cap, and then he laid another cap full of
-little pieces of chalk by his side, and then he drew and smudged and
-smudged and drew until a slice of salmon appeared. By the side of the
-salmon he drew a glass of beer with a curl of froth on it and a little
-bunch of flowers. On another stone he drew a ship at sea in a storm, a
-black and green sea, and a brown and black sky. Mendel watched him
-enthralled. What a life! What a career! To go out into the streets and
-make the dull stones lovely with colour! He saw the man look up and
-down and then lay a penny on the salmon. A fine gentleman passed by
-and threw down another penny. . . . Oh, certainly, a career! To make
-the streets lovely, and immediately to be rewarded!
-
-From school Mendel stole some chalk and decorated the stones in the
-yard at Gun Street. He drew a bottle and an onion and a fish, though
-this he rather despised, because it was so easy. Always he had amused
-himself with drawing. As a tiny child, the first time his father went
-to America, he drew a picture of a watch to ask for that to be sent
-him, and this picture had been kept by his mother. And after that he
-often drew, but chiefly because it made his father and mother proud of
-him, and they laughed happily at everything he did. The pavement
-artist filled him with pride and pleasure in the doing of it: and
-every minute out of school and away from the Rabbi he devoted to
-drawing. His brothers bought him a box of colours, and he painted
-imaginary landscapes of rivers and swans and cows and castles. Every
-picture he made was treasured by his mother. They seemed to her, as
-they did to himself, perfectly beautiful. He used his water-colours as
-though they were oils, and laid them on thick, to get as near the
-pavement artist's colours as possible. At school there were
-drawing-lessons, but they seemed to have no relation to this keen
-private pleasure of his.
-
-In the evenings he would lie on the ground in the kitchen and paint
-until his eyes and his head ached. Sometimes his perpetual, silent
-absorption would so exasperate his brothers that they would kick his
-paints away and make him get up and talk to them. Then he would curse
-them with all the rich curses of the Yiddish language, and rush away
-and hide himself; for days he would live in a state of gloom and dark
-oppression, feeling dimly aware of a difference between him and them
-which it was beyond his power to explain. He would try to tell his
-mother what was the matter with him, but she could not understand. His
-happiness in painting, the keen delight that used to fill him, were to
-her compensation enough for her anxiety and the stress and strain of
-her poverty.
-
-His little local fame procured her some relief. At school he won a
-prize accorded by vote for the most popular boy. This had amazed him,
-for he had very little traffic with the others, and during playtime
-used to stand with his back to the wall and his arms folded, staring
-with unseeing eyes. When his sister asked one of the boys why Mendel
-had won the vote, the answer she received was: "He _can_ draw." As a
-result his brothers were helped and his mother was able to get work as
-a sempstress. They were relieved from the poverty that paralyses. They
-could go from day to day and carry their deficit from week to week.
-They could afford friends, and the visits of friends on a ceremonious
-basis, and Abramovich was always trying to interest rich men in the
-wonderful family.
-
-It was Abramovich who bought Mendel his first box of oil-paints, not
-so much to give the boy pleasure as with the idea that he might learn
-to paint portraits from photographs. That, however, was not in the
-boy's idea. He abandoned his imaginary landscapes and began to paint
-objects, still in the manner of the pavement artist, thrilled with the
-discovery that he could more and more exactly reproduce what he saw.
-He painted a loaf of bread and a cucumber so like the originals that
-Abramovich was wildly excited and rushed off to bring Mr. Jacobson, a
-Polish Jew, a timber-merchant and very rich, to see the marvel.
-
-Mendel was unprepared. He sat painting in the kitchen with his mother
-and Lotte, his younger sister. Abramovich and Mr. Jacobson came in.
-Jacobson was ruddy, red-haired, with a strange broad face and a flat
-nose, almost negroid about the nostrils. He wore a frock-coat, a white
-waistcoat with a cable-chain across it, and rings upon his fingers.
-Mendel had a horror of him, and was overcome with shyness. Mr.
-Jacobson put on his spectacles, stared at the picture. "Ye-es," he
-said. "That bread could be eaten. That cucumber could be cut and put
-into the soup. The boy is all right. Eh? Ye-es, and a beautiful boy,
-too." Mendel writhed. Golda was almost as overcome with shyness as he.
-In silence she produced all the boy's drawings and pictures and laid
-them before the visitors. Abramovich was loud in his praises, but not
-too loud, for he knew that Mr. Jacobson loved to talk. And indeed it
-seemed that Mr. Jacobson would never stop. He stood in the middle of
-the room and wagged his fat, stumpy hands and held forth:--
-
-"In my country, Mrs. Kühler, there was once a poor boy. He was always
-drawing. Give him a piece of paper and a pencil and he would draw
-anything in the world. The teacher at school had to forbid him to
-draw, for he would learn nothing at all. So one day the teacher could
-not find that boy. And where do you think they find him? Under the
-table. The teacher pulled him out and found in his hand a piece of
-paper--a piece of paper. The teacher looked down at the piece of paper
-and fainted away. The boy had drawn a picture of the teacher so like
-that he fainted away. Well, when the teacher came to himself, he said:
-'Boy, did you do that?' 'Yes,' said the boy, 'I did that.' 'Then, said
-the teacher, 'I will tell you what you must do. You must paint a
-portrait of the King and take it to the King, and he will give you
-money, and carriages, and houses, and rings, and watches, for you and
-your father, and your uncles and all your family. Ahin and aher. The
-boy did that. He painted a portrait of the King and he took it to the
-palace. He went to the front door and knock, knock, knock. A lady
-opened the door and she said: 'What do you want, little boy?' 'I want
-to see the King. I have something to show him.' 'I am the Queen,' said
-the lady. 'You can show it to me.' The boy showed the picture and the
-Queen fainted away. The servants and the King came running in to see
-what had happened, and they stood like stone. 'Who did that?' said the
-King. 'I did,' said the boy. 'I don't believe him,' said the King.
-'Shut him up for a day and a night, give him paint and brushes, and we
-will see what he can do.' Well, they shut the boy up for a day and a
-night, and in the morning the door was opened and the King and the
-Queen came in. The King took off his hat and put it on the table and
-it fell to the ground. That boy had painted a picture of a table so
-like that the King thought it was a real table and tried to put his
-hat on it. It is true, and the boy painted the King's portrait every
-Saturday until he died, and he had houses and money and footmen and
-statues in his garden, and his father and mother drove in their
-carriages and wore sables even in the summer. And some day, Mrs.
-Kühler, we shall see you in your carriage and this boy painting the
-portrait of the King."
-
-The story was received in silence. The emotions it aroused in Golda
-and her son were so profound, so violent that they were dazed. The
-tension was relieved by a giggle from Lotte, who knew that kings do
-not wear hats. Mendel sat staring at his picture, which, try as he
-would, he could not connect with the story.
-
-Abramovich said: "I told you so, Mrs. Kühler. I told you something
-would come of it." Already he was convinced that Mendel only had to go
-out into London to make the family's fortune.
-
-But Golda replied: "There's time enough for that, and don't go putting
-ideas into the boy's head."
-
-There was no danger of that. Mendel's was not the kind of head into
-which ideas are easily put. He was slow of comprehension, powerful in
-his instincts, and everything he perceived had to be referred to them.
-School was to him a perfectly extraneous experience. What he learned
-there was of so little use to any purpose of which he was conscious,
-and it could not be shared with his mother. To her schooling was the
-law of the land. A strange force took her boy from her every day and,
-as it were, imprisoned him. When he was fourteen he would be free. She
-must endure his captivity as she had learned to endure so much else.
-
-When Mr. Jacobson had gone she said: "There have been boys like that,
-and a good boy never forgets his father and mother."
-
-Mendel looked puzzled and said: "When _I_ drew a picture of teacher he
-caned me."
-
-"Caned you?" cried Golda, horrified.
-
-"He often does."
-
-"Thrashed you!" cried Golda; "on the hands?"
-
-"No," replied Mendel, "on the seat and the back."
-
-Golda made him undress, and she gave a gasp of anger when she saw the
-weals and bruises on his back. "But what did you do?" she cried.
-
-"I don't know," answered Mendel. This was true. At school he would
-suddenly find the teacher towering over him in a fury; he would be
-told to stay behind, and then he would be flogged. He had suffered
-more from the humiliation than from the pain inflicted. He could never
-understand why this fury should descend upon him out of his happy
-dreams. And now as his mother wept over the marks upon his body the
-suffering in him was released. All the feeling suppressed in him by
-his inability to understand came tearing out of him and he shook with
-rage. He could find no words to express these new emotions, which were
-terrible and frightened him.
-
-Lotte came up and felt the weals on his back with her fingers, and she
-said: "They don't do that to girls."
-
-"Be quiet, Lotte," said Golda. "Don't touch him. You will hurt him."
-And she stood staring in amazement at the boy's back. "That's an awful
-mess," she said to herself, and her thoughts flew back to men who had
-been flogged by the soldiers in Austria. But this was England, where
-everybody was left alone. She could not understand it. She did not
-know what to do. The boy could not be kept from school, for they would
-come and drag him to it. There were often dreadful scenes in Gun
-Street when children were dragged off to school. She made Lotte sit at
-the table and write: "Please, teacher, you must not beat my son. His
-back is like a railway-line, and it is not good to beat children." She
-could think of no threat which could intimidate the teacher, no power
-she could invoke to her aid. Her powerlessness appalled her. She
-signed the letter and thought she would go to the Rabbi and ask him
-what she must do. "Yes," she said, "the Rabbi will tell me, and
-perhaps the Rabbi will write to the teacher also." She could feel the
-torture in the boy, and she knew that it must be stopped. It was all
-very well to knock Harry or Issy about. They could put up with any
-amount of violence. But Mendel was different. With him pain went so
-deep. That was what made it horrible. He was like a very little child.
-It was wicked to hurt him. His silence now was almost more than she
-could bear.
-
-There came a knock at the door. Lotte went to open it and gave a
-little scream. It was her father come back from America. He came into
-the room, not different by a hair from when he went away; thinner,
-perhaps, a little more haggard and hollow under the eyes, so that the
-slight squint in his right eye, injured to avoid conscription, was
-more pronounced. He came in as though he had returned from his day's
-work, nodded to his wife, and looked at the boy's back.
-
-"Who has done that?" he asked.
-
-"At school," replied Golda. "The teacher."
-
-Jacob took off his coat, rolled up his sleeves, picked up a chair and
-smashed it on the floor. Mendel put on his shirt and coat again and
-said: "It is like when you knocked the soldier over with the glass."
-
-Jacob gave a roar: "Ah, you remember that? Ah! yes. That was when I
-had the inn near the barracks. He was an officer. Two of them came in.
-They were drunk, the swine! The man made for your mother and the
-officer for your sister. The glasses were big, with a heavy base. I
-took one of them . . ."
-
-"And the man spun round three times and fell flat on the floor," said
-Mendel.
-
-"Ah! you remember that? Yes. And I lifted him out into the street and
-left him there in the snow. I was a strong man then. I wanted nothing
-from them, but if they touch what is mine . . . !" He seized Mendel
-and lifted him high over his head. He was tremendously excited and
-could not be got to sit down or to talk of his doings in America or of
-his voyage. That was his way. He would talk in his own time. His
-doings would come out piecemeal, over years and years. Now he was
-entirely absorbed with his fury. He was nearly ill with it and could
-not eat. Up and down the room he walked, lashing up his rage. Mendel
-was sent to bed, and until he went to sleep he could hear his father
-pacing up and down and his mother talking, explaining, entreating.
-
-Next morning Mendel had almost forgotten the excitement and went to
-school as usual. In the middle of an arithmetic lesson in walked
-Jacob, very white, with his head down. He went quickly up to the
-teacher and spoke to him quietly. The class was stunned into silence.
-Jacob raised his fist and the teacher went down. Jacob picked him up,
-shook him, and threw him into a corner. Then he shouted: "You won't
-touch my boy again!" shook himself like a dog, and walked out, closing
-the door very quietly. The teacher hurried out and did not return. The
-class slowly recovered from its astonishment, shrill voices grew out
-of the silence like a strong wind, and books and inkpots began to fly.
-Soon the walls were streaked and spattered with ink and when it became
-known that it was Kühler's father who had done it, Mendel found
-himself a hero. But he took no pride in it. He was haunted by the
-teacher's white, terrified face. He had always thought of the teacher
-as a nice man. The thrashings inflicted on him had always seemed to
-him impersonal and outside humanity altogether. Yet because it was his
-father who had thrashed the teacher he accepted it as right. At home
-his father, even in his absence, was the law, and could do no wrong.
-The violent scene seemed to Mendel to have nothing to do with himself,
-and he resented having become the centre of attention.
-
-The head master hurried in, quelled the class, went on with the lesson
-where it had been interrupted. Mendel could not attend. He was
-bewildered by a sudden realization of life outside himself. It was no
-longer a procession of events, figures, scenes, colours, shapes, light
-and darkness passing before his eyes, always charming, sometimes
-terrifying, but something violent which met another something in
-himself with a fearful impact. It could hurt him, and he knew that it
-was merciless, for the thing in himself that answered to it and rushed
-out to meet it was wild and knew no mercy either. He had heard of a
-thing called the maelstrom in the sea, a kind of spout, with whirling
-sides, down which great ships were sucked. And he felt that he was
-being sucked down such a spout, in which he could see all that he had
-ever known, the mountain and the river in Austria, the train, the
-telegraph wires, towns, buses, faces, the street, the school, Artie
-Beech, Abramovich, his father. . . . Only his mother stood firm, and
-from her came a force to counteract that other force which was
-dragging him towards the whirlpool.
-
-He became conscious of the discomfort in which he lived and was
-acutely aware of the people by whom he was surrounded.
-
-
-
-III
-
-PRISON
-
-THIS time in America Jacob had fared better, and by dint of
-half-starving himself and sleeping when he had nothing to do, he had
-managed to save over fifty pounds. Abramovich borrowed another fifty,
-and once again they set up in business as furriers. They took one of
-the old Georgian houses off Bishopsgate, started a workshop in the top
-rooms, and in the lower rooms the Kühler family lived, with Abramovich
-in lodgings round the corner. They were only twenty yards from the
-synagogue and Golda was happy; Jacob too, for in such a house he felt
-a solid man. And, indeed, amid the extreme poverty with which they
-were surrounded he could pass for wealthy. He had his name on a brass
-plate on the door and was always proud when he wrote it on a cheque.
-He took his eldest son into his workshop to rescue him from the fate
-of working for another master, and he assumed a patriarchal authority
-over his family. His sons were never allowed out after half-past nine,
-and, tall youths though they were, if they crossed his will he
-thrashed them. The girls were forbidden to go out alone. They were
-kept at home to await their fate.
-
-The eldest boy flung all his ardour into dancing, and was the champion
-slow waltzer of the neighbourhood. With egg-shells on his heels to
-show that he never brought them to the ground, he could keep it up for
-hours and won many prizes. Harry scorned this polite prowess. For him
-the romance of the streets was irresistible: easy amorous conquests,
-battles of tongues and fists, visits to the prize-ring, upon which his
-young ambition centred. A bout between a Jew and a Christian would
-lead to a free-fight in the audience, for the Jews yelled in Yiddish
-to their champion, and the British would suspect insults to them or
-vile instructions, and would try to enforce silence . . . And Harry
-would bring gruff young men to the house, youths with puffy eyes and
-swollen or crooked or broken noses, and he would treat them with an
-enthusiastic deference which found no echo in any member of the family
-save Mendel, who found the world opened up to him by Harry large and
-adventurous, like the open sea stretching away and away from the
-whirlpool.
-
-There was one extraordinarily nice man whom Harry brought to the
-house. His name was Kuit, and he had failed as a boxer and had become
-a thief, a trade in which he was an expert. His talk fascinated
-Mendel, and indeed the whole family. None could fail to listen when he
-told of his adventures and his skill. He had begun as a pickpocket,
-plying his trade in Bishopsgate or the Mile End Road, and to show his
-expertise he would run his hands over Jacob's pockets without his
-feeling it, and tell him what they contained. Or he would ask Golda to
-let him see her purse, and she would grope for it only to find that he
-had already taken it. He had advanced from picking pockets to the
-higher forms of theft: plundering hotels or dogging diamond merchants,
-and he was keenly interested in America. It was through him that the
-family knew the little that was ever revealed to them of Jacob's
-doings there.
-
-Kuit said he would go to America and not return until he had ten
-thousand pounds, all made by honest theft, for he would only rob the
-rich, and, indeed, he was most generous with his earnings, and gave
-Golda many handsome pieces of jewellery, and he lent Jacob money when
-he badly needed it. That, however, was not Jacob's reason for
-admitting Kuit to his family circle. He liked the man, was fascinated
-by him, and thought his morals were his own affair. He knew his race
-and the poor too well to be squeamish, and never dreamed of extending
-his authority beyond his family. He warned Harry that if he took to
-Kuit's practices he would no longer be a son of his, and as the
-accounts of prison given to Harry by some of his acquaintances were
-not cheering, Harry preferred not to run any risks. Instead, he
-devoted himself to training for the glory of the prize-ring.
-
-For Mendel the moral aspect of Kuit's profession had been settled once
-and for all by his seeing the Rabbi with his face turned to the wall,
-in the middle of the most terrible of prayers, filch some pennies from
-an overcoat. Religion therefore was one thing, life was another, and
-life included theft. Kuit was the only man who could think of painting
-apart from money, and it was Kuit who gave him a new box of oil
-colours, stolen from a studio which he broke into on purpose, and _en
-passant_ from one rich house in Kensington to another. Kuit used to
-say: "One thing is true for one man and another for another. And what
-is true for a man is what he does best. For Harry it is boxing, for
-Issy it is women and dancing, and for Mr. Kühler it is being honest.
-For me it is showing the business thieves that they cannot have things
-all their own way, and outwitting the police. Oh yes! They know me and
-I know them, but they will never catch me."
-
-So charming was Mr. Kuit that Jacob could not object to taking care
-from time to time of the property that passed through his hands, and
-the kitchen was often splendid with marble clocks and Oriental china
-and Sheffield plate, which never looked anything but out of place
-among the cheap oleographs and the sideboard with its green paper
-frills round the flashing gilt china that was never used. The kitchen
-was the living-room of the house, for Jacob only ate when he was
-hungry, and it was rarely that two sat down to a meal together.
-
-As often as not Mendel had his paints on the table, and the objects he
-was painting were not to be moved. He clung to his painting as the
-only comfort in his distress, and he would frequently work away with
-his brushes though he could hardly see what he was at, and knew that
-he was entirely devoid of the feeling that until the discomfort broke
-out in his soul had never failed him. He dared not look outside his
-circumstances for comfort, and within them was the most absolute
-denial of that cherished feeling for loveliness and colour. Beyond
-certain streets he never ventured. He felt lost outside the immediate
-neighbourhood of his home, and only Mr. Kuit reassured him with the
-confidence with which he spoke of such remote regions as Kensington
-and Bayswater and Mayfair. The rest clung to the little district where
-the shops and the language and the smells were Jewish. Yet there, too,
-Mendel felt lost, though he had an immense reverence for the old Jews,
-for the Rabbis who pored all day long over their books, and the
-ancient bearded men who, like his mother, could sit for hours together
-doing nothing at all. He loved their tragic, wrinkled faces and their
-steadfast peace, so stark a contrast to the chatter and the wrangling
-and the harshness that filled his home.
-
-There were constant rows. Harry upset the household for weeks after
-his father forbade him to pursue his prize-fighting ambitions. Jacob
-would not have a son of his making a public show of himself. To that
-disturbance was added another when Issy began to court, or was courted
-by, a girl who was thought too poor and base-born. If he was out a
-minute later than half-past nine Jacob would go out and find him at
-the corner of the street with the girl in his arms. Issy would be
-dragged away. Then he would sulk or shout that he was a man, and Jacob
-would tell him in a cold, furious voice that he could go if he liked,
-but, if he went, he must never show his face there again. For a time
-Issy would submit. Poor though the home was, he could not think of
-leaving it except to make another for himself. But there was no
-keeping the girl away, and he would be for ever peeping into the
-street to see if she were there, and if she were he could not keep
-away from her.
-
-Leah, the eldest girl, had her courtships too. The match-makers were
-busy with her, and a number of men, young and old, were brought to
-view her. She was dressed up to look fine, and Jacob and Golda would
-sit together to inspect the suitors, and at last they chose a huge,
-ugly Russian Jew, named Moscowitsch--Abraham Moscowitsch, a
-timber-merchant, who had pulled himself up out of the East End and had
-a house at Hackney. He was a friend of Kuit's and was willing to take
-the girl without a dowry. Leah hid herself away and wept. It was in
-vain that Golda, primed by Jacob, told her that she would be rich, and
-would have servants and carriages, and could buy at the great shops:
-she could not forget the Russian's bristling hair and thick lips and
-coarse, splayed nostrils. The tears were of no avail; the marriage had
-been offered and accepted. The wedding was fixed, and nothing was
-spared to make it a social triumph. The bride was decked out in
-conventional English white, with a heavy veil and a bouquet: and very
-lovely she looked. Jacob wore his first frock-coat and a white linen
-collar, Golda had a dress made of mauve cashmere, with a bodice
-heavily adorned with shining beads, and Mendel had a new sailor suit
-with a mortar-board cap. There were three carriages to drive the party
-the twenty yards to the synagogue. The wedding group was photographed,
-and a hall was taken for the feast and the dance in the evening. The
-wedding cost Jacob the savings of many years and more, but he grudged
-not a penny of it, because he had a rich son-in-law and wished it to
-be known. There were over fifty guests at the feast.
-
-Within a week Leah came home again, pale, thin, and shrunken.
-Moscowitsch had been arrested. He had gone bankrupt and had done
-"something with his books."
-
-"Bankrupt!" said Jacob; "bankrupt!"
-
-He stood in front of his weeping daughter and beat against the air
-with his clenched fists. She moaned and protested that she would never
-go back to him. Jacob shook her till her teeth chattered together.
-
-"You dare talk like that! He is your husband. You are his wife. It is
-a misfortune. You should be with the lawyers to find out when you can
-see him. I am to lose everything because he is unfortunate! A dog will
-not turn from a man in his misery, and must a woman learn from a dog?
-You are a soft girl! Go, I say, and find out when you can see him. Was
-ever a man so crossed by Fate! Where I go, there luck takes wings."
-
-His violence shook Leah out of the dazed misery in which she had come
-home, having no other idea, no other place to which to go. Jacob was
-at first for making his daughter wait in her new home until her
-husband was returned to her. His simple imagination seized on the idea
-and visualized it. It seemed to him admirable, and Golda had hard work
-to shake it out of his head. As a piece of unnecessary cruelty he
-could not realize it, but when it was brought home to him that he
-would have to pay the rent of the house in Hackney, he yielded and
-allowed the girl to stay at home.
-
-Moscowitsch was sentenced to six months' imprisonment, and a gloom,
-such as not the darkest days of poverty had been able to create,
-descended upon the house. Jacob was ashamed and irritable. He insisted
-upon the most scrupulous observance of all the rites of his religion,
-and he forbade Mendel to paint. Painting had nothing to do with
-religion and he would have none of it. He trampled on Mendel's
-friendship with Artie Beech. The Christian world of police and judges
-and the law had destroyed his happiness, and not the faintest smell of
-Christendom should cross his door. Friction between the father and his
-two sons was exasperated, and it seemed to Mendel that Hell was let
-loose. He was nearly of an age to leave school, and he dreamed by the
-hour of the freedom he would have when he went to work. He would go
-out early in the morning and come home late in the evening. He would
-stay in the streets and look at the shops and watch the girls go by.
-He would go one day out beyond London to see what the world was like
-there. He would find a place where there were pictures, and he would
-feast on them: for when he went to work he would paint no more, since
-painting would be shed with the miserable childhood that was so fast
-slipping away from him.
-
-Yet a worse calamity was to happen. Once again the Christian world of
-police, law, and judges was to invade the home of the Kühlers, and
-this time it was Jacob himself who was taken. He was charged with
-receiving stolen goods. A detective-inspector and two constables
-invaded the house and took possession of an ormolu clock, a number of
-silver knives, and a brooch which Mr. Kuit had given to Golda. Five of
-Mr. Kuit's friends had been arrested, but Mr. Kuit himself was not
-implicated. He paid for the defence of the prisoners and took charge
-of the Kühler family, transferred the business into Issy's name, and
-advanced money to keep it going. He spared neither time nor trouble to
-try to establish Jacob's innocence, but it looked almost as though
-some one else was taking an equal amount of trouble to prove his
-guilt, for every move of Mr. Kuit's was countered, and Jacob himself
-was so bewildered and enraged that he could not give a coherent answer
-to the questions put to him. He babbled and raved of an enemy who had
-done this thing, of a rival who had plotted his ruin, but as he could
-not give a satisfactory account of the articles found in his
-possession, his passionate protestations and his fanatical belief in
-his own honesty were of no avail. From the dock in which he was placed
-with Mr. Kuit's other friends he delivered a vehement harangue in
-broken English, not more than ten words of which were intelligible to
-the judge and jury. The judge was kindly, the jury somnolent. Jacob
-was the only member of the party with a clean record, and he received
-the light sentence of eighteen months; the rest had double that term
-and more. In the Sunday papers they were described as a dangerous
-gang, and their portraits were drawn like profiles on a coin by an
-artist whose business it was to make villains look villainous for the
-delectation of the sober millions who tasted the joys of wickedness
-only in print. Golda was staggered by the blank indifference of the
-world to her husband's honesty. His word to her was law, but the judge
-and the newspapers swept it aside, and he was regarded as one with the
-wicked men whose crooked dealings had involved the innocent. This was
-the worst disaster that had ever broken upon her: husband and
-son-in-law both swept away from her, as it seemed now, in one moment.
-The sympathy she received from the neighbours touched her profoundly,
-and she accepted their view that the sudden abstraction of male
-relatives was a natural calamity, like sickness or fire. Thanks to Mr.
-Kuit the business would be kept together, and thanks to Abramovich she
-never lacked company. That faithful friend would come in in the
-evenings and go over the trial, every moment of which he had heard,
-and recount every word of Jacob's speech, which to him was a piece of
-magnificent oratory. "Not a tear was left in my eyes," he said. "Not a
-throb was left in my heart, and the judge was moved, for his face sank
-into his hands and I could see that he knew how unjust he must be."
-And he spent many days ferreting out a villain to be the cause of it
-all, some inveterate, implacable enemy who had plotted the downfall of
-the most honest man in London. He fixed on a certain Mr. Rosenthal,
-who years ago had tried to sell them machines for the business when
-they had already bought all that were necessary. He was quite sure it
-was Mr. Rosenthal who had bribed the thieves to hold their tongues,
-when any one of them could have cleared Jacob in a moment. And Golda
-believed that it was Mr. Rosenthal and dreamed of unattainable acts of
-revenge.
-
-Mendel used to listen to them talking, and their voices seemed to him
-to come from very far away. The upheaval had stunned him, had
-destroyed his volition and paralysed his dreams. He felt as though a
-tight band were fixed round his head. He had neither desire nor will.
-The world could do as it liked with him. If the world could suddenly
-invade his home and brand its head and lawgiver as thief, then the
-world was empty and foolish and it did not matter what happened. It
-amazed him that his brothers and sisters could go about as usual: that
-Harry could come home and talk of prize-fighters and sit writing to
-girls, and that Issy could go out to meet his Rosa at the corner of
-the street. It was astonishing that his mother could still cook and
-they could still eat, and that every morning Harry could go down and
-open the door to let in the workpeople to clatter up the stairs. . . .
-And Harry disliked getting out of bed in the morning. In his father's
-absence he ventured to apply his considerable ingenuity to the
-problem, and rigged up a wire from his bed to the knob of the
-front-door. Nor was this the only sign of the removal of the centre of
-authority from the family, for Issy actually brought his girl Rosa to
-the house and made his mother be pleasant to her. . . . Golda felt
-that her children were growing beyond her, and she thought it was time
-Issy was thinking of getting married, though not to Rosa, whose father
-was a poor cobbler and could give her no money.
-
-At regular intervals. Golda swallowed down her dread of the busy
-streets and went to Pentonville, where through the bars of the
-visitors'-room Jacob received her report and gave his instructions. He
-decreed against Rosa, who accordingly was forbidden to enter the house
-again. He had orders for every one of his children except Mendel, as
-to whom Golda did not consult him. Deep in her inmost heart she was in
-revolt against her husband, for she had begun to see that he had
-carried pride to the point of folly, and all her hopes, all her
-dreams, all her ambitions were centred upon her darling boy. Her
-ambitions were not worldly. She knew nothing at all about the world,
-and did not believe three parts of what she heard of it. Only she
-longed for him to escape the bitterness and bareness that had been her
-portion. The boy was so beautiful and could be so gay and could dance
-so lightly, and would sometimes be so tempestuous and masterful. It
-would be a sin if he were to be cramped over a board or were sent to
-work in a tailoring shop. She herself had a love of flowers and of
-moonlight and the stars shining through the smoky sky, and she would
-sometimes find herself being urged to the use of strange words, which
-would make Mendel raise his head and cock his ears as though he were
-listening to the very beat of her heart. To that no one in the world
-had ever listened, and her life seemed very full and worthy when
-Mendel in his childish fashion was awake to it. . . . Pentonville
-seemed to suit Jacob. He looked almost fat and said the cocoa was very
-good.
-
-The time came for Mendel to leave school and Issy said he had better
-be taken into the workshop. Harry wanted him in the timber-yard in
-which he loafed away his days. Abramovich was for getting Mr. Jacobson
-to take him into his office, for Mr. Jacobson never failed to ask
-after the boy who painted the pictures. Now it so happened that Mendel
-had found a bookshop, outside which he had discovered a life of W. P.
-Frith, R.A. In daily visits over a period of three weeks he had read
-it from cover to cover, the story of a poor boy who had become an
-artist, rising to such fame that he had painted the portrait of the
-Queen. There it was in print, and must be true. Mr. Jacobson's boy was
-only in a story, but here it was set down in a book, with
-reproductions of the artist's wonderful pictures--"The Railway
-Station," "Derby Day." The book said they were wonderful. The book
-spoke with reverence and enthusiasm of pictures and the men who
-painted them.
-
-With tremulous excitement he secretly produced his box of paints
-again, and squeezed out the colours on to the plate he used for a
-palette. He adored the colours and amused himself with painting smooth
-strips of blue, yellow, green, red, orange, grey, for the sheer
-delight of handling the delicious stuff. It was a new pleasure, the
-joy of colours in themselves without reference to any object, or any
-feeling inside himself except this simple thrilling delight. He could
-forget everything in it, for it was his first taste of childish glee.
-Nothing would ever be the same again. Nothing could ever again so
-oppress and overwhelm him as distasteful and even pleasant things had
-done in the past. He would be an artist, a wonderful artist, like W.
-P. Frith, R.A.
-
-So when he was called into the kitchen one night and they told him he
-was to go into Mr. Jacobson's office, he looked as though their words
-had no meaning for him, and he said:--
-
-"I want to be an artist."
-
-An artist? Nobody knew quite what that meant. Golda thought it meant
-painting pictures, but she could not imagine a man devoting all his
-time to it--a child's pastime.
-
-"He means the drawing!" said Abramovich. "I had a friend at home who
-used to paint the flowers on the cups."
-
-"I'm going to be an artist," said Mendel.
-
-"But you've got to make your money like everybody else," replied Issy.
-
-Mendel retorted with details of what he could remember of the career
-of his idol. Issy said that was a _Christlicher kop._ There weren't
-such things as Jewish artists; whereon Harry threw in the word
-"Rubinstein." Asked to explain what he meant, he did not know, but had
-just remembered the name.
-
-Abramovich said he thought Rubinstein was a conductor at the Opera,
-and there were Jewish singers and actors.
-
-"My father," said Harry, "won't hear of that. He won't have a son of
-his making a public show of himself."
-
-Mendel by this time was white in the face, and his eyes were glaring
-out of his head. He knew that not one of them had understood his
-meaning, and he felt that Issy was bent on having his way with him. He
-was in despair at his helplessness, and at last, when he could endure
-no more, he flung himself down on the floor and howled. Issy lost his
-temper with him, picked him up, and carried him, kicking and biting,
-upstairs, and flung him on his bed.
-
-The subject was dropped for a time, but Mendel refused to eat, or to
-sleep, or to leave the house. He was afraid that if he put his nose
-outside the door Abramovich would pounce on him and drag him off to
-Mr. Jacobson's office.
-
-However, the matter could not be postponed for long, because money was
-very scarce and the boy must be put into the way of providing for
-himself. Golda asked Abramovich to find out what an artist was and how
-much a week could be made at the trade. Abramovich came in one evening
-with a note-book full of facts and figures. He had read of a picture
-being sold for tens of thousands of pounds, and this had made a great
-impression on him. Mendel was called down from the room in which he
-had exiled himself.
-
-"Well?" said Abramovich kindly. "So you want to be an artist? But
-how?"
-
-"I don't know. I shall paint pictures."
-
-"But who will feed you? Who will buy you paints, brushes?"
-
-"I shall sell my pictures."
-
-"Where, then? How?"
-
-"To the shops."
-
-"Where are the shops? Tell me of any shop near here, for I don't know
-a single one."
-
-Again Mendel felt that they were too clever for him, and he was on the
-brink of another fit of despair when, fortunately for him, Mr.
-Macalister, a commercial traveller in furs, came in. When he was in
-London he made a point of calling on the Kühlers, whom he liked, much
-as he liked strong drink. He was a man of some attainments, a student
-of Edinburgh, who had found the ordinary walks and the ordinary people
-of life too tame for his chaotic and vigorous temper, and he went from
-place to place collecting just such strange people as these Polacks,
-as he used to call them. He looked for passion in men and women, and
-accepted it gratefully and even greedily wherever he found it. . . .
-He had red hair and a complexion like a white-heart cherry, with
-little twinkling eyes as blue as forget-me-nots.
-
-He kindled at once to the passion with which Mendel was bursting,
-stooped over Golda's hand and kissed it--for he knew that was how
-foreigners greeted a lady--and then he sat heavily waiting for the
-situation to be explained to him. Mendel instinctively appealed to
-him. . . . Oh yes! he knew what an artist was, and some painters had
-made tidy fortunes, though they were not the best of them. There were
-Reynolds, and Lawrence, and Raeburn, and Landseer, and some young
-fellows at Glasgow, and Michael Angelo--a tidy lot, indeed. Never a
-Jew, that he had heard of.
-
-"I told you so!" said Abramovich.
-
-Golda showed Mr. Macalister the boy's pictures, and he was genuinely
-impressed, especially by a picture of three oranges in a basket.
-
-"It's not," he said, "that they make you want to eat them, as that
-they make you look at them as you look at oranges. I'll look closer at
-every orange I see now. That's talent. Yes. That's talent. Aye."
-
-Mendel was so grateful to him that he forgot the others and began to
-point out to him how well the oranges were painted, with all their
-fleshiness and rotundity brought out. And very soon they were all
-laughing at him, and that made the meeting happier.
-
-Mr. Macalister explained that in old days artists used to take boys
-into their studios, but that now there were Schools of Art where only
-very talented people could survive. He certainly thought that Mendel
-ought to be given a chance, and if it were a question of money, he,
-poor though he was, would be only too glad to help. Golda would not
-hear of that, and Abramovich protested that, in an unhappy time like
-this, he regarded himself as the representative of his unfortunate
-friend.
-
-The corner was turned. Feeling was now all with Mendel, and he went to
-bed singing in head and heart: "I'm an artist! I'm an artist! I'm an
-artist!"
-
-* * * * *
-
-So the ball was set rolling. Jacob, seen behind the bars, raised no
-objection. He had had time to think, and, to the extent of his
-capacity, availed himself of it. When he was told that his youngest
-son wanted to be an artist and wept at the suggestion of anything
-else, he thought: "Who am I to say 'Yea' or 'Nay'?" and he said "Yea."
-"Let the boy have a little happiness while he may, for the Christians
-are very powerful and will take all that he cherishes from him."
-
-The question of ways and means was considered, and here Abe
-Moscowitsch took charge. His business had prospered during his
-enforced absence, and his bankruptcy had been very profitable. He was
-a decent man, and anxious to make amends to his young wife and her
-family for the trouble his adventurousness had brought on them. To
-please her he took a new house with bow-windows and a garage, and to
-please them he jumped at the opportunity of helping Mendel, and
-offered to pay his fees at a School of Art. When the boy heard this he
-ran to his brother-in-law's office and, before all his workmen, flung
-his arms round his neck and embraced him.
-
-"That'll do. That'll do," said Moscowitsch. "Don't forget us if you're
-a rich man before I am."
-
-"I shall never leave home," said Mendel. "I shall never marry. I shall
-live all my days with my mother, painting."
-
-There arose the difficulty that no one had ever heard of a School of
-Art. Mr. Macalister was deputed to look into the matter. He inquired,
-and was recommended to the Polytechnic as being cheap and good, and
-the Polytechnic was decided on.
-
-Mr. Kuit came in at the tail of all this excitement, and added to it
-by saying that he was just off to America, first-class by the Cunard
-Line, for he was going to start in style, live in style, and come back
-in style. He was delighted to hear of the brilliant future opening up
-before Mendel, and told wonderful stories of famous pictures that had
-been stolen, cut out of their frames and taken away under the very
-noses of the owners. He was wonderfully overdressed, not loudly or
-vulgarly, but through his eagerness to be and to look first-class. He
-produced a pack of cards and showed how he could shuffle them to suit
-himself, and three times out of five, through the fineness of the
-touch, he could "spot" a card. He was a wonderful man. The Kühlers
-gaped at him, and Moscowitsch, in emulation, was led on to brag of his
-smartness in business, and how he had thrice burned down his
-timber-yard and made the insurance people pay up. Yet, though he
-warmed up as he boasted, he lacked the magic of Mr. Kuit and could not
-conceal the meanness of his deeds behind their glamour. He lumbered
-along like a great bear behind Mr. Kuit, and was vexed because he
-could not overtake him, and when the glittering little Jew, who seemed
-more magician than thief, said he would give Mendel a new suit of
-clothes for his entry into the world of art, Moscowitsch promised to
-provide a new pair of boots. Mr. Kuit countered with two new hats,
-Moscowitsch with underclothes. On they went in competition until
-Mendel was magnificently equipped, and at last Moscowitsch laid two
-new sovereigns on the table and said they were for the boy's
-pocket-money. Not to be outdone, Mr. Kuit produced a five-pound note
-and gave it to Golda to be put into the Post Office Savings Bank.
-
-In her inmost heart Golda was alarmed. For the first time she began to
-realize the vast powerful London with which she was surrounded. At
-home, in Austria, people stole because they were poor, because they
-were starving. She herself had often sent Harry and Issy out into the
-market with a sack and a spiked stick with which to pick up potatoes
-and cabbages and bread, but here the old simplicity was lacking. The
-swagger and the magnitude of Mr. Kuit's operations and her
-son-in-law's frauds alarmed her, and she felt that no good could come
-of it. They belonged to some power which moved too fast for her, and
-it was being invoked for Mendel, her youngest-born, her treasure.
-Truly it was a black day that took Jacob from her. Where he was, there
-was simplicity. Everything was kept in its place when he was in
-authority. Everything was kept down on the earth. There was the good
-smell of the earth in all his dealings, all his emotions. Never in him
-was the easy fantastic excitement of Kuit and Moscowitsch . . . They
-were mad. Surely they were mad. Their excitement infected everybody.
-Golda could feel it creeping in her veins like a poison. It came from
-the world to which these men belonged, the world of prison. That one
-word expressed it all for Golda. She had only been out into it to go
-to the prison, and to her that seemed to be the cold empty centre of
-it all. The bustle and glitter of the streets led to the prison, and
-she had always to fight to get back into her own life, where things
-were simple and definite--ugly, maybe--but clear and actual. . . . And
-now into that world of hectic excitement playing about the prison and
-about Mendel was to go, to be she knew not what, to learn to play with
-brushes and colours, to practise tricks which seemed to her not
-essentially different from Mr. Kuit's sleight with the cards. She was
-sure no good could come of it; but for the present the boy had his
-happiness, and to that she yielded.
-
-
-
-IV
-
-FIRST LOVE
-
-FOR Mendel every day became romantic, though he suffered tortures of
-shyness and used to bolt like a rabbit through the doors of the
-Polytechnic, rush upstairs to his easel, and never raise his eyes from
-it except to gaze at the objects placed before him. He worked in a
-frenzy, convinced that it was his business to translate the object on
-to the canvas. When he had done that he felt that the object had no
-further existence. It ought to vanish as completely as his consuming
-interest in it. As a matter of fact, it never did vanish, but it was
-lost in the praises of Mr. Sivwright, and the young women and old
-ladies who attended the class. The first task set the class after he
-joined it was a ginger-beer bottle, of which his rendering was
-declared to be a marvel, even to the high light on the marble in the
-neck of the bottle.
-
-He was rather small for his age and was almost absurdly beautiful,
-with his curly hair, round Austrian head, and amusing pricked ears.
-His eyes were set very wide apart. They were blue. His nose was
-straight, and very slightly tip-tilted, and his lips were as
-delicately modelled as the petals of a rose. They were always
-tremulous as he shrank under the vivid impressions that poured in on
-him in bewildering profusion. He began to grow physically and
-spiritually, though not at all mentally, and he lived in a state of
-bewilderment, retaining shrewdness enough to cling to the necessary
-plain fact that he was at the school to be a success, for if he failed
-he would sink back into the already detestable world inhabited by Issy
-and Harry.
-
-He created quite a stir at the school. Mr. Sivwright, a Lancashire
-Scotsman, whose youthful revolt against commerce and grime had carried
-him in the direction of art only so far as the municipal school, said
-he was an infant prodigy and made a show of him. To Mendel's disgust
-Mr. Sivwright assured the other pupils that he was a Pole. This was
-his first intimation that there was, in the splendid free Christian
-world, a prejudice against Jews. He was rather shocked and disgusted,
-for never in his life had he found occasion to call anything by other
-than its right name. It took him weeks to conquer his shyness
-sufficiently to protest.
-
-"I am a Jew," he said to Mr. Sivwright. "Why do you call me a Pole?"
-
-"Well," said Mr. Sivwright, "there's Chopin, you know, and Paderewski,
-don't you know, and Kosciusko, and the Jews don't stand for anything
-but money. And, after all, you do come from Poland."
-
-"But I am a Jew."
-
-"You don't look it, and there's some swing about being a Pole. There's
-no swing about being a Jew. It stops dead, you know. I don't know why
-it is, but it stops dead."
-
-The words frightened Mendel. How awful it would be if he were to stop
-dead, to reach the Polytechnic and to go no further!
-
-He was soon taken beyond the Polytechnic, for Mr. Sivwright led him to
-the National Gallery and showed him the treasures there. The boy was
-at once prostrate before Greuze. Ah! there were softness, tenderness,
-charm: all that he had lacked and longed for. It was in vain that Mr.
-Sivwright took him to the Van Eycks and the Teniers and the Franz
-Hals, striking an attitude and saying: "Fine! Dramatic! That's the
-real stuff!" The boy would return to his Greuze and pour out on the
-pretty maidens all the longings for emotion with which he was filled,
-and the yearning seemed to him to be the irresistible torrent of art
-which carried those who felt it to the pinnacles of fame. . . . Yet he
-knew that Mr. Sivwright was a shoddy failure of a man, and he knew
-that Mr. Sivwright's ecstasies were forced and had small connection
-with the pictures before him. He also knew that he had not the least
-desire to paint like Greuze, but he could not resist the fascination
-of the pretty maidens and the gush of feeling he had in front of them.
-The Italians he did not understand and Velasquez and El Greco repelled
-him. Also, the pictures as a whole excited him so that they ran into
-each other and he could not extricate them, and Greuze became his
-stand-by. He felt safe with Greuze.
-
-Every day he used to go home and tell his mother of the day's doings,
-from the moment when he mounted the bus in the morning to the time
-when he walked home in the evening. He gave her minute accounts of all
-the people in the class, of the cheap restaurant where he had lunch,
-of the marvels of the streets: the old women selling flowers at Oxford
-Circus; the gorgeous shop-windows; the illuminated signs and
-advertisements, green, red, and yellow; the theatres; the posters of
-the comic men outside the music-halls; the rich people in their
-motor-cars; the marvellous ladies in their silks and their furs; the
-poor men selling matches; the scarlet soldiers and blue sailors; the
-big policemen who stopped the traffic with their white hands; the
-awful, endless desolation of Portland Place, with trees--actually
-trees--at the end of it; the whirl, the glitter, the roar, the
-splendour of London. And he used to mimic for her the strange people
-he saw, the mincing ladies and the lordly shopwalkers, the tittering
-girls and the men working in the streets. The more excited he was the
-more depressed was Golda. What was it all for? Why could not people
-live a decent quiet life? Why was all this whirligig revolving round
-the prison? . . . But she smiled and laughed and applauded him, and
-believed him when he said none of the Christians could draw as well as
-he.
-
-He began to win prizes. It became his whole object to beat the
-Christians. What they told him to paint he would paint better than any
-of them. And by sheer will and concentration he succeeded.
-
-Mr. Sivwright said there was no holding him, and very soon declared he
-had nothing more to learn.
-
-This was taken by Mendel and his family to mean that he was now an
-artist. In all good faith he established himself in a room below the
-workshop at home, called it his studio, and set to work. For a few
-months he painted apples, fish, oranges, portraits of his mother,
-brothers, and sisters, and for a time was able to sell them among his
-acquaintance. He had one or two commissions for portraits and could
-always make a few shillings by painting from photographs. But
-appreciation of art among his own people was limited; he soon came to
-an end of it, and there was that other world calling to him. Art lay
-beyond that other world. He felt sure of that. It lay beyond Mr.
-Sivwright. If he stayed among his own people he would stop dead; for
-he knew now that it was true that the Jews stopped dead.
-
-And then to his horror he stopped. For no reason at all his skill, his
-enthusiasm, his eagerness left him. He forced himself to paint,
-transferred innumerable idiotic faces from photographs to cigar-box
-lids, made his mother neglect her work to sit to him, bribed Lotte to
-be his model, but hated and loathed everything that he did. He was
-listless, sometimes feverish, sometimes leaden and cold. Often he
-thought he was going to die--to die before anything had happened,
-before anything had emerged from the chaos of his painful vivid
-impressions.
-
-To make things worse, his father came home and said that he would give
-him six months in which to make his living, and at the end of that
-time, if he had failed, he would have to go into the workshop.
-
-He felt hopeless. He went to see Mr. Sivwright and poured out his woes
-to him, who wrote a letter to Jacob saying that his son was a genius
-and would be one of the greatest of painters. Jacob said: "What is a
-genius? I do not know. I know what a man is, and a man works for his
-living. In six months, if you can make fifteen shillings a week I will
-believe in this painting. If not, what is there to believe? What will
-you do when you are to marry, heh? Tell me that. Will your little
-tubes of paint keep a wife, heh? Tell me that."
-
-Mendel could say nothing. He could do nothing. He gave up even trying
-to paint, for he might as well have played with mud-pies. He borrowed
-money from his brothers and prowled about the streets, and went to the
-National Gallery. Greuze meant nothing to him now. He began to feel,
-very faintly, the force of Michael Angelo, but the rest only filled
-him with despair. He knew nothing--nothing at all. He could not even
-begin to see how the pictures were painted. They were miraculous and
-detestable. . . . He went home and comforted himself with a little
-picture of some apples on a plate. He had painted it two years before
-in an ecstasy--a thrilling love for the form, the colour, the texture
-of the fruit and the china. It was good. He knew it was good, but he
-knew he could do nothing like it now--never again, perhaps.
-
-And how disgusting the streets had become! Such a litter, such a
-noise, such aimless, ugly people! He could understand his mother's
-horror of them. Ah! she never failed him. To her his words were always
-music, his presence was always light. Half-dead and miserable as he
-was, she could know and love the aching heart of him that lived so
-furiously behind all the death and the misery and the ashes of young
-hopes that crusted him. She was like the sky and the trees. She was
-like the young grass springing and waving so delicately in the wind.
-She was like the water and the rolling hills. . . . He had discovered
-these things at Hampstead, whither he had gone out of sheer
-aimlessness. He had never been in the Tube, and one day, with a
-shilling borrowed from Harry, it seemed appropriate to him to plunge
-into the bowels of the earth. The oppression of the air, the roar of
-the train, the flash of the stations as he moved through them, suited
-his mood, fantastic and futile. He got out at Hampstead.
-
-It was his first sight of the country. He could hardly move at first
-for emotion. He found himself laughing, and he stooped and touched the
-grass tenderly, almost timidly, as though he were afraid of hurting
-it. He was fearful at first of walking on it, but that seemed to him
-childish, and he strode along with his quick, light-footed stride and
-lost himself in the willow groves. He made a posy of wild-flowers and
-took them back to his mother, carrying them unashamedly in his hand,
-entirely oblivious of the smiles of the passers-by. He knew he could
-not tell his mother of the happiness of that day, and the flowers
-could say more than any words.
-
-Yet the happiness only made his misery more acute. He suffered
-terribly from the pious narrowness of his home, the restricted,
-cramped life of his brothers and sisters, who seemed to him to be
-stealing such life as they had from the religious observances to which
-they were bound by their father's rigid will. Prayers at home, prayers
-in the synagogue: the dreadful monotony of the home, of the talk, of
-the squabbles: human life forced to be as dull as that of the God who
-no longer interfered in human life. . . . There was a tragedy in the
-street. There had been a scandal. A young Rabbi, a gloriously handsome
-creature, who sang in the synagogue, had fallen in love with a little
-girl of fourteen who lived opposite the Kühlers. Golda had watched the
-intrigue from her windows, and she said it was the girl's fault. The
-Rabbi used to go every day when her father was out and she used to let
-him in. Jacob wrote to the girl's father, and the Rabbi left his
-lodgings and took a room over a little restaurant round the corner. He
-had his dinner and went upstairs and sat up all night singing, in his
-lovely tenor voice, love songs and religious chants, so sweetly that
-the neighbours threw their windows open and there was a little crowd
-of people in the street listening. And in the morning they found him
-with his throat cut.
-
-"It was the girl's fault," said Golda, but Jacob said: "A man should
-know better than to melt when a little girl practises her eyes on
-him."
-
-This tragedy relaxed the nervous strain which had been set up in
-Mendel by his troubles. New forces stirred in him which often made him
-hectic and light-headed. Women changed their character for him. They
-were no longer soothing ministrants, but creatures charged with a
-mysterious, a maddening charm. He trembled at the rustle of their
-skirts and his eyes were held riveted by their movements. He was
-suffocated by his new curiosity about them.
-
-Sometimes, in his despair over his painting and the apparently
-complete disappearance of his talent, he would fill in the day in his
-father's workshop, stretching rabbit-skins on a board. Girls and men
-worked together, busily, quietly, dexterously, for the most part in
-silence, for they were paid by the piece and were unwilling to waste
-time. There was a girl who had just been taken into the workshop to
-learn the trade. She was small and plump and swarthy, but her face was
-beautiful, the colour of rich old ivory. Her eyes were black and
-golden from a ruddy tinge in her eyelashes. Her lips were full and
-pouting, and she had long blue-black hair, which she was always
-tossing back over her shoulder. When Mendel was there she rarely took
-her eyes off him, and even when her head was bent he could feel that
-she was watching him.
-
-He waited for her one evening, and with his knees almost knocking
-together he asked if she would come to his studio and let him draw
-her. With a silly giggle she said she would come, and she ran away
-before he could get out another word.
-
-The next evening he waited in his studio for her, but she did not
-come. So again the next and the next, and it was a whole week before
-she knocked at the door. He pulled her in. Neither could speak a word.
-At last he stammered out:
-
-"I--I haven't got my drawing things ready."
-
-"I don't mind," she said, and she gave a little shiver.
-
-"Are you cold?" he asked, and he touched her neck.
-
-She threw up her head, seemed to fall towards him, and their lips met.
-
-Thrilling and sweet were the hours they spent, lost in the miracle of
-desire, finding themselves again, laughing happily, weeping happily,
-breaking through into the enchanted world, where the few words that
-either knew had lost their meaning. They were hardly conscious of each
-other. They knew nothing of each other, and wished to know nothing
-except the lovely mystery they shared. It was some time before he even
-knew her name, or where she lived, or what her people were. She
-existed for him only in the enchantment she brought into his life, in
-the release from his burden, in the marvellous free life of the body.
-Royal he felt, like a king, like a master, and she was a willing
-slave. From home she would steal good things to eat, and she would sit
-with shining eyes watching him eat; and then she would wait until he
-had need of her. . . . Strange, silent, happy hours they spent, free
-together in the dark little room, free as birds in their nest, happy
-in warm contact, utterly quiescent, utterly oblivious. . . .
-
-Soon their silence became oppressive to them, but neither could break
-it, so far beyond their years and their childish minds was the
-experience in which they were joined. When the first ecstasy passed
-and they became conscious and deliberate in their delight, they had
-unhappy moments, to escape from which he began to draw her. Into this
-work poured a strong cool passion altogether new to him, a joy so
-magnificent that he would forget her altogether. He was tyrannical,
-and kept her so still that she would almost weep from fatigue and
-boredom. But he was not satisfied until he had drawn every line of
-her, and had translated her from the world of the body to the world of
-vision and the spirit. He knew nothing of that. He was only concerned
-to draw her as he had drawn the ginger-beer bottle at the Polytechnic.
-Certain parts of her body--her little budding breasts and her round
-arms--especially delighted him, and he drew them over and over again.
-Her head he drew twenty times, and he found a shop in the West End
-where he could sell every one. And each time he bought her a little
-present.
-
-She was not satisfied with that. She wanted to display him to her
-friends. She wanted him to take her to music-halls and to join the
-parade of boys and girls. He refused. That would be profanation. He
-and she had nothing to do with the world. He and she were the world.
-Outside it was only his drawing. He could not see that she was unable
-to share it. Did he not draw her? Did he dream of drawing anything but
-her? . . . . To go from that to restaurants, the lascivious
-pleasantries of the streets, the garish music-halls, was to him
-unthinkable.
-
-She said he cared more for his drawing than for her, and indeed he
-would sometimes draw for a couple of hours and then kiss her almost
-absent-mindedly, just as she was going. He was so happy and satisfied
-and could not imagine her being anything less, or that she might wish
-to express in music-halls and "fun" what he expressed in his work.
-
-He felt gloriously confident, and naďvely told his mother how happy he
-was. Everything had come back. He could draw better than ever. He
-would be a great artist.
-
-Once more he took to painting in the kitchen. The studio was dedicated
-to the girl, Sara, who came to him in spite of her disappointment. He
-had spoiled her for other boys.
-
-He painted all day long in the kitchen, and his life became ordered
-and regular. He went for a walk in the morning, then worked all day
-long until the workpeople began to clatter downstairs, when he would
-pack up his paint-box and run up to the studio to wait for Sara to
-come tapping softly at his door.
-
-Golda was overjoyed at his new happiness and the budding manhood in
-him, but she knew that this springtime of his youth could not be
-without a cause. She knew that he was in love and was fearful of
-consequences, and dreaded his being fatally entangled. She kept watch
-and saw Sara stealthily leave the house hours after the other
-workpeople had gone. She told Jacob, and Sara was dismissed and
-forbidden ever to come near the house again.
-
-
-
-V
-
-A TURNING-POINT
-
-AT first Mendel hardly noticed the passing of Sara. He waited
-anxiously for her to come, but when she never appeared he went on
-working, only gradually to discover that the first glorious impulse
-had faded away. However, the habit of regular work was strong with
-him, and he could go on like a carpenter or a mason or any other good
-journeyman. But there was no one to buy what he produced, and his
-father began to talk gloomily and ominously of the workshop.
-
-"Never!" said Mendel. "If I am not a great artist by the time I am
-twenty-three I will come and work. If I have done nothing by the time
-I am twenty-three I shall know that I am no good."
-
-"I can see no reason," said Jacob, "why you should not work like any
-other man and paint in your spare time. Issy is a good dancer in his
-spare time, and Harry is good at the boxing. Why should you not paint
-in your spare time and work like an honest man?"
-
-Mendel turned on his father and rent him.
-
-"You do not know what work is. You work with your hands. Yes. But do
-you ever work till your head swims, and your eyes ache because they
-can see more inside than they can outside? If I cannot paint I shall
-die. I shall be like a bird that cannot sing, like a woman that has no
-child, like a man that has no strength. I tell you I shall die if I
-cannot paint."
-
-"Yes, he will die," said Golda. "He will surely die."
-
-"He will die of starvation if he goes on painting," replied Jacob.
-
-"And if you had not been able to sleep you would have died of
-starvation for all that work ever did for you," cried Golda, convinced
-that Mendel was speaking the truth.
-
-Shortly before this crisis Mendel had discovered a further aspect of
-the Christian world. A good young man from an Oxford settlement had
-heard of him and had sought him out. This young man's name was Edward
-Tufnell. He was the son of a rich Northern manufacturer, and he
-believed that the cultured classes owed something to the masses. He
-believed there must be mute, inglorious Miltons in the slums, and that
-they only needed fertilization. When, therefore, he heard of the poor
-boy who sat in his mother's kitchen painting oranges and fish and
-onions, he was excited to bring the prodigy within reach of culture.
-He made him attend lectures on poetry and French classes. These duties
-gave Mendel a good excuse for escaping from home in the evenings, and
-he attended the classes, but hardly understood a word of what was
-said. He liked and admired Edward Tufnell, who was very nearly what he
-imagined a gentleman to be--generous and kind, and quick to appreciate
-the human quality of any fellow-creature, no matter what his outward
-aspect might be. Edward Tufnell treated Golda exactly as he would have
-treated an elderly duchess.
-
-To Edward Tufnell, therefore, Mendel bore his difficulty, and Edward
-took infinite pains and at last, through his interest with the Bishop
-of Stepney, procured him a situation in a stained-glass factory, where
-he was set to trace cartoons of the Virgin Mary and S. John the
-Baptist and other figures of whom he had never heard. But, though he
-had never heard of them, yet he understood that they were figures
-worthy of respect, and it shocked him to hear the workmen say: "Billy,
-chuck us down another Mary," or "Jack, heave up that there J. C.
-. . ." He was acutely miserable. To draw without impulse or delight
-was torture to him, and he could not put pencil to paper without a
-thrill of eagerness and desire, which was immediately baffled when his
-pencil had to follow out the conventional lines of the stained-glass
-windows. And the draughtsmen with whom he worked were empty,
-foul-mouthed men, who seemed to strive to give the impression that
-they lived only for the mean pleasures of the flesh. They knew
-nothing, nothing at all, and he hated them.
-
-He was paid five shillings a week, and was told that if he behaved
-himself, by the time he was twenty or twenty-one he would be making
-thirty shillings a week. Jacob was very pleased with this prospect,
-and told his unhappy son that he would soon settle down to it, and he
-even began to upbraid him for not painting in the evenings. Mendel
-could not touch his brushes. He tried hard to think of himself as an
-ordinary working boy, and he endeavoured to pursue the pleasures of
-his kind. He went with Harry to boxing matches and joined him in the
-raffish pleasures of the streets, which, however, left him weary and
-disgusted. He had known something truer and finer, and he could not
-help a little despising Harry, who pursued girls as game, and directly
-they were kindled and moved towards him he lost interest in them, and,
-indeed, was rather horrified by them.
-
-Strange in contrast was Mendel's relation with Edward Tufnell, who was
-entirely innocent and could see nothing in his protégé but a touching
-sensitiveness to beauty. The urchin with his complete and unoffended
-knowledge of the life of the gutter was hidden from him. Edward found,
-and was rejoiced to find, that the boy was sensitive to intellectual
-beauty and to ideas. He gave him poetry to read--Keats and the odes of
-Milton--and was very happy to explain to him the outlines of
-Christianity and the difference that the coming of Christ had made to
-the world. He did not aim at making a convert, but only at feeding the
-boy's appetite for tenderness and kindness and all fair things. Mendel
-was striving most loyally to be resigned to his horrible fate, and the
-teachings of Christ seemed to fortify his endeavour. When, therefore,
-he asked if he might read the New Testament, Edward lent it to him
-without misgiving.
-
-The result was disastrous. Mendel pored over the book and it seemed to
-let light into his darkness. He read of the conversion of S. Paul and
-his own illumination was apparently no less complete. The notion of
-holding out the other cheek appealed to him, for he felt that the
-whole world was his enemy. It had insulted him with five shillings a
-week, and if he were meek it would presently add another five. . . .
-And then what a prospect it opened up of a world where people loved
-each other and treated each other kindly and lived without the rasping
-anger and suspicion and jealousy that filled his home.
-
-He went to the National Gallery and began to understand the Italians.
-He would become a Christian and paint Madonnas, mothers suckling their
-children, with kindly saints like Edward Tufnell looking on. Yet the
-new spirituality jarred with his life at home and was not strong
-enough to combat it. That life contained a quality as essential to him
-as air. It stank in his nostrils, but it was the food of his spirit
-and he could not, though his new enthusiasm bade him do it,
-sentimentalize his relation with his mother. Her relation with his
-father forbade it, and his father cast a shadow over the greater life
-illuminated by the figure of Christ. Yet because of the pictures he
-could not abandon the struggle, and he tried to find support by
-proselytizing Harry. That roisterer had begun to find his life very
-unsatisfying, and he gulped down the new idea simply because it was
-new. He got drunk on it, refused to go to the synagogue, and performed
-a number of acts that he thought Christian, as wasting his money on
-useless and hideous presents for his mother and sisters. Also he took
-a delight in talking of the Messiah, and ascribed all the misfortunes
-of the family to its adherence to an exploded faith.
-
-Jacob was furious. This soft Christian nonsense was revolting to him.
-
-"Say another word," he shouted, "say another word and I turn you out
-of the house. Jeshua! I will tell you. In America it has been proved,
-absolutely proved in a court of law, that this Jeshua was nothing
-better than a pimp. It was proved by a very learned Rabbi before a
-Christian judge, and when the judge saw that it was proved he broke
-down and wept like a woman."
-
-"I've only your word for it," said Harry, already rather dashed.
-
-"I tell you I've seen it in print. If you like I will send for the
-book to America."
-
-Harry held his peace. That settled it for him, and even Mendel was
-shaken by the storm his Christian inclinations had let loose.
-
-"The Christians are liars," said Jacob. "Every one of them is a liar,
-and they eat filth."
-
-There was a passion of belief in his father which Mendel could not but
-honour, and that other faith, so far as he knew, was held but mildly.
-It was charming in its results, but its spirit was unsatisfying to him
-who had been bred on stronger fare. All the same, his attitude towards
-his father's authority was changed. His simple acceptance was shaken,
-and he was in revolt against the repression of his dearest desires
-enjoined by it. His tongue was loosed and he began to talk
-enthusiastically to Edward Tufnell about his ambitions.
-
-"I beat them all at the school," he used to say, "and I would never
-let anybody beat me. I can see more clearly than anybody. I can see
-colour where they can see none, and shadows where they can see none.
-And when I have painted them, then they can see them."
-
-He was entirely unconscious in his egoism, and Edward was so generous
-a creature that he was not shocked or offended by it. He was a Quaker
-and as simple in his faith as a peasant, and he was young enough to
-know how difficult it was for the boy to expose his thoughts. After he
-had listened to his outpourings he would lead the boy on to talk of
-his experiences at the stained-glass factory. Mendel had a wonderful
-gift of vivid narration. Everything was so real to him, he had no
-reason to respect anything in the outside world unless it compelled
-the homage of his instinct, and in his broken Cockney English he could
-give the most dramatic descriptions of everything he saw and did. When
-he was engaged upon such tales, helping them out with wonderful
-mimicry, he had no shyness and laid bare his feelings as though they
-were also a part of the external scene.
-
-Edward knew nothing at all about painting, but he could respond to
-quality in a human being, and he recognized that here was no ordinary
-boy. His first impulse was to rescue him from his surroundings,
-support him, send him to school. But what a Hell that would be for the
-sensitive foreigner brought face to face with the ruthless force of an
-ancient tradition! Edward himself had suffered enough from being such
-an oddity as a Quaker, but to send this Jew, who had learned nothing
-and had none but his natural manners, to a Public School would be an
-act of cruelty. Besides, the boy would not hear of being parted from
-his mother, whom he was never tired of praising. He told Edward quite
-solemnly that his mother had said things far more beautiful than
-anything in Keats or Milton and that no book could ever have held
-anything more moving than her descriptions of the life at home in
-Austria, with the Jews in their gaberdines with their long curls
-hanging by their ears, and the foolish peasants in their bright
-clothes, and the splendid officers who clapped children into prison if
-they splashed their great shining boots with mud. . . . As he listened
-Edward felt more and more convinced that it was his duty not to allow
-this rich nature to be swallowed up in the grey squalor of the slums.
-He had begun his philanthropic work believing that Oxford had much to
-give to the poor, and he had come in time to realize that the world of
-which Oxford was the romantic symbol stood sorely in need of much that
-the poor had to give. Mendel confirmed and strengthened an impression
-which had for some time been disturbing Edward's peace of mind. He
-felt that if he could help the boy he would be translating his
-perception into action.
-
-He discussed the matter with his friends, who smiled at his solemnity.
-"Dear old Edward" was always a joke to them, so seriously did he take
-the problems with which he was faced. They said that, of course, if
-the boy was a genius he would find his way out and would be all the
-greater for the struggle. Edward protested that young talent was
-easily snuffed out, but again they laughed and said that if it were so
-then it was no great loss. Edward then said that the boy had a fine
-nature which might easily be crippled by evil circumstances. That they
-refused to believe either, and Edward made no progress until he told
-his tale to a rich young Jew who had lately come to the settlement.
-This young man, Maurice Birnbaum, was at once fired. His father was a
-member of a committee for aiding young Jews of talent. With Edward he
-swooped down on the Kühlers in his motor-car, and Golda showed him all
-her son's work, from the watch he drew at the age of three to a study
-of Sara's breasts. Birnbaum knew no Yiddish, and Golda scorned a Jew
-who could not speak the language of his race. He was also extremely
-gauche and talked to her rather in the manner of a parliamentary
-candidate canvassing for votes. He patronized her and told her that
-her son had talent, but that she must not expect Fortune to wait on
-him immediately. "A Christian Jew!" said Golda scornfully when he had
-gone. "He stinks of money and shell-fish. If you are going to eat
-pork, eat till the grease runs down your chin." And she had a sudden
-horror that Mendel might grow like that, all flesh and withered,
-uneasy spirit. She felt inclined to destroy all the pictures, and when
-Mendel came in she told him of her visitor and of her alarm, and he
-reassured her, saying: "What I am I will always be, for without you I
-am nothing. . . ." It was only from Mendel that Golda had such
-sayings. No one else ever acknowledged in words her quality or her
-power for sweetness in their lives, and she was terrified at the
-thought of his going. The big motor-car would come and take him and
-all his pictures away, she imagined, and he would be swept up into
-glittering circles of which alone he was worthy, though they were
-quite unworthy of him. And some rich woman would be enraptured with
-him, and she would take him to her arms and her bed, and he would be
-lost for ever. Mendel told her it meant nothing, that such people
-forgot those who were poor and never really helped them, because they
-could never know what it was like to need help: but he had a
-premonition that he had done with the stained-glass factory. He took
-up his brushes again and cleaned them, and chattered gaily of the
-things he would do when the motor-car fetched him and he was asked to
-paint the portraits of lords and millionaires.
-
-Edward inquired further of Birnbaum, and he brought Mendel a paper to
-fill up, stating his age, circumstances, parentage, etc., etc. He was
-to send this, with a letter, to Sir Julius Fleischmann, who was a
-famous financier and connoisseur. Edward drafted a letter, but Mendel
-found it servile, and wrote as follows:--
-
-DEAR SIR,--
- I send you my paper filled up. My father is a poor man and I wish
-to be a painter. I have won prizes at a school, but I cannot make my
-living by my art. I am not asking for charity. I am only asking that
-my work shall be judged. If it is good painting, then let me paint.
-Give me my opportunity, please. If it is bad painting, then it is no
-great matter, and I will go on until I can paint well, and then I will
-show you my work again. If money is given me I will pay every penny of
-it back when I am as successful as I shall be. I am sending three
-drawings and two paintings.
- Yours faithfully,
- MENDEL KÜHLER.
-
-This letter was sent enclosed in a parcel made up with trembling
-hands. He knew that the great moment had come, that at last he had
-attained the desired contact with the outside world. He was wildly
-elated, and had fantastic and absurd visions of Sir Julius himself
-driving down at once in his motor-car, knocking at the door and
-saying: "Does Mr. Mendel Kühler live here?" Then he would enter and
-embrace him and cry: "You are a great artist." And he would turn to
-Golda and say: "You are the mother of a great artist. You shall no
-longer live in poverty." And he would sit down and write a cheque for
-a hundred pounds. The story swelled and swelled like a balloon. It
-rose and soared aloft with Mendel clinging desperately to it. But
-every now and then it came swooping down to earth again, and then
-Mendel would imagine his drawings and pictures being sent back without
-a word. Elated or despondent, he passed through life in a dream, and
-was hardly conscious of his surroundings either at the factory or at
-home.
-
-This went on for weeks, during which he composed letters of savage
-insult to Sir Julius, to Birnbaum, and even to Edward Tufnell, telling
-them that he needed no help, that he was a Jewish artist and would
-stay among the Jews, the real Jews, those who kept themselves to
-themselves and to the faith of their fathers, and had no truck with
-the light and frivolous world outside. But he tore all these letters
-up, for he knew that the answer he desired would come.
-
-At last one morning there was a note for him. The secretary of the
-committee wrote asking him to take more specimens of his work to Mr.
-Edgar Froitzheim, the famous artist, at his studio in Hampstead.
-Mendel had never heard of Froitzheim, but it seemed to him an enormous
-step towards fame to be going to see a real artist in a real studio.
-He felt happier, too, at having this intermediary appointed, for he
-knew that artists always knew each other by instinct and helped each
-other for the sake of the work they loved.
-
-Golda made him put on his best clothes, and washed him and brushed his
-hair. He packed up half a dozen drawings and his picture of the
-apples, which had been too precious to trust to the post or to Sir
-Julius, and he set out for Hampstead. To cool his excitement he walked
-across the Heath, remembering vividly the day when he had first seen
-it, and again it seemed to him a place of freedom and surpassing
-loveliness, the sweet, comfortable quality of the grass only
-accentuated by the bare patches of ground, which were here and there
-of an amazing colour, purple and brown. A rain-cloud came up on the
-gusty wind and shed its slanting shower, and its shadow fell on the
-rounding slopes. He became aware of the form of the Heath beneath its
-verdure and colour. Between himself and the scene he felt an intimacy,
-as though he had known it always and would always know it. It amused
-him and filled him with a pleasant glee, which, when it passed, left
-him shy for the encounter with the famous Froitzheim, the arbiter of
-his immediate fortunes.
-
-
-
-VI
-
-EDGAR FROITZHEIM AND OTHERS
-
-VERY bright was the brass on Mr. Froitzheim's front door, very bright
-the face of the smiling maid who opened it. Mendel blushed and
-stammered inaudibly.
-
-"Will you come in?" said the maid, "and I will ask Mr. Froitzheim."
-
-She left Mendel in the hall and disappeared. This was a very large
-house, marvellously clean and light and airy. The wallpaper and the
-woodwork were white. On the stairs was a brilliant blue carpet.
-Through the window at the end of the passage were seen trees and a
-vast panorama of London--roofs, chimneys, steeples, domes--under a
-shifting pall of blue smoke.
-
-The maid went into the studio and told Mr. Froitzheim that a boy was
-waiting for him--a boy who looked like an Italian. She thought he
-might be selling images, and he had a package under his arm. Mr.
-Froitzheim told her to bring the visitor in. He was arranging
-draperies, Persian and Indian coats, yellow and red and blue, and he
-did not look up when Mendel was shown in. He was a little dark Jew,
-neat and dapper in figure and very sprucely dressed, but so Oriental
-that he looked out of place in Western clothes. But that impression
-was soon lost in Mendel's awe of the studio. Here was a place where
-real pictures were painted. There were easels, a table full of paints,
-an etching plant, a model's throne, a lay figure, pictures on the
-walls, stacks of pictures behind the door, and the little man standing
-there, fingering the silks, was a real artist.
-
-"Hullo, boy!" said Mr. Froitzheim.
-
-"M-Mendel Kühler."
-
-"Something to show me, eh?"
-
-"Ye-yes. Pictures."
-
-"What did you say your name was?"
-
-"Kühler. Mendel Kühler."
-
-"Oh yes. I remember. You know Maurice Birnbaum?"
-
-"No."
-
-"Eh? . . . What do you think of these? Lovely, eh? Bought them in
-India. You should go there. You don't know what sunlight is until
-you've been there--to the East. Ah, the East! Fills you with sunlight,
-opens your eyes to colour. . . . Persian prints! What do you think of
-these?"
-
-He showed Mendel a whole series of exquisite things which moved him so
-profoundly that he forgot altogether why he had come and began to
-stammer out his rapture, a condition of delight to which Mr.
-Froitzheim was so unaccustomed that he stepped back and stared at his
-visitor. There was a glow in the boy's face which gave it a seraphic
-expression. Mr. Froitzheim tiptoed to the door and called, "Edith!
-Edith!" And his wife came rustling in. She was a thin little woman
-with a friendly smile and an air of being only too amiable for a world
-that needed sadly little of the kindness with which she was bursting.
-They stood by the door and talked in whispers, and Mendel was brought
-back to earth by hearing her say, "Poor child!" He knew she meant
-himself, and his inclination was to fly from the room, but they barred
-the door. She came undulating towards him, and she seemed to him
-terrifyingly beautiful, the most lovely lady he had ever seen. He
-thought Mr. Froitzheim must be a very wonderful artist to have such a
-studio, such a house, and such a woman to live with him.
-
-Mrs. Froitzheim made him sit down and drew his attention to a bowl of
-flowers--tulips and daffodils. Mendel touched them with his fingers,
-lovingly caressed the fleshy petals of a tulip. Mrs. Froitzheim went
-over to her husband and whispered to him, who said:--
-
-"Yes. Yes. It is true. He responds to beauty like a flower to the
-sun."
-
-In the centre of the studio was a large picture nearly finished of
-three children and a rocking-horse, cleverly and realistically
-painted. Mendel looked at it enviously, with a sinking in the pit of
-his stomach, partly because he could not like it, and partly because
-he felt how impossible it would be for him to cover so vast a canvas.
-
-"Like it?" said Mr. Froitzheim, wheeling it about to catch the best
-light.
-
-"Yes," said Mendel, horrified at his own insincerity and unhappy at
-the vague notion possessing him that the picture was too large for
-him, whose notion of art was concentration upon an object until by
-some inexplicable process it had yielded up its beauty in paint.
-Composing and making pictures he could not understand.
-
-"Well, well," said Mr. Froitzheim. "So you want to be an artist? Art,
-as Michael Angelo said, is a music and mystery that very few are
-privileged to understand. I have been asked by the committee to give
-my opinion, and I feel that it is a serious responsibility. It is no
-light thing to advise a young man to take up an artistic career."
-
-"Yes, Edgar, that is very true," said his wife, with a wide reassuring
-smile at Mendel, whom she thought a very charming, very touching
-little figure, standing there drinking in the words as they fell from
-Edgar's lips.
-
-Mr. Froitzheim produced a pair of spectacles and balanced them on his
-nose.
-
-"It is a serious thing, not only for the sake of the young man but
-also for Art's sake. The sense of beauty is a dangerous possession. It
-is like a razor, safe enough when it is sharp, injurious when it is
-blunted. Your future, it seems, depends upon my word. I am to say
-whether I think your work promising enough to justify your being sent
-to a school. I asked you to bring more of your work to confirm the
-impression made by what I have already seen."
-
-He spoke in an alert, sibilant voice so quickly that his words whirled
-through Mendel's mind and conveyed very little meaning. Only the words
-"a music and mystery" lingered and grew. They were such lovely words,
-and expressed for him something very living in his experience,
-something that lay, as he would have said, below his heart. He
-loosened the string of his untidy parcel and took out the picture of
-the apples. There were music and mystery in it, and he held it very
-lovingly as he offered it to Mrs. Froitzheim, much as she had just
-offered him the bowl of flowers.
-
-"Very well painted indeed," said she, and Mendel winced. He turned to
-the artist as to an equal, expecting not so much praise as
-recognition. Mr. Froitzheim took the picture from him and went near
-the window. He became more solemn than ever.
-
-"This is much better than the drawings. Have you always painted
-still-life?"
-
-"I painted what there was at home."
-
-"Have you studied the still-life in the galleries? Do you know
-Fantin-Latour's work?"
-
-"No," said Mendel blankly.
-
-"Of course, there is no doubt that you must go on."
-
-Mendel had never had any doubt of it, and he began to feel more at his
-ease. That was settled then. There would be no more factory for him.
-He was to be an artist, a great artist. He knew that Mr. Froitzheim
-was more excited than he let himself appear. The apples could no more
-be denied than the sun outside or the flowers on the table. . . . He
-looked with more interest at Mr. Froitzheim's picture. It amused him,
-much as the drawings in the illustrated papers amused him, and he was
-pleased with the quality of the paint. He was still alarmed by the
-hugeness of it. His eyes could not focus it, nor could his mind grasp
-the conception.
-
-Mrs. Froitzheim asked him to stay to tea and encouraged him to talk,
-and he told her in his vivid childish way about Golda and Issy and
-Harry and Leah and Lotte. She found him delightfully romantic and told
-him that he must not be afraid to come again, and that they would be
-only too glad to help him. Mr. Froitzheim said:--
-
-"I will write to the committee. There is only one school in London,
-the Detmold. You should begin there next term, six weeks from now.
-Don't be afraid, work hard, and we will make an artist of you. In time
-to come we shall be proud of you. I will write to your mother, and one
-of these days I will give myself the pleasure of calling on her. . . .
-You must come and see me again, and I will take you to see pictures."
-
-Mendel was in too much of a whirl to remember to say "Thank you." He
-had an enormous reverence for Mr. Froitzheim as a real artist, but as
-a man he instinctively distrusted him. It takes a Jew to catch a Jew,
-and Mendel scented in Mr. Froitzheim the Jew turned Englishman and
-prosperous gentleman. And in his childish confidence he was aware of
-uneasiness in his host, but of course Mr. Froitzheim could easily bear
-down that impression, though he could not obliterate it. He was an
-advanced artist and was just settling down after an audacious youth.
-He had been one of a band of pioneers who had defied the Royal
-Academy, and he had reached the awkward age in a pioneer's life when
-he is forced to realize that there are people younger than himself. He
-believed in his "movement," and wished it to continue on the lines
-laid down by himself and his friends. To achieve this he deemed it his
-business to be an influence among the young people and to see that
-they were properly shepherded into the Detmold, there to learn the
-gospel according to S. Ingres. He had suffered so much from being a
-Jew, had been tortured with doubts as to whether he were not a mere
-calculating fantastic, and here in this boy's work he had found a
-quality which took his mind back to his own early enthusiasm. That
-seemed so long ago that he was shocked and unhappy, and hid his
-feelings behind the solemnity which he had developed to overawe the
-easy, comfortable, and well-mannered Englishmen among whom he worked
-for the cause of art.
-
-He was the first self-deceiver Mendel had met, and the encounter
-disturbed him greatly and depressed him not a little, so that he was
-rather overawed than elated by the prospect in front of him. He felt
-strangely flung back upon himself, and that this help given to him was
-not really help. He was still, as always, utterly alone with his
-obscure desperate purpose for sole companion. Nobody knew about that
-purpose, since he could never define it except in his work, and that
-to other people was simply something to be looked at with pleasure or
-indifference, as it happened. He used to try and explain it to his
-mother, and she used to nod her head and say: "Yes. Yes. I understand.
-That is God. He is behind everybody, though it is given to few to know
-it. It is given to you, and God has chosen you, as He chose Samuel.
-. . . Yes. Yes. God has chosen you." And he found it a relief
-sometimes to think that God had chosen him, though he was disturbed to
-find Golda much less moved by that idea than by the letter which Mr.
-Froitzheim wrote to her, in which he said that her son had a very rare
-talent, a very beautiful nature, and that a day would come when she
-would be proud of his fame.
-
-Yet there were unhappy days of waiting. Jacob would not hear of his
-leaving the factory until everything was settled, and when Mendel told
-the foreman he was probably going to leave to be an artist, that
-worthy drew the most horrible picture of the artist's life as a
-mixture of debauchery and starvation, and told a story of a friend of
-his, a marvellous sculptor, who had come down to carving urns for
-graves--all through the drink and the models; much better, he said, to
-stick to a certain income and the saints.
-
-At last Maurice Birnbaum came in his motor-car. Everything was
-settled. The fees at the Detmold would be paid as long as the reports
-were satisfactory, and Mendel would be allowed five shillings a week
-pocket-money, but he must be well-behaved and clean, and he must read
-good literature and learn to write good English. "I will see to that,"
-said Maurice. "I am to take him now with some of his work to see Sir
-Julius. His fortune is made, Mrs. Kühler. Isn't it wonderful? He is a
-genius. He has the world at his feet. Everything is open to him. I
-have been to Oxford, Mrs. Kühler, but I shall never have anything like
-the opportunities that he will have. It is marvellous to think of his
-drawing like that in your kitchen." Maurice was really excited. His
-heart was as full of kindness as a honeycomb of honey, but he had no
-tact. His words fell on Golda and Mendel like hailstones. They nipped
-and stung and chilled. Golda looked at Mendel, he at her, and they
-stood ashamed. "We must hurry," said Maurice. "Sir Julius must not be
-kept waiting. He is a stickler for punctuality."
-
-As a matter of fact, Maurice only knew Sir Julius officially. His
-family had never been admitted to the society in which Sir Julius was
-a power and a light. The entrance to the house of the millionaire was
-a far greater event to him than it was to Mendel.
-
-The splendid motor-car rolled through the wonderful crowded streets,
-Maurice fussing and telling Mendel to take care his parcel did not
-scratch the paint, and swung up past the Polytechnic into the
-desolation of Portland Place. At a corner house they stopped. The
-double door was swung open by two powdered footmen, and by the inner
-door stood a bald, rubicund butler. Maurice gave his name, told Mendel
-to wait, and followed the butler up a magnificent marble staircase
-with an ormolu balustrade. Mendel was left standing with his parcel,
-while one of the footmen mounted guard over him. He stood there for a
-long time, still ashamed, bewildered, smelling money, money, money,
-until he reeled. It made him think of Mr. Kuit, who alone of his
-acquaintance could have been at his ease in such splendour. He felt
-beggarly, but he was stiffened in his pride.
-
-The butler appeared presently and conducted him upstairs to a vast
-apartment all crystal and cloth of gold. In the far corner sat a group
-of people, among whom, in his confusion, Mendel could only distinguish
-Maurice Birnbaum and a small, wrinkled, bald old man with a beard,
-whose eyes were quick and black, peering out from under the yellow
-skull, peering out and taking nothing in. For the purposes of taking
-in his nose seemed more than sufficient. It was like a beak, like an
-inverted scoop. And yet his features were not so very different from
-those of the old men at home whom Mendel reverenced. There was a
-strange dignity in them, yet not a trace of the fine quality of the
-old faces he loved that looked so sorrowfully out on the world, and
-through their eyes and through every line seemed to absorb from the
-world all its suffering, all its vileness, and to transmute it into
-strong human beauty. There were some women present, but they made no
-impression whatever on Mendel, who was entirely occupied with Sir
-Julius and with resisting the feeling of helplessness with which he
-was inspired in his presence. He heard Maurice Birnbaum talking about
-him, describing his life, his mother's kitchen, the street where he
-lived, and then he was told to exhibit his pictures. A footman
-appeared and put out a chair for him, and on this, one after another,
-he placed his drawings and pictures. Not a word was said. Even the
-apples were received in silence. Sir Julius gave a grunt and began to
-talk to one of the women. Maurice gave Mendel to understand that the
-interview was over, and the poor boy was conducted downstairs by the
-butler. He had not a penny in his pocket and had to walk all the way
-home with his parcel, which his arms were hardly long enough to hold.
-
-
-
-VII
-
-THE DETMOLD
-
-FLUNG into the art school, he was like a leggy colt in a new field,
-very shy of it at first, of the trees in the hedges, of the shadows
-cast by the trees. This place was very different from the Polytechnic.
-There were fewer old ladies, and more boys of his own age. The
-teachers were Professors, and the pupils held them in awe and respect.
-There were real models in the life-class, male and female, and the
-students, male and female, worked together. No ginger-beer bottles
-here, where art was a practical business. The school existed for the
-purpose of teaching the craft of making pictures, and its law was that
-the basis of the mystery was drawing.
-
-Mendel's first attitude towards the other students was that he was
-there to beat them all. He would swell with eagerness and enthusiasm,
-and tell himself that he had something that they all lacked. He would
-watch their movements, their heads bending over their work, their
-hands scratching away at the paper, and he could see that they had
-none of them the vigour that was in himself. And by way of showing how
-much stronger he was he would use his pencil almost as though it were
-a chisel and his paper a block of stone out of which he was to carve
-the likeness of the model. He was rudely taken down when the Professor
-stood and stared with his melancholy eyes at his production and
-said:--
-
-"Is that the best you can do?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"Why do it?"
-
-This was a stock phrase of the Professor's, but Mendel did not know
-that, and he was ashamed and outraged when the class tittered.
-
-"No," said the Professor. "I don't know what that is. It certainly
-isn't drawing." And with his pencil he made a lovely easy sketch of
-the model, alongside Mendel's black, forbidding scrawl. It was a
-masterly thing and it baffled him, and humiliated him because the
-Professor moved on to the next pupil without another word. Not another
-line could Mendel draw that day. He sat staring at the Professor's
-sketch and at his own drawing, which, while he had been doing it, had
-meant so much to him, and he still preferred his own. The Professor's
-drawing had no meaning for him. He could not understand it, except
-that it was accurate. That he could see, but then his own was accurate
-too, and true to what he had seen. The light gave the model a
-distorted shoulder, and he had laboured to render that distortion,
-which the Professor had either ignored or had corrected.
-
-Mendel cut out the Professor's drawing and took it home and copied it
-over and over again, but still he could not understand it. He was in
-despair and told Golda he would never learn.
-
-"I shall never learn to draw, and the Christian kops will all beat
-me," he said.
-
-"But they sent you to the school because you can draw. Didn't Mr.
-Froitzheim say that you could draw!"
-
-"The Professor looks at me with his gloomy face, like an undertaker
-asking for the body, and he says: 'I mean to say, that isn't drawing.
-It isn't impressionism. I don't know what it is.'"
-
-"It can't be a very good school," said Golda.
-
-"But it is. It is the only school. All the best painters have been
-there, and Mr. Froitzheim sent his own brother to it. The Professor
-says I shall never paint a picture if I don't learn to draw, and I
-can't do it, I can't do it!"
-
-To console himself he painted hard every evening and regarded the
-Detmold entirely as a place to which his duty condemned him--a place
-where he had to learn this strange wizardry called drawing, which he
-did not understand. He went there every day and never spoke to a soul,
-because he realized that his speech was different from that of the
-others, and he would not open his mouth until he could speak without
-betraying himself. He listened carefully to their pronunciation and
-intonation, and practised to himself in bed and as he walked through
-the streets.
-
-So woeful were his attempts to emulate the Detmold style of drawing,
-that at last the Professor asked him if he was doing any work at home.
-To this Mendel replied eagerly that he was painting a portrait of his
-mother.
-
-"Hum," said the Professor. "May I see it?"
-
-So Mendel brought the picture, and the Professor said:--
-
-"I mean to say, young man, that it wouldn't be a bad thing if you gave
-up work a little. I don't want to have to send in a bad report, but
-what can I do? There's something in you, plenty of grit and all that,
-but you're young, and, I mean to say, you're here to learn what we can
-teach you. When we've done with you, you can go your own way and be
-hanged to you. If you want to smudge about with paint and fake what
-you can't draw, there's the Academy."
-
-At this awful suggestion Mendel shuddered. He was imbued enough with
-the Detmold tradition to regard the Academy as Limbo.
-
-He gave up painting at home, and hurled himself desperately at the
-task of producing a drawing that should satisfy the Professor. Towards
-the end of his first term he succeeded, and had his reward in words of
-praise in front of the class.
-
-The Professor had meanwhile taken one of the pupils aside and asked
-him not to leave the poor little devil so utterly alone. "After all,"
-he said, "the school doesn't exist only for drawing. It has its social
-side as well, and I don't like to see any one cold-shouldered unless
-he deserves it. I mean to say, you other fellows have advantages which
-don't necessarily entitle you to mop up all the good things and leave
-none for your fellow-creatures."
-
-Mitchell, the pupil, took his homily awkwardly enough, but promised
-that he would do what he could. He seized his opportunity one day when
-Mendel at lunch had horrified the company by picking up a chicken bone
-and tearing at it with his teeth. Mitchell took him aside and said:--
-
-"I say, Kühler, old man, you'll excuse my mentioning it, you know, but
-it isn't done. I mean, we eat our food with forks."
-
-Mendel knew what was meant, for at lunch he had been conscious of
-horrified eyes staring at him and had wished the floor would open and
-swallow him up. He muttered incoherent words of thanks and wanted to
-rush away, but Mitchell caught him by the arm and said:--
-
-"I say, we artists must hang together. There aren't many of this crowd
-who will come to anything, and the Pro thinks no end of you. Won't you
-come along and have tea with me and some of the other fellows?"
-
-Mendel went with him, delighting in the young man's easy,
-condescending Public School manner and pleasant, crisp voice, in which
-he spoke with an exaggerated emphasis.
-
-"Gawd!" he said. "It makes me sick to see all the fools and the women
-wasting their time there, scratching away, while those of us who have
-any talent and could learn anything are left to flounder along as best
-we may. Do you smoke?"
-
-Mendel had never smoked, but he did not like to refuse. He took a
-cigarette, which very soon made him feel sick and giddy. He lurched
-along with Mitchell until they came to a tea-shop, where they found
-two other young men whose faces were familiar.
-
-"I've brought Kühler," said Mitchell. "He's a genius. This is Weldon,
-who is also a genius, and Kessler, who can't paint for nuts, and I'm a
-blame fool, though it's not my fault. My father's a great man. Gawd!
-what can you do when your own father takes the shine out of you at
-every turn?"
-
-They began to talk of pictures and of one Calthrop, who was apparently
-the greatest painter the world had ever seen and a product of the
-Detmold.
-
-"Sells everything he puts his name to," said Kessler.
-
-"What a man!" said Weldon. "Goes his own way, absolutely believing in
-his art. If they like it, well and good. If they don't like it, let
-'em lump it. He's as often drunk as not, and as for women . . . !"
-
-Weldon and Kessler deserted pictures for women. Mitchell grew more and
-more glum, while Mendel was still feeling the effects of the cigarette
-too strongly to be able to take in a word.
-
-"Gawd!" said Mitchell. "There they go, talking away, absolutely
-incapable of keeping anything clear of women. I can't stand it."
-
-He dragged Mendel away, leaving his friends to pay the bill; and, as
-they walked, he explained that he was in love, and could not stand all
-that bawdy rubbish, and he elaborated a theory that an artist needed
-to be in love to keep himself alive to the sanctity of the human body,
-familiarity with which was apt to breed contempt or an excessive
-curiosity. Mendel said that he also had been in love, and he gave a
-vivid account of his raptures with Sara.
-
-"My God!" cried Mitchell; "you don't mean to say that she came to
-you--a girl like that?"
-
-"Yes," said Mendel; "I was never so happy."
-
-"But, I say, weren't you afraid?"
-
-"She was very beautiful."
-
-Mitchell pondered this for a long time. He seemed to be profoundly
-shaken. At last he said:--
-
-"But with a girl you _loved?_"
-
-"I loved her when she was there."
-
-"But when she wasn't there?"
-
-"I was busy painting."
-
-"I say, you are a corker! If it were Weldon or Kessler I should say
-you were lying."
-
-"I do not lie," replied Mendel with some heat. "It may have been
-wrong, but it was good, and I was happier after it. I think I should
-have gone mad without it, for everything had
-disappeared--everything--everything; and without painting you do not
-understand how terrible and empty life is to me. I have nothing, you
-see. I am poor, and my father and mother will always be poor. Their
-life is hard and beastly, but they do not complain, and I should not
-complain if I did not have this other thing that I must do."
-
-"Well, I'm jolly glad to know you," said Mitchell. "I'm not much of a
-fellow, but I'd like you to know my people. My father's a great man.
-He'll stir you up. And you must come along with me and Weldon and
-Kessler and see life while you're young. Good-bye."
-
-He shook hands vigorously with Mendel and strode off with his long,
-raking stride, while Mendel stood glowing with the happiness of having
-found a friend, some one to whom he could talk almost as he talked to
-Golda: a fine young Englishman, pink and oozing robustious health,
-ease, refinement, and comfort. He thought with a devoted tenderness of
-Mitchell's rather absurd round face, with its tip-tilted nose and
-blinking eyes, its little rosebud of a mouth and plump round chin, on
-which there was hardly a trace of a beard. . . . "My friend!" thought
-Mendel, "my friend!" And he gave a leap of joy. It meant for him the
-end of his loneliness. No longer was he to be the poor, isolated
-Yiddisher, but he was to move and have his being with these fine young
-men who were the leading spirits of the school, the guardians of the
-tradition bequeathed to it by the great Calthrop. . . . Oh! he would
-learn their way of drawing, he would do it better than any of them. He
-would be gay with them and wild and merry and young. And all the while
-secretly he would be working and working, following up that inner
-purpose until one day he appeared with a picture so wonderful that the
-Professor would say, like Mr. Sivwright, that he had nothing more to
-learn. And because of his wonderful work, everybody would forget that
-he was a Jew, and he would move freely and easily in that wonderful
-England which he had begun to perceive behind the fresh young men like
-Mitchell and the cool, pretty girls at the school. That England was
-their inheritance and they seemed hardly aware of it. He would win it
-by work and by dint of the power that was in him.
-
-Of the girls at the school he was afraid. He blushed and trembled when
-any one of them spoke to him, and he never noticed them enough to
-distinguish one from another, so that they existed only as a vague
-nuisance and a menace to his happiness. Before Mitchell he was
-prostrate. He bewildered and confounded that young man with his
-outpourings, both by word of mouth and by letter. He had absolutely no
-reserve, and poured out his thoughts and feelings, his experiences,
-and Mitchell at last took up a protective attitude towards him and
-defended him from the detestation which he aroused in the majority of
-his fellow-students. At the same time Mitchell often felt that of the
-two he was the greater child, and he would look back upon the years he
-had spent at school in a rueful and puzzled state of mind, half
-realizing that he had been shoved aside while the stream of life went
-on, and that now he had to fight his way back into it. While Mendel
-had been wrestling and struggling, he had been put away in
-cotton-wool, every difficulty that had cropped up had been met, every
-deep desire had found its outlet in convention. And now that he had
-set out to be an artist, here was this Jew with years of hard work
-behind him, and such a familiarity with his medium that he could do
-more or less as he liked without being held up by shyness or
-awkwardness. And it was the same in life. Mendel was abashed by
-nothing, was ashamed of nothing. Life had many faces. He was prepared
-to regard them all, and to fit his conduct to every one of them. He
-was critical, not because he wished to reject anything, but because he
-must know the nature of everything before he accepted it. He hated and
-loved simply and passionately, and if he felt no emotion he never
-disguised the fact. Whereas Mitchell and the others were so eager to
-feel the emotions which their upbringing had denied that they leaped
-before they looked and fabricated what they did not feel. Mendel
-learned from them that life could be pleasant, and they became aware
-that there were regions of life beyond the fringes of pleasantness.
-They softened him and he hardened them. They were always together,
-Mendel, Mitchell, Weldon and Kessler, working steadily enough, but out
-of working hours kicking up their heels and stampeding through the
-pleasures of London. . . . Calthrop was the divinity they served. He
-was a man of genius and had made the Detmold famous. Those, therefore,
-who came after him at the school must support him in everything. That
-was Mitchell's contention, who was by now in full swing of revolt
-against his Public School training, and in his adoration Mendel
-followed him, and the others were dragged in their train. Calthrop
-dressed extravagantly: so did the four. Calthrop smashed furniture: so
-did the four. And as Calthrop drank, embraced women, and sometimes
-painted outrageously, the four did all these things.
-
-To Mendel it was Life--something new, rich, splendid, and thrilling.
-He had lived so long cramped over his work that it was almost agony to
-him to move in this swift stream of incessant excitement. There was no
-spirit of revolt in him. He could shed some of the outward forms of
-his religion, as to Golda's great distress he did, but against its
-spirit he could not rebel. That he carried with him everywhere: the
-bare stubborn faith in man, ground down by life and living in sorrow
-all his days. Happy he was not, nor did he expect to be so. He might
-be happy one day, but he would be miserable the next. Life in him was
-not greatly concerned with either, but only to have both happiness and
-misery in full measure. His deepest feelings arose out of his work,
-the first condition of his existence; they arose out of it and sank
-back into it again. His work was the visible and tangible form of his
-being, which he hated and loved as it approached or receded from the
-terrible power that was both beautiful and ugly, and yet something
-transcending either. . . . And away there in London was the Christian
-world of shows. What he was seeking lay beyond that, and not in the
-dark Jewishness of his home. There lay the spirit, but the outward and
-visible form was to be sought yonder, where the lights flared and the
-women smiled at themselves in mirrors. He hurled himself into the
-shows of the Christian world in a blind desire to break through them,
-but always he was flung back, bruised, aching, and weary.
-
-Day after day he would spend listlessly at home or at the school until
-seven o'clock came and it was time to go to the Paris Café, to sit
-among the painters and listen to violent talk, talk, talk--abuse of
-successful men, derision of the great masters, mysterious and awful
-whispers of what men were doing in Paris, terrible denunciations of
-dealers, critics, and the public.
-
-The café was a kind of temple and had its ritual. It was the aim of
-the painters to "put some life into dear old London." Calthrop had
-given a lead. He had determined that London should be awakened to art,
-as the writing folk of a past generation had aroused the swollen
-metropolis to literature and poetry. London should be made aware of
-its painters as Paris was aware of the Quartier Latin. Bohemia should
-no longer be the territory of actresses, horse-copers, and betting
-touts. The Paris Café therefore became the shrine of Calthrop's
-personality, and thither every night repaired the artists and their
-parasites, who saw in the place an avenue to liberty and fame. In the
-glitter and the excitement, the brilliance, the colour, the women with
-their painted faces, the white marble-topped tables, the mirrors along
-the walls, the blue wreathing tobacco-smoke, Calthrop's personality
-was magnified and concentrated as in a theatre. The café without him
-was Denmark without the Prince, and Mendel found the hours before he
-came or the evenings when he did not come almost insupportable. Yet it
-was not the man's success or his fame or his notoriety that fascinated
-the boy, whose instinct went straight to the immense vitality which
-was the cause of all. Calthrop was a huge man, dark and glowering. To
-Mendel he was like a figure out of the Bible--like King Saul, in his
-black moods and the inarticulate fury that possessed him sometimes;
-and when he picked up and hurled a glass at some artist whose face or
-whose work had offended him, he was very like King Saul hurling the
-javelin.
-
-There was always a thrill when he entered the café. The buzz would die
-down. Where would he sit and whom would he speak to? . . . It was one
-of the greatest moments in Mendel's life when one evening Calthrop
-came sweeping in with his cloak flung round his shoulders and sat
-opposite him and his three companions and raised a finger and
-beckoned.
-
-"He wants you," said Mitchell, pushing Mendel forward.
-
-"Come here, boy," growled Calthrop, stabbing with his pipe-stem in the
-direction of the seat by his side. "Come here and bring your friends.
-Bought a drawing of yours this morning. Damn good."
-
-Mitchell, Kessler, and Weldon came and sat at the table, all too
-overawed to speak.
-
-"What's your drink, heh?"
-
-Drinks were ordered.
-
-"Rotten trade, art," said Calthrop. "Dangerous trade. Drink, women,
-flattery. Don't drink. Marry, settle down, and your wife'll hate you
-because you're always about the place. . . . God! I wish I could be a
-Catholic. I'd be a monk. . . . My boy, don't get into the habit of
-doing drawings. They won't look at your pictures if you do, and we
-want pictures--my God, we do! Everybody paints pictures as though they
-were for a competition. You've got life to draw from--real, stinking
-life. That's why I have hopes of you."
-
-Mendel was so fluttered and flattered that he could only gulp down his
-drink and blink round the café, feeling that all eyes were upon him;
-and indeed he was attracting such attention as had never before been
-bestowed on him. A girl at the next table ogled him and smiled. She
-was with a young man whom the four detested and despised. This young
-man reached over to take a bowl of sugar from their table. To take
-anything from the great man's table without so much as "By your leave"
-was sacrilege and was very properly resented. There was a scuffle, the
-sugar was scattered on the floor, glasses fell crashing down, Mitchell
-and Weldon hurled themselves on the young man, and the manager came
-bustling up, crying: "If-a-you-pleess-a-gentlemen." But there was no
-breaking the męlée. A waiter was sent out for the police, and three
-constables came filing in. One of them seized Mitchell, and Mendel,
-half mad with drink and excitement, seeing his beloved friend, as he
-thought, being taken off to prison, leaped on the policeman's back and
-brought him down. In the confusion Calthrop and the others slipped
-away and Mendel was arrested, still fighting like a wild cat, and led
-off to the police-station, the constable whispering kindly in his ear:
-"Steady, my boy, steady. A youngster like you should keep clear of the
-drink."
-
-The inspector smiled at the extreme youthfulness of the offender, but
-decided that a taste of the cells would do no harm and that the boy
-had better be sober before he was sent home. So Mendel had four hours
-on a hard bench until a constable came in and asked him if he wanted
-bail. He said "Yes," and, when asked for a name, gave Calthrop's, who
-presently arrived and saw him liberated, after being told to appear in
-court next morning at ten o'clock.
-
-When he reached home he found his mother waiting up for him with wet
-cloths in case his head should be bad.
-
-"What now? What now?" she asked.
-
-"I've been in prison."
-
-"Prison!" Golda flung up her hands and sat down heavily. For her all
-was lost. It was true then, that, outside in the world, at the other
-end of it, was always prison, for the just and for the unjust, for the
-old and for the young, for the innocent and for the guilty.
-
-He tried to make light of it. For him, too, it was a serious matter.
-He saw himself figuring in the Sunday papers: "Famous Artist in the
-Police Court," with his portrait in profile as on a medallion.
-Birnbaum and Sir Julius would read it. He would be taken away from the
-Detmold and Edward Tufnell would never speak to him again. He
-astonished, embarrassed, and delighted Golda by flinging himself in
-her arms and sobbing out his grief.
-
-
-
-VIII
-
-HETTY FINCH
-
-GOLDA was passing through a very difficult time. Rosa was hotter on
-the pursuit of Issy than ever. Harry had had a violent quarrel
-consequent on his reiterated demand for proof of the judicial
-destruction of Christianity in America, and at last, like his father,
-he went out and bought a clean collar and announced his departure for
-Paris. He went away and not a word had been heard from him. Lotte
-refused to look at any of the young men brought by the match-makers,
-and Leah was the only comfortable member of the family, and she made
-no attempt to conceal her unhappiness with Moscowitsch. She would come
-on Saturday evenings and go up to her mother's room and fling herself
-on the bed and cry her heart out, until late in the evening
-Moscowitsch came to fetch her, when she would go meekly and apparently
-happily enough. . . . And on the top of all these troubles, here was
-Mendel going to the devil at a gallop.
-
-Leah's trouble with Moscowitsch was that he would never let her go out
-without him, and he could very rarely be persuaded to go out at all.
-As for going away in the summer, he could see no sense in it. He gave
-his wife a fine house. What more did she want? She had her children to
-look after. What greater pleasure could she desire? His life was
-entirely filled with his business and his home, and he would not look
-beyond them. The neighbours went to the seaside? The neighbours were
-fools who lived for ostentation and display. They did not know when
-they were well off. . . . Moscowitsch had a great admiration for his
-father-in-law as a man who knew what life was and refused to dilute
-its savour with folly, and he regarded Golda as a perfect type of
-woman, one who left the management of life to her husband and allowed
-herself to be absorbed in her duties as a wife and mother.
-
-But Leah longed to go to the seaside. It became an obsession with her,
-and, because she could never talk of it, she thought of nothing else.
-She was sick with envy when she saw the neighbours going off with the
-children carrying buckets and spades. Secretly she bought her own
-children buckets and spades, though they were much too small to use
-them.
-
-At last, when her worries began to tell on Golda, Leah declared that
-what she needed was sea air, and offered to take her for a fortnight
-to Margate, and Golda, anxious to escape from the horror of Mendel's
-coming home night after night drawn and white with dissipation, and
-from the dread of an explosion from Jacob, consented, and asked if
-Issy might go, as that Rosa of his was making him quite ill.
-
-For Golda, Leah knew that Moscowitsch would do anything in the world,
-and so she procured his consent on condition that he was not expected
-to accompany them, for he hated the sea, which had made him very ill
-when he came to England, and he never wished to set eyes on it again.
-
-Leah already had the address of some lodgings recommended to her by a
-neighbour. She engaged them, and on a fine July day went down to
-Margate by the express with her children, Golda, and Issy.
-
-The lodgings were let by a handsome, florid woman with masses of
-bleached golden hair, a ruddled complexion, fat hands covered with
-cheap rings, plump wrists rattling with bracelets, and a full bosom on
-which brooches gleamed. Leah thought her a very fine woman, and was so
-fascinated by her that she stayed indoors day after day, helping with
-the housework and gossiping, so that she never once saw the sea,
-except from the train as she was leaving. Mrs. Finch was a lady, by
-birth, but she had been unfortunate. She had an uncle in the Army and
-a cousin in the War Office, and she had lived in London, in the best
-part of the town, where, in her best days, she had had her flat. Also
-she had travelled and had been to Paris and Vienna. But she had been
-unfortunate in her friends. Leah commiserated her, and, open-mouthed,
-gulped down all her tales of the gentlemen she had known, while Golda,
-eager for more information of the glittering world which had swallowed
-up her Mendel, listened too, fascinated and shuddering. And Leah, to
-show that she also was a person of some consequence, began to talk of
-her wonderful brother. She told of the motor-car which had come and
-whirled him away, of his visit to the millionaire's house, of the fine
-friends he was making, of the men and women he knew whose names were
-in the papers.
-
-"Every day," she said, "he is out to tea, and every evening he is out
-at theatres and music-halls and parties and flats and hotels, and his
-friends are so rich that they pour money into his pockets. He just
-makes a few lines on a piece of paper and they give him twenty pounds,
-or he makes up some paint to look like a face or a pineapple and his
-pockets are full of money."
-
-"Yes," said Golda uneasily. "He will be very rich."
-
-"Then next time you come to Margate," said Mrs. Finch, "it will be the
-Cliftonville, and you'll despise my poor lodgings."
-
-"Oh no," cried Leah, "for it is like staying with a friend."
-
-Every day Leah added something to the legend of Mendel, Mrs. Finch
-urging her on with romances of her own splendid days. But the most
-eager listener was Hetty, the girl who did the rough work of the house
-and was never properly dressed until the evening, because, from the
-moment when she woke up in the morning until after supper, she was
-kept running hither and thither at Mrs. Finch's commands. She was
-sufficiently like Mrs. Finch to justify Golda in her supposition that
-she was that fine woman's daughter, but nothing was ever said in the
-matter. Hetty did not have her meals with them, and, indeed, there was
-no evidence that she had any meals. In the evenings she was allowed to
-go out, and she would come back at half-past ten or so with her big
-eyes shining and a flush fading from her cheeks and leaving them
-whiter than ever. Very big were her eyes, very big and pathetic, and
-her face was a perfect oval. She had rather full lips, always moist
-and red. During the whole fortnight she never spoke a word except to
-Issy. Indeed, she avoided Golda and Leah, and she alarmed Issy by what
-he took to be her forwardness, when she asked him to take her to the
-theatre. He complied with her request, but he was much too frightened
-of her to speak, and he could think of nothing to say except to offer
-to buy her chocolates and cigarettes, which she accepted as though it
-was the natural thing for him to give her presents. She talked to him
-about Mendel, and wanted to know if it was true that he knew lords and
-had real gentlemen to tea with him in his studio.
-
-"There's more goes on in his studio than I could tell you," said Issy
-with a dry, uncomfortable laugh. "Artists, you know!"
-
-"Oh yes! Artists!" said Hetty with a dreamy, wistful look in her eyes
-as she drew in her lower lip with a slight sucking noise. "I wish I
-lived in London, I do. Ma used to live in London, but she's too old
-now to find any one to take her back there. It's dull here. Does your
-brother ever come to Margate?"
-
-"No," said Issy. "He'd go to Brighton if he went anywhere. I've got
-another brother who's gone to Paris."
-
-"O-oh! Paris! Is he rich too?"
-
-"No."
-
-Issy shut up like an oyster. He could feel the girl probing into him,
-and he was sorry he had brought her. She was spoiling his fun, the
-adventures he had promised himself during his holiday from Rosa's
-indefatigable attentions. Hetty was too dangerous. He knew that if she
-got hold of him she would not let go.
-
-He took her home and never spoke another word to her during the
-remainder of his visit, and he said to his mother once:--
-
-"That's an awful girl."
-
-"Worse than Rosa?" asked Golda.
-
-"Rosa would stay. That girl would be off like a cat on the tiles."
-
-Golda retorted with a description of Rosa of the same kind, but of a
-more offensive degree.
-
-Declaring that they were better for the sea air, and warmly enjoining
-Mrs. Finch to visit then if ever she should come to London, the party
-left Margate with shells and toffee and painted china for their
-friends and relations, conspicuous among their luggage being the
-buckets and spades which had never been used.
-
-As Issy and his mother reached their front-door, he saw Rosa at the
-corner of the street, and bolted after her, leaving Golda to enter the
-house and give an account of her doings. Mendel, for once in a way,
-was at home. He was at work on a picture for a prize competition at
-the Detmold, as also were Mitchell and Weldon, so that they were
-living quietly for the time being. Golda gave a glowing description of
-the beauties of Margate and of Mrs. Finch and her jewellery. She began
-to talk of Hetty, but for some reason unknown to herself, with a
-glance at Mendel she stopped, and went off into a vague, dreamy
-rhapsody concerning Margate streets.
-
-"The streets are so clean, so nice, and the air is so strong, and the
-sky is so clear, with the clouds tumbling across it, little clouds
-like cotton-wool and grey clouds like blankets, almost as it was in
-Austria, and I was so happy my heart was full of flowers, almost as it
-was in Austria."
-
-"What's the good of talking of Austria?" growled Jacob. "There you had
-a corner. Here you have a whole house."
-
-"But I was happy there."
-
-Issy came in on that and announced that he was going to be married to
-Rosa. There was half a house vacant in the next street, and he
-proposed to take it.
-
-"You shall not," said Jacob. "I will not have that slut in the house.
-What sort of children will she give you? Squat-browed and bow-legged
-they will be. How will she look after them? A woman that cannot
-contain her love for her man will have none for the children. She is a
-dirty girl, I tell you, and so is her mother and her father's mother,
-and her father's father's mother."
-
-"I don't know who we are, to hold up our heads so high. You are my
-father, but in some things I cannot obey you. The business is mine
-. . ."
-
-"It is not. It is mine!" said Jacob. "It is in your name, but it is
-mine. It is in your name, but your name is my name, and you shall not
-give it to a woman like that, who goes smelling about street corners
-like a dog. Her father has no money, and he never goes to the
-synagogue."
-
-"I am not marrying her father. I shall go out of the business, then,
-and I shall start for myself. Rosa will kill herself if I do not marry
-her, and I must do it."
-
-"It is true," said Golda quietly. "I think she will kill herself."
-
-Jacob stormed on and Issy blustered, until at last he confessed that
-Rosa had caught him, and that he had to marry her. Jacob threw up his
-hands and in a shrill voice of icy contempt told Issy exactly what he
-thought of such marriages; they were nothing but dirt. . . . "Because
-you have a little dirt on you, must you roll in the mud? You are like
-dirty dogs, all of you. You, and Harry, and Mendel. I don't know what
-has come to you in this London. God gave me one woman, and I have
-asked for nothing else."
-
-"You would not let me marry Rosa when I was young."
-
-Words and feeling ran so high that Mendel, aghast, fled away to his
-studio, where the sound of the storm reached him. It raged for hours,
-and ended in Issy flinging himself out of the house and slamming the
-door.
-
-A week later Rosa was brought to see Golda, and she fawned on her like
-a dog that has been whipped, sat gazing at her with her stupid brown
-eyes, and whimpered: "I should have killed myself. Yes, I should have
-killed myself."
-
-"You would not have been so wicked," said Golda. "It is sinful to
-throw good fish after bad. Can you cook?"
-
-"Yes," said Rosa. "I can make cucumber soup. I could do anything for
-Issy, he is so strong and handsome."
-
-And Golda said to Mendel after the interview: "A woman like that is
-like a steam bath for a man."
-
-* * * * *
-
-A few days later Issy and Rosa were married, without ceremony, without
-carriages, or photographs, or guests, or feast. It was a wedding to be
-ashamed of, but Jacob would not, and Rosa's father could not, lay out
-a penny on it. The couple took half the house in the next street, and
-Issy discovered at once that he hated his wife, and was at no pains to
-conceal it either from her or from his family.
-
-Mendel was profoundly depressed by this disturbance and plunge
-downwards, for he still half expected his family to rise with him. He
-was to make all their fortunes, but, with the rest of the family, he
-detested the unhappy Rosa and regarded her as little short of a
-criminal. He was depressed, too, because the summer holidays were
-approaching and he would be bereft of his beloved Mitchell, who was
-going away for three months to the country. He would be left with his
-family, in whom there was no peace. Why could they not be like the
-Mitchells and the Weldons, who could live together without quarrels,
-and could take a happy, humorous interest in each other's doings
-without these devastating passions and cursings and denunciations? And
-yet when he thought of the Mitchells and the Weldons and the
-Froitzheims, in their charming, comfortable houses, there was
-something soft and foolish about them all--something savouring of
-idolatry, for instance, in the homage Mitchell paid his father, in the
-assumption that Mrs. Mitchell was a very remarkable woman, whose
-children could not be expected to be ordinary. More and more did
-Mendel value his mother, who was content to be just a woman and to
-live without flattery of any kind, and to accept everyone whom she met
-and to value them as human beings, without regard to their rank,
-station, possessions, or achievements. Himself she esteemed no more
-because he was an artist, though he had tried hard to make her give
-her tribute to that side of his nature. She loved him simply, neither
-more for his attainments nor less for his doings, that pained her
-deeply. And that direct human contact he obtained nowhere else, and in
-no one else could he find it existing so openly and frankly. Yet he
-loved the follies and pretences of the outside world. He adored
-theatricality, and among his polite friends there was always some
-drama towards. It was never drowned in incoherent passions, and he
-himself, among the nice cultured folk, was always a startling dramatic
-figure. Sometimes they seemed to him all slyness and insincerity, and
-then he loathed them; but that was generally when he had aimed at and
-failed in some dramatic coup, or when they had encouraged him to talk
-about himself until he bored them. On the whole, he was successful
-with them, as he wished to be, easily and without calculation. It was
-when they made calculation necessary, by feigning an interest that
-they did not feel, that he was shocked and angry. If anywhere the
-atmosphere was such that he could not be frank, then he avoided that
-place and those people.
-
-Now he was bored, bored to think of the hot stewing months with no
-relief except such as he could find in vagrom adventures from the
-harsh rigidity of life among his own people. And he was in a strange
-condition of physical lassitude. Even his ambition was stagnant. In
-his work he had only the pleasure of dexterity. It had no meaning, and
-contained no delight. When he painted apples or a dead bird or a
-woman, the result was just apples or a dead bird or a woman. The paint
-made no difference and the subject was still better than his rendering
-of it. He was only concerned with technical problems. Fascinated by a
-gradated sky in a picture in the National Gallery, he practised
-gradated skies until he could have done them in his sleep.
-
-And he was tired, tired in body and in soul. Both in his life and in
-his work he had had to conquer a convention in order to keep his
-footing in the world of his desire. Just as he had only learned the
-Detmold style of drawing by a supreme effort of will, so also by a
-tremendous effort he had learned the rudiments of manners and polite
-conversation. He had had to overcome his tendency to fall violently in
-love with every charming person, male or female, he met, and to regard
-with an aversion equally violent those in whom he found no charm. Such
-charm must for him be genuine and not a matter of tricks, and for this
-reason he had regarded every person whom he thought of as old with
-dislike. For him anybody above twenty-five was "old." He still thought
-he would be made or marred by the time he was twenty-three, but that
-age seemed immeasurably far off. Long before then, like a thunderbolt,
-his full genius would descend upon him and all the world would know
-his name. He was almost innocent of conceit in this. Such, he
-believed, was the history of genius, and so far nothing had happened
-to deny his inward consciousness of his rarity. Relieve the pressure
-of circumstance and he soared upwards. . . . There was a queer,
-uncomfortable pleasure in such thoughts and dreams and in imagining a
-fatality that should drag him down and down to Issy's level and lower.
-There was a sickening fascination in picturing to himself a descent as
-swift and irresistible as his upward flight. Yet dreary were the hours
-of waiting for the impetus that had once or twice so freely and so
-strongly moved in him. Sick with waiting, he would work in a fury to
-master trick after trick and difficulty after difficulty in painting,
-so as to be ready when the time came. All the cunning and wariness of
-his race welled up in him as he prepared deliberately, slowly,
-patiently for his opportunity.
-
-* * * * *
-
-One afternoon, as Golda was sleeping in her kitchen, she was awakened
-by a knock at the door. Going to open it, she found Hetty Finch
-waiting there, neatly clad in a brown tailor-made coat and skirt, very
-smart, with a trim little feathered hat on her head. Golda's thoughts
-flew to Mendel, and her first inclination was to slam the door in
-Hetty's face, but, remembering that the boy was out, she admitted her.
-
-Hetty followed Golda into the kitchen and stood looking round it with
-obvious disappointment. She had not imagined the Kühlers to be so
-poor.
-
-"I promised Ma I would call," she said, taking the chair which Golda
-dusted for her.
-
-"And how is your Ma?" asked Golda.
-
-"She's given up the house and gone into a hotel as manageress,"
-replied Hetty, lying as usual, for her mother had been sold up and had
-taken a place as barmaid in a tavern. "And I've come to London to earn
-my living. Ma gave me fourteen shillings, and that was all she could
-do for me. Still, I'm off her hands now."
-
-Golda asked her what she was going to do, and she said she thought of
-going into service until she had had a look round. Where was she
-living? She had taken a room with some friends, lodgers of Ma's, off
-Stepney Green.
-
-Conversation was lifeless and desultory until Issy came into the room,
-when she brightened up, but he was overcome with his old terror of the
-girl and soon hurried away. Then she noticed the pictures on the wall
-and asked if they were Mendel's. Golda refused flatly to talk about
-them, but Hetty persisted and would talk of nothing else. Jacob came
-in and she made him talk about Mendel, and she made herself so
-charming to him and flattered his simple vanity so grossly that
-presently Golda was staggered by the sight of him making tea with his
-own hands and pouring it out for the visitor.
-
-"Yes," said Jacob, "the boy did all those before he was fourteen. He
-will get on, that boy. He is bound to get on, but I shall not live to
-see him in his glory."
-
-"I think they're lovely," said Hetty, sipping her tea. And she went on
-chattering vivaciously until Jacob was called away to the workshop,
-when once again conversation became lifeless and desultory. Golda made
-one excuse after another to try to get rid of her, but Hetty would not
-budge. At last there came the sound of Mendel's key in the door. Golda
-bustled out of the room and whispered to him:--
-
-"You must not come in. I have visitors and there are letters waiting
-for you upstairs."
-
-But Mendel had seen a girl sitting in the kitchen and he wanted to
-know whether she was pretty or not. She turned and he saw that she was
-charmingly pretty. He brushed by his mother. He felt at once that he
-had made a good impression, and, indeed, all Hetty's dreams and
-fancies were more than realized, though she was a little affronted and
-disappointed by the poorness of his clothes.
-
-"It is Hetty Finch," said Golda, "from Margate."
-
-Mendel had had Issy's account of Hetty and he was on his guard at
-once.
-
-"Yes. I've come to live in London," said she.
-
-"I've never lived out of it," he answered.
-
-"I thought perhaps, as you know so many people, you could help me to
-find some work. There must be room somewhere in London for poor little
-me."
-
-"I'll see about it," said Mendel, taking note of her features and
-figure, and rather upset to find himself so little excited by her.
-Issy had given him to imagine a dashing, overwhelming woman. He only
-felt vaguely sorry for Hetty and a desire to stroke her, though he
-knew her at once for what she was, and how she was drinking in the
-strongly developed male in him. For the first time he felt cool and
-detached in the presence of a woman: a deliciously grown-up sensation,
-and he wanted more of it.
-
-She soon said she must go, and in Golda's hearing he promised to write
-to her, but when he took her to the door he asked her to come to his
-studio, and she said she would come the next day.
-
-
-
-IX
-
-THE QUINTETTE
-
-HE had more of the deliciously grown-up sensation the next day, when
-Hetty came to see him. She was something new. The girls of the streets
-he knew, and unattainably above them were the girls at the school and
-his friends' sisters, whom he called "top-knots," because of the way
-they did their hair. The "top-knots" were hardly female at all to him,
-so remote were they, so entirely unapproachable; utterly different
-from the girls of the streets, who were so accessible that he had but
-to hold out his arms to find one of them, as if by magic, in his
-grasp. And now Hetty was different again.
-
-"You are cosy up here," she said, moving at once to the only
-comfortable chair and curling up in it. "Your sister told me about
-you."
-
-"Leah? What lies did she tell you?"
-
-"Well, I knew it wasn't _all_ true, about the money you were making,
-because you wouldn't live here if it was true, would you? But I
-suppose some of your friends make a lot of money."
-
-"They're rich, some of them," replied Mendel, aghast to find himself
-thinking coldly of his friends in terms of money, his mind rushing
-swiftly between the two poles of his father and Sir Julius. "Yes.
-There's plenty of money in London."
-
-"That's what Ma said when she gave me the fourteen shillings. She said
-a girl with eyes like mine had no need to go short in London." Hetty
-raised her eyes and looked full at him, who met her stare boldly and
-yet with some alarm, finding himself acting a part.
-
-Hetty was flattering him by regarding him as the possessor of a key to
-the wealth of London, and in spite of himself he could not help
-accepting the rôle. She had touched an element of his character of
-which till then he had been unconscious. The knave in him sprang into
-being and thrust all his other qualities aside. He began to boast of
-his success and to swagger about the luxury and immorality of London
-life, though it was not all braggadocio, but also a kindly desire to
-make Hetty happy by talking to her of the things that interested her.
-
-He told her about Calthrop and the Paris Café, and Maurice Birnbaum
-and his motor-car and richly furnished flat in Westminster, and a
-Lord's son who was at the Detmold, and Mitchell, whose father was a
-great man. And all the time, as he talked, he was astonished at the
-sound of his own voice, so different did it sound.
-
-Hetty wriggled with pleasure in her chair and pouted up her lips.
-Presently she said her hat made her head ache, and she took it off and
-stretched out her arms and said:--
-
-"No more pots and pans for me! I do think you're lovely. It's just
-like a story. I call that real fun. Not like Margate. . . . Do you
-think I could get work as a model, or do you have to be slap-up?"
-
-Mendel thought of the drabs who posed and he could not help smiling.
-
-"I could only tell by your figure, though your face is all right."
-
-"Do you think I'm pretty?" she asked.
-
-"Very."
-
-"I'll show you my figure, if you like."
-
-"All right, I'll light the gas-stove in the bedroom. It's a little
-cold in here."
-
-He showed her into the bedroom, and when she was ready she called to
-him.
-
-She was beautifully made, but she looked so foolish with her anxiety
-to please him that he could take hardly any interest in her, and he
-was distressed, too, because the only background he could give her
-consisted of his new knavish thoughts of the wealth of London. Yet
-nothing could disturb it, for the background was suitable. Her white
-body was her offering.
-
-"How much would I be paid?"
-
-"A shilling an hour."
-
-"Do you pay that?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"If you could get me work I would sit to you for nothing."
-
-"I'd pay you," he said. His generous qualities strove hard to reassert
-themselves, but there was something about this girl that compelled
-just what he was giving her--hardness for hardness, value for value.
-Yet she was certainly beautiful, and it was strange to him to be
-unable to give her the warm homage that within himself he could not
-help feeling.
-
-She sat on the bed, making no move to cover herself, and said:--
-
-"Artists _are_ different. There was an artist once at Margate. It was
-him put the idea into my head. But he was very poor and not a
-gentleman."
-
-And now to Mendel she was an object of sheer astonishment. He stood
-and warmed his legs by the gas stove and gaped at her, sitting on his
-bed and chattering in her clear, hard voice of her ambitions, her
-dreams, the drudgery at home, while in everything she said was a
-flattery which he could not resist. Worst of all, he felt that he was
-one of a pair with her. His talent, her body, were shining offerings
-with which they both emerged from the depths of the despised. Entering
-into her spirit, he too was filled with a desire for revenge. Yet in
-him this desire was charged with passion, which made their present
-situation ridiculous. He thought of the poverty and the obscure
-suffering downstairs, the dragging penury to which, but for his
-talent, he would have been condemned. Then he imagined her as Issy had
-described her at Margate, lurking in the kitchen, listening behind the
-door as Leah spun her yarns. He could sympathize with her, and she
-seemed to him almost gallant.
-
-He got out a piece of mill-board and began to draw her, but to his
-annoyance could not get interested in what he was doing. He wanted to
-know more about her, could not rest content that a human being should
-be so reduced to a cold purpose. Yet, though she talked freely enough,
-nothing fell from her lips to meet his desire. She had no people, no
-class, no tradition, but still she was a person. He could not dismiss
-her as he dismissed so many, as "nonsensical."
-
-"I can't make much of you now," he said, almost wailing. "I believe
-I'm tired."
-
-And suddenly he hurled away his drawing and rushed at her and kissed
-her. She clung to him and he yielded to her will, seeing clearly that
-this was her purpose, this her desire, this her ambition, her all.
-
-He knew that she was using him, was making certain of being able to
-use him. The newly discovered knave in him insisted on having his
-existence, and through it he enjoyed a certain defiant happiness.
-
-Happiness! To be happy! That had seemed impossible. His first year at
-the Detmold had been miserable. He had been discouraged and almost
-listless. Often he would go to his mother and say: "I shall never be
-an artist."
-
-"Not all at once," Golda would say. "Take a boy who is apprenticed to
-a bootmaker. He cannot all at once make good boots. He must spoil a
-deal of leather first. Or a tailor-boy: he must spoil cloth. A trade
-must be learned, and you can learn this, for you work hard enough at
-it."
-
-For a moment or two he would see through her clear eyes and that was
-enough to set him working again, half believing that he would soon
-master his craft. But there had been the struggle to master what at
-the Detmold, with such unquestionable authority, they called
-"drawing."
-
-This now, with Hetty, was in its way happiness, though he detested it
-and her. It was an escape. It was easy. It made no demands on him,
-save the small effort to achieve self-forgetfulness, and in that she
-aided him, for she seemed superior to himself and enviable in the
-clearness of her purpose. She offered herself and made no demands upon
-him except of what could cost him nothing: just a few words to his
-friends, a start in her chosen profession.
-
-All the same, he was horrified at himself. Every other crisis and
-sudden change in his life had been attended with violent suffering, an
-eruption within himself, profound depression, almost a collapse. This
-had been as easy as walking through a door, a slipping from one part
-of his being to another. . . . Here suddenly was happiness, a queer
-detached, almost indifferent condition, full of pleasure, and he
-rejoiced in the novelty of it. He watched Hetty draw on her clothes
-again and was sickened by the sensual languor of her movements. She
-was drowsy, like a cat before a fire.
-
-"No, I certainly shan't draw you to-day."
-
-"What about to-morrow?"
-
-"I shall be painting to-morrow."
-
-"I do think you're a devil sometimes."
-
-"I'll take you to the Paris Café, if you like."
-
-"Will you?"
-
-She perked up on that. She had not expected so soon to gain her
-desire.
-
-"Yes. If you've got to earn your living you should meet people, and
-the sooner you get going the better."
-
-Hetty sat with her chin in her hands, crouched in elation. Everything
-had turned out as she had hoped and planned, as she had willed that it
-should, and she regarded him with some contempt because he had been so
-easy and because he was so young. She was the same age as he, but she
-thought him a little vain boy. Yet when he looked at her she was
-afraid of him, for he knew so much and guessed so much more. To defend
-herself, her instinct drove through to his vanity and flattered it to
-blind him. She feigned an animation she was incapable of feeling to
-make herself more beautiful in his eyes, and he thought of his
-friends, Mitchell and Weldon, and how they would be stirred with her.
-He thought how she would please Calthrop, and he was lured into
-believing that he would gain in importance through her.
-
-"You've come at a very bad time," he said. "They'll all be going away
-for the summer."
-
-"Oh!" she looked dashed, hating to be caught out in a mistake. "Do
-they go away for long?"
-
-"Three months."
-
-"Oh, well!" she drawled. "I can get a place if nothing turns up. But
-something always does turn up. I'm one of the lucky ones, you know."
-
-"I don't believe in luck," said he, with a sudden irruption of the old
-self that seemed to have been left so far behind.
-
-"I must go now," she said.
-
-They groped their way down the dark stairs, and he went out with her,
-feeling that he could not face his family, from whom he knew now that
-his face was turned. In the street a mood of freedom and adventure
-came over him, and for this mood she was a fitting mate. He took her
-on the top of a bus to the West End, among the promenading crowds, and
-she drank it all in with a kind of exaltation, her big eyes glowing,
-her body trembling with excitement. Into one café after another he led
-her, completely absorbed as he was in her purpose, and at last, when
-they mounted the eastward bus, she leaned her head on his shoulder,
-and he could hear her murmuring to herself: "London . . . London . . .
-London."
-
-He too was thrilled as he had never been before by London. He had
-never so strongly realized it before. The great city had thrilled him
-with its beauty and had stirred him with its business, but never
-before had its spirit crept into his blood to send it whirling and
-singing through his veins. He hardly slept at all that night, and the
-next morning it was a long time before he could begin to work, which
-then seemed far removed from the effort and almost anguish it used to
-cost him. The still-life with which he had been wrestling became quite
-easy to do, and very soothing was the handling of brushes and paint.
-Every touch was like a caress upon his aching soul.
-
-So began a period of real happiness. The pieces he painted with such
-soothing ease were generally admired and readily bought. The dealer to
-whom he took them was also a colourman and gave him apparently
-unlimited credit; and he laid in an immense stock of colours and
-amused himself with experiments. It seemed that his career was to be
-successful without a struggle. His patrons were delighted to find him
-so soon making money, and the Birnbaums and the Fleischmanns invited
-him down into the country, but as he found that they put him up in a
-servant's bedroom or a gardener's cottage he refused to go more than
-once, or to any more of their kind who were not prepared to forget his
-poverty.
-
-He would rather stay in London with Hetty, whom he had begun to regard
-as a mascot. With her coming everything had changed. She had made
-everything easy and happy and delightful. He had no love for her, but
-he could not help feeling grateful. She had turned work into a
-pleasure, pleasure into a riot of ecstasy.
-
-Alone with her in the evenings or with some chance acquaintance,
-during the holidays he roamed through London, basking in the summer
-evenings, discovering unimagined splendours, the Parks, the river, the
-Zoo, boating on the Serpentine, the promenade on the romantic
-Spaniard's Road at Hampstead. Nearly every night he wrote to Mitchell
-in the country, describing his new easy happiness in his work and his
-discovery of the charm of nights in London. And once a week Mitchell
-would write to him and give him a delightful account of English
-country life in a valley, shut in by rolling hills between which
-wandered a slow, pleasant stream. Here Mitchell was painting, boating,
-playing tennis, making love.
-
-"There's a Detmold girl lives near here with her people--Greta
-Morrison. You may remember her--glorious chestnut hair, big blue eyes,
-but as shy as a little mouse. I couldn't get a word out of her until I
-began to talk about you, and there's no end to her appetite for that.
-I don't mince matters. I tell her exactly what you are, exactly what
-you come from, and what a wild beast you are. She has seen you throw
-things about at the Detmold, and she seems absolutely to like it. Yet
-she is not a fool, and I like her enormously. She makes me feel what a
-rotter I am, but I can't get on with her unless I talk about you. I
-_have_ heard that her work is good, but she won't show me a thing."
-
-Mendel was pleased that a "top-knot" should be interested in him, but
-beyond the flicker of delight he gave no thought to the idea of Greta
-Morrison. The "top-knots" belonged to the world which he was going to
-despoil with Hetty Finch. That world must disgorge. It had condemned,
-and still condemned, his father and mother to bitter poverty, and he
-remembered how on their first coming to London the whole family had
-slept in one room, and how he had sat up in the middle of the night
-and looked at the recumbent bodies and suffered under the indignity of
-it. And his brothers had grown from ruddy, bronzed boys into
-pale-faced, worn young men. And behind Hetty was the dirty
-lodging-house and her Ma, of whom he had a very clear idea. He used to
-wax violent, and his imagination would run riot with the fantastic
-visions of success he conjured up.
-
-Who were the "top-knots" that they should have an easy, pleasant time
-in the country while he was left to stew in London?
-
-Hetty began genuinely to admire him, and her flattery was no longer
-empty. There was some sustenance in it.
-
-"O--oh!" she used to say. "You'll get on. There's no doubt about that.
-You'll have a big stoodio and the nobs will come up in their
-motor-cars, and you'll be able to paint what you like then."
-
-"You're a liar," he would reply. "I shall always paint what I like. I
-never do anything else, and never will. Once paint for the fools and
-you have to do it always, because you become a fool yourself."
-
-* * * * *
-
-Golda once met Hetty coming down the stairs. She told her she was a
-dirty slut and was not to show her face inside the house again. A few
-days later she saw her open the front door and slip out. In her anger
-she informed Jacob of the danger to Mendel, and Jacob went up to the
-studio.
-
-"I will not have that harlot in my house," he said.
-
-"She is not a harlot," replied Mendel rather shakily, for, though his
-father's power had dwindled, yet he was still a figure of authority.
-
-"She is a harlot and a daughter of a harlot, and I will not have her
-in my house."
-
-"She is a model, and I must have models, as I have tried to explain to
-you again and again. I am allowed money for models. I must have
-models, just as you must have skins."
-
-"Then there are other models. I know this girl, what she is after, and
-she will ruin you."
-
-"Neither she nor anyone else in the whole world could ruin me," said
-Mendel, "for I am an artist, and while I have my art I ask nothing
-outside it."
-
-"Don't argue with me!" shouted Jacob. "I will not have that drab in my
-house."
-
-Mendel had a great respect and regard for his father. He was silent,
-and Jacob went downstairs, satisfied that he had asserted himself.
-
-He said to Golda:--
-
-"They will blow the boy's head off his shoulder with the fuss they
-make of him. I know how to take him down a peg or two."
-
-"Don't go too far," said Golda. "It would be a black day for me if he
-went away and was ashamed of us."
-
-"If I saw that he was ashamed of you," replied Jacob, "I would thrash
-him within an inch of his life. Ashamed of you, among all the dirt and
-trumped-up people he goes among!"
-
-However, Hetty still came to the studio and there were frequent
-explosions, until at last Mendel, intent on the new independence he
-had won, declared that he could bear it no longer, and he arranged
-with Issy to take the top floor of his house and to turn that into a
-studio. This compromise was successful, and pleased both parties:
-Golda was happy to be relieved from further friction and Mendel was
-glad to be away, for he knew that his doings must hurt her, and that
-he hated. Yet he could see no way out of it. He was done for ever with
-the old simplicity of his untutored painting in her kitchen. Art was
-no longer a pure and hardly-won joy. It was a trade, like any other,
-and, like any other, it had its sordid aspect, and, to compensate for
-that, it was a career and could also be a triumph. These things he did
-not expect his mother to understand. He had Mitchell to talk to now,
-Mitchell to whom to impart the burden upon his soul, and Mitchell and
-he were to work together and to give to the world such art as it had
-never seen since the primitives.
-
-Mitchell and he! That friendship was the source of his new confidence.
-Golda had been and still was much to him, but when it came to painting
-she knew nothing at all, and painting was the important thing. Through
-painting lay not only satisfied ambitions and fame and riches, but
-life itself, and of that what could Golda know?
-
-It was a great thing, therefore, to be established away from home when
-Mitchell returned from the country. And Mitchell approved. He had
-suffered from being under his father's shadow, and with Weldon and
-Kessler he had taken a studio near Fitzroy Square. He said:--
-
-"A time will come when you will have to leave the East End."
-
-"I shall never leave them," replied Mendel. "What I want to paint is
-there. They are my people, and all that I have belongs to them."
-
-"Rubbish. You'll soon be getting commissions, and you can't ask people
-who can afford to pay for portraits to a hole like that."
-
-"They will come to my studio," said Mendel, "or I will not take their
-commissions."
-
-Though Mitchell was rather shocked by his frank conceit, he could not
-but admire and envy the way his impulses came rushing to the surface
-and were never deterred by considerations as to the impression he
-might be making. Mendel trusted Mitchell absolutely and hid nothing
-from him, neither the most scabrous of his deeds nor the most childish
-of his desires. He made no secret of the new manly feeling that had
-come to him through Hetty, the conviction that he could meet the West
-End on its own terms.
-
-When he showed Mitchell the work he had done during the holidays, his
-friend said:--
-
-"Gawd! The difference is absolutely startling. There's charm in every
-one of them, and they're not fakes either."
-
-With Hetty he was enraptured.
-
-"Gawd!" he said; "I'll give ten years to painting her, as Leonardo did
-to Monna Lisa, and then it would not be finished. Came from a Margate
-lodging-house, did she? Mark my words: she'll marry a successful
-artist and queen it among the best."
-
-With Mitchell, Hetty put forth all her cajolery when she found that he
-knew what she thought good people. She could look very pathetic and
-delicate, and middle-aged artists were sorry for her, and thought
-being a model a perilous profession for her. One of them warned her of
-the dangers she must run, and especially mentioned Mitchell and Kühler
-as young men to be avoided. They roared with laughter when she told
-them.
-
-The Paris Café was Paradise to her, and she made friends with all its
-habitués and attracted the attention of Calthrop, who became Mendel's
-enemy for life when she told him that the youngster had said of him
-that he had been a good artist once, but was now only repeating
-himself.
-
-With marvellous rapidity she picked up the jargon of the place, and
-could quite easily have taken her career in her own hands, but she
-would not surrender Mendel, who could no more do without her than he
-could without Mitchell. She clung to him and kept him a happy slave to
-his three friends, to whom she devoted herself as though her existence
-depended on the solidarity of the group. From morning to night she was
-with one or other of them, and every evening with the four of them at
-the Paris, or making a row at a music-hall and getting themselves
-kicked out.
-
-She was learning her trade as they were learning theirs, and she was
-delighted with the ease with which Mendel picked up what she called
-"sense"; that is to say, he became much more like the others, affected
-their speech, grew his hair long, wore corduroys, a black shirt, and a
-red sash, and talked blatantly and with a slight contempt of great
-painters. But even so, he was disturbing, for he did all these things
-with passion, so that they tinged his soul, and were not as a mere
-garment upon it. Even in falsehood he was sincere.
-
-When Hetty found Calthrop painting a self-portrait, she set her four
-boys painting self-portraits, and when she found the older men talking
-about the beauty of roofs and chimneys, the four were soon ecstatic
-about roofs and chimneys, and painting them without knowing how it had
-come about. She could feel what was in the air, and had no difficulty
-in making them conform to it, so that they were successful even while
-they were students, and were talked of and discussed and approached by
-dealers as though they were persons of consequence. Their life was one
-long intoxication: money, praise, wine, and debauchery went to their
-heads, and of all these excitants Mendel had the largest share, and
-found himself the equal even of Kessler, whose father was a
-millionaire soap-boiler. He attained an extraordinary skill at doing
-what was expected of him, and developed an instinct as sharp as
-Hetty's for the success of the moment after next.
-
-He won scholarships at the Detmold and, carefully adapting his style,
-an open prize at the Royal Academy. His patrons were excited and
-delighted. He was interviewed by the Yiddish papers and photographed,
-palette and brushes in hand, in a dashing attitude. He said many
-foolish things to the reporters, but the printed version made him
-blush. He was represented as saying that art had been reborn during
-the last ten years, that the Royal Academy was exploded and would soon
-close its doors, that there was no art criticism in England, that
-there had never been a great Jewish artist, and that this deficiency
-in the most vital and enduring race in the world would now be
-repaired.
-
-He thanked his stars that his friends could not read Yiddish. Two
-well-known Jewish painters wrote to the paper to say that they existed
-and to trounce his "bumptious and ignorant dismissal of respected and
-respectable art." And he heartily agreed with them. He was shaken out
-of the hectic dreams of months, yet could not feel or see clearly. His
-way was with Mitchell, and Mitchell was generously rejoicing in it all
-as though it had happened to himself, while Hetty was going from
-studio to studio spreading the news and declaring the arrival of a
-genius.
-
-He wanted to go and hide his face in his mother's skirts, but she was
-so happy and elated with the congratulations of the neighbours and
-visits from the Rabbis of the synagogue that he could not but keep up
-his part before her. For her and for all his family he bought
-extravagant presents, and he went out and sought Artie Beech, whom he
-had not seen for years, and gave him a box of cigars. He had a
-melancholy idea that he was doing them all an injury and that he must
-somehow repair it. The exact nature of the injury he did not know, but
-his instinct was very sure that the whole business was false. Yet it
-was so actual that he could not help believing in it. He was
-hypnotized into accepting it. There seemed no reason why it should not
-go on for ever. Here, apparently, was what he had always striven
-for--art and homage--and the idea that they could go on for ever was
-terrible and paralysing. But there was not a soul in the world with
-whom he could share his feeling. If he showed the least hesitation
-they would accuse him of ingratitude.
-
-He was filled with a smouldering rage against them all which found no
-vent until Maurice Birnbaum came in his motor-car and asked him to
-bring some of his things to show Sir William Hunslet, R.A., who had
-been much impressed with his prize picture. Once again Mendel climbed
-into the motor-car, and once again he was told not to let his parcel
-scratch the paint.
-
-"Now," said Maurice, "you have the world at your feet, and I feel
-proud to have had my share in bringing it about. You can have
-everything you want, and if you don't grow into something really big
-it won't be our fault. Everything that money can do it shall do."
-
-The car rolled through the streets which had been the scene of
-Mendel's happy rambles, but being carried through them in such
-magnificence made him feel helpless, a victim to something stronger
-than his own will and that he had always detested. He was being taken
-away from his mother and from Mitchell, and he knew whither motor-cars
-were driven. All roads ended in Sir Julius, who could sit and look at
-pictures without a word. Everything went spinning past him. This was
-going too fast, too fast, and he would be exhausted before he had
-really known his purpose. Maurice Birnbaum's exciting, patronizing
-tones, chattering on exasperatingly, infuriated him, until he felt
-like stabbing him in his already dropping stomach. What could a fat
-man like that have to do with art? How could so fat a man drive down
-to the wretched poverty in Whitechapel and not feel ashamed?
-
-But in spite of himself and his confused emotions Mendel enjoyed the
-drive, which showed him more of London than the narrowed area he
-frequented: more to conquer, more to know; shops, strange ugly
-buildings, polite, mincing people, women like dolls, men like
-marionettes, wide streets and plane-trees, the gardens and squares of
-the polite Southwest. Often there were Georgian houses like that in
-which his family lived, but so neat and trim and newly painted that
-they looked like doll's-houses, proper places for the dolls and the
-marionettes. . . . And it was exhilarating to be in the heart of the
-roaring traffic, bearing down upon scarlet buses, and swift darting
-taxi-cabs and motor-cars as rich as Maurice Birnbaum's. Out of the
-traffic they turned suddenly into a quiet street of dead houses and
-vast gloomy piles of flats. Outside a house more gloomy than the rest
-they stopped. Maurice got out fussily, told Mendel to be careful how
-he lifted his parcel out, fussed his way into the house through a
-dark, luxuriously furnished hall, and into a vast studio where there
-was a group of fashionably dressed women taking tea with Sir William
-and exclaiming about the beauties of a portrait that stood on the
-easel.
-
-Maurice stood awkwardly outside the circle and muttered apologies,
-while Mendel felt utterly and crushingly foreign to the atmosphere of
-the place. He knew how these people would regard him. They would stare
-at him with a cold interest not unmingled with horror, and he would be
-conscious of bearing the marks of the place he came from, of smelling
-of the gutter. Against that separation even art was powerless. And
-what had his work to do with this huge, hard, brilliant portrait on
-the easel? If they admired that they would never look at his dark
-little pictures.
-
-Sir William introduced Maurice to the ladies, but did not so much as
-look at the boy, whom his mind had at once ticked off as a "student,"
-and therefore to be kept in his place. Maurice explained spluttering:
-words like "scholarship," "prize," "genius," "instinct," fell in a
-shower from his lips, and one of the ladies put up her lorgnette and
-stared at Mendel as though he were a picture or a wax model.
-
-At last he was told to untie his parcel, and one by one he showed his
-pictures. Sir William blew out his chest and his cheeks, and with a
-wave of his hand blurted out one word:--
-
-"Italy."
-
-"That's what I say," said Maurice.
-
-Mendel scented danger. They seemed to him to be conspiring together.
-
-"Italy!" ejaculated Sir William. "Italy! Blue skies, the sun, the
-light. Give him light and landscape with form in it."
-
-"Am I ill?" thought Mendel with some alarm, for Sir William sounded to
-him more like a doctor than a painter. And he decided that the
-Academician was not a real artist because he showed no sign of the
-fellow-feeling which had been so strong in Mr. Froitzheim.
-
-Before the ladies he could say nothing. He put his pictures back in
-the parcel and heard Maurice and Sir William still conspiring together
-to send him to Italy. He was tired of being swung from one idea to
-another. At the Polytechnic they had told him that the essential thing
-in a picture was "tone," that he must remember the existence of the
-atmosphere between himself and the object he was painting, and that
-there were no bright colours in nature. At the Detmold little was said
-about "tone," but he was told that the essence of a picture was
-drawing, "the expression of form." . . . What next? He had a
-foreboding that Italy was only another name for another essence of a
-picture. Besides, he wanted to live. Though he adored art, yet it did
-not contain all that was precious to him--liberty and gaiety,
-friendship and affection. Always until the Detmold his life had been
-weighed down with poverty and with terrible obsessions like that of
-his dread of the fat, curly-headed boy who, during the six long years
-of his schooling, had waited for him outside the school-gates every
-day to give him a coward's blow and to challenge him to fight and to
-jeer at him if he refused. There had been furious, passionate loves to
-set him reeling, gusts of inexplicable desires and ambitions which had
-often made him weep with pain. And now, just as the world was opening
-out before him and he was warm with the friendship of an Englishman
-(for he was proud of Mitchell's Public School training), they wished
-to take him away and send him to a far country.
-
-He had had enough of being a foreigner in England, and he loathed the
-idea of travel. His father had told him that England was the best
-country in the world, and, if he had suffered so much there, what
-would it be in others? Italy? He wanted to paint what he had always
-painted, fish and onions in a London kitchen. How could Italy help him
-to do that?
-
-He would not go. He would refuse to go. These Birnbaums and
-Fleischmanns had had their way with him for long enough.
-
-So lost was he in this growing revolt that he was already some
-distance away from Sir William's studio before he was aware of having
-left it.
-
-"Our greatest painter," said Maurice. "The greatest since Whistler."
-
-"Yes," said Mendel, aghast at the supersession of Calthrop and the
-idols of the Detmold. If Maurice could be so ignorant there was
-nothing to be said and argument was vain.
-
-"He really appreciated your work," Maurice added.
-
-"He never looked at it!" cried Mendel, enraged. "I put them in front
-of him one by one, but he always looked at the fat lady in blue."
-
-"He could tell with one glance," protested Maurice, who had been
-mightily impressed.
-
-Mendel saw that it was useless to talk, and shut his lips tight while
-Maurice chattered to him of his extraordinary good fortune in being
-able to go to Italy, to live among the orange groves and with the
-greatest galleries of the world to roam in, the most beautiful scenery
-and the most delightful food.
-
-The mention of food made Mendel think of his mother's unsavoury dishes
-and sluttish table, the most distasteful feature of his existence, but
-he preferred even that to the Italy of Maurice Birnbaum and Sir
-William. Through such people, he knew, lay nothing that he could ever
-desire.
-
-As soon as he reached home he told his mother that they wanted to send
-him abroad to study. He strode about the kitchen and waved his arms,
-growling:--
-
-"Study? Study? I want to be an artist, not a student. I _am_ an
-artist. I know art students when I see them--the Academy, South
-Kensington, the Detmold--they are all the same. Let them go abroad and
-never come back. No one will miss them, not even their fathers and
-mothers, if they have anything so natural. I will not go--I will not
-go!"
-
-"But if the Maurice Birnbaum thinks you must go, then you must," said
-Golda. "It is their money that has been spent on you."
-
-"They've spent enough," cried Mendel, "without that. I don't want
-their money any more. They know that. They want to keep me in their
-hands and to say that they made me. They? People like that! God made
-me, and they want to keep me all my life saying how grateful I am to
-them. Grateful? I am not."
-
-"But you could go for a little while."
-
-"I will not go at all."
-
-He sat down and wrote to Maurice Birnbaum saying that he would not go
-to Italy, that he did not want any more of his commissions, and that
-he would not be interfered with any more. He would shortly repay every
-penny he had had, and he asked only to be allowed to know best what he
-wanted to do.
-
-"Everything that I love is here in London, and I can only learn from
-what I love. I am one kind of artist and you want to turn me into
-another kind. You will only waste your money, and I will not let you
-do it."
-
-Maurice never answered this letter and patronage and that of his
-friends was withdrawn.
-
-Mendel plunged more ardently than ever into his career with Mitchell
-and the others, but found that they were not prepared to share or to
-admit the new freedom which he had begun to enjoy. The Birnbaum
-patronage had always to a certain extent restrained him, but now that
-it was shaken off he plunged madly and wildly into every kind of
-extravagance. He was no longer content to be the equal of the others.
-He wanted to lead them. He was the most successful of them all, and he
-wanted them all to join him in forcing art upon London. Calthrop had
-shown them the way, but he had unaccountably stopped short. He had
-many imitators, and there were even women who looked like his type,
-but it all ended in his personality. . . . Art was something else:
-something outside that, an impersonal thing, which London should be
-made to recognize. The pictures of Kühler, Mitchell, Weldon, and
-Kessler should be, as it were, only forerunners of the mighty pictures
-that should be painted. . . .
-
-He was just as extreme and violent in his vices as he was in his
-idealism, and even Mitchell was rather upset by his pranks and
-caprices. It was one thing to take a shy tame genius among your
-acquaintance, quite another when the genius ran wild and dragged you
-hither and thither and with breathless haste from the vilest human
-company to the most dizzily soaring ideas. Weldon, who was uncommonly
-shrewd, had begun to see the danger of allowing Hetty Finch to arrange
-their affairs, and when on top of that Mendel, drunk with freedom and
-success, began to take charge, he thought it time to secure himself
-and began to withdraw from their undertakings and adventures.
-
-At last Kessler struck, and told Mendel that he might be the greatest
-genius that was ever born, but should sometimes try to remember that
-his friends were gentlemen and could not always be making allowances
-for his birth and upbringing. This happened in the Paris Café. Mendel
-fell like a shot bird, like a stone. The eager words froze on his
-lips, his face visibly contracted and became haggard, his eyes blinked
-for a moment, then stared glassily. He sat so for some minutes, then
-rose from the table and walked quickly out of the café.
-
-He did not appear for a week, nor was anything heard of him. He sat at
-home working furiously. Hetty Finch went to see him, but he turned her
-out, telling her that she was a hateful, cold-hearted woman and that
-he would never see her again.
-
-At last he wrote to Mitchell, a letter of agony, for Mitchell, his
-friend, seemed to him the worst offender, by not having warned him of
-what was in the air:--
-
-"You are my friend," he wrote, "my only friend. It is no more to you
-what I am, where or how I was born, than it is to me what you are. The
-soul of a man chooses his friend, and I trusted you even in my folly.
-You could have defended me and our friendship. You have not done so
-and I must live miserably without you. Good-bye. I shall not attempt
-again to enter a life in which my work is not sufficient
-recommendation. I was happy. I was not happy before. I am not happy
-now. I have been foolish, but I was your friend."
-
-Mitchell was irritated by this letter, but he was also moved. He
-valued Mendel's sincerity, which had continually jolted him out of his
-natural indolence. And, as he had a fine talent and a fairly strong
-desire to use it to the full, the friendship had profited him. It had
-also helped him to come to reasonable terms with that great man, his
-father.
-
-On the other hand he was in this difficulty, that he too had been
-slipping out of the quintette through his new friendship with Miss
-Greta Morrison and her friend, Miss Edith Clowes. Knowing Mendel's
-contempt for the "top-knots," he had said nothing of this matter, and
-had found it sometimes difficult to account for the afternoons and
-evenings given to the dilemma of discovering whether Miss Morrison or
-Miss Clowes were the love of his life. Mendel was an exacting friend,
-and, as he concealed nothing, expected no concealment.
-
-Mitchell, like the true Englishman he was, deplored the unpleasant
-complication, but left it to time, impulse, or inspiration to unravel.
-Impulse, in due course, came to his aid and he invented a plan. First
-of all he wrote a manly note to Mendel, confessing his inability to
-understand why he should suffer for Kessler's caddishness, and
-declaring that friendship could not be so lightly broken. He received
-no reply to this, and proceeded by taking Morrison and Clowes (as in
-the fashion of the Detmold they were called) to see the docks at
-Rotherhithe. While there he gazed from Morrison to Clowes and from
-Clowes to Morrison, unable to decide which he loved, for both gave him
-an equal contraction of the heart, and then he told them that ships
-had never been properly painted, never _expressed_ in form and colour;
-and then he added that it was clearly a man's job, and then he
-informed them that only a short distance away lived Mendel Kühler.
-
-"Would you like to go and see him?" he asked. "It is the queerest
-thing to go and see him. A filthy street, a dark house, a ramshackle
-staircase, and there you are--absolutely one of the finest painters
-the Detmold has ever turned out."
-
-"Do let us go and see him!" said Clowes, who had decided in her own
-mind that she was the third of the party and in the way. Morrison said
-nothing, and looked very solemn, as though she regarded the visit as
-an event--something to be half dreaded. She had a very charming air of
-diffidence, as though she were very happy and knew this to be an
-unusual and peculiar condition. Often she smiled to herself, and then
-seemed to shake the smile away, feeling perhaps that she, a slip of a
-girl, had no right to be amused by a world so vast and so varied.
-
-She had enjoyed herself. The ships had stirred her romantically, and
-she could not at all agree with Mitchell about painting them, for were
-they not works of art in themselves? They moved her in the same way,
-arresting her eyes and delighting them, and touching her emotions so
-that they began to creep and tickle their way through her whole being.
-. . . O wonderful world to contain so much delight! And it pleased her
-that the ships should start out of the squalor of the docks like
-lilies out of a dark pond.
-
-She smiled and shook the smile away when Mitchell spoke of Mendel
-Kühler. She remembered once meeting Mendel on the stairs at the
-Detmold. She had often noticed him--strange-looking, white-faced,
-romantic, with a look of suffering in his eyes that marked him out
-from all the other young men. . . . After she had passed him on the
-stairs she turned to look at him, and at the same moment he turned and
-she trembled and blushed, and her eyes shone as she hurried on her
-way.
-
-Mitchell had told her a great deal about him, and she had heard other
-people say that he was detestable, an ill-mannered egoist. She
-supposed he was so, for she rarely questioned what other people said,
-but he remained a clear figure for her, the romantic-looking young man
-who had looked back on the stairs.
-
-"We'll take him by surprise," said Mitchell, with a sudden qualm lest
-they should break in upon Mendel and Hetty Finch together. "If we told
-him he would hide all his work away and put on a white shirt and have
-flowers on the table, for he is terrified of ladies. He says they
-don't look like women to him."
-
-"I'm sure," said Clowes, "I don't want to look like a woman to any
-man."
-
-This was the most encouraging remark Mitchell had had from either
-during the day, and he decided that he was in love with Clowes.
-
-A brisk walk through narrow dingy streets brought them, with some help
-from the police, to the door of Issy's house. Mitchell knocked and a
-grimy little Jewess opened to them.
-
-"Mr. Mendel Kühler?" said Mitchell.
-
-"Upstairs to the top," replied the Jewess as she hurried away. They
-climbed the shabbily carpeted stairs and knocked at the door of the
-studio. Mendel opened it. He stood with a brush in his hand, blinking.
-He stared at Mitchell and then beyond him at Morrison.
-
-"Come in," he said. "I'd just finished. I've been working rather hard
-and haven't spoken to a soul for three days. You must forgive me if I
-don't seem very intelligent."
-
-They went in and he made tea for them, hardly ever taking his eyes off
-Morrison. He said pointedly to Mitchell:--
-
-"So you came down to the East End to find me."
-
-Clowes explained:--
-
-"I'm a stranger to London and had never seen the docks, you know."
-
-"I have never seen the docks either, though I live so near," said he.
-Then, catching Morrison glancing in the direction of his easel, he
-turned his work for her to see, almost ignoring the others. Afterwards
-he produced drawings for her to see, and he seemed entirely bent on
-pleasing her, which so embarrassed her that, when she could escape his
-gaze, she looked imploringly over at the others. They could not help
-her, and he went on until he had shown her every piece of work in the
-studio. Whenever she spoke, shyly and diffidently, as though she knew
-her opinion was of no value, he gave a queer little grunt of triumph,
-and his eyes glittered as he looked over at Mitchell, as though to say
-that he too knew how to treat the "top-knots" and to please them.
-
-
-
-X
-
-MORRISON
-
-A FEW days later he wired to Morrison at the Detmold to ask her to sit
-for him. She made no reply and did not come.
-
-Very well then: he would not budge. He would only approach Mitchell
-again through the "top-knots," who lived in a portion of Mitchell's
-world that had hitherto been closed to him. It promised new adventure,
-and he was so eager for it that he would not enter upon any other
-outside his work.
-
-The days went by and he began a portrait of his mother, with which he
-intended to make his first appearance at an important exhibition.
-Golda sat dressed in her best on the throne, and tried vainly to
-soothe him as he cursed and stamped and wept over his difficulties:
-
-"I can't do it! I can't do it!" he wailed. "I'm a fool, a blockhead, a
-pig! If I could only do one little thing more to it I could make it a
-great picture."
-
-"You are always the same," said Golda. "In Austria, when you were a
-little boy, the soldiers made you a uniform like their own. They used
-to call you the Captain, and they saluted you in the street, only they
-forgot to give you any boots, and when the soldiers marched by, you
-stamped and roared because you were not allowed to go with them, and I
-could not make you understand that you were not a real captain."
-
-"But I am a real artist," he growled. "You'll never make me understand
-that I am not a real artist."
-
-"Nothing good was ever done in a hurry," said she. "If you run so fast
-you will break your head against a wall."
-
-"I shall paint many portraits of you, for I shall never be satisfied.
-You may as well sit here with your hands folded as over there in the
-kitchen. If I'm not careful your hands will grow all over the picture.
-I have put such a lot of work into them."
-
-Then for a long time he was silent, and both were lost in a dreamlike
-happiness--to be together, alone with his work, bound together in his
-delight as they used to be when he was a child before the invasion of
-their peace.
-
-He went to the door in answer to a knock and found Morrison standing
-there with some flowers in her hands.
-
-"Oh!" he said awkwardly, holding the door. "Won't you come in? Please.
-I am painting my mother."
-
-Golda's eyes lighted with pleasure on the fresh-looking girl and her
-flowers.
-
-"She is like a flower herself," she thought, and indeed the girl
-looked as though she were fresh from the country.
-
-She held out her hand to Golda, who stood up on the throne and bobbed
-to her, then folded her hands on her stomach and waited patiently for
-the lady to break the awkwardness that had sprung up between the three
-of them. Mendel could do nothing. He looked from one to the other and
-felt, with a little tremor of horror, the gulf that separated the two.
-
-At last Morrison said to Golda:--
-
-"I am very glad to see you, though I feel I know you quite well from
-the drawings he has done of you."
-
-Golda broke into inarticulate expressions of the delight it was to her
-to see any of her son's friends, and saying that she would have a
-special tea sent up, she edged towards the door and slipped out.
-
-"Why didn't you come before?" asked Mendel, when he had heard the door
-bang. "I sent you a telegram. I wanted to paint your portrait, and now
-I have begun something else."
-
-"I didn't want to come," replied she, "but something Mitchell said
-made me want to come."
-
-"What did he say?"
-
-"He told me about Kessler, and I thought it was a shame. I thought it
-was a horrible shame that you should be treated like that, as if
-anything mattered but your work."
-
-Her voice rather irritated him. Her accent was rather mincing and
-precise, and between her sentences she gave a little gasp which he
-took for an affectation.
-
-"Why did Mitchell tell you that?"
-
-"He tells me a great deal about you, and he was really upset by your
-letter."
-
-"Was he? Was he?"
-
-Mendel had no thought but for Mitchell. He longed to go to him, to
-embrace him, to tell him that all was different now. He blurted it all
-out to the girl.
-
-"We were so happy, the four of us together. Every evening we met and
-we were like kings. Everything that we wanted to do we did. We had
-money and success and all such foolish things, and we worked hard, all
-of us. There were not in London four young men like us, and I was free
-of the terrible people who wanted to turn me into an ordinary
-successful painter--a portrait painter. I tell you, I have never had a
-commission in my life that was not a failure. I only wanted to be
-young and to work, for I had never been young before. And then
-suddenly, out of nothing, my friends turned on me and told me I was a
-Jew and uneducated, and ought to treat them with more respect. Why?
-The Jews are good people, and what do I want with education? Can books
-teach me how to paint? I tell you the Jews are good people."
-
-Tea was brought up on a lacquer tray--bread, jam, and cake. They were
-both hungry and fell to with a will, hardly speaking at all.
-
-When they had finished they began to talk of pictures and of the lives
-of the painters, and he told her stories of Michael Angelo and
-Rembrandt: how Michael Angelo never took his boots off, and was never
-in love in his life; and how Rembrandt was practically starved to
-death. Then he showed her reproductions of Cranach and Dürer, whom at
-the time he adored, and they bent over them, the chestnut head and the
-curly black together. Gradually she led him on to tell of his own
-life, and he began at the beginning in Austria, holding her
-spell-bound with his vivid, picturesque talk.
-
-"It makes me feel very quiet and dull," she said. "I don't think I
-ever regarded places outside England as real, somehow. There was just
-home and London, and London seemed to be the end of everything. All
-the trains stop there, you know."
-
-"Where is your home?" he asked.
-
-"In Sussex. It is very beautiful country."
-
-"How did you come to the Detmold?"
-
-"A girl at home had been there, and at school they said I was no good
-at anything but drawing. Indeed, I was sent away from two schools, and
-at home I was such a trouble that mother decided I must do something
-to earn my living. So I was sent up to the Detmold. I had my hair down
-my back then."
-
-"I remember," said he. "In a plait."
-
-She smiled with pleasure at that.
-
-"Yes," she said. "In a plait. I lived in a hostel, where they bullied
-me because I was so untidy and was always being late for meals. At
-home, you know, there were only my brothers, and my mother could never
-keep them in order, and I was always treated as if I was a boy too.
-. . . And I think that's all."
-
-She ended so lamely that his irritation got the better of him, and he
-jumped to his feet. It seemed to him that his view of the "top-knots"
-was confirmed. They were simply negligible. He was baffled, and stood
-staring down at her. Was she no more interested in herself than that?
-Comparing the smooth monotony of her life with his, he waxed
-impatient, and told himself he was a fool to have invited her to come
-to him.
-
-He began to study her face with a view to painting it, and he was
-absorbed and fascinated by it. The lines of her cheek and of her neck
-made him itch to draw them.
-
-"Yes," he said, "I must paint you. I can do something good. I'm sure I
-can."
-
-"I wanted to ask if you would mind my painting you," she said.
-
-He was aghast at her impudence. She, a slip of a girl, a "top-knot,"
-paint the great Kühler!
-
-She saw how horrified he was and added hastily:--
-
-"Of course, I won't insist if you don't like sitting."
-
-She rose to go and he begged her to stay.
-
-"Don't go yet," he said with sudden emotion. "I don't want you to go.
-Somehow I feel as if you had been sitting there always and I don't
-want you to go. If you don't want to talk you needn't, but you must
-stay. I could see that my mother liked you at once, and she always
-knows good people. You made her happy about me. It was like sunshine
-to her when you came in, and I shall be wretched if you go, for I
-don't know what to think about you."
-
-"I know what I think about you."
-
-"What do you think?"
-
-"You have made me feel that London isn't just a place where the trains
-stop."
-
-And she began to tell him about her home and the river where she
-bathed with her brothers, the woods where in spring there were
-primroses and daffodils, and in summer bluebells.
-
-"Opposite the house," she said, "is a hill which is a common, all
-covered with gorse in the summer, and the hot, nutty smell of it comes
-up and seems to burn your face. There are snakes on the common--vipers
-and adders and grass-snakes. From the top you can see the downs, and
-beyond them, you know, is the sea. On moonlight nights it is glorious,
-and I nearly go mad sometimes with running in and out of the shadows.
-I believe I did go mad once, for I sat up on the top of the hill and
-sang and shouted and cried, all by myself, and I felt that my heart
-would break if I did not kiss something. The gorse was out, and I
-buried my face in the dewy yellow flowers. . . . I often think the
-woods are like churches on Easter Day. . . . And then when I get home
-and it is just a house and I am just a girl living in it, you know, it
-all seems wrong somehow."
-
-Mendel sat on the floor trying to puzzle out this mysterious rapture
-of hers. He had never heard of gorse or of downs, but he could
-recognize her emotion. He had had something like it the first time he
-saw a may-tree in blossom, and he had hardly been able to bear it. He
-had rather resented it, for it had interfered with his work for a day
-or two, and he could not help feeling that there was something
-indecent about an emotion with which he could do nothing.
-
-"Yes," he said heavily; "it must be very pretty."
-
-She shivered at the grotesqueness of his words as she sank back into
-her normal mood of happy diffidence. His face wore an expression of
-black anger as he darted quick, furious glances at her. Here was
-something that he did not understand, something that defied his
-mastery, and when she smiled he thought it was at himself, and this
-strange power that had been behind her appeared to him as a mocking,
-teasing spirit. Let it mock, let it tease! He was strong enough to
-defy it. Sweep through a green girl it might, but he was not to be
-caught by it. He knew better. In him it had tough simplicity to deal
-with and a will that had broken the confinement of Fate, the limits of
-a meagre religion, to bend before no authority but that of art. . . .
-He was rather contemptuous, too. Nothing as yet had resisted his
-genius, and he felt it within him stronger than ever, a river with a
-thousand sources. Block one channel and it would find another. Stop
-that and it would find yet another.
-
-Yet here he knew was no direct, no open menace, only the intolerable
-suggestion that there were other streams, other sources, and the
-suggestion had come from this foolish, empty girl.
-
-"I will not have it," he said half aloud.
-
-"What did you say?" she asked.
-
-"Nothing. I was thinking--I was thinking that there is nothing so good
-as London. They tried to send me to Italy, but I know that there is
-nothing so good as London for life, and where life is, there is art. I
-don't want your pretty places and your pretty feelings. I want to go
-through the streets and to see the girls in the evening leaving the
-shops, and the men in their bowler-hats looking at the girls and
-wanting them, and the fat men in their motor-cars, and the bookstalls
-on the railway stations, and the public-houses with their rows of
-bottles and the white handles of the beer machines, and the plump
-barmaids, and the long, straight streets going on for ever with the
-flat houses on either side of them, and the markets and the
-timber-yards and the tall chimneys. It all fills your mind and makes
-patterns and whirling thoughts that take a spiral shape, going up and
-up to mysterious heights. I want all that, and nothing shall take it
-from me, do you hear?"
-
-He turned on her ferociously, as though she were trying to rob him.
-
-"And inside it all is something solid," he went on. "Do you know that
-my father never loved but one woman in all his life? That's what Jews
-are. They know what's solid. If they have to stay in the filth to keep
-it, then they'll stay in the filth. And because I'm a Jew I'm not to
-be caught with your pretty things and your little fancies. I shall
-paint the things I understand, and I'll leave the clouds and the
-rainbows and the roofs and chimneys to fools like Mitchell."
-
-Morrison sat very meekly while he talked. She hung her head and
-twitched her fingers nervously. She was elated by his passion, but she
-too had her dreams and was not going to surrender them. His strength
-had given her confidence in them and in herself, and she was filled
-with a teasing spirit.
-
-"Jews aren't the only people who are solid," she said. "You see men in
-buses and trains whom an earthquake wouldn't move, and I'm sure, if an
-earthquake happened, my mother would be left where she was, reading
-the Bible."
-
-Mendel replied:--
-
-"In a thousand years my mother will be just as she is now."
-
-Morrison stared at him and began to wonder if he was not a little mad.
-He added simply:--
-
-"I feel like that."
-
-And she was relieved and thought he was the only sane person she had
-ever met in her life.
-
-"Will you let me come again?" she asked.
-
-"I am going to paint you," he said; "I am going to paint you as you
-are. You won't like it."
-
-"I shall if you make me solid," she answered. "And you need flowers in
-this dark room. You must let me send you some."
-
-
-
-BOOK TWO
-
-BOHEMIA
-
-
-
-I
-
-THE POT-AU-FEU
-
-AT the exhibition, the portrait of Golda created no small stir. The
-critics, who, since Whistler, had been chary of denouncing new-comers,
-had swung to the opposite extravagance and were excessively eager to
-discover new masters. The youth of this Kühler made him fair game, for
-it supplied them with a proviso. They could hail his talent as that of
-a prodigy without committing themselves.
-
-"The portrait of the artist's mother," wrote one of them, "has all the
-essentials of great art, as the early compositions of Mozart had all
-the essentials of great music. Here is real achievement, a work of art
-instinct with racial feeling, and therefore of true originality. No
-trace here of Parisian experiments. This picture is in the direct line
-from Holbein and Dürer."
-
-Mendel took this to mean that he was as good as Holbein and Dürer, and
-accepted it not as praise but as a statement of fact. The picture was
-bought by a well-known connoisseur, who wrote that he was proud to
-have such a picture in his collection.
-
-"Now," thought the proud painter, "my career has really begun."
-
-For once in a way he regarded his success with his father's eyes and
-much as Moscowitsch would have regarded the successful coup in
-business for which he was always vainly striving. The hectic gambling
-spirit introduced by Hetty Finch had disappeared, and though he still
-devoted his leisure to Mitchell, their adventurousness was tempered by
-the tantalization of the "top-knots," Morrison and Clowes. To
-counteract the disturbing effect of their coolness, Mendel became very
-Jewish and hugged his success, gloating over it rather like a cat over
-a stolen piece of fish.
-
-Morrison's indifference to the buzz about his name was especially
-maddening, because he wished to prove to her that in painting dwelt a
-joy beside which her trumpery little ecstasy in woods and flowers was
-nothing, nothing at all. He wished to convince himself that he had not
-been really disturbed by her first visit to his studio. Only the shock
-of novelty he had felt, and by his success, by his triumphant work, he
-had obliterated it. . . . She was nothing, he told himself, only a raw
-girl, smooth and polished by her easy life, good for nothing except to
-be made love to by such as Mitchell.
-
-Love? They called it love when a young man clasped a maiden's hand, or
-when they kissed and rode together on the tops of buses! These
-Christians were rather disgusting with all their talk of love. He had
-heard more talk of it in three years of contact with them than in all
-his life before, and Weldon and others had talked of love in
-connection with Hetty Finch.
-
-Disgusting!
-
-And now here was Mitchell babbling of his love for Morrison. When
-Mendel wanted to talk of pictures and art and the old painters who had
-worked simply without reference to success, Mitchell kept dragging him
-back to Morrison, her simplicity, her extraordinary childlike
-innocence, her love of beauty, her generous trustfulness, her queer
-sudden impulses.
-
-"What has such a girl as that to do with art or with artists?" said
-Mendel furiously. "An artist wants women as he wants his food, when he
-has time for them."
-
-"Gawd!" says Mitchell, trotting along by his side; "you don't know
-what you are talking about. I tell you I never believed all that trash
-about a young man being redeemed by a virtuous girl until now."
-
-"It's nonsense!" shouted Mendel; "nonsense, I tell you. It must be
-nonsense, because it didn't matter to you whether it was Clowes or
-Morrison, and for all I know, it may be both."
-
-"Clowes is a jolly nice girl too," replied Mitchell, "but she's more
-ordinary. I never met anyone like Morrison before. I can't make her
-out, but she does make me feel that I am an absolute rotter. It is her
-fresh enjoyment of simple things that disturbs me and makes me see
-what a mess I've made of my life. Once an artist loses that, he is
-finished."
-
-They had been reading Tolstoi on "What is Art?" and their young
-conceit had been put out by it. Must their extraordinary powers
-produce work accessible to the smallest intelligence? Mendel had been
-greatly influenced by that theory in his portrait of his mother, while
-Mitchell's energy had been paralysed so that he could produce nothing
-at all.
-
-"Yes," Mitchell went on, "I know now what Tolstoi means. He means that
-love can speak direct to love, and, by Jove! it is absolutely true.
-Brains are only a nuisance to an artist. Look at Calthrop! He hasn't
-got the brains of a louse. Of course, that is why painters are such an
-ignorant lot. I must tell my father that when he goes for me for not
-reading."
-
-"But Tolstoi liked bad artists!" grumbled Mendel. "And my mother does
-not like some of my best things. As for my father, he wants a painted
-bread to look as if he could eat it: never is he satisfied just to
-look at it. His love and my love are not the same and cannot speak to
-each other."
-
-"You should see more of Morrison, and then you would understand,"
-rejoined Mitchell.
-
-Mendel felt that Mitchell was slipping away from him, and all this
-Christian talk of love was to him a corrosion upon his imagination and
-his nervous energy, blurring and distorting everything that he valued.
-There were many things that he hated, and yet because he hated them
-their interest for him was consuming. Issy's wife, for instance, and
-her squalling children; his father's bitter tongue; and Mitchell's odd
-self-importance.
-
-He repeated:--
-
-"Tolstoi liked bad artists."
-
-"You can't settle a big man like Tolstoi just by repeating phrases
-about him."
-
-"I can settle him by painting good pictures," retorted Mendel. "I
-don't paint pictures to please people."
-
-"Then why do you paint?"
-
-"I don't know. To be an artist. Because there is a thing called art
-which matters to me more than all the love and all the women and all
-the little girls in the world."
-
-"Ah!" sighed Mitchell. "You'll soon think differently. I shall never
-do another stroke of work without thinking of Greta standing on Kew
-Bridge and looking up the river at the boats with their white sails."
-
-"Will you be quiet?" cried Mendel; "will you be quiet with your little
-girls and white sails?"
-
-Mitchell seemed to be slipping away from him, and he dreaded the
-thought of being left alone with his success, which was blowing a bulb
-of glass round him, so that he felt imprisoned in it, and wherever he
-looked could see nothing but reflections of himself, Mendel Kühler,
-painting his mother, and his father, and old Jews and loaves and
-fishes for ever and ever. While he clung to Mitchell he knew that he
-could not be so encased, but Mitchell demanded that he should go out
-with him into a world all glowing with love, with rivers of milk and
-honey and meadows pied with buttercups and daisies; to stand on airy
-bridges and gaze at innocent little girls and white sails. The
-contemplation of this world revolted him, and he stiffened himself
-against it. Better the smells and the dirt than such fantastical
-stuff. His gorge rose against it.
-
-To wean Mitchell from his amorous fancies he pretended that he was
-tired and wanted a holiday, and together they went down to a village
-on the South Coast near Brighton. There it was almost as it had been
-in the beginning. For a fortnight they were never out of each other's
-company. They slept in one bed and shared each other's clothes,
-paints, and money. They sketched the same subjects, took tremendous
-walks, and in the evening they talked as though there were no London,
-no Paris Café, no exhibitions, no dealers, no critics, nothing but
-themselves and their friendship and their artistic projects. Mendel
-was supremely happy. Never had he known such intimacy since the days
-of Artie Beech.
-
-But Mitchell was often depressed and moody. He had letters every day,
-and every evening he wrote at great length.
-
-One morning he had a letter which he crumpled up dramatically and
-thrust into his trousers pocket.
-
-"Gawd!" he said. "That's put the lid on it. I'm done for."
-
-"What is it?" asked Mendel, aghast.
-
-"I'll tell you when we get back to London. We must go back this
-afternoon. Eight o'clock in the Pot-au-Feu."
-
-The Pot-au-Feu was a little restaurant in Soho which Mitchell, Weldon,
-and some others had endeavoured to render immortal by decorating it
-with panels. In a room above it lived Hetty Finch.
-
-Mendel's thoughts flew to her, a figure of ill omen. He had not seen
-her for some time, and had imagined that she had so successfully got
-all she wanted and was so thoroughly established in her composite
-profession that she had no time for the younger artists. He had heard
-tales about her, and fancied she would succeed in hooking one of the
-older men for a husband.
-
-He said:--
-
-"Why do you want to go back to that beastly place? Here it is good. I
-could stay here for six months."
-
-"Gawd!" said Mitchell dismally. "'Tis life. There's absolutely no
-getting away from it. Everything is swallowed up and nothing is left."
-
-He became very solemn and added:--
-
-"If anything happens to me, Kühler, I want you to go to Greta Morrison
-and tell her that through everything I never forgot my happiness with
-her."
-
-"Happen!" cried Mendel. "What can happen?"
-
-"I'll tell you to-night," replied Mitchell gloomily, "at the
-Pot-au-Feu."
-
-And not another word did he say, neither during their morning's work,
-nor during lunch, nor in the train, nor in the taxi-cab that took them
-to Soho.
-
-"You wait outside," said Mitchell mysteriously.
-
-Mendel waited outside and paced up and down, oppressed with the idea
-that his friendship with Mitchell was at an end. He was left helpless
-and exposed, for all that had been built on the friendship had come
-toppling down, and with it came the extra personality he had developed
-for dealing with the Detmold and the polite world--the Kühler who had
-assiduously learned manners and phrases, vices and enthusiasms, as a
-part to be played at the Paris Café and in the drawing-rooms of the
-languid ladies who were interested in art and artists. Hetty Finch
-went with it, for she had been an adjunct of that personality. . . .
-He was glad to be rid of her, and shook her off, plucked her out of
-his mind like a burr that was stuck upon it.
-
-After a quarter of an hour or so Mitchell came out more mysterious
-than ever, took his arm and led him into the restaurant, which was
-hardly bigger than an ordinary room. Full of vigour and health as he
-was, Mendel felt an enormous size in it, as though he must knock over
-the tables and thrust his elbows through the painted panels. Madame
-Feydeau, the proprietress, greeted him with a wide smile and said she
-had missed him lately. At his table was the goggle-eyed man who dined
-there every night with his newspaper open in front of him. Weldon and
-a girl with short hair were sitting in uncomfortable silence, both
-with the air of doing a secret thing. Near the counter, with its
-dishes of fruit and coffee-glasses, was Hetty Finch, rather drawn and
-pinched in the face and very dark under the eyes.
-
-Mendel was filled with impatience. She had no business to be sitting
-there, for he had disposed of her, and she made everything seem
-fantastic and unreal. He shook hands with her and sat at the table.
-Mitchell took the chair next to Hetty and talked to her in an
-undertone, while her eyes turned on Mendel with a frightened,
-inquiring expression.
-
-"All right," he said, as though he had understood her question. "I
-know when to hold my tongue."
-
-Mitchell went on whispering, and every now and then he bowed his head
-and clenched his fists, as though he were racked with inexpressible
-emotions. He too had become fantastic. Mendel knew that he was
-play-acting, and with a sickening dread he went back over all he knew
-of Mitchell, recognizing this same play-acting in much that he had
-accepted as genuine. Yet he would not believe it, for Mitchell was his
-friend, and therefore never to be criticized.
-
-Would neither of them speak? Food was laid before him, and he ate it
-without tasting it. Mitchell led Hetty away to another table and
-talked to her impressively there. Then he brought her back and went on
-with his whispering.
-
-Coffee was laid before Mendel, and he drank it without tasting it.
-
-At last Hetty said, in a loud voice that rang through the room:--
-
-"No. I will take nothing from you. I ask nothing from you, not a
-penny."
-
-"By God," said Mitchell, hanging his head, "I deserve it."
-
-Hetty turned to Mendel and asked him sweetly to buy her a bottle of
-wine, as she needed something to pick her up.
-
-"You are a devil," she said, "sitting there as though nothing had
-happened. But I always said you were a devil and no good. I always
-said so, but I have my friends and can be independent."
-
-"Don't be a fool," said he roughly. "You'll have a short run, and
-you'd better find something to fall back on while you can."
-
-"Get your hair cut!" she replied. "I know which side my bread's
-buttered, and the old men aren't so sharp as the young ones. You've
-got a fool's tongue in your clever head, Kühler, and a fool's tongue
-makes enemies."
-
-"Shut up!" he said. "And you leave Mitchell alone. He hasn't done you
-any harm."
-
-"Ho! Hasn't he?" she cried.
-
-Mitchell groaned, and, giving a withering glance at the two of them,
-Hetty gathered up her vanity-bag and gloves and walked out of the
-restaurant.
-
-"She's a slut!" said Mendel. "She always was a slut and always will
-be."
-
-"Gawd!" cried Mitchell. "It was you let her loose on the town, and I
-shall never hold up my head again. I shall never be able to face my
-people. I shall just let myself be swallowed up in London. . . . But I
-shan't trouble any of my friends. When I'm a pimp I shan't mind if you
-look the other way. After all, it isn't so far to fall. There's not
-much difference between the ordinary artist and a pimp."
-
-"What has she done to you?" cried Mendel furiously. "Why do you let
-yourself be put down by a drab like that?"
-
-"She's not a drab," said Mitchell, in a curious thin of protest. "She
-is the mother of my child."
-
-Mendel brought his fist down on the table with a thump, so that the
-cups jumped from their saucers.
-
-"She is what?"
-
-"The mother of my child," said Mitchell, burying his face in his
-hands. "I have offered to marry her, to make an honest woman of her,
-but she refuses, and she will take nothing from me. Gawd! How can I
-ever face Morrison again? How can I face my mother?"
-
-"Rubbish! Rubbish! Rubbish!" cried Mendel. "Why you? Why not
-Weldon--why not Calthrop?" He saw the goggle-eyed man listening
-eagerly and lowered his voice. "A drab like that deserves all she
-gets. She takes her risks, and I'll say this for her, that she does
-not complain. She's clever enough to know how to deal with it. . . ."
-
-He wanted to say a great deal more, but realized that Mitchell, intent
-upon his own emotions, was not listening to him. Also, through the
-fantastic atmosphere, he began to be aware of a reality powerful and
-horrible. Against it Hetty seemed to be of no account, and Mitchell's
-excitement was palpably false.
-
-This reality had been called into being by no one's will, and
-therefore it was horrible.
-
-"I shall have to disappear," said Mitchell.
-
-Mendel did not hear him speak. His own will was aroused by the
-devastating reality. Because it was physical he exulted in it, and his
-will struggled to master it. He could not endure his friend's
-helplessness and he wanted above all to help him, to make him see that
-this thing was at least powerful; evil and ugly, perhaps, but much too
-vital to be subdued or conquered by fantasy and theatrical emotions.
-He found Mitchell bewildering. Sentimentality always baffled him, for
-it seemed to him so superficial as to be not worth bothering about and
-so complicated as to defy unravelling. He knew that Mitchell was
-horrified and afraid, and that it was natural enough, but fear was not
-a thing to be encouraged.
-
-He said:--
-
-"Hetty knows perfectly well that she can manage it better without
-you."
-
-"I know," replied Mitchell. "That's what makes me feel such an awful
-worm."
-
-Mendel lost all patience. If a man was going to take pleasure in
-feeling a worm, there was nothing to be done with him. He called the
-waiter, paid the bill, and stumped out of the Pot-au-Feu leaving
-Mitchell staring blankly at the goggle-eyed man.
-
-* * * * *
-
-A few days later he met Edgar Froitzheim leaving the National Gallery
-as he entered it.
-
-"Oh! Kühler," said Froitzheim. "The very man I wanted to see. I am
-very proud about the picture--very proud. But I wanted to see you
-about young Mitchell. He is a friend of yours, isn't he? He is
-behaving very badly to a young model. Such a pretty girl. Hetty Finch.
-You know her? She is in trouble through him, and he refuses to do
-anything for her. I'm told he has Nietzschean ideas. I sent for the
-girl. It is a very sad story and I have raised a subscription for her:
-fifty pounds to see her through. . . . Do try and bring Mitchell to
-reason."
-
-"I'll do what I can," replied Mendel, and he walked on to pay his
-daily homage to Van Eyck and Chardin, who were his heroes at the time.
-
-That evening at the Paris Café he heard of another subscription having
-been raised for Hetty, and Calthrop growled and grumbled and said he
-had given her twenty pounds.
-
-Mendel reckoned it up and he found that she was being paid for her
-delinquency more than he could hope to receive for many months of
-painful work.
-
-As he finished his calculation he was amazed to see Mitchell come in
-with Morrison, whom he had declared he could never face again, and
-when Mendel rose to go over and join them she gave him only a curt
-little nod which told him plainly that he was not wanted.
-
-
-
-II
-
-LOGAN
-
-ONCE again Mendel decided that Mitchell, and with him London life, had
-fallen away from him. The Paris Café could never be the same again,
-and he plunged into despair, and thought seriously of accepting a
-Jewish girl with four hundred pounds whom a match-maker offered to
-him. Four hundred pounds was not to be sneezed at. It would keep him
-going for some years, so that he need not think of selling his
-pictures, which he always hated to part with. And the girl was just
-bearable.
-
-The figure delighted his father and mother, for it showed them the
-high opinion of their wonder-son held among their own people.
-
-It was terrible to him to find that he had very little pleasure in his
-work, which very often gave him excruciating pain. He took it to mean
-that he was coming to an end of his talent. Night after night he sat
-on his bed feeling that he must make an end of his life, but always
-there was some piece of painting that he must do in the morning,
-painful though it might be.
-
-He had letters from Mitchell, but did not answer them, and at last
-"the schoolboy," as Golda called him, turned up, gay and smiling and
-rather elated.
-
-"I've discovered a great man," he said with the awkward, jerky gesture
-he used in his more eloquent moments. "Absolutely a great man. Reminds
-me of Napoleon. Wonderful head, wonderful! His name is Logan--James
-Logan--and he wants to know you. He is a painter, and absolutely
-independent. He comes from the North--Liverpool or one of those
-places. I haven't seen his work, but I met him at the Pot-au-Feu the
-other night. He asked me if I was not a friend of yours, as he thought
-he had seen me with you. He said: 'Kühler is the only painter of
-genius we have.' I spent the evening with him. I never heard such
-talk. It made the old Detmold seem like a girls' school. . . . Hallo!
-Still-life again? What a rum old stick you are for never going outside
-your four walls!"
-
-"What I paint is inside me, not outside," said Mendel, trembling with
-rage at Mitchell looking at his work before he had offered to show it.
-
-"Will you come and see Logan?"
-
-"No. I am sick of painters. I want to know decent people."
-
-"But I promised I would bring you, and he admires your work. He is
-poor too, as poor as you are."
-
-"Can't he sell?"
-
-"It isn't that so much as that he doesn't try. He says he had almost
-despaired of English painting until he saw your work."
-
-"How old is he?"
-
-"A good deal older than us. Twenty-six, I should think."
-
-"Why don't you just stick to me?" asked Mendel. "What more do you
-want? Why must you always go off on a new track? First it's Hetty
-Finch, then it's Morrison, and now it's this new man. We were happy
-enough by ourselves. Why do you want anything more? I don't."
-
-"You're used to living on dry bread. I'm not. I want butter with mine,
-and jam, if I can get it."
-
-"Then get it and don't bother me to go chasing after it. I want to
-work."
-
-"Oh, rot! All that stuff about artists starving in garrets is out of
-date. It only happened because they couldn't find patrons, but
-nowadays there are dealers and buyers. . . . Just look at the money
-you are making."
-
-"Then why is this Logan poor?"
-
-"He isn't known yet. He doesn't know the artists because he never went
-to a London school. He was doing quite well in the North, but threw it
-all up because he couldn't stand living in such a filthy town. He had
-a teaching job somewhere in Hammersmith, but he threw that up because
-he wanted his time to himself."
-
-"That sounds as if painting means something to him."
-
-"Do come and see him."
-
-"Oh! very well."
-
-"I'll send him a wire and we'll go to-night."
-
-They dined at the Pot-au-Feu, and later made the expedition to
-Hammersmith, where they came to a block of studios surrounded by a
-scrubby garden. These studios were large and well-kept and did not
-tally with the description of Logan's poverty. Still less did the
-inside give any sign of it. There was a huge red-brick fireplace,
-surmounted by old brass and blue china, with great arm-chairs on
-either side of it: there were Persian rugs on the floor; two little
-windows were filled in with good stained glass, which Mendel knew to
-be costly; there were two or three large easels; and the walls were
-hung with tapestry. The whole effect was deliberately and preciously
-rich.
-
-Logan, who had admitted them to this vast apartment, rushed back at
-once to a very large easel on which he had a very small canvas, and
-fell to work on it with a furious energy, darting to and fro and
-stamping his right foot rather like the big trumpet man in a German
-band. He was a medium-sized, plumpish man, with a big, strongly
-featured face, big chin, and compressed lips, and long black hair
-brushed back from a round, well-shaped brow. He frowned and scowled at
-his work. A woman came out of a door and crossed the studio behind
-him. He hurled his palette into the air so that it sailed up and fell
-with a crash among the brass pots, and barked:--
-
-"How can I work with these constant interruptions? Damn it all, an
-artist must have peace!"
-
-He flung his arms behind his back and paced moodily to and fro, with
-his head down and his lips pursed up _ŕ la_ Beethoven. He extended the
-sphere of his pacing gradually so that he came nearer and nearer to
-Mendel, yet without noticing him. Mendel was tremendously excited and
-impressed with the man's air of mystery and force. It was like
-Calthrop, but without his awkwardness. Mitchell in comparison looked
-puny and absurdly young.
-
-Nearer and nearer came Logan, and at last he stopped and fixed Mendel
-with a baleful stare, and swung his head up and down three times.
-
-"So you are Kühler?" he said.
-
-Mendel opened his lips, but to his astonishment no sound came out of
-them. So desperately anxious was he not to cut a poor figure before
-this remarkable man, and not to seem, like Mitchell, pathetically
-young.
-
-"Good!" said Logan. "Shake hands." And he crushed Mendel's thin
-fingers together. "What I like about you," he went on, "is your sense
-of form. Design is all very well in its way, but quite worthless
-without form."
-
-Mendel, whose work was still three parts instinctive, could not attach
-any precise meaning to these expressions, but he was well up in the
-jargon of his craft and could make a good show.
-
-"Art," said Logan, "is an exacting mistress. Shall we go and have a
-drink?"
-
-He put on his hat and led the two marvelling youngsters to a
-public-house, where he became a different man altogether. The
-compression of his lips relaxed, his eyes twinkled and his face shone
-with good humour, and he made them and the barmaid and the two or
-three men who were shyly taking their beer roar with laughter. He had
-an extraordinary gift of mimicry, and told story after story, many of
-them against himself, most of them without point, but in the telling
-exceedingly comic. Mendel sat up and bristled. It was to him half
-shocking, half enviable, that a man, and an artist, should be able to
-laugh at himself.
-
-"If you'll give me free drinks for a month," said Logan to the elderly
-barmaid, "I'll paint your portrait. Are you married? . . . No? I'll
-paint you such a beautiful portrait that it will get you a husband
-inside a week."
-
-"I'm not on the marrying lay," said the barmaid.
-
-"Terrible thing, this revolt against marriage," replied Logan, "and
-bad luck on us artists. I'm always getting babies left on my
-doorstep."
-
-"What do you do with them?" said Mendel, believing him, and astonished
-when the others roared with laughter.
-
-"I keep the pretty ones and sell them to childless mothers. Ah! Many's
-the time I've gone through the snow, like the heroine in a melodrama
-taking her child to the workhouse."
-
-"Oh! go on," tittered the barmaid.
-
-"Certainly," said Logan. "Come along."
-
-As they left the public-house he took Mendel's arm and said:--
-
-"You have to talk to people in their own language, you know."
-
-"Yes," replied Mendel, though this was precisely what he knew least of
-all.
-
-"Why don't you go on the stage?" asked Mitchell.
-
-"I have thought of it. I think I might do well on the halls. There's a
-life for you! On at eight in Bethnal Green:--
-
- My old woman's got a wart on her nose;
- How she got it I will now disclose.
-
-Off again in a motor-car to the Oxford:--
-
- My old woman's got a wart on her nose.
-
-Off again to Hammersmith or Kensal Rise:--
-
- My old woman's got a wart on her nose.
-
-My God! What a life! But I love the halls. They are all that is left
-of old England!"
-
-His parody of the low comedian was so apt and his voice had such a
-delicious roll that Mendel could not help laughing, and he began to
-feel very happy with the man.
-
-Logan swung back to his serious mood and gripped Mendel's arm tighter
-as he said:--
-
-"You have a big future before you. Only stick to it. Don't listen to
-the fools who want you to paint the same picture over and over again
-with a different subject. There's more stuff in that one little
-picture of yours than in all the rest of the exhibition put together."
-
-"Do you think so?" said Mendel, fluttering with excitement.
-
-"I was amazed when I heard you had been to the Detmold with its
-Calthrop and all the little Calthrops."
-
-Both the youngsters were silent on that. They had often abused the
-Detmold, but with a profound respect in their hearts, and both had
-done their full share of imitating Calthrop.
-
-When they reached the studio Mitchell suggested going, but Logan would
-not hear of it. He dragged them in and produced whisky and soda, and
-kept them talking far into the small hours. His bouncing energy kept
-Mendel awake and alert, but Mitchell was soon exhausted and fell
-asleep.
-
-"Shall we put him out of the way?" said Logan suddenly. "No one would
-know, and the river is handy. He is too clean, too soft, and there are
-too many like him. They are in the way of real men like you and me."
-
-Mendel was appalled to find that he could not defend his friend. All
-the discontents of his waning friendship came rushing up in him and he
-began to babble violently.
-
-"He is a liar and a coward, and he will never be an artist because he
-is too weak. He is not true. He is not good. I have trusted him with
-my secrets and he tells. He is always ashamed of me because of my
-clothes and because I have not been to Public School, and he is
-jealous because when we meet women they like me. He is soft and
-deceitful with them, but I am honest, and they like that. I wanted him
-to be my friend, but it is impossible."
-
-"He is an Englishman," said Logan sepulchrally, with the air of a
-Grand Inquisitor.
-
-"Aren't you an Englishman?"
-
-"No, Scotch and French. These Englishmen have no passions, unless they
-are mad like Blake. . . . No, no. We'll drop Mitchell overboard. We'll
-make him walk the plank, and fishes in the caverns of the sea shall
-eat his eyes."
-
-Logan was beginning to assume enormous proportions in Mendel's eyes.
-It seemed that there was nothing the tremendous fellow did not know.
-He began to talk of genius and the stirring of the creative impulse,
-and he gave so powerful an account of Blake that Mendel began to see
-visions of heaven and hell. Here was something which he could
-acknowledge as larger than himself without self-humiliation, and,
-indeed, the larger it loomed the more swiftly did he himself seem to
-grow. It was such a sensation as he had not known since the days
-before his rapture with Sara. All that had intervened fell away. That
-purity of passion returned to him and, choosing Logan for its object,
-rushed upon him and endowed him with its own power and beauty. Logan
-talking of Blake was to Mendel's innocence as rare as Blake, and he
-adored him.
-
-"I had almost given up art," said Logan; "I had almost given it up as
-hopeless. How can there be art in a despiritualized country like this,
-that lets all its traditions rot away? I was just on the point of
-tossing up whether I should go on the stage or take to spouting at the
-street corners; for when a country is in such a condition that its
-artists are stifled, then it is ripe for revolution. I am instinctive,
-you know, like Napoleon. I feel that we are on the threshold of
-something big, and that I am to have my share in it. I used to think
-it would happen in art, but I despaired of that. It seemed to me that
-art in this country could go doddering on for generations, and then I
-thought it needed a political upheaval to push it into its grave. But
-when I saw your work, I said to myself: Here is the real thing, alive,
-personal, profound, skilled. I began to hope again. And now that I
-have met you I feel more hopeful still, and, let me tell you, like
-most painters, I don't find it easy to like another man's work."
-
-Mendel was fired. Trembling in every limb, he said:--
-
-"It has been the dream of my life to find a friend who would work with
-me, think with me, go with me, share with me, not quarrelling with me
-because I am not this, that, and the other, but accepting me as I
-am--a man who has no country, no home, no love but art."
-
-"That," said Logan, with a portentous scowl and a downward jab of his
-thumb, "is what I have been looking for--some one, like yourself, who
-was absolutely sincere, absolutely single-minded and resolute. The
-spirit of art has brought us together. We will serve it together."
-
-They shook hands like young men on the stage, and Logan fetched a deep
-sigh of relief.
-
-Mitchell woke up, saying:--
-
-"Gawd! I've been asleep. Have you two been talking? Gawd! It's two
-o'clock."
-
-"I'll walk home with you," said Logan. "We can keep to the river
-nearly the whole way by going from side to side."
-
-So they walked while the tide came up, sucking and lapping, while the
-red dragons' eyes of the barges came swinging up on it, moving up and
-down in a slow, irregular rhythm. It was very cold and the sky was
-thickly powdered with stars, whose pin-prick lights were reflected in
-the smooth water.
-
-Upon the dome of the young artist's vision that had before been black
-with infinite space, stars shone with a tender light. He was in
-ecstasy, and seemed to be skimming above the ground, hardly touching
-it with his feet. This long walk was like an exquisite dance, while
-Logan's rollings were like a pipe. . . . Often he sank into a dream
-that he was upon a grassy hill in a mountainy place, he and his
-friend, who played upon a pipe so mournfully yet gaily while he
-danced, and from the trees fell silvery dewdrops and the songs of
-birds, which turned into pennies as they reached the ground and rolled
-away down the hill.
-
-Both he and Logan were relieved when Mitchell, who had interrupted
-them with inappropriate remarks, turned aside at Vauxhall and vanished
-into London.
-
-"So much for Mitchell," said Logan. "You and I need sterner stuff. You
-and I are sprung from those among whom life is lived bravely and
-bitterly, and we have no use for its parasites. You and I will only
-emerge from the bitterness on condition that we can make of life a
-spiritual thing, for we are of those who seek authority. Life has none
-to offer us now, for all the forms of life are broken. Neither above
-us nor below is there authority, neither in heaven nor in hell. We
-must seek authority within ourselves, in the marriage of heaven and
-hell, in the consummation of good and evil, the two poles of our
-nature. It is for us, the artists, to bring them together, to liberate
-good and evil in ourselves, that they may rush to the consummation. We
-are the priests and the prophets, and we must in no wise be false to
-our vision."
-
-Mendel could not fit all this in with his mood and his delicious
-dreams, and when it brought him back to his sober senses, he could not
-see what it had to do with painting. However, Logan put things right
-by saying:--
-
-"You are a poet. You are like Heine. I can see you with your little
-Josepha the pale, the executioner's daughter. God rot my soul! It is
-years since I had such inspiration as you have given me. I think there
-must be Jewish blood in me, for I can certainly understand you through
-and through, and you have waked something in me that has always been
-asleep. Oh! we shall paint bonny pictures--bonny, bonny pictures."
-
-"You must come to see me every day," said Mendel, "and every night we
-will go out together, and I must introduce you to my mother, for she
-too has good words."
-
-Logan smacked his lips as they entered the grimy streets near
-Spitalfields.
-
-"Pah!" he said; "that's life, that is, good dirty life. I was littered
-in a farm-yard myself and I like a good smell. . . . Can you put me up
-to-night? I don't mind sleeping on the floor."
-
-"You can have my bed," said Mendel, "and I will sleep downstairs on my
-brother's sofa. Please--please. Do sleep in my bed."
-
-Logan accepted the offer and asked Mendel to stay with him while he
-undressed. He was unpleasantly fat, but strong and well-built.
-
-He stayed for a long time in front of the mirror.
-
-"See that bulge on the side of my head?" he said as he turned.
-
-Mendel looked, and sure enough his head had a curious bulge on its
-right side.
-
-"I had rickets when I was young," said Logan, "and my skull must have
-got pushed over. I expect that's what makes me what I am--lop-sided. I
-need you to balance me."
-
-He got into bed, and Mendel, reluctant to leave him, sat at his feet
-and devoured him with his eyes.
-
-"Surely, surely, now," he thought, "all is perfect now. No more
-disturbances, no more Mitchells, no more Hettys, and I shall do only
-what I really wish to do."
-
-He stole out into his studio, which was faintly lit from the street
-below, and it was as though it were filled with some vast spiritual
-presence, and he imagined how he would work, urged on by this new
-energy that came welling up through all that he could see, all that he
-could know, all that he could remember.
-
-
-
-III
-
-LOGAN SETS TO WORK
-
-IN the morning he was awakened by his sister-in-law, Rosa, shaking him
-and saying:--
-
-"Mendel! Mendel! What are you doing on the sofa? Wake up! Wake up!
-There is some one in your studio."
-
-The house was ringing with Logan's voice chanting the _Magnificat._
-Mendel ran upstairs and found him in bed with a box of cigarettes and
-the New Testament, that fatal book, on his knees.
-
-"Hello!" he said. "I hope I didn't wake you up. I have been awake for
-a couple of hours looking at your work. I hope you don't mind. There's
-a still-life there that's a gem, as good as Chardin, and even better,
-for there's always something sentimental about Chardin--always the
-suggestion of the old folks at home, the false dramatic touch, the
-idea of the hard-working French peasant coming in presently to eat the
-bread and drink the wine. I think it's time you were written up in the
-papers. It's absurd for a man like you to have to wait for success.
-There's no artistic public in England, so you can't be successful in
-your own way. The British public must have its touch of melodrama. To
-accept a man's work it must first have him shrouded in legend. He must
-be a myth. His work must seem to come from some supernatural source."
-
-"I'll just run over and tell my mother you are here," said Mendel. "I
-always have breakfast there, and then go for a walk while the studio
-is dusted."
-
-"Right you are! I'll be up in half a jiffy. Can I have a bath?"
-
-"No. There's no bath."
-
-"Very well; I can do without for once."
-
-Mendel ran round to Golda and told her of the wonderful man who was in
-his studio, and he described the adventure of the previous evening.
-Golda looked scared and said:--
-
-"What next? What next? Good people sleep in their own beds."
-
-"But this man is an artist and he talks like a book."
-
-"Talk is easy," said Golda. "But it takes years to make a friend."
-
-However, when Logan was brought to her she was polite to him and
-rather shy. He told her that fame was coming to her son faster than
-the wind.
-
-"Too fast," said she.
-
-"It can never come too fast," replied Logan. "The thirst for fame is a
-curse to an artist. Let it be satisfied and he is free for his work. I
-know, for I was very famous in my own town. I sickened of it and ran
-away. . . . I must congratulate you on letting your son follow his
-bent. I had to quarrel with my own people to get my way. I haven't
-seen them since I was fourteen."
-
-"Not your mother?" said Golda, greatly upset.
-
-Logan saw that he had made an awkward impression and hastened to put
-it right by saying lugubriously:--
-
-"My mother is dead. She forgave me."
-
-He allowed that to sink in and was silent for a minute or two. Then he
-chattered on gaily and asked Golda to come and see him, and bragged
-about his studio and his work and his friends, and of a commission he
-had to decorate a large house in a West End square. He talked so fast
-that Golda understood very little of what he said, but she never took
-her eyes off him, and when he said good-bye, Mendel noticed that she
-did not bob to him as she did to Mitchell and Morrison and his other
-polite friends. He took that to mean that she accepted Logan as a
-person above these formalities.
-
-For an hour they walked through the streets and squares of the East
-End, Mendel proud to display the vivid scenes he intended later on to
-make into pictures.
-
-When they returned to the studio Logan insisted on seeing all the
-pictures and drawings again.
-
-"Are you in touch with any dealer?" he asked.
-
-"Cluny has a few pictures and a dozen drawings. He never does anything
-with them."
-
-"Hum!" said Logan. "Dealers are mysterious people. They can only sell
-things that sell themselves. By the way, I am giving up my studio in
-Hammersmith. It is too far away. I shall come nearer in. Hammersmith
-was all very well while I needed isolation, but that is all over now."
-
-"Where shall you go to?"
-
-"Bloomsbury, I think. I like to be near the British Museum. Do you go
-to the British Museum? I must show you round. It is no good going
-there unless you know what to look for. By the way, I came out without
-any money last night. Can you lend me five pounds?"
-
-Mendel wrote a cheque and handed it to him shamefacedly.
-
-"I want to pay a bill on my way home," said Logan. "I hate being in
-debt, especially for colours."
-
-"I get my colours from Cluny," said Mendel, "and he sets them against
-anything he may sell."
-
-The irruption of money had depressed him, and he began to realize that
-he was very tired. The springs of Rosa's sofa had bored into him and
-prevented his getting any real sleep.
-
-He was not sorry when Logan went, after making him promise to meet him
-at the Pot-au-Feu for dinner.
-
-* * * * *
-
-He had a model coming at eleven, but when she arrived he sent her
-away. He was sore and dissatisfied. The studio seemed dark and dismal,
-and he could not get enough light on to his work. He took it right up
-to the window, but still there was not enough light, and his picture
-looked dull and dingy. His nerves throbbed and he was troubled in
-spirit, for now his old dreams of painting quietly among his own
-people while fame gathered about his name had suddenly become childish
-and pathetic. He was ignorant, futile, conceited, a pigmy by the side
-of the gigantic Logan, who would not wait upon the world, but would
-compel its attention and shape it to his will. What had he said
-artists were? Priests and prophets? . . . How could a man prophesy
-with a painting of a fish?
-
-Downstairs he heard Issy come in for his dinner, and there was the
-usual snarling row because Rosa cooked so vilely. Mendel compared
-Issy's life and his own: Issy working day in, day out, earning just
-enough to keep himself alive. Why did he go on with it? Why did he
-keep himself alive? Why did he not clear out, like Harry? There was no
-pleasure in his life, neither the time nor the money for it. . . . A
-wretched business.
-
-But was it less wretched than this business of painting? There was
-more money in painting, and that was all anybody seemed to think of.
-People wanted the same picture over and over again, and if he
-consented to please them, his life would be just as poor a thing as
-Issy's, except that he would have pleasure, and, through his friends,
-an occasional taste of luxury. At best he could be polite and
-gentlemanly, like Mitchell, bringing no more to art and getting no
-more out of it than a boyish excitement, as though art were a game and
-could give no more than a sensation of cleanliness, like a hot bath.
-
-No, it would not do. It would not do.
-
-It was a lie, too, to say that the Jews only cared about money. When
-they were overfed, like Maurice Birnbaum, they were like all the other
-overfed people, but when they were simple and normal they were better
-than the others, because they had always a sense of mystery and did
-not waste themselves in foolish laughter.
-
-That was where Logan was true. He could laugh, because all the
-Christians laugh, but when it came to solemn things he could talk
-about them as though he were not half ashamed. Mitchell, for instance,
-always shied away from the truth. Why was he afraid of it? The truth,
-good or bad, was always somehow beautiful, invigorating, and
-releasing. All the pleasant things that Mitchell cared about Mendel
-found stifling. Nothing, he knew, could make life altogether pleasant,
-and all the falsehoods which were used in that attempt were
-contemptible. They strangled impulse and frankness, and without these
-how could there be art?
-
-In his unhappy dreams Logan appeared like a figure of Blake, immense,
-looming prophetic, beckoning to achievement and away from the chatter
-and fuss of the world of artists.
-
-Yet behind Logan there was still the figure of Mitchell, young and
-gay, and the idea of Mitchell led to the idea of Morrison.
-
-There were some withered flowers on his painting-table, the last she
-had sent him. None had come since that evening in the Paris Café when
-she had nodded curtly to show him that he was not wanted.
-
-He would not be thrust aside like that. He knew himself to be worth a
-thousand Mitchells. Logan had said that Mitchell was rubbish, and not
-even in the eyes of a slip of a girl would Mendel have Mitchell set
-above himself. Not for one moment was it tolerable. He would keep
-Morrison to her promises and make her come to have her portrait
-painted, and he would find out what there was in her that made him
-remember her so distinctly and so clearly separate her from all other
-girls. Somehow the thought of her cooled the intoxication in which he
-had been left by Logan. She offered, perhaps, another way out of his
-present state of congestion and dissatisfaction. Very clearly she
-brought back to his mind the thrilling delight with which he had
-worked as a boy, and that was true, truer than anything else he had
-ever known. . . . Ah! If he could only get back to that, with all the
-tricks and cunning he had learned.
-
-He would get back to it some day, but he must fight for it; with Logan
-he would learn how to fight. Logan would lay his immense store of
-knowledge before him, and give him books to read, and teach him how to
-be so easy and familiar with ideas, which at present only frothed in
-his mind like waves thinning themselves out on the sea-shore.
-
-He wrote an impassioned and insolent letter to Morrison commanding her
-presence at his studio and informing her that he was worth a thousand
-of her ordinary associates, and that she had hurt him, and that girls
-ought not to hurt men of acknowledged talent. This letter cost him a
-great deal of pain and time, because he was careful not to make any
-slip in spelling or grammar. It was more a manifesto than a letter,
-and he wished to do nothing to impair its dignity.
-
-And all the time he was puzzled to know why he should care about her
-at all. He was prepared to throw everything--his success, the Detmold,
-his friends--to the winds to follow Logan, but Morrison he could not
-throw away.
-
-He decided at last not to send the letter but to go himself, and he
-went to the Detmold just as the light was fading and he knew she would
-be leaving.
-
-She had gone already, but he met Clowes, who, he knew, lived with her.
-He pounced on her and said:--
-
-"You must come to tea with me."
-
-"I'm afraid I . . ."
-
-"You must! You must!"
-
-She saw he was very excited and she had heard stories of his bursting
-into tears when he was thwarted. In some alarm she consented to go
-with him.
-
-He led her to a teashop, a horrible place that smelt of dishwater and
-melted butter, made her sit at a table, and burst at once into a
-tirade:--
-
-"You are Morrison's friend. Will you tell me why she has avoided me?
-She came to my studio once and she said she would come again. She sent
-me flowers for three weeks, but she has sent no more."
-
-"She--she is very forgetful," said Clowes, who was longing for tea but
-did not dare to tell him to turn to the waitress, who was hovering
-behind him.
-
-"But she nodded to me as if she had hardly met me before," said
-Mendel.
-
-"She is very shy," said Clowes, framing the word "Tea" with her lips
-and nodding brightly to the waitress. She added kindly:--
-
-"I don't think sending flowers means much with her. She gives flowers
-to heaps of people. She is a very odd girl."
-
-"Does she give flowers to Mitchell?" he asked furiously, coming at
-last with great relief to the consuming thought in his mind.
-
-"Yes," said Clowes. "She is very unhappy about Mitchell and that Hetty
-Finch affair."
-
-"Has he told her then?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"Why did he tell her?"
-
-"I'm sure I don't know."
-
-"I'll tell you," cried Mendel. "I'll tell you. To make himself
-interesting to her, because he is not interesting. He is nothing. And
-I will tell you something more. He has been telling her things about
-me to excuse himself. Now, hasn't he? . . . I can see by your face
-that he has."
-
-Clowes could not deny it, and she found it hard to conceal her
-distress. She was unused to intimate affairs being dragged out into
-the open like this, and her modesty was shocked. She had a pretty,
-intelligent face, and she looked for the moment like a startled hare,
-the more so when she put her handkerchief up to her nose with a
-gesture like that of a hare brushing its whiskers.
-
-"Very well, then," Mendel continued; "you can tell her you have seen
-me, and you can tell her that I shall come to explain myself. I hide
-nothing, for I am ashamed of nothing that I do. I have no need to
-excuse myself. I am not a gentleman one moment and a cad the next. And
-you can tell Morrison that if I see her with Mitchell again I shall
-knock him down."
-
-"Do please drink your tea," said Clowes. "It is getting cold."
-
-Mendel gulped down his tea and hastened to add:--
-
-"I am not boasting. He is bigger than I am, but I know something about
-boxing. My brother was nearly a prizefighter."
-
-Clowes began to recover from her alarm, and his immense seriousness
-struck her as very comic.
-
-"Did you know that Greta has cut her hair short?"
-
-"Her hair?" cried Mendel. "Her beautiful hair?"
-
-"Yes. She looks so sweet, but the boys call after her in the streets.
-All the girls are wild to do it."
-
-"Her hair? Her beautiful hair? Why?"
-
-"Oh! she got sick of putting it up. She is like that. She suddenly
-does something you don't expect."
-
-"But she must look terrible!"
-
-"Oh no. She looks too sweet. And if all the boys at the Detmold wear
-their hair long, I don't see why the girls shouldn't wear theirs
-short."
-
-"My mother had her head shaved when she married," said he, "and she
-wore a wig."
-
-"Why did she do that?"
-
-"It is the custom. The woman shows that she belongs wholly to her
-husband and makes herself unattractive to all other men."
-
-"What a horrible idea!"
-
-"It is a beautiful idea. It is the idea of love independent of
-everything else. That is why I thought Morrison must have some reason
-for cutting her hair."
-
-"When you know Greta, you will know that she doesn't wait for
-reasons."
-
-"Why does she like Mitchell?"
-
-"She likes nearly everybody."
-
-"But she writes to him."
-
-"Of course she does," said Clowes, rather bored with his persistence.
-
-"But she doesn't write to me."
-
-"You don't write to her. You can't expect her to fall at your feet."
-
-As she said this Clowes realized his extraordinary Orientalism. She
-could see him holding up his finger and expecting a woman to come at
-his bidding, and for a moment she was repelled by him. But she was a
-kind-hearted creature and felt very sorry for him, for he seemed so
-utterly at sea and was obviously full of genuine and painful emotion.
-
-He detected her repulsion at once and perceived the effort she made to
-conquer it, and was at once grateful to her, for, as a rule, when that
-happened, people let it swamp everything else.
-
-She said:--
-
-"I'll tell Greta what you have said to me, and I am sure she will be
-very sorry to have hurt you."
-
-"I only want her to come and sit for her portrait. It is very
-important to me, because I want to try new subjects and there is some
-lovely drawing in her face."
-
-"But you mustn't knock Mitchell down. He is quite a nice boy, really,
-only a little wild."
-
-"He is rotten," said Mendel dogmatically.
-
-* * * * *
-
-He felt better, and until dinner-time he prowled about Tottenham Court
-Road and Soho, a region of London that he particularly loved--a
-vibrant, nondescript region where innumerable streams of vitality met
-and fused, or clashed together to make a froth and a spume. It was
-like himself, chaotic and rawly alive, compounded of elements that
-knew no tradition or had escaped from it. He felt at home in it, and
-elated because he was also conscious of being superior to it, yet
-without the dizzy sense of superiority that assailed him among his own
-people, while he was never shocked and humiliated, as he was sometimes
-in sedate and prosperous London, by being made suddenly to realize his
-external inferiority. He loved the shop-girls hurrying excitedly from
-their work to their pleasure, and he sometimes spoke to them in their
-own slang, sometimes went home with them. . . . They always liked him
-because he never wasted time over silly flirtatious jokes or pretended
-to be in love with them. His interest and curiosity, like theirs, were
-purely physical, and his passion gave them a delicious sense of
-danger.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Logan was waiting for him at the Pot-au-Feu. There was no one else in
-the restaurant but the goggle-eyed man in his corner. Logan was
-sitting Napoleonically with his arms on the table and his chin sunk on
-his chest, with his lips compressed.
-
-He nodded, but did not get up.
-
-"Sorry if I'm late," said Mendel. "I went for a walk. I couldn't work
-to-day. My sister-in-law's sofa--I feel as if I had been beaten all
-over."
-
-"That's the walk home," said Logan. "I'm used to it. The hours I've
-spent walking about this infernal London! I've slept on the
-Embankment, you know."
-
-"No?"
-
-"Yes. I've been as far down as that, though I'm not the sort of man
-who can be kept down. Did you know that Napoleon was out-at-elbows for
-a whole year?"
-
-"No; I don't know much about Napoleon."
-
-"Ah! You should. I read every book about him I can lay hands on.
-Gustave!"
-
-The waiter came up and Logan ordered a very special dinner with the
-air of knowing the very inmost secrets of the establishment. He
-demanded orange bitters before the meal and a special brand of
-cigarette.
-
-"My day hasn't been wasted," he said. "I've been to Cluny's and I
-asked to see your stuff. The little man there looked astonished, but I
-told him people were talking of no one else but you, and quite
-rightly. I talked to him from the dealer's point of view, and assured
-him that there was a big boom in pictures, coming, and that he had
-better be prepared for it with a handful of new men. I didn't let him
-know that I was a painter, but I got him quite excited, and I did not
-leave him until he had hung a picture and two drawings."
-
-"Which picture?"
-
-"The one of your mother's kitchen. It is one of your best. To-morrow
-three men will walk into Cluny's and they will admire your work. On
-the day after to-morrow a real buyer will walk in."
-
-Mendel's eyes grew larger and larger. Was Logan a magician, that he
-could direct human beings into Cluny's shop and conduct them straight
-to his work?
-
-Logan laughed at his amazement.
-
-"Lord love-a-duck!" he said, "you're not going to sit still and wait
-for commercial fools to discover that you know your job. At my first
-exhibition in Liverpool I put on a false beard and went in and bought
-one of my own pictures, just to encourage the dealer and the timid
-idiots who were too shy to go and ask him the price of the drawings.
-It worked, and this is going to work too. When I've warmed Cluny up
-into selling you, then I'm going to make him sell me. If you don't
-mind we'll have our names bracketed,--Kühler and Logan. People will
-believe in two men when they won't in one. As for three, you've only
-got to look at the Trinity to see what they'll believe when they get
-three working together. . . . Oh! I forgot you were a Jew and brought
-up to believe in One is One and all alone."
-
-He laughed and gave a fat chuckle as he mimicked the little man in
-Cluny's cocking his head on one side and pretending to take in the
-beauties of Mendel's work as they were pointed out to him.
-
-"I have enjoyed myself," said Logan. "By God! I wish there were a
-revolution. I'd have my finger in the pie. Oh! what lovely legs
-there'd be to pull--all the world's and his wife's as well. But it
-won't come in my time."
-
-Under Logan's influence Mendel began to enjoy his food, which he had
-always treated as a tiresome necessity before. He sat back in his
-chair and sipped his wine and crumbled up his bread exactly as Logan
-did; and he had a delicious sense of leisure and well-being, as though
-nothing mattered very much. And, indeed, when he came to think of it,
-nothing did matter. He had years and years ahead of him, and here was
-good solid pleasure in front of him, so that he had only to dip his
-hands in it and take and take. . . .
-
-After the dinner Logan ordered cigars, coffee, and liqueurs, and
-Mendel felt very lordly. The restaurant had filled up, and among the
-rest were Mitchell and Morrison.
-
-Mendel turned, gave them a curt nod, and could not restrain a grin of
-satisfaction as he thought that score was settled. He leaned forward
-and gave himself up to the pleasure of Logan's talk.
-
-"What I contend," said Logan, "is this--and mind you, I let off my
-youthful gas years ago. I've been earning my living since I was
-fourteen, so I know a little of what the world's like. I've been in
-offices and shops, and on the land, in hotels, on the railway, on the
-road as a bagman, from house to house as a tallyman, and I know what
-I'm talking about. The artist is a free man, and therefore an outlaw,
-because the world is full of timid slaves who lie in the laps of
-women. If an artist is not a free man, then he is not an artist. And I
-say that if the artist is outlawed, then he must use any and every
-means to get out of the world what it denies him. One must live."
-
-"That's true," said Mendel.
-
-"You may take it from me that there is less room in the world now for
-artists than ever there was. In the old days you chose your patron and
-he provided for you, as the Pope provided for Michael Angelo, and you
-devoted your art to whatever your patron stood for, spiritual power if
-he happened to be a pope, secular power if he happened to be a duke or
-a king. But, nowadays, suppose you had a patron--say, Sir Julius
-Fleischmann--and he kept you alive, what on earth could you devote
-your art to? You could paint his portrait, and his wife's portrait,
-and all his daughters' portraits, but they'd mean nothing; they'd just
-be vulgar men and women. No. Art is a bigger thing than any power left
-on the earth. Money has eaten up all the other powers, and only art is
-left uncorrupted by it. Art cannot be patronized. It cannot serve
-religion, because there is no religion vital enough to contain the
-spirit of art. There is nothing left in the world worthy of such noble
-service, and therefore art must be independent and artists must be
-free, because there is no honourable service open to them. They must
-have their own values, and they must have the courage of them. The
-world's values are the values fit for the service of Sir Julius
-Fleischmann, but they are not fit for men whose blood is stirring with
-life, whose minds are eager and active, men who will accept any
-outward humiliation rather than the degradation of the loss of their
-freedom."
-
-"I met Sir Julius Fleischmann. Once," Mendel said. "He subscribed for
-me when I went to my first School of Art. They wanted to send me to
-Italy, but I refused, because I knew my place was here in London.
-There's more art for me in the Tottenham Court Road than in all the
-blue skies in the world."
-
-"Quite right, too!" cried Logan. "That shows how sound an artist's
-instinct is. He knows what is good for him because he is a free man.
-The others have to be told what is good for them because they don't
-know themselves and because, however unhappy they are, they don't know
-the way out. When you and I are unhappy we know that it is because we
-have lost touch with life, or because we have lost touch with art;
-either the flesh or the spirit is choked with thorns, and we set about
-plucking them out. When it is a question of saving your soul, what do
-morals matter?"
-
-Mendel had heard people talk about morals, and he knew that his own
-were supposed to be bad; but he was not certain what they were. Rather
-timidly he asked Logan, who gave his fat chuckle and replied:--
-
-"Morals, my son? No one knows. They change about a hundred years after
-human practice. They are different in different times, places, and
-circumstances, and Sir Julius Fleischmann, like you and me, has none,
-because he can afford to do without them. . . . Well, I've done a good
-day's work and we've had a good dinner, and I must get back to my
-beautiful bed--unless you'd like to go to a music-hall."
-
-Mendel was loath to let his friend go, and, weary though he was, he
-said he would like the music-hall. Logan bought more cigars and they
-walked round to the Oxford and spent the evening in uneasy and flat
-conversation with two ladies of the town, one of whom said she knew
-Logan, though he swore he had never seen her before. When they were
-shaken off, he told Mendel mysteriously that she was a friend of a
-woman of whom he went in terror, who had been pursuing him for a
-couple of years.
-
-"Terrible! Terrible!" he said. "Like a wild beast. They're awful,
-these prostitutes, when they fall in love. It eats them up, body and
-soul."
-
-And he went on talking of women, and from what he said it appeared
-that he was beset by them. He described them lurking in the street for
-him, forcing their way into his studio, clamouring for love, love,
-love.
-
-"It makes me sick," he said. "I never yet met a woman who knew how to
-love. If a man has an enthusiasm for anything outside themselves, they
-plot and scheme with their damnable cunning to kill it. They want the
-carcase of a man, not the lovely life in it. And if they're decent
-they want babies, which is almost worse if you're hard up. No, boy;
-for God's sake don't take women seriously. If you can't do without
-them, hate 'em. They'll lick your boots for it. They feed on hatred,
-and will take it out of your hand."
-
-He talked in this strain until they reached the Tube station in
-Piccadilly Circus. It was unusually empty, and by the booking-office
-was standing a very pretty girl, big and upstanding. She had a wide
-mouth and curious slanting eyes, plump cheeks and a roguish tilt to
-her chin. She was well and neatly dressed, and Mendel judged her to be
-a shop-girl.
-
-"That's a fine lass," said Logan. "Good-night, boy. I'll see you
-to-morrow and tell you about Cluny's."
-
-"Good-night," said Mendel, still loath to see his friend go, and he
-suffered a pang of jealousy as he saw Logan go up to the girl, raise
-his hat, and speak to her. She started, blushed, and smiled. They
-stopped and talked together for a few moments, and then moved over
-towards the lift.
-
-Mendel waited and watched them, Logan talking gaily, the girl smiling
-and watching him intently through her smile. With her eyes she took
-possession of him, and Mendel was filled with misgiving when he heard
-Logan's fat chuckle and the rustle and clatter of the gate as the lift
-descended. It reminded him oddly of the Demon King and the Fairy Queen
-in a pantomime he had once seen with Artie Beech, whose father used to
-get tickets for the gallery because he had play-bills in his shop
-window.
-
-
-
-IV
-
-BURNHAM BEECHES
-
-FOR Greta Morrison as for Mendel, London life had been opened up
-through Mitchell. He had been friendly and kind to her when everybody
-else had been harsh, fault-finding, and indifferent. Her first year
-and a half at the hostel had been a period of misery, for the girls
-and women there regarded her as odd, vague, and careless, and thought
-it their duty to impose on her the discipline she seemed to need, for
-they knew nothing of her suffering through her ambition and her work.
-
-Like Mendel, she had been overwhelmed by her inability to adapt
-herself easily to the Detmold standard of drawing, for it was against
-her temperament and her habit of mind to be precise, and drawing had
-always been to her rather a trivial thing, though extremely pleasant
-for the purposes of the caricatures in which her teasing humour found
-an outlet. All her girlhood had been thrillingly happy in the
-execution of large allegorical designs, through which she sought to
-express her delight in the earth--the immense serene power of which
-she became profoundly aware as she lay in the bracken at home and
-gazed out over the rich valley or up into the marvellous, quivering
-blue sky, through which she felt that she was being borne without a
-sound, without a tremor, irresistibly. Nothing could shake that loving
-knowledge in her, and it hurt her that her mother's cold, self-centred
-religion, which made her demand a fussy, sentimental attention from
-her children, forbade all expression of it in her daily life. Her
-brothers, revolting against the sentimentality exacted of them,
-treated all tenderness as ignoble rubbish, and in her rough-and-tumble
-with them Greta was hardened and forced into independence. She had to
-play their games with them and to suffer the same tortures of
-knuckle-drill, brush, dry-shave, and wrist-screw. But all their
-swagger seemed to her rather fraudulent; and because they laughed at
-her allegorical designs she decided that men were inferior beings.
-When they laughed at her designs it was to her as though they laughed
-at the beauty she had tried to express in them, and the sacrilege
-enraged her more than her mother's petulance, for they were young and
-strong and full of life, and they should not have been blind. It was
-against them that she first found relief in caricature, and as they
-went through their Public Schools and were more and more compressed
-into type, she pilloried them, and, as a consequence, even when she
-was a young woman, big and fine, with the tender, delicate bloom of
-seventeen upon her, she had to submit to the indignity of
-knuckle-drill, brush, dry-shave, and wrist-screw.
-
-She was filled with a horror of men, and especially Public School men,
-for they seemed to her entirely lacking in decency, humility, and
-honesty. They pretended to be so fine and ignored everything that was
-finer than themselves. Her brothers' foolish love-affairs disgusted
-her and made her suppress in herself every emotion that tried to find
-its way to a good-looking boy or young man. She was not shy of them or
-afraid of them, but she would not encourage in them what she so
-detested in her brothers.
-
-During her first year in London she devoted herself heart and soul to
-her work. There were two or three families who were kind to her as her
-mother's daughter, but their ways were her mother's, and she only
-visited them as a duty, and to break the monotony of the school and
-the hostel.
-
-Her encounter with Mitchell took place at the time when Mendel's
-influence on him had set him in revolt against his Public School
-training. On the other hand, the sight of the abyss of poverty into
-which Mendel descended so easily had set him reeling. He was shrewd
-enough to know that Hetty Finch was using him as a ladder to get out
-of it, and that there was a real danger of her kicking him down into
-it. In a state of horrible confusion he plunged at the most obvious
-outlet, the "pure girl" of the tradition of his upbringing.
-
-He made no concealment of it, but turned to Morrison with a childlike
-confidence that touched her. She was feeling lonely, disappointed, and
-dissatisfied with herself and was glad of his company. It was a change
-from the woman-ridden atmosphere of the hostel.
-
-By way of making their relationship seemly he introduced her to his
-family, where as the pure young girl who was to save their hope from
-wild courses she was a great success.
-
-"First sensible thing you've done, my boy," said Mr. Mitchell, that
-great man, a journalist who had been a correspondent in a dozen wars.
-"A pure friendship between a boy and a girl has a most ennobling
-influence--most ennobling."
-
-"She is truly spiritual," sighed Mrs. Mitchell, "the type who
-justifies the independence of the modern girl, whatever the Prime
-Minister may say."
-
-"That scoundrel!" cried Mr. Mitchell. "That infamous buffoon who has
-not a grain of Liberalism left in his toadying mind!"
-
-"My dear," said Mrs. Mitchell, "we were talking about little Miss
-Morrison."
-
-"Well," answered Mr. Mitchell, "we took our risk when we let the boy
-be an artist and we can be thankful it is no worse. Did I tell you, my
-love, that I am going off to the Cocos Islands to-morrow?"
-
-"Indeed, my dear? Then you will not be able to come to my meeting."
-
-"No, I hear it is worse than the Congo."
-
-"Oh dear! oh dear! I don't know what the world is coming to. The more
-civilized we get in one part of the world, the worse things are in
-another part. I declare such horrible things seem to me to make it
-quite unimportant whether we get the vote or not."
-
-"When you have a Tory Government calling itself Liberal," said Mr.
-Mitchell very angrily, "it means that neither reform at home nor
-justice abroad can receive any attention. The country has gone to the
-dogs, and I thank God I spend most of my time out of it."
-
-"And poor Humphrey suffers. I'm sure I am a good mother to him, but I
-cannot be a father as well. I'm thankful to say he seems to be
-dropping that Jewish friend of his. He is a genius, of course, and
-quite remarkable, considering what he comes from; but with Jews it can
-never be the same, can it?"
-
-"No, my love," said Mr. Mitchell; "one would never dream of drinking
-out of the same glass, would one? Still, I must say, the Jews in
-England are much better than they are anywhere else, which seems to
-show that they can respond to decent treatment and thrive in the air
-of liberty."
-
-Both Mr. and Mrs. Mitchell had a platform manner of speaking, and as
-Morrison was not a subject that suited it, she was soon dropped; but
-in the end they came back to her, and agreed that she was a nice, shy
-little girl, and that she had no idea of marrying their only son, or
-anyone else, for that matter.
-
-She was much impressed with them, for she had never met important
-people before, and she was given to understand that they were very
-important. They seemed to have their fingers on innumerable reforms
-which were only suppressed by the stupidity of the Government.
-Directly the Government was removed, as of course such idiots soon
-would be, Mr. and Mrs. Mitchell would raise their fingers and, hey
-presto! women would have votes, the slums would be pulled down,
-maternity would be endowed, prostitutes would be saved, prisons would
-be reformed, capital punishment abolished, the working classes would
-be properly housed, every able-bodied man who wished it should have
-his small holding, the railways would be nationalized, site values
-would be taxed, divorce would be made easy and free from social taint,
-and education would be made scientific and thorough. In the meantime,
-as the Government did not budge, Mr. Mitchell went to the Cocos
-Islands and Constantinople to procure evidence of horrors abroad and
-Mrs. Mitchell addressed meetings on the subject of horrors at home.
-
-Morrison was impressed. The contrast between these people who thought
-of everything and everybody but themselves and her own home, where
-nothing was thought of but the family, the Church, and the Empire,
-shocked her into thinking and gave her a sense of liberation. It made
-human beings more interesting than she had thought, and she began to
-see that they did not, as she had heedlessly accepted that they did,
-fit infallibly into their places, and that vast numbers had no places
-to fit into. She herself, she saw, did not fit into any place, and
-that she had been squeezed, like paint out of a tube, out of her home
-for no other reason than that she was a woman, and there was only just
-enough money to establish the boys. However, she could not quite
-swallow Mrs. Mitchell's view that men had deliberately, coldly, and of
-set purpose ousted women from their rightful share in the sweets of
-life.
-
-She had a period of despair as these revelations sank into her mind
-and she had to digest Mrs. Mitchell's awful facts and statistics about
-the night-life of London. Life seemed too terrible for her powers,
-but, as she soon began to see how comic Mrs. Mitchell was, she pulled
-herself together and found that she was strengthened by the
-experience, and when Mitchell confessed the awful doings of his past,
-she felt immeasurably older than he, and was thankful she was a woman
-and did not expect such things of herself. For she could never quite
-take his word for all he said. She knew her brothers too well to
-accept his plea of passionate necessity.
-
-"Gawd!" he used to say. "When I think of my past I feel that I must go
-on my knees and worship your purity."
-
-His absurdity made her blush, but she liked him. He was clever and had
-read much under his father's guidance, poetry and modern English
-fiction mostly, and when she went to tea with him in his studio he
-used to read aloud to her, Keats and Shelley and Matthew Arnold.
-
-"I think I only like poetry," she said once, "when it makes pictures.
-When it doesn't do that it seems to me just words, and it doesn't seem
-to matter how nice they sound."
-
-"Gawd!" he said. "That's like Kühler. He says nothing makes such
-pictures as the Bible, and he is always quoting that about: 'At her
-feet he bowed, he fell, he lay down: where he fell, there he lay
-down.' And he says it must be the words, because his own Hebrew Bible
-never gave him anything like the same--er--vision of it."
-
-Once he had begun to talk of Mendel she would not let him leave the
-subject.
-
-"Do you think he's a genius?" she would ask.
-
-"Gawd! I don't know. He says he is a genius, and I suppose time will
-show whether it is true or not. But why do you want to talk of him?"
-
-"I don't know. I'm interested. Perhaps because he is different."
-
-"Well, you've had tea with him. That is about as much as is good for
-you. If you were my sister I wouldn't let you know him."
-
-"Why not?"
-
-"My dear girl, there are certain things in life that a young girl
-ought never to know."
-
-"What things? Is there anything worse than what your mother talks
-about at her meetings? Girls know all about that nowadays, and it is
-no good pretending we don't."
-
-"Talking about them is one thing, coming in contact with them is
-another. Kühler is a Jew, and he comes from the East End, where they
-don't have any decent pleasures. He's infernally good-looking in a
-hurdy-gurdy sort of way. Gawd! Women look at him and off they go."
-
-"But he cares for poetry and the Bible and he loves pictures. . . ."
-
-"It doesn't seem to make any difference."
-
-During this talk he had begun to find Morrison extraordinarily pretty
-and lovable, and he said tenderly:--
-
-"Won't you take off your hat and let me see your beautiful hair?"
-
-She refused, and asked him more about Mendel, and in exasperation at
-the unintended snub he told her the true story of Hetty Finch, not
-concealing his own share in it, but implying that Mendel's terrible
-immorality had corrupted him and led to his downfall.
-
-The story was received in silence.
-
-At last she said:--
-
-"And what is going to become of Hetty Finch?"
-
-"That's the extraordinary part of it," said Mitchell. "She has found
-someone to marry her."
-
-He leaned against the mantelpiece and dropped his head in his hands
-and groaned.
-
-"Gawd!" he said. "If it weren't for you I don't know what would become
-of me." And he was so moved by his own thoughts that tears trickled
-down his nose and made dark spots on the whitened hearth.
-
-"I can't ask you to marry me," he said mournfully. "I'm unworthy, but
-I want to be your friend."
-
-She made no reply, and he was forced to ask rather lamely:--
-
-"Will you be my friend?"
-
-"Of course."
-
-"Always?"
-
-"How can I promise that?" she said.
-
-It was then that he took her to the Paris Café, where, all in a
-turmoil through her new knowledge of men and women, she hardly knew
-what she was doing, and gave Mendel the curt nod which had so
-disgruntled him.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Every summer the Detmold students went for a picnic, either up the
-river, or to a Surrey common, or to one of the forests in the vicinity
-of London. This year Burnham Beeches was chosen. Two charabancs met
-the party at Slough, and though Mendel tried very hard to sit next to
-Morrison, he was outmanoeuvred by Mitchell, and had to put up with
-Clowes.
-
-"I wish you wouldn't glare at Mitchell so. You make me quite
-uncomfortable," said she.
-
-"He is telling her lies about me," growled Mendel.
-
-"Don't be absurd," protested Clowes. "He is not talking about you at
-all." She felt rather cross with him because he was spoiling her
-pleasure, and because she had wanted to sit next someone else, and she
-added: "People aren't always talking about you, and if anybody does
-it's the models, and that's your own fault."
-
-"How beastly!" he said.
-
-"I don't blame them. They haven't any other interest."
-
-"I didn't mean that. I meant this country. It is so flat and dull,
-regular railway scenery. What a place to choose for a picnic!"
-
-"Wait until you get to the woods! We're going to a place called Egypt.
-Don't you think that's romantic? Though it reminds me more of Oberon
-and Titania than of Anthony and Cleopatra."
-
-He looked blank, and she explained:--
-
-"Shakespeare, you know."
-
-"I've never read Shakespeare."
-
-"Oh! you should."
-
-"I've tried, but I can't understand him. I suppose it's because I'm
-not English. It seems ridiculous to me, all those plots and murders."
-
-"But the fairies in the 'Midsummer Night's Dream'!"
-
-"I haven't read it; but what do you want with fairies? A wood's a
-wood, and there's quite enough mystery in it for me without pretending
-to see things that aren't there."
-
-"But it's nice to pretend," said Clowes rather lamely, almost hating
-him because he seemed so wrong in the country. She knew people like
-that, people she was quite fond of in London, but in the country they
-were awful.
-
-The charabancs swung through Farnham Royal and they came in sight of
-the woods, brilliant under a vivid blue sky patched with huge, heavy
-white clouds. Birds hovered above the trees, and as they turned out of
-the street of seaside bungalows and along the sandy lane leading to
-Egypt, they put up rabbits and pheasants.
-
-The art students looked bizarre and almost theatrical in the woods,
-with the long-haired young men and the short-haired girls, many of
-them wearing the brightest colours. Mendel hated the lot of them,
-giggling girls and bouncing boys, and he recognized how inappropriate
-they all were and how he himself was the most inappropriate of them
-all. He felt ashamed, and wanted to go away and hide, to crawl away to
-some hole and gaze with his eyes at the beauty he could not feel.
-There were too many trees, as there were too many people. . . . What a
-poor thing is a man in a crowd which makes it impossible to share his
-thoughts and emotions with anyone! And how bitter it is when he is
-full of thoughts and emotions! It is all so bitter that the crowd must
-do foolish, inappropriate things not to feel it, not to be broken up
-by it. . . . Yet the others seemed happy enough. The old Professors
-were beaming and pretending to be young. Perhaps they enjoyed it more
-than anyone because they did not want to be alone, or to steal away
-with a coveted maid, as some of the young men were doing even now.
-. . . Had Mitchell stolen away with Morrison? Horrible idea! No. There
-he was, putting up stumps for cricket.
-
-Cricket! How Mendel loathed that fatuous game, the kind of
-inappropriate foolish thing the crowd always did! How he dreaded the
-swift hard ball that would hurt his hand or his shins! How humiliated
-he felt when he was out: and how he raged against the frantic
-excitement he could not help feeling when he hit the ball and made a
-run. One run seemed to him a larger score than anyone else could
-possibly make, and when he made a run and was on the winning side he
-always felt that he had won the match. In the field, no matter where
-he was placed, he went and stood by the umpire, because he had noticed
-that the ball rarely went that way.
-
-He had to field now, and he went and stood by the umpire. Mitchell
-came swaggering in. He hit a lovely four, a three, a two. The fielders
-changed at the over, but Mendel stayed where he was. The ball came
-near him. He picked it up and threw it as hard as he could at
-Mitchell's head. Fortunately he missed, and there was a roar of
-laughter.
-
-"I say, I mean to say," said one of the Professors, "we are not
-playing rounders or--or baseball."
-
-And there was more laughter.
-
-Mitchell hit a three, a two, a lost ball (six), a four, and then he
-skied one. The ball went soaring up. With his keen sight Mendel could
-see it clearly shining red against the hot sky. With an awful sinking
-in his stomach he realized that it was coming down near him. It was
-coming straight to him. It would fall on him, hurt him, stun him. Then
-he thought that if he caught it Mitchell would be out. He never lost
-sight of the ball for a moment. If he caught it Mitchell would be out.
-He moved back two paces, opened his hands, and the ball fell into
-them.
-
-"Oh! well caught, indeed! Well caught!"
-
-Mitchell walked away from the wicket swinging his bat in a deprecating
-fashion. After all, one does not expect miracles even in cricket.
-
-"Beautiful, beautiful ball!" thought Mendel, fondling it with his
-still tingling hands. "You came to me like a lark to its nest, and you
-shone so red against the sky, you shone so red, so red!"
-
-His dissatisfaction vanished. The crowd was a nice beast after all. It
-was at his feet. At no one else had it shouted like that. . . . The
-woods were very beautiful, with the bracken nodding under the trees,
-and the branches swaying, and the soft winds murmuring through the
-leaves, through which the trees seemed to breathe and sigh and to envy
-the moving wind while they were condemned to stay and grow old in one
-spot. Very, very sweet were the green and yellow and blue lights
-hovering and swinging through the woods, dappling the trunks of the
-trees, weaving an ever-changing pattern on the carpet of moss and dead
-leaves, and the tufted bracken that sometimes almost looked like the
-sea, full of a life of its own. Surely, surely there were fish
-swimming in the bracken.
-
-Starting out of his dreams, he saw Morrison at the wicket, very
-intent, with a stern expression on her face. He knew she was
-desperately anxious to score.
-
-She was most palpably stumped with her second ball, but the umpire
-gave her "not out," amid general applause, for she was a favourite.
-
-She lashed out awkwardly at the next ball, which came on the leg side.
-It came towards Mendel at an incredible speed. He put his foot on it,
-picked it up, pretended it had passed him, and tore towards the trees
-in simulated pursuit; and he remained looking for it in the bracken
-while Morrison ran four, five, six, seven, eight, and just as some one
-cried "Lost ball!" he stooped, pretended to pick it up, and threw it
-back to the bowler.
-
-He himself was bowled first ball, but, as it turned out, Morrison's
-side won by three runs.
-
-She was bubbling over with happiness, and after tea she came over to
-him and said:--
-
-"I say, Kühler, that _was_ a good catch."
-
-He folded his arms and cocked his chin and looked down his nose as he
-said:--
-
-"Oh! yes. I can play cricket."
-
-"You made a blob," she said with a grin.
-
-"A catch like that," he answered, "is enough for one day. I have seen
-many words written in the papers about a catch like that. Even
-Calthrop does not have so many words written about his pictures."
-
-"I shall hate to go back to London after this," she said. "I didn't
-know there was anything so beautiful near London."
-
-"There is Hampstead," he said.
-
-"I've never been there," she replied.
-
-"Will you let me take you to Hampstead? It has lilies and water."
-
-"Oh yes," she said eagerly. "Do let us go into the woods now before we
-start. I'm sure there must be lovely places."
-
-He followed her, first looking round to see what had become of
-Mitchell, whom he saw standing with a scowl on his face, a foolish
-figure.
-
-"Don't talk!" said Morrison. "I'm sure it is lovely through here."
-
-She led the way through a grove of pines into a beech glade, at the
-end of which they found a dingle, where they stood and gazed back.
-
-"Oh, look!" she cried. "Look at the pine stems through the sea-green
-of the beeches. Purple they are, and don't they swing?"
-
-"I like the wind in the trees," said Mendel.
-
-He saw that there were tears in her eyes, and he caught some of her
-ecstasy. But he could not understand it at all and it hurt him
-horribly. She was wonderful and beautiful to him, the very heart of
-all that loveliness, the song of it, its music and its mystery.
-
-"She is only a little girl," he said to himself very clearly, stamping
-out the words in his mind, so that it was as though someone else had
-spoken to him.
-
-The ecstasy grew in her, and with it the pain in him. She swayed
-towards him and fell against his breast and raised her lips to him. He
-stooped and almost in terror just touched them with his.
-
-He was a sorry prince for a sleeping beauty, for he was afraid lest
-she should awake.
-
-
-
-V
-
-HAPPY HAMPSTEAD
-
-ON the morning of the day fixed for their expedition to Hampstead
-Heath she sent him roses--yellow roses. He took them across to his
-mother and gave them to her, saying:--
-
-"I do not need flowers. I am happy."
-
-Golda laughed at him, and said:--
-
-"You are a big little man since you made the catch at the cricket."
-
-"I don't know what it is, but I am happy. It is no longer surprising
-to me that there are happy people in the world, and I think the
-Christians are not all such fools to wish to be happy. I am only
-astonished that they are happy with such little things."
-
-"It is nothing," said Golda. "They are not truly happy; they are only
-hiding away from themselves."
-
-"But I am finding myself," cried Mendel. "I shall no more paint fishes
-and onions. I shall paint only what I feel, and it will be beautiful.
-I am so clever I can paint anything I choose."
-
-"Go to your work now," said Golda. "You can boast as much as you
-please when the King has sent for you and told you you are the
-greatest artist in England. Go to your work."
-
-He went back to his studio and there found a letter from Logan, giving
-his new address in Camden Town, and another from Mitchell, asking him
-why he was so unfriendly. This he answered at once:--
-
-"You are no longer my friend. You have despised and injured me.
-Superior as I am to you, you have thought it your part as a gentleman
-to try to keep me in my place. You have treated me as a kind of
-animal. You cannot see that as an artist I am the equal of all men,
-the highest and the lowest. My own poor people I do not expect to know
-this, but of an educated man I do expect it. You cannot see this, and
-I count you lower than the lowest, and as such I am prepared to know
-you, and not otherwise. I have changed completely. I no longer believe
-in the Detmold or in Calthrop or in any of the things I reverenced as
-a student. I prefer the Academy, for it does not pretend to be
-advanced, and is honest though asleep. I am no longer a student. I am
-an artist. You will always be an art student, and so I say good-bye to
-you, as one says good-bye to friends on a station-platform. The train
-moves and all their affectionate memories and longings cannot stop it.
-The train moves and I am in it, and I say good-bye to you without even
-looking out of the window."
-
-This done, he sat down to work at a portrait of his father and mother,
-with which he was designing to eclipse his first exhibiting success.
-It seemed to him important that it should be finished. Hearing Issy
-come in, he shouted to him to come and sit instead of his father, who
-had given out that he was unwell and was indulging in a sleeping bout.
-
-Issy came shambling in, pale, tired, and unhappy. He sat as he was
-told, and said:--
-
-"I wish Harry would come back; the business is being too much for me."
-
-"Oh! I shall soon be rich and then I'll help you."
-
-"There's not much help for me," said Issy. "I'm like father. There's
-always something against me to keep me down. It seems funny to me that
-people will give you so much money for something they don't really
-want."
-
-"Come and look at it," said Mendel.
-
-Issy obeyed.
-
-"I don't think it's really like them. Why should anybody buy them who
-doesn't know them?"
-
-He spoke so heavily and dully that Mendel found it hard to conceal his
-irritation. When Issy had gone back to his chair, he asked:--
-
-"What do you live for, Issy?"
-
-"Live?" said Issy, mystified.
-
-"Yes. What do you like best in the world?"
-
-"Playing cards. Playing cards. Every day there's work and every night
-there's Rosa, and on Saturday I play cards. Yes. I play cards; and, of
-course, you are always something to think about."
-
-"What do you think about me?"
-
-"Oh! You will be rich and famous, and you will be able to choose among
-all the girls with money. It is like having a play always going on in
-the family. But I would rather play cards, and Rosa is not so bad as
-you all say she is. I am not a good husband to her, for I have moods
-and I cannot talk to her, for I cannot talk to anyone. What is there
-to say? She has her children, and she only wants more because she is a
-fool. It is not her fault."
-
-"That'll do, Issy. I've got all I want. I can't get any more from you.
-Some day I'll teach you how to be happy."
-
-"Oh!" said Issy, with a sly leer. "I know how to be happy. I can't see
-why anyone should want to have father and mother hanging on their
-walls."
-
-He slunk away.
-
-How depressing he was! Poor old Issy! as much a part of the street as
-the doors and windows of the houses. He might move a hundred yards to
-another exactly similar street, but he would always be the same. It
-was not his fault. Mendel knew the depths of devotion of which his
-brother was capable. It was devotion to his mother that kept him
-living round the corner, devotion to his father that tied him to the
-unprofitable business. The name of Kühler had attained the dignity of
-a brass-plate on the front door, and he would die rather than see it
-removed, at any rate in his father's lifetime.
-
-For the first time Mendel faced his circumstances squarely. With
-something of a shock he thought of the family arriving at Liverpool
-Street and never in all these years moving more than half a mile away
-from it, and that in this amazing London, with its trains and buses to
-take you from end to end of it in a little over an hour. His mother
-had never been west of the Bank. She did not even know where
-Piccadilly Circus was, or the Detmold, or the National Gallery, or the
-Paris Café, or Calthrop's studio, or any other important centre of
-life. Liverpool Street she knew, and outside Liverpool Street were the
-sea and Austria. . . . When there were no little happenings at home
-she would always fall back on Austria and the troubled days at the
-inn, and the soldiers who used to come in and ask to see the beautiful
-baby before they thought of ordering drinks, and her rich uncle who
-used to supply the barracks with potatoes and was so mean that he
-refused to give her any when she had not a penny in the world, and the
-neighbours who used to bring food so that the beautiful baby should
-not starve. . . . They stayed where they were, stormily passionate,
-yet with no sense of confinement, while he was drawn off into the
-swiftly moving whirligig of London, going from house to house, studio
-to studio, café to café, atmosphere to atmosphere, and all his
-passionate storms were spent upon nothing, were absorbed in the
-general movement, leaving him, tottering and dazed, in it, yet alien
-to it, discovering no soul in it all and losing the clear knowledge of
-his own.
-
-Surely now that was ended. She had sent him the yellow roses, and he
-had given them to his mother to join the two whom he loved. They must
-have touched her face before they came to him, and Golda had buried
-her face in them.
-
-Impatiently he awaited the time for him to go to the Detmold. He put
-on a clean collar and a black coat, but then he remembered how the old
-Jews whom he asked to sit for him always put on clean clothes and
-clipped their beards, under the impression that he wanted to
-photograph them. In his clean collar and black coat he felt as though
-he were going to the photographer's or to a wedding, and remembering
-how he had been dressed when he saw her for the first time on the
-stairs, he took out an old black shirt, a corduroy coat and trousers,
-and a red sash.
-
-He could not bring himself to wear the red sash. It reminded him of
-Mitchell, who had been with him when he bought it.
-
-* * * * *
-
-It had been very hot. The walls and the pavements gave out a dry,
-stifling heat. The smell of the street outside came up in waves--a
-smell of women and babies, leather and kosher meat. He must wait for
-the cool weather, he thought, before he asked her to the studio again.
-
-"She is only a little girl," he said to himself. "She is pretty, but
-she is only a little girl. I will tell her that she must not see
-Mitchell again, because he is not true. I will paint her portrait, and
-then I will not see her again, because she is only a little girl."
-
-He sat in the window with the clock in front of him, and directly it
-said half-past four he clapped his hat on his head, seized the
-silver-knobbed stick which at that time was an indispensable part of
-an artist's apparel, and bolted as though he were late for a train.
-
-* * * * *
-
-She was waiting for him. He took off his hat, but in his nervousness
-he could not speak, and as he could not remember which side of a lady
-he ought to walk, he bewildered her by dodging from one side to the
-other with a quick, catlike tread, so that she did not hear him, and
-whenever she turned to speak to him he was not there.
-
-"Wasn't it a good picnic!" she said enthusiastically. "It's the best
-picnic I've ever been to."
-
-"They are usually pretty good," he said lamely. "I think we'd better
-go by bus."
-
-They mounted a bus and sat silently side by side.
-
-When they stopped by the Cobden statue he said:--
-
-"A friend of mine has just taken a studio in Camden Town. His name is
-Logan."
-
-"Was he at the Detmold?"
-
-"No."
-
-That settled Logan for her. She began to feel anxious. Was the
-afternoon going to be a failure? Why could she never, never get the
-better of her shyness? She wanted to make him happy because, on the
-whole, people had been beastly to him and said such horrid things
-about him. She wanted him to feel for himself, and not only through
-her, that the world was a very wonderful place, a place in which to be
-happy. He was so stiff and different, so taut and tightly strung up,
-that lounging, loose-limbed Mitchell seemed graceful compared with
-him. Yet there was something unforgettable about him, and he had
-always had for her the vivid romantic reality of the beautiful young
-men on the stage, who were creatures of a delicious, absurd world
-which she would never enter and never wished to enter: a world where
-young men opened their arms and young women sank into them and were
-provided with happiness for ever and ever. Her vigour rejected this
-world, for she knew and lived in a better, but all the same it had its
-charm and its curious reality. . . .
-
-She was not shy because she had kissed him. That had passed with the
-shifting light through the trees and the clouds in the sky. It had
-been vivid and true for that moment, but it had perished and fallen
-away like a drop of water, like a rainbow.
-
-He remembered it. As he sat by her side and could feel the warm life
-in her, it became terribly actual to him, the cool contact of her
-lips, and he was glad when the bus reached the yard with the painted
-swing-boats and he need no longer sit by her side. He had begun to
-feel subservient to her, and he would not have that. What Rosa was to
-Issy, what Golda was to his father, that should a woman be to him, for
-it was good and decent so. . . . He was almost sorry he had come. He
-was painfully shy, and knew that she was suffering under it.
-
-He walked so fast that she was hard put to keep up with him, but she
-swung out and would not be beaten, and managed his pace without losing
-her breath. Over to the wooded side of the Heath he took her, and
-stopped under a chestnut-tree.
-
-"Shall we sit down?" he said. "Or would you like to go on walking?"
-
-"I'd like to sit down," she answered. "I love walking, but I can't
-talk at the same time."
-
-He sat down at once, without waiting for her to choose a spot.
-
-"This grass is nice and cool," he said.
-
-It was wet, but he had no thought for her thin cotton frock.
-
-She sat a couple of yards away from him on the short turf and plunged
-her arm into the long, cool grass. Then she lay on her stomach and
-plucked a blade of grass and chewed it.
-
-"Thank you for sending me the roses. I gave them to my mother."
-
-"I liked your mother."
-
-"She liked you. She said: 'That is a good girl.' She is very quick at
-guessing what people are like."
-
-"I'm glad she liked me."
-
-Once again conversation died away, but she seemed content to lie there
-with her arms in the cool grass. Their round slenderness fascinated
-him. Her short hair hung over her face, so that he could only see the
-tip of her chin.
-
-Suddenly he asked her:--
-
-"Do you send flowers to Mitchell?"
-
-"Yes," she said, and her head was lowered so that the tip of her chin
-was hidden by her hair.
-
-He said nothing, but he too lay on the grass, flat on his stomach,
-with his head on his arms. His heart began to thump, and, though he
-tried to control it, it would not be still. Without raising his head
-he said, in a choking voice that astonished him:--
-
-"My father fainted for love of my mother. When he heard her name he
-fainted away."
-
-She said nothing, only in the long grass her fingers were still. Her
-white hands in the grass fascinated him, held his eyes transfixed, the
-green blades coming up through the white fingers that were so still.
-He stared at them as though they were some strange flower, and for him
-they had nothing to do with her at all. He drew himself near to them,
-never taking his eyes off them--white and green, white and green and
-pink at the finger-tips. He must touch them. They were cool, soft, and
-firm, soft as the petals of a rose.
-
-He grasped them like a child seizing a pretty toy, but when they were
-in his grasp he was no longer like a child. A single impulse thrilled
-through all his body and made it strong even as a giant. With one easy
-swing of his arm he pulled her to him, held her with a vast
-tenderness, and held her so, gazing into her face. Her lips parted,
-and he kissed them. . . .
-
-It was she who first found words:--
-
-"Oh Mendel! I do love you."
-
-He was amazed at his own strength, at his own tenderness. . . . So
-that was a kiss! And this, this, this was love! It was incredible! How
-sweet and easy were his emotions. He was as free and light as the wind
-in the leaves.
-
-She had slipped from his arms, but she was singing through all his
-veins, she and no other, she and nothing else in the world. And he was
-in her, perfectly, beautifully aware of her body and of the ecstasy in
-it, of the tree above them, of the dove-coloured clouds, of the cool
-green grass, of the yellow earth crumbling out of the mound yonder,
-and of the ecstasy in them all.
-
-So for many moments they lay in silence, until as suddenly as it had
-come his strength left him, and he broke into a passionate babble of
-words:--
-
-"You must not send flowers to Mitchell, because he cannot love you and
-I can. He knows nothing, and I know a great deal. I know women and the
-ways of women, for many have loved me, but I have loved none but you.
-No woman has been my friend except my mother. I did not look for any
-woman to be like my mother. I am not an Englishman who can love with
-pretty words. I love, and it is like that tree, growing silently until
-it dies. It has stolen on me as softly as the night, and I sink into
-it as I sink into the night, to sleep. It is as though the dark night
-were suddenly filled with stars and all the stars had become flowers
-and poured their honey into my thoughts. When your white hands were in
-the grass they were like flowers and they seemed to belong to me, as
-all beautiful things belong to me because I can love them."
-
-She came nearer to him and laid her hand on his, and she said:--
-
-"I am very, very happy."
-
-And she laughed and added:--
-
-"I _was_ glad when you made that catch."
-
-He was beyond laughter. For him laughter was for trivial things. She
-had stopped the flow of his thoughts, the rush of his emotions up into
-his creative consciousness. Wave upon wave of passion surged through
-him, racked him, tortured him, tossing his soul this way and that,
-threatening to hurl it down and smash it on the hardness of his
-nature. He set his teeth and would not wince. If she could laugh she
-could know nothing of that. She was shallow, she was young. . . . Was
-it because he was a Jew that he seemed so old compared with her? . . .
-What was it she lacked that she could laugh and leave him to the
-torment she had provoked?
-
-But she was aware of the curious blankness that had come over his end
-of their twilight silence, and she suffered from it, thinking: "Am I
-an awful woman? Can I give nothing?" And she turned to him to give,
-and give all the rare treasures of her soul, of her heart, to lay them
-before him for his delight. But what she had already given had let
-loose a storm in him that blotted out all the beauty of the scene, all
-the loveliness of their love, the gift and the taking of it, and left
-him with only the dim light of her purity.
-
-Soon the storm passed and they had nothing but an easy delight in each
-other's company, each turning to each as to a warm fire by which to
-laugh and talk and make merry.
-
-He told her stories of his childhood, of his brothers and his father,
-and Mr. Kuit, the thief, who had bought him his first suit; of his
-childish joy in painting, and there he stopped short. Of his misery he
-was unable to speak.
-
-"You do believe in yourself," she said.
-
-"Why not?" he replied; "I am a man. When I hold my hands before my
-eyes they are real. They are flesh and blood. I must believe in them.
-And I am all flesh and blood. I must believe."
-
-"And everything else is real to you."
-
-"Everything that I love is real. And what I do not love I hate, so
-that is real too."
-
-They wandered about the Heath until night came and the stars shone,
-and then they plunged into the glitter of London, where all people and
-things were deliciously fantastic and comic, flat and kinematographic,
-as though, if you walked round to the other side, you would discover
-that they were painted on one side only. It gave them the glorious
-illusion of being the only two living people in the world, for they
-and only they had loved since the world began, and all the other
-lovers were only people in a story, living happily ever after or
-coming to an end of their love, neither of which could happen to them
-because they were, always had been, and always would be in love.
-
-They dined at the Pot-au-Feu, where they encountered Mitchell, who had
-the effrontery to come and speak to them. He was very friendly and
-spoke as though nothing had happened. They told him they had been to
-Hampstead and recommended him to try it when he found London too
-stuffy.
-
-When he had gone away, Morrison said:--
-
-"I am going away soon."
-
-"Going away? But you mustn't go away."
-
-"I have to go next week. My mother has fits of anxiety about my being
-in London every now and then, and she drags me off home. She has got
-one of them now. She can't see that if any harm were going to happen
-to me it would have happened during my first year, when I didn't know
-anything and was very lonely. I don't think I'm very real to her,
-somehow."
-
-She gave a little shiver of distaste at the thought of going home.
-
-"But you mustn't go away," said Mendel. "I want you, always."
-
-"And I want to be with you, but if I refused to go home now, I should
-have to go for always, for I should have no money."
-
-He was plunged into a dejected silence, and with hardly a word more he
-took her home.
-
-* * * * *
-
-They had a whole week of this warm happiness. He abandoned every other
-thought, every other pursuit, every other friend. He put aside his
-work to paint her portrait, and she came every day to his studio. At
-night he hardly slept at all for his longing for the next day to come
-and bring her to his studio, that now seemed immense, airy, ample even
-for such a giant as he felt. . . . He adored her even when she
-laughed, even when she teased him. He even learned occasionally to
-laugh at himself. It was worth it to see the amazing happiness he gave
-her.
-
-One morning as he was painting her, he said:--
-
-"I can't believe you are going away."
-
-"It is true, more's the pity."
-
-"But you are not going, for I will marry you."
-
-He said this in a matter-of-fact tone as he went on with his painting.
-The picture was coming on well and he was pleased with it. He stepped
-back and looked at it from different angles. It seemed a long time
-before she made the expected matter-of-fact reply, and he looked up at
-her. She was hanging her head and plucking at her skirt nervously. She
-heard him stop in his work, and she replied:--
-
-"I don't . . . think . . . I want to marry you, Mendel. I don't . . .
-think . . . I want to marry anybody."
-
-"I'm making plenty of money and I can get commissions for portraits. I
-could make it up with Birnbaum. We could go to Italy together."
-
-"Don't make it harder for both of us, Mendel. . . . I don't want . . .
-to marry."
-
-"You will go back home, then?"
-
-"Please . . . please . . ." she implored him.
-
-A fury began to rise in him. He stamped his foot on the ground and
-struck his brush across the picture. He made a tremendous effort to
-recover himself, but before he could say another word she had slipped
-through the door and was gone. He darted after her, and reached the
-front-door just in time to see her running as hard as she could down
-the street and round the corner.
-
-Just as he was, in his shirt-sleeves, hatless and collarless, he went
-in to see his mother. He was white-hot with rage, and he walked up to
-her and looked her up and down as though he were trying to persuade
-himself that she was to blame.
-
-"What do you think the news is now?"
-
-Golda put her hand to her heart and looked at him fearfully as she
-shook her head.
-
-"I've been refused," he said, "refused by the Christian girl."
-
-"Refused!" cried Golda, who had never heard of such a thing as a girl
-refusing to marry a rich young man.
-
-"Yes. I proposed to her and she refused."
-
-"The Christians are all alike," said Golda. "They keep themselves to
-themselves, and you must do the same."
-
-She took a smoked herring from the cupboard and cut it into portions.
-
-"And when your time for marrying comes you must look among the Jews,
-for the Jews are good people. No Jewish girl would serve you a trick
-like that. Jewish girls know that they must marry and they are good.
-But she is young, and you are young, and you will both forget."
-
-
-
-VI
-
-CAMDEN TOWN
-
-FROM the magnificent studio in Hammersmith to two rooms in Camden Town
-Mr. James Logan removed his worldly goods, a paint-box, half-a-dozen
-canvases, two pairs of trousers, three shirts, a "Life of Napoleon" in
-two volumes, and a number of photographs of famous pictures. The
-magnificent studio had been lent to him by the mistress of its owner,
-who had returned unexpectedly from abroad, and Mr. James Logan's
-departure from it was hurried, but unperturbed.
-
-"In my time," he said, "I have kept Fortune busy, but her tricks leave
-me unmoved. She will get tired of it some day and leave me alone."
-
-All the same he did not relish the change. He was nearly thirty and
-had tasted sufficient comfort to relish it and to prize it. Also he
-could not forget the ambitions with which he had come to London five
-years before. In the North he had won success by storm, and he could
-not understand any other tactics. He was an extraordinary man and
-expected immediate recognition of the fact. Upon his own mind his
-personality had so powerful an effect that he was blind to the fact
-that it did not have a similar effect upon the minds of others. Women
-and young men he could always stir into admiration, but men older than
-himself were only affronted. He knew it and used to curse them:--
-
-"These clods, these hods, these glue-faced ticks have no more sap in
-them than a withered tree. They hate me as a mule hates a stallion,
-and for the same reason. May God and Mary have mercy on what little is
-left of their souls by the time they come to judgment!"
-
-He cursed them now as he laid his trousers on the vast new double-bed
-he had bought and went into his front room to arrange his easel and
-canvas for work. Whatever happened to him he would go on painting,
-because he saw himself like that, standing as firm as a rock before
-his easel, painting, while the world, for all he cared, went to rack
-and ruin. What else could happen to a world that refused to recognize
-its artists?
-
-Painting was truly a joy to him. He loved the actual dabbling with the
-colours, laying them out on his palette, mixing them, evolving rare
-shades; he loved the fiery concentration and absorption in the making
-of a picture; the renewed power of sight when he turned from a picture
-to the world; the glorious nervous energy that came thrilling through
-his fingers in moments of concentration; the feeling of the
-superiority of this power to all others in the world. And so, whatever
-happened, he turned to his easel and painted. Love, debt, passion,
-quarrels, all the disturbances of life came and went, but painting
-remained, inexhaustible. So he had been happy, free, unfettered, gay,
-avoiding all responsibility because it was his formula that the
-artist's only responsibility is to his art.
-
-He was doubly happy now because he knew he had made an impression on a
-young man whose sincerity and vigour of purpose he could not but
-respect. He was himself singularly impressionable, and like a sponge
-for sucking up the colour of any strong personality. And Mendel had
-the further attraction for him that he was pure London, of the
-shifting, motley London that Logan, as a provincial, adored. This
-London he had touched at many points, but never through a strong
-living soul that had, and most loyally acknowledged, London as its
-home.
-
-Logan's visit to Mendel in the East End had been one of the great
-events of his life. Through it he had found his feet where he had been
-floundering, though, of course, happily and excitedly enough.
-
-He told himself that now he was going to settle down to work, to the
-great productive period of his life, such as was vouchsafed to every
-real artist who was tough enough to pay for it in suffering. He would
-rescue Mendel's genius from the Detmold and the ossified advanced
-painters, and together they would smash the English habit of following
-French art a generation late, and they would lay the foundations of a
-genuine English art, a metropolitan art, an art that grew naturally
-out of the life of the central city of the world.
-
-Logan always worked by programme, but hitherto he had changed his
-programme once a week. Now he was sure that this was the programme of
-his life. It would be amended, of course, by inspiration, but its
-groundwork was permanent. He was enthusiastic over it. . . . Of
-course, this was what he had always been seeking, and hitherto he had
-been fighting the London which absorbed the talents of the country,
-masticated them, digested them, and evacuated them in the shape of
-successful painters for whom neither life nor art had any meaning, or
-in the shape of vicious wrecks who crawled from public-house to
-public-house and died in hospitals.
-
-It was time that was stopped. It was time for London to be made to
-recognize that it had a soul, and this generation must begin the task,
-for never before had a generation been so faced with the blank
-impossibility of accepting the work, thought, and faith of its
-predecessor. Never had it been so easy to slip out of the stream of
-tradition, for never had tradition so completely disappeared
-underground.
-
-"'He that hath eyes to see, let him see,'" quoth Logan, and he hurled
-himself into his work, dancing to and fro, squaring his shoulders at
-it as though the picture were an adversary in a boxing-match.
-
-* * * * *
-
-At half-past four he laid down his brushes and began to arrange the
-room, pinning photographs on the walls, and unpacking certain articles
-of furniture, as a rug, a great chair, and mattresses to make a divan,
-which he had bought that morning. Every now and then he ran to the
-window, threw up the sash, and looked up and down the street.
-
-At last with a tremor of excitement he leaned out and waved his hand,
-shut the window, and ran downstairs. In a moment or two he returned
-with the girl of the Tube station. She was wearing the same clothes,
-with the addition of a cheap fur boa, and she panted a little from the
-run upstairs with him.
-
-"I'm glad you came," he said. "I was afraid you wouldn't."
-
-"Oh! It's not far from where I live," she said. "But you are in a
-mess."
-
-"I've only just got in. I would have asked you to my old place, but I
-had to leave."
-
-"So you're a nartist," she said. "I thought you were something funny."
-
-"Funny!" snorted Logan. "I call a shop-walker funny; or a banker, for
-that matter, or a millionaire. An artist is the most natural thing to
-be in the world. . . . Take your hat and gloves off and give me a
-hand, and then we'll have tea."
-
-"Oh! I love my tea."
-
-"I know all about tea. I get it from a friend of mine in the City. I
-know how to make it, too."
-
-They worked together, arranging, dusting, keeping deliberately apart
-and eyeing each other surreptitiously. He liked her slow, heavy,
-indolent movements, and she exaggerated them for him. She liked his
-quick, firm, decisive actions, and he accentuated them for her; and
-she liked his thick, black hair and his strong hands.
-
-He picked up the great chair and held it at arm's-length.
-
-"Oo! You are strong," she said.
-
-"I could hold you up like that."
-
-"I'd like to see you try," and she gave a little giggle of protest.
-
-"I will if I don't like you," said he, "and I'll let you drop and
-break your leg."
-
-She went off into peals of laughter, and he laughed too.
-
-"It's such a jolly day," he said. "It only needed you to come to make
-everything perfect."
-
-"What made you speak to me the other night?" she asked.
-
-"I liked the look of you."
-
-"But I'm not that sort, you know."
-
-"It isn't a question of being that sort. I wanted to speak to you, and
-that was enough for me. Sit down and have some tea."
-
-The kettle was boiling, and he had already warmed the pot. He measured
-out the tea carefully, poured the water onto it, and gave her a blue
-china cup. He produced an old biscuit-tin containing some French
-pastry, and then sat on the floor while she consumed the lot.
-
-It gave him great pleasure to see her eat, and he liked her healthy,
-childish greed. She had the face of a spoiled child, a very soft skin,
-and plump, yielding flesh. He liked that. It soothed and comforted him
-to look at her, while at the same time he was irritated by her inward
-plumpness and easiness.
-
-"You've always had a good time," he said.
-
-"Oh yes! I've seen to that."
-
-"You're not a London girl."
-
-"No; Yorkshire."
-
-"I'm from Lancashire."
-
-"Eeh! lad," she said, her whole voice altering and deepening into an
-astonishingly full note, "are ye fra' Lancashire? Eeh! a'm fair
-clemmed wi' London. Eeh! I am glad ye coom fra' Lancashire."
-
-"What are you doing in London?"
-
-"I'm working in Oxford Street, though not one of the big shops."
-
-"Like it?"
-
-"M'm! Well enough."
-
-"Of course you don't, handing out laces and ribbons----"
-
-"'Tisn't laces and ribbons. It's corsets."
-
-"Corsets, then, to women who haven't a tenth of your looks or your
-vitality."
-
-"It can't be helped if they have the money and I haven't, can it?"
-
-"Money doesn't matter. What's money to you, with all the rich life in
-you? Money cannot buy that, nor can it buy what will satisfy you."
-
-"And what's that?"
-
-"Love and freedom."
-
-"Ooh! you are a talker."
-
-"I'm not flirting with you. I haven't got time for that."
-
-He laid his hand on her foot, which was covered with a thin cotton
-stocking. She did not move it.
-
-"You needn't stare at me like that," she said, with a curious
-thickness in her voice.
-
-"I can't help staring," he answered, "when I mean what I say." He
-pressed his lips together and scowled, and shook her foot playfully.
-There was an exhilarating pleasure in startling and mastering her by
-directness. It was like peeling the bark off a stick. The thin layers
-of affectation came off easily and cleanly, leaving bare the white
-sappy smoothness of her innocent sensuality.
-
-"I do mean what I say," he added. "Why should we beat about the bush?
-I asked you to come to-day because I wanted you. You came because you
-knew I wanted you."
-
-"You asked me to tea."
-
-"All right. And you'll stay to dinner. People have made love to you
-before."
-
-"Well, no . . . yes. . . . Not like . . ."
-
-"Don't tell lies," he said. "You saw me at the station long before I
-saw you, and you wanted me to see you. That was why you stayed at the
-booking-office."
-
-"You were with such a pretty boy," she said.
-
-"Boy! You're not old enough to care for pretty boys."
-
-"But he _was_ pretty."
-
-"Be quiet!" he said, kneeling by her side. "You may want me to take
-weeks over making all sorts of foolish advances to you, but I'm not
-going to waste time. I've wasted too much time over that sort of
-rubbish. We both know what we want and you are going to stay with me."
-
-"No."
-
-"I say yes."
-
-"No." And she sprang to her feet and walked to the door. There she
-turned. He had picked up her gloves.
-
-"Will you give me my gloves, please?"
-
-"No."
-
-"Will you give me my gloves?"
-
-"No."
-
-"Then I shall go without them."
-
-"Very well. Good-bye."
-
-"If I stay, will you promise not to talk like that?"
-
-"I don't want you to stay under those circumstances."
-
-"You're an insulting beast."
-
-"Not at all. I honour your womanhood by not pretending that it isn't
-there."
-
-"Will you give me my gloves?"
-
-She ran across and tried to snatch them out of his hand. He gripped
-and held her, and she gave a wild laugh as he kissed her.
-
-She clung to him as he let her sink back into the great chair. She lay
-with her eyes closed and her lips parted while he sat and poured
-himself out another cup of tea. His hand was shaking so that he
-spilled some tea on his new rug.
-
-"That's all right," he said. "I'll give you a week to get used to me,
-and if at the end of that time you don't like me, you can go."
-
-"I haven't any friends," she said in a low voice, "and you get sick of
-girls and the shop. You get sick of going out in the evening up and
-down the streets and into the cinemas, and finding some damn fool to
-take you to a music-hall. Such a lot of people and nobody to know."
-
-"There's a lot of fun in living with an artist," he said. "You meet
-queer people and amusing women, and you wouldn't find me dull to live
-with."
-
-"I felt queer as I came near the house," she said, "as though I knew
-something was going to happen. I feel very queer now."
-
-"That's love," said Logan grimly. "Love isn't what you thought it
-was."
-
-"You must let me go now."
-
-"When will you come again?"
-
-"Never."
-
-"Oh yes, you will."
-
-"Stop it!" she cried. "Stop it! I'm not going to be flummoxed by the
-like of you."
-
-"But you are," he said. "You poor darling!"
-
-He took her hand and stroked it tenderly.
-
-"Don't you see that you are flummoxed by something that is stronger
-than both of us? I'm shaken by it, and I'm whipcord. We're poor
-starving people, God help us! and we can save each other. We knew we
-could do it at once, when we met. . . . If I said all the pretty
-things in the world it wouldn't help. We're too far gone for that.
-When you're starving you don't want chocolates. . . . I'm only saying
-what I know. It is true of myself. If I have made a mistake about you,
-I am sorry. You can go. . . . Have I made a mistake?"
-
-For answer she turned towards him, gazed at him with glazing eyes,
-raised her arms, and drew him into them.
-
-* * * * *
-
-A week later Nelly Oliver dined with Logan and Mendel at the
-Pot-au-Feu. They had a special dinner and drank champagne, for it was
-what Logan called the "nuptial feast."
-
-Oliver, as they called her, was flushed with excitement, and kept on
-telling Mendel that he was the prettiest boy she had ever seen. She
-called Logan "Pip"--"Pip darling," "Pip dearest," "Pipkin" and
-"Pipsy"--because she said he was like an orange-pip, bitter and hard
-in the midst of sweetness.
-
-"Pip says you're a genius," she said to Mendel. "What does he mean?"
-
-Mendel disliked her, though he tried hard to persuade himself that she
-was charming. He was baffled by the solemnity with which Logan was
-taking her, for she seemed to him the type made for occasional solace
-and not for companionship. Exploring her with his mind and instinct,
-she seemed to him soft and pulpy, not unlike an orange, and if she and
-Logan were to set up a common life, then he would be like a pip
-indeed. . . . How could he explain to her the nature of genius? Can
-you explain the night to an insect that lives but an hour in the
-morning?
-
-"I don't know," he said brusquely.
-
-Logan was dimly aware that his friend and his girl were not pleasing
-each other, and he set himself to keep them amused. He succeeded
-fairly well, but his humour was forced, for he was under the spell of
-the girl and the thought of the adventure to which she had consented.
-She knew it, and was loud and shrill and triumphant, continually
-setting Mendel's teeth on edge, for the purity of his instinct was
-disgusted by the blurring and swamping of life by any emotion, and the
-quality of hers was not such as to win indulgence.
-
-"Logan will tell you what genius is," he said.
-
-"She'll find that out soon enough if she lives with me," growled Logan
-a little pompously.
-
-Oliver put her head on one side and looked languishingly at Mendel as
-she drawled:--
-
-"It's a pity you haven't got a nice girl. Then there would be four of
-us."
-
-"Don't be a fool!" snapped Logan. "What does he want with girls at his
-age?"
-
-Oliver's lips trembled and she pouted in protest.
-
-"I only thought it would be nice to round off the party. When you're
-in love you can't help wanting everybody else to have some too."
-
-Mendel was torn between dislike of her and admiration of Logan's
-masterful handling of the problem of desire. . . . No nonsense about
-getting married or falling in love. He saw the woman he wanted and
-took her and made her his property, and the woman could not but
-acquiesce, as Oliver had done. In a dozen different ways she
-acknowledged Logan's lordship, even in her deliberate efforts to
-exasperate him. Their relationship seemed to Mendel simple and
-excellent, and he envied them. How easy his life would become if he
-could do the same! What freedom there would be in having a woman to
-throw in her lot with his! It would settle all his difficulties,
-absolve him from his dependence on his family, and deliver him from
-the attentions of unworthy women.
-
-"How shall we dress her?" asked Logan.
-
-Mendel took out his sketch-book and drew a rough portrait of Oliver in
-a gown tight-fitting above the waist and full in the skirt.
-
-"I should look a guy in that," she said. "It's nothing like the
-fashion."
-
-"You've done with fashion," said Logan. "You've done with the world of
-shops and snobs and bored, idiotic women. You're above all that now.
-In the first place there won't be any money for fashion, and in the
-second place there's no room in our kind of life for rubbish. You're a
-free woman now, and don't you forget it, or I'll knock your head off."
-
-"But it's a horrible, ugly dress," said Oliver, almost in tears.
-
-"It's what you're going to wear. I'll buy the stuff to-morrow and make
-it myself. What colour would you like?"
-
-"I won't wear it."
-
-"Then you can go back to your shop."
-
-"You know I can't. I've said good-bye to all the girls."
-
-"Then you'll wear the dress."
-
-"I shan't."
-
-"For God's sake don't quarrel," said Mendel. "One would think you had
-been married for ten years. Let her wear what she likes until she
-wants some new clothes."
-
-"Highty Tighty! Little boy!" sang Oliver. "You talk as though I were a
-little girl."
-
-"You behave like one," snapped Mendel, and her face was overcast with
-a cloud of malignant sulkiness.
-
-* * * * *
-
-They went on to a music-hall, where Logan and she sat with their arms
-locked and their shoulders pressed together, whispering and babbling
-to each other.
-
-Mendel sat bolt upright with his arms folded, staring at the stage but
-seeing nothing, so lost was he in the contemplation of the strange
-turn of affairs by which the adventure which had promised to lead him
-straight to art had deposited him in a muddy little pool of life. He
-would not submit to it. He would not surrender Logan and all the hopes
-he had aroused. Prepared as he had been to follow Logan through fire,
-he would not shrink when the way led through the morass. Friendship
-was to him no fair-weather luxury, and nothing but falsehood or
-faithlessness in his friend could make him relinquish it.
-
-He told himself that Logan would soon tire of it, that Oliver would go
-the way of her kind. She was, after all, better than Hetty Finch,
-since she had a capacity for childish enjoyment.
-
-She revelled in the sentimental ditties and the suggestive humours of
-the comedians, pressed closer and closer to Logan, and grew elated and
-strangely exalted as the evening wore on. And as they left the
-music-hall she gripped Mendel's arm and brought her face close to his
-and whispered:--
-
-"Do wish me luck, Kühler. Give me a kiss for luck."
-
-He kissed her and mumbled: "Good luck!"
-
-"Come and see us to-morrow," she said. "We shall be all right
-to-morrow."
-
-"Oh, come along!" cried Logan, dragging her away; and Mendel stood in
-the glaring light of the portico and watched them as, arm in arm, they
-were swallowed up in the crowd hurrying and jostling its way home to
-the dark outer regions of London.
-
-He had an appalling sense of being left out of it. Everything passed
-and he remained. He lived in a circle of light into which, like moths,
-came timid, blinking, lovable figures, and he loved them; but they
-passed on and were lost in the tumultuous, heaving darkness of life,
-into which alone he could not enter. . . . Did he desire to enter it?
-He did not know, but he was hungry for something that lay in it, or,
-perhaps, beyond it.
-
-
-
-VII
-
-MR. TILNEY TYSOE
-
-LOGAN with Oliver was more startling and exhilarating than before. He
-was filled with a ferocious energy, and his programme was distended
-with it.
-
-He said to Mendel:--
-
-"She's an inspiration. I have found what I was seeking. You have given
-me the inspiration of art. Through you I shall reach the heights of
-the spirit. She has given me the inspiration of life, and through her
-I shall plumb the very depths of humanity. She is marvellous. All the
-exasperation of modern life is in her, all the impatient brooding on
-the threshold of new marvels. You think she is stupid, I know, but
-that is only because she has in herself such an immense wealth of
-instinctive knowledge of life that she does not need to judge it by
-passing outward appearances. I am amazed at her, almost afraid of her.
-Something tremendous will come out of her. . . . By God! It makes me
-sick to think of all the dabbling in paint that goes on, not to speak
-of all the dabbling in love. Love? The word has become foolish and
-empty. I don't wish to hear it uttered ever again. . . . I swear that
-if it doesn't come out in paint I shall write poetry. Oh! I can feel
-the marrow in my bones again, and my veins are full of sap. . . . But
-I want to talk business."
-
-"Business?" said Mendel, who had been upset and bewildered by this
-outburst.
-
-"Yes. I want you to approve my programme, for you must have a
-programme. It is all very well to work by the light of inspiration.
-That can work quite well as far as you yourself are concerned, but
-what about the public? what about the other artists?--damn them! We're
-going to burst out of the groove, but we must have a good reason for
-doing so."
-
-"Surely it is reason enough that one can't work in it."
-
-"Not enough for them. They must be mystified and impressed. They must
-be unable to place us. They must feel that we are up to something, but
-they must be unable to say what it is."
-
-"I don't care what they say," said Mendel.
-
-"But you must care. When we have carried out the programme, then you
-can do as you like, but till then we must pull together. We must do it
-for the sake of art. We must make a stand, not to found a school or to
-say that this and no other style of drawing is right, but to assert
-the sacred duty of the artist to paint according to his vision and his
-creative instinct."
-
-This was coming very near to Mendel's own feeling, and he remembered
-the torture he had been through to learn the Detmold style of drawing,
-and how some virtue had gone out of his work in the effort.
-
-"It is the artist's business," said Logan, "to create out of the life
-around him an expression of it in form."
-
-"I agree," said Mendel.
-
-"Accurate imitation is not necessarily an expression, is it? You know
-it isn't. A picture must be a created thing. It must have a life of
-its own, and to have that it must grow through the artist's passion
-out of the life around him. It is all rubbish to look back, to talk of
-going back to the Primitives or the Byzantines or Egypt. You can learn
-a great deal from those old people about pictures, but you cannot
-learn how to paint your own pictures from them, because you can only
-live in your own life and your own time, and if you are a good artist
-your work will transcend both. . . . Now, tell me, where is the work
-that is expressing the glorious, many-coloured life of London, where
-is the work that does not give you a shock as you come to it out of
-the street, the thrilling, vibrant street, making you feel that you
-are stepping back ten, twenty, fifty years? . . . Why has life
-outstripped art?"
-
-"I don't know," said Mendel, whose head had begun to ache.
-
-"It has not only outstripped it," continued Logan. "It has begun to
-despise it."
-
-The postman knocked, and Mendel ran downstairs in feverish expectation
-of a letter from Morrison, to whom he had written imploring her to
-come again, or, if not, at least to let him have her address in the
-country. There was no letter for him, and as soon as he returned with
-a blank, disappointed face, Logan went on:--
-
-"People collect pictures as they collect postage-stamps, to keep
-themselves from being bored. Naturally they despise pictures, and they
-despise us for accepting those conditions. They are intolerable, and
-we must make an end of them. We are in a tight corner, and we should
-leave no trick and twist and turn untried to get out of it. If we do
-not do so then there will be no art, as there is no drama, no music,
-and no literature, and there will be no authority among men, and
-humanity will go to hell. It is on the road to it, and the artists
-have got to stop it."
-
-Mendel had not heard a word. He sat with his head in his hands
-thinking of Morrison, and hating her for the blank misery in which she
-had plunged him.
-
-"Humanity," said Logan cheerfully, "is fast going to hell. It likes
-it; and, as the democratic idea is that it should have what it likes,
-not a finger, not a voice is raised to stop it. Everything that stands
-in the way--ideals, decency, responsibility, passion, love--everything
-is smashed. Nothing can stop it unless their eyes are opened and their
-poor frozen hearts are thawed."
-
-"What did you say?" asked Mendel, having half-caught that last phrase.
-
-"We must try to stop it," said Logan. "We may be smashed and swept
-aside, but we must try to stop it. . . . I've been to see Cluny
-to-day. He has sold all your things except one drawing."
-
-"I know," replied Mendel, who had received an amazing account which
-showed about two-thirds of his earnings swallowed up in colours,
-brushes, frames, and photographs. He knew, but he was not interested.
-He was unhappy and restless and felt completely empty.
-
-"We passionate natures," said Logan, striding up and down like
-Napoleon on the quarter-deck of the _Bellerophon_--"we passionate
-natures must take control. We must be the nucleus of true fiery stuff
-to resist the universal corruption. We must be dedicated to the wars
-of the spirit."
-
-"I've got a splitting headache," said Mendel. "Do you mind not talking
-so much? The important thing for a painter is painting. What happens
-outside that doesn't matter."
-
-"You think so now," said Logan, "but you wait. You'll find that
-painting won't satisfy you. You will want to know what it is all for,
-and one of these days you will be thankful to me for telling you.
-. . . Cluny has taken on some of my things, and he has agreed to our
-having an exhibition together. What do you say to that?"
-
-"So long as I sell I don't care where I exhibit. Exhibitions are
-always horrible. They always make pictures look mean and
-insignificant."
-
-"You are in a mood to-day."
-
-"I tell you," cried Mendel in a fury--"I tell you I know what art is
-better than anybody. It touches life at one point, and one point only,
-and there it gives a great light. If life is too mean and beastly to
-reach that point, so much the worse for life. It does not affect art,
-which is another world, where everything is beautiful and true. I know
-it; I have always known it. I have lived in that world. I live in it,
-and I detest everything that drags me away from it and makes me live
-in the world of filth and thieves and scoundrels. Yes, I detest even
-love, even passion, for they make a fool and a beast of a man."
-
-"Young!" said Logan. "Very young! You'll learn. . . . But do be
-sensible and control your beast of a temper. Never mind my programme
-if it doesn't interest you. Will you accept Cluny's offer? It is worth
-it, for it will make you independent."
-
-"How much does he want?"
-
-"A dozen exhibits each."
-
-"Oh! very well."
-
-"And will you come and dine to-night with my fool of a patron, Mr.
-Tilney Tysoe?"
-
-"I don't want to know fools. I know quite enough already."
-
-"But I've promised to take you. . . . He adores Bohemians, as he calls
-us, and he buys pictures."
-
-"Does he give you good food?"
-
-"Some of the best in London."
-
-"All right."
-
-"Meet us at the Paris Café at seven-thirty. Don't dress. Tysoe would
-be dreadfully disappointed if you didn't turn up reeking of paint. It
-would be almost better not to wash."
-
-"Is Oliver going?"
-
-"Yes. Do you mind?"
-
-"No. . . . No."
-
-* * * * *
-
-It was an enormous relief to Mendel when Logan went. His enthusiasm
-was too exhausting, and it was maddening to have him talking of
-success and the triumph of art and the wars of the spirit when life
-had apparently reached up and extinguished the light of art
-altogether. For a brief moment, for a day or two, it had almost seemed
-to him that life and art were one, that everything was solved and
-simple, that he would henceforth only have to paint and pictures would
-flow from his brush as easily as song from a bird. This illusion had
-survived even the blow of Morrison's departure. He believed that it
-was enough for him to have had that hour of illumination, and that, if
-go she must, he could do without her. The flash of light had been the
-same, magnified a thousand times, as the inspiration that set him at
-work on a picture and then left him to wrestle with the task of
-translating it into terms of paint. She had appeared to him exactly in
-the same visionary way, an image shining in truth and beauty, an
-emanation from that other world, and he had thought he would at worst
-be left with the terrible ordeal of translating the vision into paint.
-. . . But when he looked at his pictures they oppressed him with their
-lifelessness and dark dullness, and the idea of painting disgusted
-him. It was even an acute pain, almost like a wound upon his heart, to
-handle a brush. He could not finish the portrait of his father and
-mother, and, at best, he could only force himself to paint
-flower-pieces.
-
-He was incapable of deceiving himself. He had never heard of devout
-lovers sighing in vain, and he had no sources of comfort within
-himself. Never had he shrunk from any torment, and this was so cruel
-as to be almost a glory, except that it meant such a deathly stillness
-and emptiness. He could not understand it, and he knew that it was
-past the comprehension of all whom he knew, even his mother. But he
-set his teeth and vowed that he would understand it if it took years.
-. . . A little girl, a little Christian girl! How was it possible?
-
-There was some relief in the thought of her, but very little. She was
-still too visionary, and when he tried to think of her in life, by his
-side, it was impossibly painful.
-
-Where was she? Why did she not write? Her silence was like ice upon
-his heart. . . . What kind of place did she live in? Among what
-people? How was he to imagine her? . . . To think of her among the
-trees or under the chestnut-tree was to be torn with impulses that
-could find no outlet; desires for creation that made painting seem a
-sham and a mockery.
-
-So keen, and fierce, and deep was his suffering that death seemed a
-little thing in comparison. When he tried to think of death he knew
-that it was not worth thinking of, and he was ashamed that the thought
-should have been in his mind.
-
-He knew that he must understand or perish. To say that he was in love
-was hopelessly inadequate. He knew how people were when they were in
-love. They were like Rosa, like animals, stupid and thick-sighted,
-with a thickening in their blood. But he was possessed with a
-clairvoyance that made everything round him seem transparent and
-flimsy, while thought crept stealthily, like a cat on a wall, and
-emotion was confounded.
-
-* * * * *
-
-For days he had hardly left his studio, and it was only with the
-greatest effort that he could bring himself to join Logan at the Paris
-Café. He felt weak, and the streets looked very strange, clear and
-bright, as they do to a convalescent. As he entered the café it seemed
-years since he had been there, ages since he had sat there trembling
-with excitement as he waited for the great Calthrop to come in. He
-remembered that excitement so vividly that something like it came
-rushing up in him, and he clutched at it for relief. . . . Calthrop
-was there with his little court of models and students. Mendel found
-himself laughing nervously as he stood and waited for the great man to
-recognize him. Calthrop looked up and nodded to him. He was wildly,
-absurdly delighted. He rushed over to Logan and Oliver and shook them
-enthusiastically by the hand.
-
-"Isn't it a splendid place?" he cried.
-
-"Have something to drink," said Logan. "You've been overworking."
-
-"You must say it's a splendid place," insisted Mendel, "or I shall go
-home. Just by that table where Calthrop is sitting is where I was
-arrested."
-
-"Oh, which is Calthrop?" asked Oliver eagerly.
-
-"The big man over there," said Mendel. "I was arrested just there, and
-I had to go on my knees to the manager to make him allow me to come
-here again. I had to apologize to him. At the time it was the greatest
-tragedy of my life."
-
-He had forgotten his dislike for Oliver in his elation at finding
-himself gay again, and he chattered on of the days when the café had
-seemed to him a heaven full of heroes. Oliver listened to him like a
-child. She loved stories, and she leaned forward and drank in his
-words, and she appeared to him as a very beautiful woman, desirable,
-intoxicating. Yet because Logan was his friend he would not envy him,
-but rejoiced in his possession of this rare treasure, a woman who
-could deliver up to him all the warm secrets of life. And he could not
-help saying so, and telling them how happy it made him to be with
-them.
-
-Logan and Oliver glanced at each other, and their hands met in a
-fierce grip under the table. Mendel could not see more than their
-glance, but the meeting of their eyes sent a flame like a white-hot
-sword darting at his heart. The sharp pain released him, and sent him
-shooting up into a wilder gaiety.
-
-He felt a hand on his shoulder, and, turning with a start, he saw Mr.
-Sivwright, his first master, standing above him. He rose and shook
-hands.
-
-"I am glad to see you," said Mr. Sivwright. "I've been meaning to
-write to you, but I've been away, out of London."
-
-Mendel introduced him to his friends and asked him to sit down.
-
-"I can't stop a moment," said Mr. Sivwright. "I'm very busy. I have
-just started a club for artists--opens at eleven. These absurd closing
-hours, you know. I hope you'll join. It has been open a week. Great
-fun, and I want some frescoes painted. . . . I'm very proud of your
-success, Kühler. I feel I had my hand in it."
-
-He produced a prospectus and laid it on the table, bowed awkwardly to
-Oliver, and with a self-conscious swagger, as though he felt the eyes
-of all in the café upon him, made his way out.
-
-"Who's that broken-down tick?" asked Logan.
-
-"Sivwright," answered Mendel. "He taught me when I was a boy. He's a
-very bad artist, and he thinks art ended with Corot. I learned to
-paint like Corot. Really! I used to go with him to the Park and weep
-over the trees in the twilight: I never thought I should see him
-again."
-
-"Oh! people bob up," said Logan. "We go on getting longer in the
-tooth, but people recur, like decimals."
-
-"Would you like to go to his club?" asked Mendel. "It says 'Dancing.'
-I feel like dancing."
-
-"Oh! I love dancing," said she.
-
-Logan assumed his air of mysterious importance and said it was time to
-go to Tysoe's.
-
-"We're twenty minutes late," he said; "Tysoe would be dreadfully put
-out if we were punctual."
-
-As Mendel had plenty of money they took a taxi-cab.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Mr. Tilney Tysoe was an idealist, and he had no other profession. He
-was a very tall man with a long cadaverous face, great bulging, watery
-eyes, and extraordinarily long hands, which hung limply from his
-wrist, except when he was excited, when they shot up with extreme
-violence, and carried his arms with them into a gesture so awkward
-that he had to find relief from it in a shrug. He was devoted to the
-arts, had a stall at the opera, a study full of books, and several
-rooms full of pictures. An artist was to him a great artist, a book
-that pleased him was a great book, and his constant lament was over
-the dearth of great men in public life. It gave him the keenest
-delight to see Logan, unkempt, wild-haired, shaggy, violent and
-brusque, enter his daintily furnished drawing-room, and his eyes
-passed eagerly to Oliver, looking just as she ought to have done, the
-mistress of a Bohemian.
-
-"Delighted! Delighted!" he said as he coiled his long white hand round
-Mendel's workmanlike paw. "My wife, I regret to say, is away. She will
-be so sorry to have missed you. Like me, she is tired of the shallow,
-artificial people we live among. We both adore sincere, real people. I
-adore sincerity. Sincerity is genius."
-
-"That is true," said Logan in a sepulchral voice that made Mendel
-jump. "At least, where you find sincerity, you may be sure that genius
-is not far behind."
-
-"I bought a picture of yours the other day, Mr. Kühler," said Tysoe.
-"I am ashamed to think how little I gave for it, but works of art are
-priceless, are they not?"
-
-"Mine are," said Mendel, overcoming his disgust and beginning to enjoy
-the game.
-
-"You think so," rejoined Tysoe with an undulation of his long body.
-"And why shouldn't you say so? You are sincere and strong. You must
-force your talent upon an ungrateful world."
-
-A man-servant announced dinner, and Tysoe gave his arm to Oliver and
-led her downstairs, while Logan put his hand on Mendel's shoulder and
-said with a chuckle:--
-
-"Be sincere."
-
-Mendel began at once with the soup, as though he had been wound up.
-
-"I have won every possible prize for painting and drawing, and the
-first picture I exhibited was the sensation of the year in art
-circles."
-
-"I remember it," said Tysoe.
-
-"Like my friend Logan, I am profoundly dissatisfied with the state of
-art in England, and though I am not an Englishman I have sufficient
-love for the country to wish to do my share in redeeming it. The first
-essential is a new technique, the second essential is a new spirit,
-and the third essential is sincerity."
-
-"Wonderfully true!" cried Tysoe. "Have some sherry. Wonderfully true!
-Now, take the ordinary man. He might feel all that, but would he dare
-to say it? No. That is why I, as an idealist, delight in the society
-of artists. You know where you are with them. Facts are facts with
-them."
-
-"I do like this sherry wine," said Oliver, beginning to feel very
-comfortable in the warm luxury of the dining-room.
-
-Logan kicked her under the table.
-
-Feeling that more was expected of him, Mendel wound himself up again
-and went on:--
-
-"Logan and I are going to hold an exhibition together. It will make a
-great stir, that is, if London is not altogether dead to sincerity. We
-think it is time that independence among artists was encouraged. Art
-must not be allowed to stop short at Calthrop----"
-
-He stopped dead as he realized that the wall opposite him held half a
-dozen drawings by Calthrop. Logan rushed in:--
-
-"Among real artists there is no rivalry. Art is not a competition. It
-is a constellation, like the Milky Way."
-
-"Ah! La Voie Lactée!" cried Tysoe, dropping into French, as he
-sometimes did when he was moved. "Quite so! La Voie Lactée!"
-
-"At home in Yorkshire," said Oliver, "there are sometimes two big
-stars hanging just over the top of the moors, and they say it means
-love or death if you see it at half-past nine."
-
-Logan took charge of the conversation, frowning at Mendel and Oliver
-as though they were naughty children. He described the masterpiece he
-was painting, and Tysoe said:--
-
-"I'm sure I shall like that. It sounds big and forceful, like
-yourself. Do let me have a look at it before anyone else sees it."
-
-Then he added:--
-
-"I saw a charming still-life of yours once. A melon, I think it was.
-What has become of it?"
-
-"It was sold, I fancy," replied Mendel, who had never painted a melon
-in his life.
-
-"Ah! A pity. I wanted some little thing for a wedding-present. No one
-I care about very much, so it must be a little thing."
-
-"He has two or three little things just now," said Logan. "If you sent
-a messenger-boy round to his studio he would let you see them."
-
-And suddenly Mendel could keep the game up no longer. He began to feel
-choked by the stuffy, empty luxury of the room, with its excess of
-plate and glass and flowers and furniture and pictures. His head
-seemed to be on the point of bursting. He must get out--out and away.
-He wanted to laugh, to scream with laughter, to shout, to die of
-laughter, anything to shake off the oppressive folly of his host. And
-he began to laugh, to shake and heave with it. He suppressed it, but
-at last he burst out with a roar and rushed from the room.
-
-"Overworked," said Logan imperturbably. "That's what it is. The poor
-devil hasn't learned sense yet. It's work, work, work with him, all
-the time. He thinks of nothing but his art, you know. Never has, ever
-since he was a boy. . . . He'll be a very great genius, and I shall be
-left far behind."
-
-"Not you," said Tysoe, "not you. I know no man in whom I have greater
-faith than you."
-
-"Do you think him as good as all that?" said Oliver eagerly. "I'm
-always telling him Kühler's not a patch on him."
-
-Meanwhile Mendel had taken refuge in the lavatory, where he shouted
-and shook and cried with laughter. When he had recovered himself he
-crawled back to the dining-room muttering inaudible apologies.
-
-"I'm sorry," he said. "I've not been myself lately."
-
-"You mustn't overdo it," said Tysoe kindly. "You have plenty of time.
-You need be in no hurry to overtake Logan. He is entering upon
-maturity. Your time will come."
-
-Mendel felt disturbed. He had not thought of Logan seriously as a
-painter, certainly not as a rival or a colleague. Logan was his
-friend. That Logan painted was incidental. It irritated him to have to
-sit and listen to him holding forth about painting. He had always
-liked Logan's talk, but had never really connected it with his work.
-It was just talk, like reading, or going to the cinema--a sop, a drug,
-soothing and pleasant when he was in the mood for it, maddening when
-he was not.
-
-It was as though a spring had been touched, releasing his
-intelligence, which had always been kept apart from his work. For the
-first time he felt, though never so little, detached from it, while at
-the same moment the awful inward pressure of his emotional crisis was
-relaxed. He was happier, and less wildly gay, and he began to realize
-that he had astonishingly good food in front of him, good wine in
-plenty, delicious fruits to come, and fragrant coffee brewing there on
-the sideboard among bright-hued liqueur bottles. . . . There was no
-need to listen to Logan. There was pleasure enough in eating and
-drinking and watching Oliver, and thinking how good it would be to
-dance with her, and perhaps with others--little women whom he would
-hold in his arms and feel them yield to every movement that he made.
-. . .
-
-He was left alone with Oliver after dinner, while Logan and Tysoe
-retired to the study.
-
-"You've made him very happy," he said rather unsteadily.
-
-"Oh, yes!" said she. "It was like a Fate, wasn't it? I always had a
-feeling that I wasn't like other girls. I always thought something out
-of the way would happen to me, though I never thought of anything like
-this."
-
-"You mustn't tell me about him," said Mendel.
-
-"I must tell someone or I shall die. He's so extraordinary. He says
-it's something deeper than love, and I think it must be."
-
-"You must not talk about it," he said.
-
-"It makes all the stuff he talks about seem silly. I don't understand
-it, do you?"
-
-She lay back in her chair and swung her foot, with her eyes fixed on
-the door waiting for Logan to return.
-
-Mendel's dislike of her sprang up in him again, and he was a little
-afraid of her: of her big, fleshy body, so full now of little
-trickling streams of pleasure; of her eyes, watching, watching, with
-the strange, glassy steadiness of the eyes of a bird of prey. . . . He
-decided that he would not dance with her. He would dance with the
-others--the little, harmless, pretty fools.
-
-To reassure himself he told himself that Logan was happy, and strong
-enough to resist the growing will in this woman.
-
-
-
-VIII
-
-THE MERLIN'S CAVE
-
-LOGAN had cajoled twenty pounds out of Mr. Tysoe, who stood on his
-doorstep, dangling his long hands, while his admired guests crept into
-a taxi-cab. He swung from side to side:--
-
-"I have had a most delightful evening--most charming, most inspiring."
-
-Inside the cab Logan waved the cheque triumphantly and Oliver tried to
-snatch it from him. They had an excited scuffle, which ended in a
-kiss.
-
-"What's the matter with the man?" asked Mendel.
-
-"He's just a fool," replied Logan, "a padded fool. His only virtue is
-that he does really think me a wonderful fellow, and he is kind. But
-how I hate such kindness, the last virtue, the last refuge of the
-decrepit! It is a perfume, a herb with which they are embalmed."
-
-"I thought he was a very nice old gentleman," said Oliver.
-
-"He seemed to me," said Mendel, "the kind of man who thinks of nothing
-but women all day long."
-
-"Hit it in once!" cried Logan. "A parrot will not do more for an
-almond than he will for a commodious drab. He could take a nun and by
-force of living with her and surrounding her with every luxury turn
-her into a whore, because she would in time become only another
-luxury. That is what men grow into if they lose the spirit of freedom.
-. . . Where are we going to?"
-
-"I told the man to go to Sivwright's club. It is called The Merlin's
-Cave."
-
-* * * * *
-
-The club proved to be a cellar filled with little tables. There was a
-commissionaire at the door and a book had to be signed. The rack of
-the cloakroom contained several silk-lined overcoats and opera-hats.
-
-"It's going to be damned expensive," said Logan.
-
-"I'll pay," replied Mendel. "It's my fault."
-
-Two tall young men in immaculate evening dress had entered just after
-them. They gave out an air of wealth and cleanliness and made Logan
-and Oliver look common and shabby. Mendel hated the two young men.
-What had they done to look so well-fed and unruffled? Obviously they
-had only to hold out their hands to have everything they wanted put
-into them. . . . They looked slightly self-conscious and ashamed of
-themselves, and wore a look of alarmed expectancy as they went
-downstairs.
-
-Why did they come there if they were ashamed? and why did they expect
-an Asmodean lewdness of an artists' club, they for whom the
-flesh-markets of the music-hall promenades existed?
-
-"Real swells, aren't they?" said Oliver, overawed.
-
-The strains of a small orchestra came floating up the stairs.
-
-"Come on," said Mendel, "I want to dance." And he caught her by the
-wrist and dragged her downstairs.
-
-A girl was standing on a table singing an idiotic song with a
-syncopated chorus which a few people took up in a half-hearted
-fashion. The sound of it was thin and depressing.
-
-"The same old game," said Logan. "Playing at being wicked. Why can't
-they stick to their commercial beastliness? I should be ashamed to
-bring any woman into this. I am ashamed." He half rose from his chair.
-
-"Oh! don't go," pleaded Oliver, who was entranced with her first sight
-of what she called a gay life. It was to her like a stage spectacle.
-"Oh! there's that Calthrop; I suppose all those odd women with him are
-models."
-
-Calthrop was surrounded by admiring students, among them Morrison,
-sitting prim and astonished and obviously amazed to find herself where
-she was. Mendel began to tremble, and his heart beat violently, as he
-stared at her--stared and stared.
-
-She had lied to him then! She had not had to go home! She could strike
-him down and then come to amuse herself at such a place as this!
-
-Was she with Mitchell? No, Mitchell was not among the satellites.
-
-How strange she looked! a wild violet in a hot-house. He waited for
-her to glance in his direction, but she seemed to be absorbed in the
-singer and in the song, and every now and then she smiled, though
-obviously not at the song--at something that amused her or pleased her
-in her thoughts. She could smile then and be happy, and all his wild
-emotions had made no invasion into her life. . . . No; she would not
-look in his direction. Perhaps she had seen him come in and refused to
-see him.
-
-Would the dancing never begin? The dancing took place on a slightly
-raised floor. If he danced there she would have to see him.
-
-He found a warm hand placed on his leg, and turning he saw Jessie
-Petrie, a model, with whom he had danced at the studios and at the
-Detmold.
-
-"I thought I was never going to see you again," she said, "and
-Mitchell said you had gone mad."
-
-"Do I look it?" he asked.
-
-"No. You look bonnier than ever. I'm on my own again now. Thompson has
-gone to Paris. He says the only painters are there. I think he's going
-mad, because he paints nothing but stripes and triangles. And he _was_
-such a dear. . . . I'm feeling awfully lonely because Tilly has gone
-to Canada. Samuelson gave her the chuck and she went out to her cousin
-in Canada, who had always been wanting to marry her. . . . Are you
-still down in Whitechapel? I do hate going to see you there. Why don't
-you move up to the West End? I could come and live with you then, for
-I do hate being at a loose end."
-
-She was adorably pretty, dark, with eyes like damsons, lovely red
-lips, touched up with carmine, and a soft white neck that trembled as
-she spoke like the breast of a singing bird.
-
-"Oh! who do you think I saw the other day? Hetty Finch! She has a flat
-and a motor-car, but I don't believe she is married." She looked
-suddenly solemn as she added: "The baby's dead." Then she rattled on:
-"Isn't she lucky? But she's an awful snob. Would hardly speak to me!"
-
-"She's a beast of a woman."
-
-"What do you think of this place? I suppose if the swells come it'll
-be a success, but they do spoil it."
-
-"Yes," said Mendel. "They spoil everything. When do they begin to
-dance?"
-
-"They've nearly finished the programme. They have to have a programme
-to make people eat and drink."
-
-"Let's have some champagne."
-
-He called the waiter and ordered a bottle.
-
-"Been selling lately?"
-
-"No," he said; "but I want to dance. Do you hear? I want to dance."
-
-"Dancing," Logan threw in, "is the beginning of art. It is too
-primitive for me, or I'm too old."
-
-A thin-faced long-haired poet mounted the table and read some verses,
-which the popping of corks and the clatter of knives and forks
-rendered inaudible. The poet went on interminably, and at last someone
-began drumming on the table and shouting "Dance! Dance! Dance!" The
-poet stuck to it. Bread was thrown at him and the shouting became
-general.
-
-At last the orchestra struck up through the poet's reedy chanting,
-couples made their way to the stage, and the dancing began. Morrison
-still sat prim and preoccupied. Mendel put his arm round Jessie's
-waist, his fingers sank into her young, supple body, and he lifted her
-to her feet and rushed with her over to the stage. The whole place was
-humming with life, beating to the chopped rhythm of the vacant
-American tune.
-
-"I do love dancing with you," said Jessie, as he swung her into the
-moving throng of brilliantly dressed women and black-coated men, so
-locked together that they were like one creature, a strange, grotesque
-quadruped. And Jessie so melted into him, so became a part of him,
-that he too became another creature, an organism in the whirling
-circle supported and spun round by the music. It was glorious to feel
-his will relaxing, to feel the lithe, soft woman in his arms yield to
-every impulse, every movement. He danced with a terrific
-concentration, with a wiry collected force that made Jessie feel as
-light as a feather.
-
-"Oo! That was lovely," she said when the music stopped. "You do dance
-lovely."
-
-"It was pretty good," said Mendel. "But wait until they play a waltz."
-
-"I want to dance with you," cried Oliver. "You said I should dance
-with you."
-
-And she had the next dance with him; but there was no lightness in
-her, only a greedy fumbling after sensation.
-
-"This is awful!" thought Mendel, never for a moment losing himself,
-and all the while conscious of Morrison sitting there unmoved: of
-Morrison, whom he was trying to forget. Oliver seemed to envelop him,
-to swallow him up. He was conscious of holding an enormous woman in
-his arms and her contact was distasteful. The dance seemed endless.
-Would the music never stop? . . . One, two, three. . . . One, two,
-three. . . . It was like a dancing class with the fat Jewesses at
-home. . . . And all the time he was conscious of Morrison's big blue
-eyes staring at him. Would she never stop her damnable smiling?
-
-He returned Oliver to Logan shamefacedly, as though he were paying a
-long-standing debt.
-
-Jessie returned from her other partner to him.
-
-"Oh! It isn't anything like the same," she said; "and that is such a
-lovely tune to dance to."
-
-Now that the dancers were warmed up they refused to allow any
-intervals. They had their partners and were unwilling to stop. The
-orchestra was worked up into a kind of frenzy, and Mendel and Jessie
-were whirled into an ecstasy. They abandoned the conventional steps
-and improvised, gliding, whirling, swooping suddenly through the
-dancers. Sometimes he picked her up and whirled her round, sometimes
-his hands were locked on her waist and she bent backwards--back, back,
-until he pulled her up and she fell upon his breast, happy, panting,
-deliriously happy.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Morrison sat watching. She was trembling and felt very miserable. She
-had been brought there by Clowes, who had been unable to resist the
-flattery of Calthrop's invitation. All these people seemed to her to
-be pretending to be happy, and she was oppressed with it all. She had
-not seen Mendel until he mounted the stage, and then her heart ached.
-She remembered the etched phrases of his letter to her. She had
-written to him, but nothing she could express on paper conveyed her
-feeling, her sense of being in the wrong, and her deep, instinctive
-conviction of the injustice of that wrong. . . . He had placed her in
-the wrong by talking of marriage so prematurely. As she looked round
-the room she was oppressed by all the men: great, hulking creatures,
-clumsy, cocksure, insensible, spinning their vain thoughts and vainer
-emotions round the women as a spider spins its threads round a caught
-fly. . . . She had often watched spiders dealing with the booty in
-their webs, and Calthrop reminded her of a spider when he looked at
-Clowes and laid his hand on her shoulder or fingered her arm. And
-Clowes lay still like a caught fly and suffered it. . . . Morrison was
-in revolt against it all. She was full of sweet life, and would not
-have it so treated. Her prudery was not shocked, for she had no
-prudery. The men might have their women so, if the women liked it, but
-never, never would she be so treated.
-
-It was because she had been able to sweep aside the sticky threads of
-vanity with Mendel that the ecstasy of the woods and the Heath had
-been possible.
-
-As she watched him now, she knew that he was different from all the
-others. He had brought an exaltation into the face of the common
-little girl who was his partner. He was giving her life, not taking it
-from her.
-
-Yet to see him made her unhappy. The music was vulgar, the people were
-vulgar, and he had no true place among them. But how he enjoyed it
-all!
-
-She shook with impatience at herself. It was hateful to be outside it,
-looking on, looking on. A young student had pestered her to dance with
-him. She turned to him and said:--
-
-"I want to dance, please."
-
-Delighted, he sprang to his feet, gave her his arm, and whirled her
-into the dance.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Slowing down to take breath, Mendel looked in her direction. She was
-gone! A black despair seized him, a groan escaped him; he hugged
-Jessie tight against his body and plunged madly into the dance.
-
-The musicians had been given champagne. The violinist began to
-embroider upon the tune and the 'cellist followed with voluptuous
-thrumming chords.
-
-Jessie gave little cries of happiness to feel the growing strength in
-Mendel's arms, the waxing power of his smooth movements. She gave
-little cries like the call of a quail, and he laughed gleefully every
-time she cried. He could feel the force rising in him. It would surely
-burst out of him and break into molten streams of laughter, leaving
-him deliciously light, as light and absurd as dear little Jessie, who
-was swinging on the music like a dewdrop on a gossamer. . . . If only
-the music would last long enough! He would be as tremulous and light
-as she, and while that lightness lasted he could love her and taste
-life at its highest point--for her. . . . She was aware of his desire,
-and swung to it. It was like a wind swaying her, thistledown as she
-was; like a wind blowing her through the air on a summer's day. O that
-it might never end, that the sky might never be overcast, that the
-rain might never come and the night might never fall. . . . Terrible
-things had happened to Jessie in the night, and she was happy in the
-sun.
-
-Mendel was past all dizziness. The room had spun round until it could
-spin no more, and then it had unwound itself, making him feel weak and
-giddy. He was very nearly clear-headed, and every now and then he
-caught a glimpse of Logan sketching and of Oliver, sitting with a
-sulky pout on her lips and tears in her eyes because she wanted to
-dance and knew she had made a failure of it.
-
-"Lovely! lovely! lovely!" sighed Jessie.
-
-"You are like the white kernel of a nut," said Mendel, "when the shell
-is broken."
-
-"Do let me come and sit for you," she said. "I won't want anything
-except my dinner."
-
-"Better keep to the dancing," he answered, as he spun her round to
-stop her talking.
-
-She began to stroke his neck and to press her face against his breast.
-At the same moment he saw Morrison among the dancers. He slowed down
-and then stopped dead. The music rose to an exultant riot of sound.
-
-"Please, please!" cried Jessie, clinging to him; but he had forgotten
-her.
-
-Morrison and her partner swept past him, and he watched them go the
-full circle. She saw him standing, and as she approached broke away
-from her partner.
-
-"Why aren't you dancing with me?" he said, shaking with eagerness to
-hear her speak.
-
-"I'm no good at dancing," she said. "I don't enjoy it."
-
-"Who brought you here? Calthrop?"
-
-"He brought Clowes and me. . . . You mustn't stop dancing. Your
-partner. . . ."
-
-"Please, please!" cried Jessie, stamping her foot; "the music is going
-to stop."
-
-"Wait a moment," he said, turning to Morrison. "Are you going home?"
-
-"The day after to-morrow."
-
-"I must see you."
-
-Before she could reply her partner, who had lost his temper, seized
-her and made her finish the dance, and when it was over he marched her
-back to Calthrop's party, and he never left her side again.
-
-Mendel returned to Logan and Oliver, to find them impatient to go. The
-end of an evening always found them in this impatient mood.
-
-"It all bears out what I say," said Logan. "All this night-club
-business. People have to go mad in London before they can taste life
-at all."
-
-"Do you mind if I come home and sleep on your sofa?" asked Mendel. "I
-can't face my studio to-night."
-
-"Why don't you take Jessie home with you?" said Logan; "I'm sure she'd
-like to."
-
-Mendel winced, and Jessie's lips began to tremble. She was still
-suffering from the sudden end to her happiness. She looked at him,
-almost hoping that he was going to make reparation to her.
-
-"You know I can't," he said; "I live in my brother's house and he is a
-respectable married man."
-
-He knew he was in for a terrible night of reaction and desperate blind
-emotion; at the same time he did not wish to hurt Jessie more than he
-had done.
-
-"I'll take you home in a cab," he said. "But I won't stay, if you
-don't mind. I'm done up. If you and Oliver walk half way, Logan, we
-ought to be there about the same time."
-
-Jessie was appeased. A little kindness went a long way with her, and
-she hated to be a nuisance to a man.
-
-When the cab stopped outside the door of her lodgings she flung her
-arms round Mendel's neck and kissed him, saying:--
-
-"You are a darling, and I would do anything in the world for you."
-
-"You shall come and sit for me," he replied. "Good-night!"
-
-"Good-night!"
-
-* * * * *
-
-Good-night! A night of tossing to and fro, of hearing terrifying
-noises in the darkness, of hearing Logan and Oliver in the next room,
-of shutting his ears to what he heard, of fancying he heard someone
-calling him . . . her voice! Surely she had called him, and the ache
-and the torment in his flesh was the measure of her need of him. . . .
-Strange, blurred thoughts; gusts of defiance and revolt; glimpses of
-pictures, subjects for pictures, colours and shapes. . . . His
-mother's hands clutching a fish and bringing a knife down on to it.
-There was a blue light on the knife. It would be very hard to get that
-and to keep it subordinate to the blue in the fish's scales. . . . His
-father and mother, eternally together, in an affection that never
-found any expression, harsh and bitter, but strongly savoured, like
-everything else in their lives. . . . Issy and Rosa, much the same as
-Logan and Oliver, and to them also he had to shut his ears. . . . The
-goggle-eyed man at the Pot-au-Feu. . . . London, London, the roaring
-fiery furnace of London in which he was burning alive, while flames of
-madness shot up above him. . . . Music. . . . There was a music in his
-soul, a music and mystery that could rise with an easy power above all
-the flames. . . . What did it matter that his body was burned, if his
-soul could rise like that up to the stars and beyond the stars to the
-point where art touched life and gave out its iridescent beneficent
-light? . . . Life, flames, body, stars, all might perish and fade
-away, but the soul had its knowledge of eternity and could not be
-quenched. . . . Eternal art, divine art, the world of form, shaped in
-the knowledge of eternity, wherein life and death are but a day and a
-night. . . . Sickening doubt of himself, sinking down, down into
-eternity to be a part of it, never to know it, never to see the light
-of art, lost to eternity in eternity. . . . He sat up in the middle of
-the night and imagined himself back in the one room in Gun Street,
-looking at the recumbent bodies of his family, lost in sleep, huddled
-together in degradation. . . . It would have been better to have gone
-home with Jessie. She would have given him rest and sleep. . . . No,
-no, no! . . . She was going away the day after to-morrow. He must see
-her before she went, with her big blue eyes and short chestnut hair.
-She had stopped in the middle of the dance. She had broken away from
-her partner, and on Hampstead Heath she had said "I love you."
-
-
-
-IX
-
-"GOOD-BYE"
-
-LOGAN came in early in the morning to make tea. He shut the door
-carefully and came and sat on Mendel's sofa.
-
-"She says you hate her," he said.
-
-"I?" answered Mendel. "No. I. . . . What can make her say that?
-Because I didn't dance with her? I had Jessie. You ought to have
-danced with her."
-
-"I'm glad she didn't dance. It might make her break out. Women are
-very queer things. You never know where they will break out. . . . You
-make love to them, touch a spring in them, and God knows where it may
-lead you. . . . You're not in love with that mop-haired girl, are
-you?"
-
-"What if I am?"
-
-"She's just a doll-faced miss. You're taken with the type because
-you're unused to it. For God's sake don't take it seriously. You're
-much too good to waste yourself on women. She'll drive you mad with
-purity and chivalrous devotion and all the other schoolgirl twaddle.
-Leave all that to the schoolboy English. It's all they're good for.
-They've bred it on purpose to be the mother of more schoolboys. It is
-the basis of the British Empire. But what is the British Empire to you
-or any artist? Nothing."
-
-"I don't want to talk about it," said Mendel.
-
-"She won't marry you," said Logan. "She won't live with you. She'll
-give you nothing. She'll madden you with her conceited stupidity and
-wreck your work. . . . What you want is what every decent man
-wants--to take a woman and keep her in her place, so that she can't
-interfere with him. That's what I've done, and it's made a man of me,
-but I'm not going to let her know it. She'd be crowing like an old hen
-that has laid an egg. . . . No farmyard life for me, thanks."
-
-Oliver bawled for her tea and Logan hastened to make it, and
-disappeared into the bedroom.
-
-Mendel got up and dressed, feeling eager for the day. The sun shone in
-through the window and filled the room with a dusty glow, making even
-the shabby bareness of the place seem charming.
-
-"It is a good day," he said to himself. "I shall work to-day." And he
-was annoyed at not having his canvas at hand.
-
-On an easel stood the picture which Logan had described to Tysoe, a
-London street scene with a group of people gazing into a shop window.
-It was a clever piece of work, very adroit in the handling of the
-paint and pleasing in colour, but Mendel had an odd uncomfortable
-feeling of having seen it before, and yet he knew that the technique
-was novel. Yet it was precisely the technique that seemed familiar.
-Certain liberties had been taken with the perspective which, though
-they were new to him, did not surprise him.
-
-Logan came in dressed and said that Oliver would not be a minute. She
-appeared in a dressing-gown.
-
-"Well?" she said; "none the worse for last night?"
-
-"No, thanks," said Mendel. "Why should I be? I enjoyed it."
-
-"Did Logan tell you we were going to Paris?"
-
-"No. He said nothing about it."
-
-"I'm dying to go to Paris. He says they understand the kind of thing
-we had last night in Paris."
-
-"You're not going for good, are you?" asked Mendel.
-
-"No. Just a trip. I want you to come too. We'll see some pictures and
-have a good time. I can't speak a word of French, but they say English
-is good enough anywhere."
-
-"Yes, I'd like to go," said Mendel. "I want a change, before I settle
-down to working for the exhibition. Is that picture going to be in
-it?"
-
-"Yes. Do you like it?"
-
-"I like it. It seems to me new. Stronger than most things. All these
-people going in for thin, flat colour and greens and mauves make me
-long for something solid."
-
-"I'm going to show that and a portrait of Oliver."
-
-"I want my breakfast," said she.
-
-"Oh! shut up. We're talking. . . . I've just begun the portrait. No
-psychological nonsense about it. It's just the head of a woman in
-paint. I don't want any damn fool writing about my picture: she is
-wiser than the chair on which she sits and the secrets of the
-antimacassar are hers. A picture's a picture and a book's a book."
-
-"I do want my breakfast," sang Oliver.
-
-Logan went livid with fury.
-
-"Be silent, woman," he said.
-
-"I shan't, so there. I want my breakfast."
-
-"Why the hell don't you get the breakfast then?"
-
-"Because you said you would."
-
-Logan began to prepare the breakfast--rashers of bacon and eggs.
-
-"You don't mind eating pork?" he asked Mendel.
-
-"No. I like it, but I never get it at home."
-
-"Fancy Jews being still as strict as that!" said Oliver. "Just like
-they were in Shakespeare's time."
-
-"Just as they were in the time of Moses and Aaron," said Mendel. "They
-don't alter except that they haven't got a country to fight for."
-
-"Thank God!" said Logan, "or there'd be a bloody mess every other
-week. Fancy a Jewish Empire, with you sent out, like David, to hit the
-Czar of Russia or Chaliapine in the eye with a stone from a sling.
-Think of your sister-in-law luring the Kaiser into a tent and knocking
-a nail through his head. I wish she could, upon my soul I do!"
-
-"I think we should only be led into captivity again," said Mendel.
-"Our fighting days are over, and someone told me the other day that
-many of the most advanced artists in Paris are Jews."
-
-"If they were all like you," said Logan, "I shouldn't mind. But I'm
-afraid they're not. The Jews have got all the money and they keep the
-other people fighting for it, and charge them a hell of a lot for guns
-and uniforms to do it with. Oh! there are Christians in it too, but
-they have to be nice to the Jews to be allowed to share the spoils. I
-don't wonder the Jews left the Promised Land when they found the world
-was inhabited by fools who would let them plunder it."
-
-"There's not much plunder in my family," said Mendel.
-
-* * * * *
-
-After breakfast he declared that he must go, and Logan announced that
-he would walk with him to enjoy the lovely sunny day. Oliver wanted to
-come too, but he told her to stay where she was, and he left her in
-tears.
-
-"She's got a bad habit of crying," he said, "and she must be broken of
-it. She cries if I don't speak to her for an hour. She cries if I go
-out without telling her where I am going. She cries if I curse and
-swear over my work, and if I am pleased with it she cries because I am
-never so happy with her. . . . I feel like hitting her sometimes, but
-it isn't her fault. She hasn't settled down to it yet. She says I
-don't love her when she knows she never expected to be loved so much.
-And she can't get used to it."
-
-"Why don't you paint her crying?" asked Mendel maliciously.
-
-"By Jove! I will," cried Logan. "Damned interesting drawing, with her
-eyes all puckered up. . . . But it's a shame on a day like this to be
-out of temper with anything. Lord! How women do spoil the universe, to
-be sure! Do they give us anything to justify the mess they make of it?
-. . . Women and shopkeepers. I don't see why one should have any mercy
-on either of them. I have no compunction in stealing anything I want.
-Shopkeepers steal from the public all the little halfpennies and
-farthings of extra profit they exact."
-
-He led Mendel into a picture shop and asked for a reproduction of a
-picture by Van Tromp, and when the girl retired upstairs to ask about
-that non-existent artist, he turned over the albums and helped himself
-to half a dozen reproductions, rolled them up, and put them in his
-pocket. When the girl came down and said they were out of Van Tromps,
-he said:--
-
-"I'm sorry. Very sorry to trouble you."
-
-When they were out of the shop he chuckled, and was as elated over his
-success as Mr. Kuit had been over his exploits.
-
-"Oh! I should be an artist in anything I did," he said. "I don't
-wonder thieves can't go straight once they get on the lay. If I
-weren't a painter I should be a criminal."
-
-He walked with Mendel as far as Gray's Inn, and there left him, saying
-he had another picture-buying flat to go and see, and after that he
-must pay a visit to Uncle Cluny and keep him up to the mark. He was in
-fine fettle, and went off singing at the top of his voice.
-
-Mendel bought some flowers on the way home because he wished always to
-have flowers, even if she were to send no more.
-
-He was sure of himself to-day. He was in love and glad to be in love.
-Surely it could have no worse suffering than that through which he had
-passed, and if it did, well, so much the worse for him. . . . He was
-glad it had happened. His father would not be able to sneer at him any
-more, as he was always sneering at Issy and Harry--Harry, who had
-deserted his father and mother for the sweetbreads of Paris. (Jacob
-always called sweetmeats sweetbreads.) He had a bitter, biting tongue,
-had Jacob, and the habit of using it was growing on him. Mendel knew
-that he had deserved many of his sneers, but now they could touch him
-no longer. His life, like his art, now contained a passion as strong
-as any Jacob had known in his life, and stronger, because it was
-wedded to beauty, to which Jacob was a stranger.
-
-He was able to work again at his picture of his father and mother. He
-could make something of it now, he knew, because he could understand
-his father and appreciate the strength in him which had kept his
-passion alive through poverty and a life of constant storms and
-upheavals. He remembered his father knocking down the schoolmaster,
-and the soldier in the inn with the heavy glass. Oh yes! Jacob was a
-strong man, and he had nearly died of love for Golda, the beautiful.
-
-He worked away with an extraordinary zest, and he knew that it was
-good. As he grew tired during the afternoon he was overcome with a
-great longing for her to see it, just to see it and to say she liked
-it. It would not matter much if she did not understand it, so long as
-she saw it and liked it.
-
-He turned to the roughly sketched portrait of her to ask her if she
-liked it, and as he did so the door opened and she came in. Her arms
-were full of flowers, so that her face was resting in them, her dear
-face, the sweetest of all flowers.
-
-"You said . . . you must see me, so I brought you these to say
-good-bye."
-
-"Do come in and see my picture. It is nearly finished."
-
-"Oh! It is good," she said shyly.
-
-"I thought you'd like it. I wanted you to like it. Do stay a little
-and talk."
-
-She sat down and looked about the studio, puckering up her eyebrows
-nervously and making her eyes very round and large.
-
-"You never told me how old you are," he said nervously.
-
-"I'm nineteen."
-
-"I'm twenty. Just twenty. How long are you going away for?"
-
-"I don't know. Until the winter, I expect."
-
-"What will you do there in the country? It is important that you
-should tell me, because I must know how to think of you. What shall
-you do? Is it a big house? Are you--are you rich?"
-
-"No. It is not a very big house. My mother is fairly well off, but I
-have four brothers, and they all have to go to Oxford and Cambridge.
-. . . There's a good garden, and I shall spend a lot of time in that,
-digging and looking after the flowers. And I shall try and do some
-work. There's a big barn I can have for a studio."
-
-"A big barn. Yes. Are your brothers nice men?"
-
-"Two of them."
-
-"And there's a river and a common. May I write to you?"
-
-She was silent for a long time, and then she said:--
-
-"No. Please don't."
-
-His happiness vanished. It was as though a hole had opened in the
-floor and swallowed it up.
-
-"Why not?" he asked. "Why not?"
-
-She shrank into herself for a moment, but shook off her cowardice and
-answered:--
-
-"I don't want to hurt you."
-
-"You said you loved me. You can do what you like with me!"
-
-"You're so different," she said. "Too different."
-
-"From what? From whom? Go on, go on!"
-
-She loved his violence and gained courage from it.
-
-"You mustn't think it mean of me. I don't care a bit what people say,
-but I don't want to hurt you--in your work, I mean. It isn't all that
-I think and mean, but it is a part of it, a little part of it. People
-are furious at our being seen together. It began at the picnic. We
-were seen walking over the Heath. Clowes told me. She can't bear it.
-She's a good friend. . . . It hurt me when she told me, and I knew
-that I must tell you. It isn't only old women. It is all the important
-people, who can hurt your work."
-
-"Nobody can hurt my work."
-
-"But they can. They are saying your work is bad, all the people who
-said it was so good only last year, all the people who believed in
-you. And it's all through me. It's my fault."
-
-She began to weep silently. He was unmoved by the sight of it, so
-appalled was he by the sudden devastation of his life. Suffering
-within himself he knew, but hostility from without he had not had to
-face. . . . Many little slights were explained--men who had given him
-an indifferent nod, men who had apparently not seen him in the street.
-In the surprise of it he was blind even to her. It was like a
-sandstorm covering him up, filling with grit every little chink and
-crevice of his being. He snorted with fury and contempt.
-
-He shook himself free of the oppression of it. This was nothing to do
-with her; it was not what he wanted from her--the gossip and
-tittle-tattle, the sweepings of the studios. The models sickened him
-of that. . . . So it was his turn now. Well, other men had survived
-it.
-
-"That isn't why you want to say good-bye."
-
-"No. I'm not pleading to you to let me off, or anything like that. I
-believe in you more than in anybody else, more than I do in myself.
-. . . I don't believe in myself much."
-
-It had all seemed clear to her before she had come. He would
-understand how wrong and twisted the whole thing had become. They
-would suffer together and they would see how useless such suffering
-was in a world of beauty and charm and youth, and they would part
-because they had to part. He would understand, even if she could not
-rightly understand, for he was strong and simple and direct, and free
-of the soft vanity of youth.
-
-But he did not understand. He was angry and domineering.
-
-"Why do you say all this?" he said heavily, floundering for words.
-"What does it mean? Nothing at all. You belong to me. You gave up
-Mitchell because I said you must. Have you given up Mitchell?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"Very well then. Nothing else matters. If I want a thing I will break
-through a Chinese wall to get it. Nothing can stop me, because when I
-want a thing it is mine already. I want it because it is mine
-already."
-
-He was making it impossible for her--impossible to go, impossible to
-stay, impossible to say anything.
-
-Outside in the street the heavy drays went clattering by on the stone
-setts. When they had passed there came up the shrill cries of children
-playing in the street, the drone of a Rabbi taking a class of boys in
-Hebrew. On the hot air came the smell of the street--a smell of women
-and babies and leather and kosher meat.
-
-"I know the way of women," he said. "My mother has been my friend
-always. But I do not know your ways. I only know that I love you. You
-are mine as that picture is mine, and you cannot take yourself from
-me."
-
-"I don't want to take myself from you," she said, half angry, half in
-tears. "I want to make you understand me."
-
-"What is there to understand? Do I understand my pictures?" he cried.
-"Do you want no mystery? How can there be life without mystery? I
-don't expect you to understand. I only want you to be honest and true
-to me. . . . I conceal nothing. I am a Jew. I live in this horrible
-place. My life is as horrible as this place. You know all that, all
-there is to know, and you love me. You cannot alter me. You cannot
-change my nature. . . ."
-
-"Don't say any more," she said. "It only becomes worse with talking."
-
-"What becomes worse?"
-
-She could not answer him. She could not say what she felt. The woods,
-the Heath, and--this; the rattle and smell of the street, the
-dinginess of the studio, the dinginess of his soul--the dinginess and
-yet the fire of it. On the Heath he had been like a faun, prick-eared
-and shaggy, but wild and free as her spirit was wild and free. Here he
-was rough, coarse, harsh, and tyrannical. She could feel him battering
-at her with his mind, searching her out, probing into her, and she
-resented it with all the passion of her modesty. She gathered up all
-her forces to resist him.
-
-"You are terrible! Terrible!" she cried. "Don't you see that it must
-be good-bye?"
-
-"I say it must not," he shouted. "I say it is nonsense to talk of
-good-bye, when we have just met, when the kiss is yet warm on our
-lips. For a kiss is a holy thing, and I do not kiss unless it is holy.
-I say it is not good-bye."
-
-"I say it is and must be," she said. "You are terrible. You hurt me
-beyond endurance."
-
-"And why should you not be hurt? Am I to have all the pain? I want to
-share even that with you."
-
-"It is impossible," she said dully, unable to share, or deal with, or
-appreciate the violence of his passion, and falling back on the
-mulishness which had been developed in her through her tussles with
-her brothers. Through her mind shot the horrible thought:--
-
-"We are quarrelling--already quarrelling."
-
-To her he seemed to be dragging her down, defiling her. His eyes were
-glaring at her with a passion that she took for sensuality, because it
-came out of the dinginess of his soul. And he was stiffening into an
-iron column of egoism, on which she knew she could make no impression.
-She knew, too, that her presence was aggravating the stiffening
-process. . . . She felt caught, trapped, and she wanted to get away.
-Love must be free--free as the wind on the heath, as the blossom of
-the wild cherry. Love must have its blossoming time, and he was
-demanding the full heat of the summer. . . . She must get away.
-
-"Good-bye," she said, holding out her hand.
-
-He took her hand and pulled her to him.
-
-"No! No! No!" she cried. "No! Good-bye! Good-bye!"
-
-She turned away and was gone.
-
-Unable to contain his agony, he flung himself on his bed and sobbed
-out his grief.
-
-"She is mine!" he moaned. "She is mine, and she cannot take herself
-from me."
-
-And when his tears were shed he began to think of the other women who
-had come to him without love, so easily, so gratefully, some of them,
-and this little girl who loved him could tear herself away--at a
-fearful cost. He knew that. But if she could tear herself away, if she
-could say good-bye, what could she know of love?
-
-
-
-X
-
-PARIS
-
-MENDEL was able to finish his portrait of Jacob and Golda, but only at
-the cost of painful and bitter labour. He was torn two ways: longing
-to finish it, yet dreading the end of it, for he could not see beyond
-it. Every picture he had painted had brought with it the certain
-knowledge that it would lead to a better, that he was advancing
-further on the road to art. But there was a finality about this
-picture. It was an end in itself. It was not like most of his work,
-one of a possible dozen or more. A certain stream of his feeling ended
-in it and then disappeared, leaving him without guide or direction.
-
-Therefore, when the picture was ended he found himself besottedly and
-uncontrollably in love and in a maddeningly sensitive condition, so
-that any sudden glimpse of beauty--the stars in the night sky, a
-girl's face in the train, flowers in a window-box--could set him
-reeling. More than once he found himself clinging to the wall or a
-railing, emerging with happy laughter from a momentary lack of
-consciousness. In the street near his home he found a lovely little
-girl, of the same type as Sara, but more beautiful. Graceful and
-lively she was, fully aware of her vitality and charm, and she used to
-smile at him when he went to meet her as she came out of school, or
-stood and watched her playing in the street.
-
-At last he asked her shyly if she would come to his studio that he
-might draw her. She consented and came often. She would chatter away,
-and, studying her, he was astonished at her womanishness, and he was
-overwhelmed when she said one day:--
-
-"You don't want to draw me. You only want to look at me."
-
-He was thrust back into the thoughts he had been avoiding. If this
-child knew already so frankly why he was attracted to her, why could
-not that other? Why did she seem to insist that he should regard her
-with the emotions with which he approached a work of art? A work of
-art could yield up its secret to the emotions, but she could only
-deliver hers to love dwelling not in any abstract region, but here on
-earth, in the life of the body. . . . He often thought of her with
-active dislike, because she seemed to him to be lacking in frankness.
-If she were going to cause so much suffering, as she must have known
-she would with her good-bye, then she must have her reasons for it.
-What did she mean with her neither yes nor no? With women there should
-be either yes or no. A refusal is unpleasant, but it could be
-swallowed down with other ills; and there were others. But this girl,
-this short-haired Christian, blocked his way, and there were no others
-except as there were cabs on the street and meals on the table.
-
-For a time he avoided Logan and Oliver. He knew that Logan would
-despise him for his weakness in setting his heart on a girl who ran
-away from him, for he knew and admired the tremendous force with which
-his friend had hurled himself into his life with the girl of the
-station, constantly wooing and winning her afresh and urging her to
-share his own recklessness. He admired, too, Logan's insistence on an
-absolute separation of his art and his life with Oliver, who was never
-for one moment admitted to his mind. Rather to his dismay, but at the
-same time with a wild rush of almost lyrical impulse, Mendel, finding
-himself with no other emotion than that of being in love, set himself
-to paint love. He worked with an amazing ease, painting one picture
-one day and covering it with another the next, feeling elatedly
-convinced that everything he did was beautiful, yet knowing within
-himself that he was in a bad way.
-
-He avoided Logan, but Logan needed him, and came to tell him so.
-
-"It is all very well for you to shut yourself up," he said, "but I
-can't live without you. You know what Oliver is to me, but it is not
-enough. The more satisfying she is on one plane, the more I need on
-the other the satisfaction that she cannot give me. Women can't do it.
-They simply can't, and it is no good trying. If you try, it means
-making a mess of both love and art. She is jealous? Very well. Let her
-be jealous. She enjoys it, and it helps her to understand a man's
-passion."
-
-"I can't stand it when you talk in that cold-blooded way about women."
-
-"I'm not cold-blooded," said Logan, astonished at the adjective.
-
-"I sometimes think you are, but I am apt to think that of all English
-people," replied Mendel, wondering within himself if that did not
-explain Morrison. "Yes. I often wonder what you would be like if you
-were in an office, wearing a bowler hat, and going to and fro by the
-morning and evening train."
-
-"Why think about the impossible?" laughed Logan. "Anyhow, I'm not
-going to let you shut yourself up. I want to go to Paris, and I can't
-face three weeks alone with Oliver. Twenty-one days, sixty-three
-meals. No. It can't be done."
-
-"Yes, I'll go to Paris," thought Mendel. "I will go to Paris and I
-will forget."
-
-"You must come," urged Logan. "Madame at the Pot-au-Feu has given me
-the name of a hotel kept by her sister-in-law. Very cheap. Bed and
-breakfast, and, of course, you feed in restaurants. . . . You want
-digging out of your hole. I don't know why, but you seem to have
-insisted more on being Jewish lately. It is much more important for
-you to be an artist and a man. I regard you as a sacred trust. I do
-really. You are the only man in England for whom I have any respect,
-and I need you to keep me decent." He added: "I need you to keep me
-alive, for, without you, Oliver would gobble me up in a month."
-
-He seemed to be joking, but Mendel could not help feeling that he was
-at heart serious, and he had the unpleasant sinking of disgust which
-sometimes seized him when he thought of Logan and Oliver together. He
-could not account for it, and the sensation gave him a sickly pleasure
-which made him weaker with Logan than with anybody else. Besides,
-Logan often bewildered him, and he could not tolerate his inability to
-grasp ideas except through a mad rush of feeling, and he hated the
-fact that while Logan's mind seemed to move steadily on, his own
-crumbled to pieces just at the moment when it was on the point of
-absorbing an idea.
-
-For these reasons he consented to go to Paris. The three weeks should
-consolidate or destroy a friendship which had remained for him
-distressingly inchoate. Deep in his heart he hoped that it would
-become definite enough and strong enough to drive out his
-indeterminate love. To be in love without enjoying love was in his
-eyes a fatuous condition, undignified, vague, a kind of cuckoldry.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Oliver was aflame with excitement over the trip to Paris. She spoke of
-it with an almost religious exaltation. As usual, her emotion was
-entirely uncontrolled, became a physical tremulation, and she reminded
-Mendel of a wobbling blanc-mange.
-
-The plan was to have a fortnight in Paris and a week at Boulogne, for
-bathing and gambling at the Casino.
-
-No sooner had he left London than Mendel felt his cares and anxieties
-fall away from him, and he began to wish he had brought Jessie Petrie.
-He proposed to wire for her from Folkestone, but Logan pointed out
-that Oliver could not stand women and was jealous of them.
-
-"She'd say Jessie was making eyes at me," he said. "And if she made
-eyes at you she'd be almost as bad."
-
-In that Mendel could sympathize with Oliver. He was himself often
-suddenly, unreasonably, and violently jealous of other men over women
-for whom he did not care a fig.
-
-He set himself to be nice to Oliver, and she in her holiday mood
-responded, so that on the boat and in the Paris train Logan was sunk
-in a gloomy silence, and in the hotel at night, in the next room,
-Mendel could hear him storming at her, refusing to have anything to do
-with her, threatening to go home next day unless she promised to keep
-her claws, as he said, off Kühler. She promised, and they embarked
-further upon their perilous voyage in search of an unattainable land
-of satiety.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Their hotel was near the Montparnasse station, and they discovered a
-café in the Boulevard Raspail which was frequented by artists and
-models, one or two of whom Mendel recognized as former habitués of the
-Paris Café. They were soon drawn into the artist world, and except
-that he went to the Louvre instead of to the National Gallery for
-peace and refreshment, Mendel often thought he might just as well be
-in London. There was the same feverish talk, the same abuse of
-successful artists, the same depreciation of old masters, but there
-was more body to the talk, and sometimes a Frenchman, finding speech
-useless with this shy, good-looking Jew, would make himself clear with
-what English he could muster and a rapid, skilful drawing. For the
-most part, however, he had to rely on Logan's paraphrase, until one
-day in the Boulevard St. Germain he ran into that Thompson, lamented
-by Jessie Petrie, the painter of stripes and triangles.
-
-Thompson was a little senior to Mendel at the Detmold, had hardly
-spoken to him in the old days, but was now delighted to meet a
-familiar London face.
-
-"I _am_ glad!" he said. "Come and see my place. How are they all in
-London--poor old Calthrop and poor old Froitzheim? I should have
-killed myself if I'd stayed in London; nothing but talk and women,
-with work left to find its way in where it can. Here work comes first.
-I suppose they haven't even heard of Van Gogh in London?"
-
-Mendel had to confess that he had never heard of Van Gogh.
-
-"A Dutchman," explained Thompson, "and he cut off his ear and sent it
-to Gauguin. Ever heard of Gauguin?"
-
-"No. But a man doesn't make himself a great artist by cutting off his
-ear."
-
-"Van Gogh was a great artist before that. He killed himself: shot
-himself in his bed, and the doctor found him in bed smoking a pipe. He
-was quite happy, for he had done all he could."
-
-That sounded more like it to Mendel, more like the deed of a warrior
-of the spirit.
-
-"I'll show you," said Thompson, and they went round the galleries.
-
-Mendel's head was nearly bursting when he came out. The riotous
-colour, the apparent neglect of drawing and abuse of form, the entire
-absence of tone and atmosphere, shocked him. He resented the wrench
-given to all his training, and he took Thompson to the Louvre to go
-back to Cranach and the early Italians. Thompson would not hear of
-them, and insisted on his spending over an hour with Poussin.
-
-"I can see nothing in them. Good painting, good drawing, but dull, so
-dull! The flat, papery figures mean nothing."
-
-"They mean everything to the picture," said Thompson, "and you have no
-right to go outside the picture. Poussin kept to his picture, and so
-must you if you are to understand him."
-
-"I can see all that," said Mendel, "but he is dull. I can't help it,
-he bores me."
-
-"It is pure art."
-
-"Then I like it impure."
-
-"You don't really. But you are all like that when you first come from
-London. You think that because a thing is different it must be wrong.
-Have you come over alone?"
-
-"No. I'm with a man called Logan and his girl. He is a great painter,
-or he will be one. Anyhow, he is alive and has ideas."
-
-"Does he know about Van Gogh?"
-
-"No; but he says the next great painter must come from England."
-
-"Pooh! Whistler!" said Thompson in a tone of vast superiority. "Nous
-sommes bien loin de ça."
-
-"Please don't talk French," said Mendel. "I don't understand a word."
-
-"Whistler had good ideas," continued Thompson. "It is a pity he was
-not a better artist."
-
-Mendel was beginning to feel bored. He did not understand this new
-painting for painting's sake, and did not want to understand it. To
-change the subject he said:--
-
-"I nearly brought Jessie Petrie with me."
-
-"I wish you had. She is a dear little girl, and I nearly sent for her
-the other day, but I've no use for the model now. It is perfectly
-futile trying to cram a living figure into a modern picture."
-
-"I don't see why, if you can paint it."
-
-"Really," said Thompson, "I don't see what you have come to Paris for,
-if you haven't come to learn something about painting. One wouldn't
-expect you to understand Picasso straight off, but anyone who has
-handled paint ought to be able to grasp Van Gogh."
-
-"He is trying for the impossible," grunted Mendel. "The important
-thing in art is art. I've come to Paris to have a good time."
-
-"Oh! very well," said Thompson. "Why didn't you say so before? I'll
-show you round."
-
-* * * * *
-
-Mendel took Thompson round to his hotel and up to Logan's room, where,
-entering without knocking, they found Logan kneeling on the floor with
-Oliver in a swoon in his arms. He had opened her blouse at the neck
-and unlaced her corsage.
-
-Mendel thought Oliver looked as though she was going to die, and his
-first idea was to run for the doctor.
-
-"She'll come round," said Logan. "It's my fault. I was brutal to her.
-. . ." He nodded to Thompson. "How do you do?" and he covered up
-Oliver's large bosom.
-
-She came to in a few moments, opened her eyes slowly, rolled them
-round, and came back to Logan, on whom she fixed a gaze of devouring
-love. She put up her arms and drew his head down and kissed his lips.
-
-Mendel drew Thompson out into the corridor.
-
-"She was shamming," he said.
-
-"I don't think so," replied Thompson. "What has happened? Does he
-knock her about?"
-
-"Not that I know of. They've not been together very long. They can't
-settle down."
-
-"She's a fine woman," said Thompson.
-
-* * * * *
-
-They were called in again and found Oliver sitting up on the bed
-eating chocolates. She greeted Thompson with a queenly gesture, and
-clapped her hands when Mendel told her they were going out to see the
-sights.
-
-"I'm sick of artists," she said. "I have quite enough of them in
-London. I wish to God you weren't an artist, Logan. You'd be quite a
-nice man if you worked for your living."
-
-"Don't talk rubbish," mumbled Logan, who was subdued and curiously
-ashamed of himself. "If I were like that I should have a little
-dried-up wife and an enormous family, and you wouldn't have a look
-in."
-
-"And a good job too!" cried Oliver, in her most provoking tone. "A
-good job too! I'd find someone who had a respect for me."
-
-"D'you find Paris a good place to work in?" Logan turned to Thompson.
-
-"I never knew the meaning of work till I came here. Ever heard of
-Rousseau?"
-
-"Oh, yes," said Logan.
-
-"I don't mean the writer, I mean . . ."
-
-"I know, I know," said Logan nonchalantly. He could never admit
-ignorance of anything.
-
-"A great painter," cried Thompson eagerly. "A very great painter. I
-tell you he brought Impressionism up sharp. They had overshot the
-mark, you know. Manet, Monet: they had overshot the mark."
-
-Oliver began to scream at the top of her voice.
-
-"Shut up!" said Logan. "You'll have us turned out."
-
-"I don't care," she replied. "I don't care. I can't stand all this
-talk about painting."
-
-"What do you want us to talk about?" said Mendel, tingling with
-exasperation. "Love? Three men and one woman can't talk about love."
-
-"Well, I didn't come to Paris to sit in a dirty bedroom talking about
-pictures. I want to go out to see the streets and the shops and the
-funny people."
-
-"For God's sake take us somewhere," said Logan.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Thompson, having ascertained that they had plenty of money, took them
-to Enghien by the river. Oliver was happy at once. She wanted to be
-amused and to be looked at, and as she was bouncing and rowdy she had
-her desire.
-
-She made Logan play for her at the little horses, but, as she did not
-win, she was soon bored with it. Logan was bitten and could not tear
-himself away. Mendel stayed with him and she disappeared with
-Thompson.
-
-"I'm bound to win if I go on," said Logan. "There's a law of chances,
-you know, and I've always been lucky at these things. . . . It is so
-exciting, too."
-
-He changed note after note into five-franc pieces, lost them all, and
-at last began to win a little; won, lost, won.
-
-Mendel dragged him away from the table, protesting:--
-
-"Come along. I have had enough. Do come along. We haven't had a chance
-to talk for days, and I hate these rooms with all the flashy, noisy
-people. . . . We can come back here and find the others. Let us go and
-find some fun that we can share, for this is deadly dull for me.
-Besides, we don't want to be stranded without money."
-
-"But I'm winning. My luck is in."
-
-He rushed back to the tables and lost--twice, upon which he allowed
-himself to be persuaded, and they went out into the air and sat on a
-terrace by the lake. Mendel produced cigarettes and they smoked in
-silence for some time. Logan looked pale and worn and was obviously
-smouldering with excitement.
-
-"How amazingly different everything looks here," he said. "In London I
-always feel as though I had a thumb pressing into my brain. Everybody
-seems indifferent and hostile and everything I do is incongruous. I
-feel almost happy here. I should like to stay here. I told her so and
-she began to cry. I knocked her down. I couldn't stand her crying any
-more. I knocked her down and she fainted."
-
-"She was shamming," thought Mendel, seeing vividly the scene in the
-bedroom. "He did not hurt her. She was shamming."
-
-"I feel a brute," said Logan, "and yet I'm glad. I'm tremendously
-glad. I want to sing. I want to get drunk. I'm tremendously glad. It
-has settled something. I'm her master. She was getting on my nerves.
-She won't do that any more. Ha! Ha!"
-
-"Why don't you get rid of her?" asked Mendel. "Leave her here. Come
-back with me to-morrow."
-
-"Don't be a silly child," said Logan patronizingly. "I love her. I
-couldn't live without her now, not for a single day. I could no more
-do without her than I could do without the clothes on my back. I tell
-you she's an inspiration. If she left me I should lay down my brush
-for ever. She's a religion--all the religion I've got."
-
-"I can't imagine stopping my work for any woman," said Mendel.
-
-"Ah! that's because you don't know what a woman can mean. You can't
-know while you are young."
-
-Mendel's nerves had been throbbing in sympathy with his friend, but
-suddenly all that place was filled with a soft, clear light and a
-bright music, the colour and the scent of flowers, the soft murmur of
-flowing water, the whisper of the wind in leafy trees, and his heart
-ached and grew big and seemed to burst into a thousand, thousand
-rivulets of love, searching out every corner of his senses, cleansing
-his eyes, sharpening his hearing, refining every sense, so that the
-scene before him--the white tables, the white-aproned waiters, the
-green trees, the soft evening sky, the softer reflection of it in the
-water--was exquisite and magical and full of a mysterious power that
-permeated even Logan's brutal revelation and made it worthy of beauty.
-. . . And this mysterious power he knew was love, and she, the girl
-for whom it had arisen from the depths, was far away in England,
-thinking of him, perhaps, regretting him, perhaps, but knowing nothing
-of the beauty she had denied. . . .
-
-Mendel was astonished to find tears in his eyes, trembling on his
-lashes, trickling down his cheeks.
-
-"What a baby you are!" said Logan. "You can't have me all to
-yourself."
-
-His divination was true. Lacking its true object, Mendel's love had
-concentrated upon his friend, with whom he longed to walk freely in
-the enchanted world of art, to be as David and Jonathan. Indeed,
-Logan's state of torment was to him as a wound got in battle, over
-which he gave himself up to lamentation, so single and deep and pure
-that it obscured even the impulse of his love. He longed to rid his
-friend of this devouring passion that was consuming him and thrusting
-in upon his energy, but because his friend called it love, he
-respected it and bore with it.
-
-"How good it is, this life out of doors!" exclaimed Logan, lolling
-back in his chair.
-
-"I don't know," replied Mendel. "I think it is too deliberate, too
-organized. I prefer London streets. There is nothing in the world to
-me to compare with London streets. Nature is too beautiful. A tree in
-blossom, a garden full of flowers, a round hill with the shadow of the
-clouds over them, move me too much. Left alone with them I should go
-mad. I must have human nature if I am to live and work. I only want
-nature, just as I only want God, through human nature."
-
-"By Jove! you hit the nail on the head sometimes, my boy. That is true
-for all of us. It is what I meant when I said that Oliver was a
-religion to me."
-
-"I don't mean women or individuals," protested Mendel. "I mean human
-nature in the lump. It may be very poor stuff, stupid and foolish and
-vulgar, but it is all we've got, and one lives in it and through it."
-
-"That is all very well while you are young," said Logan, "but you have
-to individualize it when you are older. One person becomes a point of
-contact. You can't just float through humanity like an apparition."
-
-Mendel had lost the thread of his argument, though not his confidence
-in its truth.
-
-"That is not what I meant," he said, "and I don't see how a person
-could be just a point of contact."
-
-"All I know is that Oliver is such a point of contact to me, and I
-know that unless art is inspired with some such feeling as you have
-described, all the technical skill and all the deft trickery in the
-world won't make it more than a sop for fools or an interesting
-survival of medićvalism. That is why I think you are going to be so
-valuable. You have so little to unlearn. You have only to shake off
-the most antiquated religion in the world and you can look at life and
-human nature without prejudice, while I have constantly to be
-uprooting all sorts of prejudices in favour of certain ways of living,
-morally and socially."
-
-Mendel was beginning to feel comfortable and easy, for while his mind
-worked furiously he could rarely express what he thought, and Logan in
-his talk often came near enough to it to afford him some relief and to
-urge him on to renewed digging in the recesses of his mind. It was a
-vast comfort to him to find that there were other vital thoughts
-besides that of Morrison, and that for ecstasy he was not entirely
-dependent upon her. Warmed up by his confidence in Logan, he resolved
-to tell him about the girl and the vast change she had wrought in his
-life.
-
-"I used to think," he said, "that if I stayed among my own people I
-could work my way through the poverty and the dirt and the Jewishness
-of it all to art. When she came I knew that it was impossible. She had
-something that I needed, something that the Jews do not know, or never
-have known. It is not my poverty that denies it to me, for if the poor
-Jews do not know a good thing, the rich Jews certainly do not, for the
-rich Jews are rubbish who stroke the Christians with one hand and rob
-them with the other. It is something that she knows almost without
-knowing it herself."
-
-Logan smiled.
-
-"I am not a fool about her," cried Mendel. "She is not particularly
-beautiful to me. There is only one line in her face that I think
-beautiful, from the cheek-bone to the jaw. I am not a fool about her,
-but I had almost given the Christian world up in despair. It seemed to
-me so bad, so inhuman, so hollow, so full of plump, respectable
-thieves. The simple thieves and bullies of my boyhood seemed to me
-infinitely preferable. And I had met some of the most important people
-in the Christian world: all empty and callous and lascivious. And the
-unimportant people were good enough, but dull, so dull. . . . Then
-comes this little girl. She is like Cranach's Eve among monkeys. She
-becomes at once to me what Cranach's wife must have been to him. He
-painted her as child, girl, and woman. The chattering apes matter to
-me no more. The Christian world is no longer empty. It is still
-lascivious and greedy, soft and ill-conditioned, puffy and stale, but
-it is suddenly full of meaning, of beauty, of a joy which, because I
-am a Jew, I cannot understand."
-
-"Give it up," growled Logan, "give it up. Paint her portrait and let
-her go. You are a born painter. To a painter women are either
-paintable or nothing. For God's sake don't go losing yourself in
-philosophy."
-
-"It is not philosophy!" cried Mendel indignantly. "It is what I feel."
-
-"It will probably end in a damned good picture," retorted Logan. "Why
-not be content with that?"
-
-"Because it will not answer what I want to know, and because I feel
-that there is something in the Jews, the real Jews, that she does not
-understand either. And she is not a fool. She has a mind. She has a
-deep character. She is strong, and she can get the better of me. She
-is secret and she is cruel."
-
-Logan gave his fat chuckle.
-
-"She is just an English girl with all the raw feeling bred out of her.
-She is true to type: impulsive without being sensual, kind without
-being affectionate; and she would let you or any man go to hell rather
-than give up anything she has been brought up to believe in or admit
-to her life anything that was strange, unfamiliar, and not good form,
-like yourself. . . . Give it up, give it up. You are only taking it
-seriously because you have been irresistible so far and it is the
-first setback you have received."
-
-"I will not give it up," said Mendel, setting his teeth. Then he
-laughed because the lights had gone up and the scene was gay and
-amusing, and he wanted to plunge into the merry crowd of Parisians and
-pleasure-seekers, to move among them and to come in contact with the
-women, to watch the men strutting to please them, to delight in the
-procession of excited faces, to taste the flavour of humanity which is
-always and everywhere the same, rich, astonishing, comforting,
-satisfying in its variety.
-
-Oliver and Thompson returned with their hands full of trinkets, toys,
-and pretty paper decorations which they had bought or won at games of
-chance and skill. She sat on Logan's knee and insisted on wreathing
-him with paper streamers, which he removed as fast as she placed them
-on his head.
-
-"Do! do!" she cried. "Do let go for once and let us all be gay. Oh! I
-do love this place, with the band playing, and the lights in the
-water, and the wonderful deep blue sky. Why don't we have a sky like
-that in London? Do let us come here every year for the summer.
-Thompson says painters have to come to Paris if they want to be any
-good."
-
-"I've been telling her about Van Gogh," said Thompson.
-
-"So that's what's gone to your head!" growled Logan, patting her
-cheek. "He's been talking to you about painting, has he?"
-
-"Yes. He's is a nice man, and doesn't treat me as if I was a perfect
-fool."
-
-She darted a mischievous glance at Mendel, who started under it as
-though he had been stung. He was horrified at the depth of his dislike
-of her, and he remembered with disgust her full, coarse bosom exposed
-as she lay in her calculated swoon. . . . How good it had been while
-she was gone with that fool Thompson, who suited her so perfectly,
-that chattering ape, with his talk of Van Gogh and Gauguin and
-"abstract art," who stood now coveting her with shining eyes and
-fatuously smiling lips.
-
-"I'm not good enough for some people," she said. "When I come into the
-room there is silence."
-
-"Oh, shut up!" said Logan. "Let's go and have dinner and get back to
-Paris. I'm sick of this cardboard place, where there is nothing but
-pleasure."
-
-They had an excellent dinner, during which Oliver never stopped
-chattering and Mendel never once opened his lips. His thoughts were
-away in England, in his studio with his work, and in the country with
-Morrison, and he struggled to bring them together in his mind. How
-could Logan love Oliver and keep her apart from his work? Two such
-passions must infallibly seek each other out and come to grips. They
-must come together or be flung violently apart. . . . Passions were to
-him as real as persons; they had individualities, needs, desires; they
-were entities insisting upon their right to existence; they must
-express themselves, must make their impression upon the circumambient
-world.
-
-He became critical of Logan, though he hated to be so. Logan stood to
-him for adventure and freedom, independence and courage. It was
-incomprehensible to him that Logan should take Oliver seriously. She
-was the woman for a holiday, for a wild outburst of lawlessness, not
-for the morning and the evening and the day between.
-
-"Oh, do cheer up, Kühler! You are like a death's-head at a feast."
-
-He looked at her with a piercing glance which silenced her. No: she
-was no holiday woman. She was the woman for a drab, drudging life,
-with no other colour or joy in it than her own animal warmth. She was
-like Rosa, made for just such a dreary, simple, devoted fool as Issy.
-What could she do with a strong passion? She could only absorb it like
-a sponge, and nothing could kindle her. Just a drab; just a sponge.
-
-Thinking so, his dislike of her grew into a hatred so passionate that
-he desired to know more of her, to watch her, to beget a clear idea of
-her. He went and sat by her side and teased her, while she teased him
-and told him he was the prettiest boy she had ever seen.
-
-"That night in the Tube I thought you were the prettiest boy I ever
-saw, and I was quite disappointed when Logan came to speak to me
-instead of you."
-
-"I would never have taken you from the shop," he said. "I would have
-taken you to my studio, and perhaps I would have painted you, but I
-would have sent you back to the shop."
-
-"I wouldn't have gone, so there!" she said. "What would you have done
-then?"
-
-"I should have turned you out."
-
-"Oh! Would you? Filthy brute! If I'm good enough for one thing I'm
-good enough for another. Do you hear that, Logan? He would have turned
-me out!"
-
-"You leave Kühler alone," said Logan. "You'll never understand him, if
-you try for a thousand years."
-
-"Turned me out?" muttered Oliver. "Heuh! I like that. He'd turn me out
-and get another girl in! I'll not have any of those tricks from you,
-Logan."
-
-"You can talk about them when I begin them," he replied.
-
-She turned from Mendel to Thompson and soon had him soft in her
-snares.
-
-"She would like to do that with me," thought Mendel, "and she hates me
-because she knows she cannot."
-
-* * * * *
-
-They returned to Paris by bus all sleepy and a little drunk. Oliver
-leaned her head on Logan's shoulder and dozed, smiling to herself,
-while Thompson, sitting by her side, fingered her sleeve.
-
-They were carried far beyond the point where they should have
-descended, and finding themselves on the boulevards, they woke up to
-the liveliness of the Parisian night, and Oliver refused to go home.
-
-Thompson suggested the cabarets, and they went from one dreary vicious
-hole to another until they came on one where a party of Americans were
-doing in Paris as the Parisians do. They had brought on a number of
-_cocottes_ from the Bal Tabarin, and were drinking, shouting, dancing.
-Thompson led Oliver into the męlée, and soon she was drinking,
-shouting, dancing with the rest.
-
-Mendel was horrified and disgusted. There was no zest in the riot. It
-was a piece of deliberate, cold-blooded bestialization. He trembled
-with rage, and turned to Logan, who was sitting with a sickly smile on
-his face:--
-
-"You ought not to let her," he cried--almost moaned. "If she were my
-woman I would not let her. I would kill any man who laid hands on her
-like that. She is not a prostitute. I would not let my woman be a
-prostitute."
-
-But Logan did not move. He sat with his sickly smile on his face. He
-was drunk and could not move.
-
-Unable to bear the scene any longer, Mendel rushed away, jumped into a
-taxi, and drove back to the hotel, swearing that he would go back to
-London the next day. He would write and tell Logan that he must get
-rid of Oliver or no longer be his friend. She was a poisonous drab.
-She would be the ruin of his friend.
-
-An hour or two later Logan came back. He was very white, and his hair
-was dank, and there was a cold sweat on his face.
-
-"My God!" he said, "Kühler! Are you awake? I don't know where she is.
-I went to sleep. I was so tired, and there was such a row with those
-blasted Americans. I went to sleep and awoke to find a nigger shaking
-me and the place empty. . . . Where does Thompson live? Do you know?"
-
-"Off the Boulevard Raspail. I went there to look at his rubbishy
-pictures. I think I could find the way. Are you going to kill him?"
-
-"I want to find her," said Logan. "I must find her. It is killing me
-to think of her lost in Paris. I must find her. I can't sleep without
-her. I must find her."
-
-He hardly seemed to know what he was saying.
-
-"Come along then," said Mendel. "I think I can find where Thompson
-lives."
-
-It was not far. They walked along the deserted boulevard under the new
-white, florid buildings, and turned into an impasse.
-
-"That's it," said Mendel. "Impasse. I remember that. A tall, thin
-house with a big yellow door. Here it is."
-
-They knocked until the yellow door swung mysteriously open and then
-ran upstairs to the top floor.
-
-Thompson came blinking into the passage.
-
-"Where's Oliver? Where's Logan's girl?"
-
-Mendel put up his fist to hit him in the eye.
-
-"I put her into a taxi and sent her home. The Americans took us on to
-another place. They were a jolly lot. A terrific place they took us
-to. There were negresses dancing and a South Seas girl who said
-Gauguin brought her back. . . . Oliver's all right. I put her in a
-taxi and sent her back."
-
-"You're a liar!" shouted Logan. "She's in there."
-
-He rushed in, while Mendel put his arms round Thompson and laid him
-neatly on the floor. In a moment Logan was out again.
-
-"You're a shocking bad painter," he said to Thompson, "but she isn't
-there."
-
-They left the house and walked slowly back to the hotel. Logan clung
-to Mendel's arm, saying:--
-
-"It's my fault. She said if ever I knocked her about she'd clear out.
-Do you mind walking about with me? I couldn't go to bed. I couldn't
-sleep."
-
-All night they walked about; going back to the hotel every half hour
-to see if she was there, talking of anything and everything, even
-politics, to keep Logan's mind from the fixed horrible idea that had
-taken possession of it. They saw the sun come out, and the workers
-hurrying along the streets, and the waiters in the cafés push up the
-heavy iron shutters that had only been pulled down an hour or two
-before, and the market women with their baskets, and the tramcars
-glide and jolt along, the shops open and the girls go chattering to
-their work through the long, leisurely Parisian day.
-
-They returned at eight and had breakfast. At half-past nine Oliver
-appeared, smiling and serene.
-
-"We did have fun last night! You missed something, I tell you."
-
-"Where have you been?" cried Logan. "I've been looking for you all
-night."
-
-"What a fool you are! I can look after myself."
-
-"Where have you been?"
-
-She faced him with a bold stare and said:--
-
-"I got home about half-past two, and I took another room, partly
-because I didn't want to disturb you, and partly--you know why."
-
-"What number was your room?"
-
-"Forty-four."
-
-From where they sat Mendel could see the keyboard in the concierge's
-lodge. There were only forty rooms in the hotel.
-
-"Have you had breakfast?" asked Logan, forcing himself to believe her.
-
-"Hours ago. In bed," she replied. "I paid for it and the bed."
-
-"Why did you do that?" he snapped.
-
-She caught Mendel's eyes fixed on her, eager to see her trapped, and
-she smiled insolently as she replied:--
-
-"I thought it would be a good joke if I let you think I had been out
-all night. But you look such a wreck that I don't think you could see
-a joke. . . . What are we going to do to-day?"
-
-"We are going home," said Logan.
-
-
-
-BOOK THREE
-
-THE PASSING OF YOUTH
-
-
-
-I
-
-EDWARD TUFNELL
-
-A WRETCHED journey home, a miserable journey. There had been a high
-wind, leaving a heavy swell, and Mendel shared the feelings of his
-brother-in-law, Moscowitsch, concerning the sea. It made him ill, and
-he never wished to see it again.
-
-Oliver sat with her eyes closed while Logan held her hand and
-whispered to her. The boat was crowded, for it was the first to make
-the crossing for two days. Detestable people, detestable sea,
-detestable evil-smelling boat! . . . How lightly they had undertaken
-the trip to Paris! Only seven hours! But what hours!
-
-Mendel's disgust endured until they reached London. This was home to
-him, and never, never again would he travel. The discomfort of it was
-too odious, the shock to his habits too great. In London he did at
-least know what to avoid, while in Paris there was no knowing when he
-might be plunged into a dreary, glittering place full of prostitutes
-and Americans.
-
-He was glad to part with Logan and Oliver. They had so much to settle
-with each other that he felt he was an unnecessary third. Paris had
-done violence to their relationship. They had gone there light of
-heart; they had returned oppressed and entangled. . . . And in London
-it was raining; but that was good, because familiar. It was good to go
-out into the friendly streets and to see them shining like black
-rivers, and to see the people hurrying under their dripping umbrellas
-and the women with their skirts up to their knees.
-
-He seemed to have been away a very long time, and yet Paris seemed
-very far off too, an unreal memory, like a place of which he had read
-or seen in photographs. He was glad when he mounted a bus and knew
-that it was bearing him towards his own people.
-
-Golda was very excited. She had had a letter from Harry, who had seen
-his brother in Paris, but had been too shy to speak to him because of
-his friends.
-
-"You should have gone to see your brother," she said.
-
-"How could I?" asked Mendel. "I did not know where he was."
-
-"You speak Yiddish. You could have found him. He has done very well,
-but he is coming home to us. He does not like to live away from his
-people, and he says England is best."
-
-And Mendel thought that England was indeed best. For him, then,
-England meant his mother's kitchen, with its odd decorations from
-Tottenham Court Road, its dresser crammed with gilded china and
-fringed with cut green paper, its collection of his early pictures,
-almost all hanging crooked, and the hard wooden chair in which Golda
-sat all day long with her hands on her stomach, dreaming and brooding
-of her life, which through all her hardships had been sweet because of
-her beautiful child whom everybody loved and spoiled, as she herself
-loved and spoiled him because he was not like other children. England
-was best because it could contain that peace and that beauty, and
-there was nothing in England to harm it or in envy to destroy it.
-
-Mendel could understand his brother wanting to come back to it; for
-he, too, from all his adventures, returned to its simplicity for
-strength and comfort.
-
-Moscowitsch came in with a Jewish paper. He was in a terrible state of
-anger and hatred. His eyes flashed and his nostrils quivered as he
-read out how a Jew in Russia had been accused of killing a Christian
-boy for his blood, and how over a thousand Jews had been massacred on
-the instigation of the police.
-
-"It grows worse and worse," he said. "The Jews do not kill. It is the
-Christians who lust for blood. It is the Christians who are so wicked
-and dishonest that, when they must be found out, they say it is the
-Jews, or that the Jews are more wicked than they. It is impossible.
-But England is good to the Jews. England must send soldiers to Russia
-or the Jews will be all murdered."
-
-"Yes, it is bad in Russia," said Golda, nodding her head. "But life is
-bad everywhere for good people. Only in England one is left alone."
-
-"Well, Mr. Artist!" said Moscowitsch genially. "Made your fortune
-yet?"
-
-"No," replied Mendel; "but I have been to Paris for my holidays and I
-stayed in a hotel. Three of us spent twenty pounds."
-
-"So?" said Moscowitsch, impressed. "Have you made it up with the
-Birnbaum, then?"
-
-"No."
-
-"That is not the way to get on, to quarrel with money."
-
-"If he wants money," said Golda, "he can always get it. What more do
-you want? There are some letters for you, Mendel."
-
-He opened his letters, and had the satisfaction of telling Moscowitsch
-that he was asked to paint a portrait for thirty pounds.
-
-"Who is it?" asked Moscowitsch. "A lord?" He had an idea that only
-lords had their portraits painted by hand.
-
-"That's better," he said. "That's better than painting those pictures
-that nobody wants. You paint what they ask you and you'll soon make
-your fortune, and be able to give your mother dresses covered with
-beads and tickets for the theatre and china ornaments. And you can be
-thankful you don't live in Russia. They wouldn't let you be an artist
-there. If you became a student they would send you off to Siberia and
-you would die in the snow."
-
-It was the first time Moscowitsch had spoken to him since the breach
-with Birnbaum, and Mendel was at his ease with him again, and glad to
-be with his people. He knew that Moscowitsch was greatly attached to
-Golda, and had more than once urged his being taken away from his
-painting and put to some useful trade.
-
-"Oh! I shall very soon succeed," he said boastfully. "This is only a
-beginning. You keep an eye on that paper of yours. You will find
-something else to read besides what Russia does to the Jews. You will
-see what England does for a Jew when he has talent and honesty."
-
-"They made Disraeli a lord," said Moscowitsch.
-
-"I shall be something much better than a lord."
-
-"They only make painters R.A."
-
-"I shall be much better than that," said Mendel.
-
-"It is like old times," laughed Golda, "to hear him boasting."
-
-Mendel opened another letter. It was an invitation to become a member
-of an exhibiting club which considered itself exclusive.
-
-"I have been invited to become a member of a club."
-
-That settled Moscowitsch. A club to him was proof of success and
-social distinction. He and his wife had made the acquaintance of a
-member of the music-hall profession who had two clubs, and they
-counted him a feather in their caps. To have a member of a club in the
-family was almost overwhelming, and he forgot the sorrows of the Jews
-in Russia.
-
-* * * * *
-
-The portrait commission was from Edward Tufnell, who had lately
-married and had been adopted as a candidate for Parliament for a
-northern constituency. Good earnest soul that he was, he regarded
-himself as responsible for launching Mendel upon the world, and once
-he had assumed a responsibility he never forgot it. Nothing made any
-difference to him. He had heard tales of the boy's wildness, but he
-accepted responsibility for that too, read up the histories of men of
-genius for precedent, and acknowledged the inevitability of the flying
-of sparks from the collision of a strong individuality and the habits
-of the world.
-
-He had always intended to give his protégé a lift, and had tried in
-vain to badger his father and his uncle, partners in a huge woollen
-manufactory, into having their portraits painted. They preferred to
-sink their money in men with reputations. He did not see how Mendel
-could acquire a reputation except by giving him work to do. On the
-other hand, he shrank from what he considered the vanity of having his
-own portrait painted, but his charmingly pretty wife gave him the
-opportunity he desired.
-
-Therefore he invited Mendel to his house in the dales to stay until
-the picture was finished.
-
-A day or two later and Mendel was in the train, being whirled North
-through the dull, rolling Midlands and the black, smirched valleys of
-the West Riding. The gloomy sky filled him with terror. At first he
-thought there was going to be a storm, but there seemed to be no life
-in the sky, and its strangeness oppressed him. The people in the train
-spoke a language which seemed almost as foreign as French, and when
-the train darted through forests of smoking chimney-stacks and he
-looked down into the grimy, trough-like streets, he was dismayed to
-think that here were depths of misery compared with which the East End
-was as a holiday ground. This, too, was England, and he had said that
-England was best. He remembered Jews in the East End who had fled from
-the North and said they would rather go back to Russia than return to
-the tailoring shops and the boot factories. So this vile, busy
-blackness was the North!
-
-For some mysterious reason it made him think of Logan and Oliver, and
-the thought of them filled him with an added uneasiness. He had not
-thought of them once since the trip to Paris, and now he felt bound to
-them, and that they were a weight upon him. They stood out vividly
-against the murky, lifeless sky. He could see them standing hand in
-hand, smiling a little foolishly, and a physical tremor shot through
-him as he thought of the contact of their two hands, thrilling
-together, pressing together, to tell of their terrible need of each
-other. . . . This man and this woman. Mendel was haunted by the images
-of all the couples he knew, and they passed before him like a shadowy
-procession of the damned, all hand in hand, across the lifeless sky,
-all shadowy except Logan and Oliver, and then two others, his father
-and his mother; but they were not hand in hand. They were seated side
-by side, like two statues, and behind them the lifeless sky broke and
-opened to show the infinite blue space beyond the clouds.
-
-He had changed at the darkest of the chimneyed towns, and the shabby
-local train went grinding and puffing through a tunnel into a vast
-green valley. At the first station he saw Edward Tufnell on the
-platform. He had changed a good deal, and was no longer the lanky,
-earnest youth of the Settlement, but his eyes still had their steady,
-serene expression and their sunny, beautiful smile.
-
-He flung up his hand as he saw Mendel, smiled, and came fussily, as
-though he were meeting the Prime Minister himself. He insisted on
-carrying Mendel's bag and canvases and made him feel small and young
-again, as he used to when he went trotting along by Edward's side on
-his way to the French class.
-
-"It's a long journey," said Edward. "You must be tired."
-
-"Oh no! I don't mind any journey as long as I don't have to cross the
-sea."
-
-"It is only two miles now."
-
-They climbed into a dogcart and drove, for the most part at a walk, up
-a long, winding road that crept like a worm along the flanks of a huge
-hill.
-
-"Glorious country!" said Edward. "I love it. The South doesn't seem to
-me to be country at all--just a huge park. One is afraid to walk on
-the grass. But here there is room and freedom. One understands why the
-North is Liberal."
-
-"It is too big for me," replied Mendel. "But then I can't get used to
-the country. I'm not myself in it. I feel in it as though I were on
-the edge of the world and in danger of falling off. Yes. The country
-seems dangerous to me, and I could never walk along a road at night."
-
-"How odd that is!" laughed Edward. "If I am ever afraid it is in the
-town. The vast masses of people do really terrify me sometimes, when I
-think of governing them all."
-
-"They can look after themselves," said Mendel simply.
-
-Over the shoulder of the hill they came on a grey stone house with a
-walled garden. Edward turned in at the gate, flicked his horse into a
-trot up the steep drive, and drew up by the front door, in which was
-standing a dainty little lady in a mauve cotton gown and a wide
-Leghorn straw hat.
-
-"Here he is, my dear!" said Edward. "My wife, Kühler."
-
-"I'm so glad you could come," said the little lady. "My husband has
-told me so much about you."
-
-"Not half what he could tell if he only knew," thought Mendel.
-
-"I'm afraid it is a very long way for you to come," she said, leading
-him into the house while Edward drove round to the stables. "It is
-very good of you. We are very quiet here, but you can do just as you
-like, and I shall always be ready for you when you want me."
-
-She had a very charming voice that seemed to bubble with happiness,
-and she had the air of being surprised at herself for being so happy.
-The house was pervaded with her atmosphere, fragrant and good, and
-every corner seemed to be full of surprise, every piece of furniture
-looked astonished at finding itself in its place--so perfectly in its
-place. This fragrant perfection was the more amazing as the outside of
-the house was more than a little grim, and the hill behind it was dark
-and ominous, while several of the trees were blasted and chapped with
-the wind.
-
-Mendel had never seen such a house, and when Edward took him up to his
-room he almost wept with delight at the comfort and sweetness of it
-all. There was a fire burning in the grate, by the side of which was a
-huge easy chair. Flowered chintz curtains were drawn across the
-windows, and the same gay chintz covered the bed. On the
-wash-hand-stand was a shining brass can of hot water. There were books
-by the bedside, the carpet was of a thick pile, and the furniture was
-old and exquisite. . . . He was filled with delight and gratitude.
-
-"Yes," he thought, "England is best! Comfortable England."
-
-And when Edward showed him the big tiled bathroom he had a shiver of
-dismay, and thought what a dirty, uncouth fellow he was to come among
-these exquisite people.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Mary Tufnell put him at his ease at once and encouraged him to talk
-about himself. He was frank and gay and amusing, and told her about
-his adventures and many of his troubles, and even ventured once or
-twice upon scabrous details.
-
-"He is a darling," she said to Edward. "But how he must have suffered.
-He is such a boy, but sometimes he seems to me the oldest person I
-have ever met."
-
-"You must remember that he is a Jew," said Edward.
-
-"He doesn't let you forget it," replied she.
-
-* * * * *
-
-The portrait was begun the next day. Mendel took a business-like view
-of his visit. He was there to paint and to make thirty pounds. Every
-moment that his hostess could spare he seized upon. He painted her in
-her mauve cotton and Leghorn hat and would not talk while he worked.
-
-When the light was gone he was ready for any entertainment they might
-propose. He did not find either of them particularly interesting, and
-their unfailing kindness wearied him not a little. They were so
-invariably good in every thought, word, and deed. It seemed impossible
-for them to fail. There was no combination of circumstances which they
-could not surmount with their smiling patience. . . . He thought of
-them as two people walking along on either side of a road, smiling
-across it at each other. Nothing joined them. They had never met.
-There had been no collision. He had overtaken her on the road and had
-taken her step, her pace. . . . They had just that air. Dear Edward
-had fallen in with her by the wayside, and she had smiled at him and
-he was content and held for life. To their mutual grave astonishment
-she would have children, and her smile would become a little sad, and
-with the children she would be an ideal to Edward, like the little
-Italian Madonnas of whom he had so many photographs all over the
-house. And between them on the road would march the brave procession
-of life--kings and beggars, priests and prostitutes, artists and
-peasants, chariots, and strange engines of peace and war; but they
-would see nothing of it: they would see only each other, and they
-would smile and go smiling to the grave.
-
-Mendel was at his ease with them and very happy, but suddenly out of
-nowhere there would arise, as it were, a great stench that pricked his
-nostrils and set him longing for London. And he would think of Logan
-and Oliver and ache to be with them, so that he knew that he was bound
-to them in the flesh. They were embarked upon a great adventure in
-which he must be with them to the end, for Logan was his friend, with
-whom he must share even the deepest bitterness. With Edward he could
-share nothing at all, for Edward was absurdly, incredibly innocent,
-content to smile by the wayside.
-
-He wrote to Logan and Oliver and told them how he was longing to be
-with them, and how the country filled him with childish fears, and how
-Paris seemed a thousand miles away and its adventures a thousand years
-ago. And he was hurt because they did not at once reply.
-
-He received two letters one morning. Logan wrote telling him he ought
-not to waste his time over portraits, and that he must come back to
-London soon, because the autumn was to see their triumph: nothing
-about himself, nothing about Oliver. Mendel was disappointed: nobody
-ever really answered his letters, into which he flung all his feeling.
-
-His other letter was from Morrison. His first letter from her. He knew
-her hand, though he had never seen it before--round, big, simple. He
-kept her letter until his day's work was done, and then he went into
-the garden to read it. There was an arbour at the end of a mossy walk
-which led to a crag above a little waterfall. Out of the crag grew a
-mountain ash, brilliant in berry. This was the most beautiful spot in
-the garden, and so he chose it for reading the letter.
-
-"I want you to forgive me for being so foolish. I want to try again. I
-hate being beaten, and I think it was only my stupidity that beat me.
-I have been thinking of you all the time, and I have been troubled
-about you. What people said had nothing at all to do with it. I admire
-you more than I can say, and I have been very foolish.
-
-"It has been a lovely summer. I have been working hard and feel
-hopeless about it. Please don't ask to see my work. While I am at it I
-am wondering all the time what you are doing.
-
-"I am to be allowed to come back to London in October. There is no
-reason why you should not write to me."
-
-She was there with him, by his side, under the glowing rowan-tree,
-gazing down at the little white waterfall dashing so merrily down into
-the pebbled beck. She was there with him, and his blood sang in his
-veins and his mind began to work, pounding along as it had not done
-these many weeks. . . . Weeks? Years--more than a lifetime.
-
-He went back to his picture and thought it very, very bad. Edward and
-his wife came in and looked at it dubiously.
-
-"Of course," said Edward, "it is a very jolly picture, but I don't
-think you have caught all her charm."
-
-"But the painting of the hat is wonderful," said Mary.
-
-"What do I care?" thought Mendel. "It is you--you as you are, smiling,
-eternally smiling over your little clean, comfortable happiness, three
-parts of which you have bought, with your servants and your flowers
-and your bathroom."
-
-In a day or two he was being whirled back to London, shouting every
-now and then from sheer exuberance--thirty pounds in his pocket,
-October to look forward to: October, when London shook off its summer
-listlessness; October, when She would return; and until October he
-would run with his eyes on the trail of the burning, creeping passion
-that bound him to Logan and Oliver.
-
-
-
-II
-
-THE CAMPAIGN OPENS
-
-HE reached London in the afternoon, and as soon as it was evening went
-to Camden Town to find Logan. Only Oliver was in. She was sitting in
-the window smoking. There had been a tea-party, and the floor was
-littered with cups, plates of bread and butter and cakes, fragments of
-biscuit, some of which had been trodden on.
-
-Mendel surveyed this litter ruefully, and he said:--
-
-"Why don't you wash up?"
-
-"Logan said he would. I washed up after breakfast. I'm not a servant,
-and he keeps on promising to have someone in to help."
-
-"Will you wash up if I help you?"
-
-"No, thanks. Logan's got to do it."
-
-"Who has been to tea?"
-
-"Oh! A funny lot. Some of Logan's fools who think he is a great man."
-
-"He is a great man," said Mendel.
-
-"Heuh! You try living with him. What's the good of being a great man
-if you don't make any money? It's all very well for Calthrop to live
-like a pig. He makes money and can do what he likes."
-
-"If you don't like it you can always clear out."
-
-"Where to? Eh? To go the round of the studios and oblige people like
-you? Not much! It isn't as if I was married to him. I can't make him
-keep me. Besides, he wouldn't let me go. If I went he would run after
-me. I suppose you hadn't thought of that, Mr. Kühler. You don't know
-what it is to care for anybody. I'd like to see some one play you and
-play you, and then turn you down. That would teach you a lesson, that
-would."
-
-"What's the matter with you?"
-
-"I'm not going to stand it any longer," she said. "I'm not going to be
-put on one side like dirt while you go on with your conceited talk.
-You're both so conceited you don't know how to hold yourselves. I'm a
-woman, and I stand for something in the world. A woman is more
-important than the biggest picture that was ever painted."
-
-"It depends upon the woman."
-
-"All right, then. _I'm_ more important. You talk about Logan keeping
-me. He can consider himself damned lucky I stay with him."
-
-"Oh! you're both in luck," snapped Mendel, and he sat down and refused
-to say another word.
-
-Oliver began to whistle and then to hum. She fidgeted in her chair.
-She thought she had come off rather well in the sparring match. She
-had been dreading Mendel's return, for since the Paris adventure she
-had been asserting herself, as she called it, beating Logan down,
-bewildering him with her extraordinary sweetness and cajolery and
-sudden outbursts of fury. Both had agreed to bury the memory of the
-last night in Paris, but the thoughts of both were centred upon it.
-She rejoiced that she had served him out, but she had been stirred to
-a degree that alarmed her. Her former condition of lazy sensual
-security had been broken, and she dreaded Logan's jealousy. She knew
-that she was not his equal in force, but she set herself to overcome
-him with cunning. His force would spend itself. She knew that. She
-must then bind him fast with tricks and lures, rouse the curiosity of
-his senses and keep it unsatisfied.
-
-She had succeeded wonderfully. Logan crumbled and turned soft and
-sugary under her arts, and only one impulse in him resisted her--his
-love for Mendel; and through that love his passion for art. Therefore
-she dreaded and hated Mendel's return.
-
-Presently she ceased to hum. She thought suddenly that perhaps it had
-been a mistake to meet Mendel with hostility.
-
-"I say, Kühler, do give us one of your cigarettes. These are awful
-muck."
-
-He threw his cigarette-case over to her.
-
-"Did you have a good time up North?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"I come from there, you know. Logan was furious with you for going. He
-is really very fond of you, you know."
-
-"I don't need you to tell me that."
-
-"He's very excited just now. He keeps talking about the artistic
-revolution and the twentieth century, and all that, you know. He has
-been reading a book called 'John Christopher,' and keeps on reading it
-aloud until I'm sick of it. I believe he thinks he is like
-Christopher, though I'm sure he's not, because Christopher could never
-see a joke. It is all about women, one after another, just left
-anyhow. It doesn't sound like a story to me at all."
-
-"It sounds true," said Mendel, not paying much attention to what she
-said.
-
-To his intense relief Logan came in with a frame under his arm.
-
-"Hullo!" he said. "Got back? How did you like the swells?"
-
-"They were good people," replied Mendel, "and wonderfully peaceful. I
-don't think I appreciated it enough while I was there, but it seems
-very clear and beautiful to me now."
-
-"Portrait any good?"
-
-"No."
-
-Logan put down his frame and without a word to Oliver proceeded to
-wash up the tea-things. She stayed in her chair in the window and
-hummed.
-
-To Mendel his friend seemed altered. He had lost his good-humour and
-something of his happy recklessness, and he was more concentrated and
-full of a wary self-consciousness.
-
-He came out of the bedroom when the washing up was done and flung
-himself on the divan, stretched himself out, and said:--
-
-"I'm tired; done up. Lord! What fools there are in the world! No more
-portraits for you, my boy; at least, not this side of thirty. Ten
-years good solid work ahead of you."
-
-He laughed.
-
-"I told Cluny he must hurry up or you would slide off into
-portrait-painting. Dealers hate the mere sound of the word. He is
-going to hurry up. I've played you for all I am worth, and Cluny is in
-my pocket. Oh! I'm a man of destiny, I am."
-
-A snort and a giggle came from Oliver. Logan sat up.
-
-"Leave the room!" he said.
-
-"Shan't."
-
-"Leave the room. I want to talk to Kühler."
-
-"Talk away then. I shan't listen."
-
-Logan walked over to her, seized her by the arms, and pushed her into
-the bedroom and locked the door. It was done very quickly and
-dexterously, as though it were a practised manoeuvre.
-
-"I'm finding out how to treat her," he said. "Quiet firmness does the
-trick."
-
-He met Mendel's eyes fixed on him in horrified inquiry and turned
-sharply away.
-
-"It isn't as bad as it looks," he said. "The fact is, women aren't fit
-for liberty and an artist ought to have nothing to do with them. But
-what can a man do? . . . What were we talking about?"
-
-"Cluny."
-
-"Oh yes! He wants the exhibition to be the first fortnight in
-November. Can you be ready by then? It must be a turning-point in art,
-the beginning of big things. I know myself enough to realize that it
-is doubtful if I shall ever be a great creative artist, but I shall be
-the Napoleon of the new movement--the soldier and the organizer of the
-revolution in art. And it won't be confined to art; it will spread
-through everything. Art will be the central international republic
-from which the commonwealths which will take the place of the present
-vulgar capitalistic nations will be inspired. What do you think of
-that for an idea?"
-
-"Stick to art," said Mendel. "I know nothing about the rest."
-
-"Do you remember my saying that the music-hall was all that was left
-of old England? I did not know how true it was. England has become one
-vast music-hall, with everybody with any talent or brains scrambling
-to top the bill. It runs through everything--art, politics, the press,
-literature, social reform, women's suffrage, local government; and the
-people who top the bill can't be dislodged, just like the poor old
-crocks on the halls, who come on and give the same show they were
-giving twenty years ago, and get applause instead of rotten eggs
-because the British public is so rotten with sentiment and so stupid
-that it can't tell when a man has lost his talent. Please one
-generation in England and its grandchildren will applaud you, though
-everything about you is changed except your name. The result is, of
-course, that no talent is ever properly developed. A man reaches the
-point where he can please enough people to make a living, and he
-sticks there. Now, I ask you, is that a state of things which a
-self-respecting artist can accept?"
-
-"No," said Mendel. "No."
-
-"Well. It has to be altered. And who is to alter it if not the
-painters, who are less in contact with the general public than any
-other artists? Painters had a comfortable time last century, living on
-the North-country municipal councils, but that is all over and we are
-reduced to poops like Tysoe. There are any number of them, if one only
-took the trouble to dig them up, but they're no good. I've lived on
-them for the last ten years, and they're no good. You might as well
-squeeze your paints into the sink and turn on the tap for all the
-flicker of appreciation you get out of them. Then there are the snobs,
-the semi-demimondaines of the political set; but they are a seedy lot,
-with the minds and the interests of chorus-girls. You might whip up a
-little excitement at Oxford and Cambridge, but it would only vanish as
-soon as the young idiots came in contact with London and fell in love.
-. . . No. Behind the scenes of the music-hall is no good. We must make
-a direct onslaught on the general public. They must be taught that
-there is such a thing as art and that there are men devoted to the
-disinterested development of their talents--men who have no desire to
-top the bill or to make five hundred a week; men who recognize that
-art is European, universal, the invisible fabric in which human life
-is contained, and are content, like simple workmen, to keep it in
-repair."
-
-"I don't know," said Mendel, "if my brother-in-law Moscowitsch is
-typical, but he regards art which does not make money as a waste of
-time."
-
-"Oh! He is a Jew and uneducated. That's where Tolstoi went so wrong.
-He confused the simplicity of art with the simplicity of the peasant,
-the dignity of the unsophisticated with the dignity that is achieved
-through sophistication. It may seem absurd to talk of bringing about
-anything so big through little Cluny, but it is not only possible, it
-is inevitable. The staleness of London cannot go on, and Paris seemed
-just the same to me. Stagnation is intolerable. There must come a
-movement towards freedom and a grander gesture, and the only free
-people are the painters. They are the only people whose work has not
-become servile and vulgarized. Through them lies the natural outlet.
-. . . Oh! I have been thinking and thinking, and I thank God we met
-before you had been spoiled by success or I had been ruined by my
-rotten swindling life--though that has had its advantages too, and I
-can meet the dealers on their own ground, and if necessary advertise
-as impudently as any of the music-hall artists."
-
-Oliver began to hammer on the door. He went and unlocked it and let
-her in.
-
-"You can talk as much as you like now," he said. "I've said my say."
-
-"I heard you," she replied, "talking to Kühler as if he was a crowd in
-Hyde Park."
-
-Mendel was lost in thought. He was baffled by this association of art
-with things like politics and music-halls, which he had always
-accepted as part of the world's constitution but essentially
-unimportant. He had no organized mental life. His ideas came direct
-from his instincts to his mind, and were either used for immediate
-purposes or dropped back again to return when wanted. However, he
-recognized the passionate nervous energy that made Logan's words full
-and round, and he was glad to have him so accessible and so eager and
-purposeful. On the whole, it did not matter to him why Logan thought
-his work so important. No one else thought it so, and certainly no one
-else had taken so much trouble to help it to find recognition. Logan
-seemed to promise him public fame, and that would delight and reassure
-his father and mother more than anything else. They treasured every
-mention of his name in the newspapers, pasted the cuttings in a book,
-and produced it for every visitor to the house.
-
-Struggling for ideas with which to match Logan's, he became
-instinctively aware that his friend's enthusiasm was deliberate, not
-in itself faked, but artificially heated. Behind it lay a deeper
-passion, from which he was endeavouring to divert the energy it
-claimed.
-
-Sitting between Logan and Oliver, Mendel could almost intercept the
-current of feeling that ran between them. It offended him as an
-indecency that they should have so little control over themselves as
-to reveal their condition of mutual obsession. . . . It reminded him
-of his impression of the police-court, where the secret sores of
-society were exposed nakedly, and queer, helpless, shameless,
-unrestrained creatures were dealt with almost like parcels in a shop.
-And again he had the sensation of being bound to them, of being
-confined with them in that little room, of a dead pressure being upon
-him, until he must scream or go mad.
-
-He looked at them. Did they not feel it too? Logan was lying back with
-his hands beneath his head and his lips pressed together and a scowl
-on his face, looking as though his thoughts and his destiny were
-almost, but, of course, not quite too much for him. Oliver was looking
-out of the window with her hands on her hips, humming. She laughed and
-said:--
-
-"I'd sooner live with an undertaker than an artist. He would be up to
-a bit of fun sometimes, and he'd do his work without making such a
-fuss about it."
-
-"There's an undertaker at the corner of the next street. You'd better
-ask him to take you on."
-
-"As a corpse?" asked Mendel, exploding and spluttering at what seemed
-to him a very good joke. The others turned and looked at him solemnly,
-but neither of them laughed, and gradually his amusement subsided and
-he said lamely:--
-
-"I thought it was very funny."
-
-"Oh! for goodness' sake let's go and have something to eat," said
-Oliver. "You're turning the place into a tomb with your silence. One'd
-think you were going to be crowned King of England instead of just
-holding a potty little exhibition."
-
-"He is going to be crowned King of Artists," said Mendel, making
-another attempt at a joke.
-
-"By God!" said Logan, "they'd kill me if they knew what I was like
-inside. Do you ever feel like that, Kühler, that all the birds in the
-cage would peck you to death for having got outside it? I do. I never
-see a policeman without feeling he is going to arrest me."
-
-"I used to feel like that sometimes," replied Mendel, "until I was
-arrested and realized that policemen are just people like anybody
-else. The man who arrested me was a very nice man."
-
-"Oh! I'm sick of your feelings," cried Oliver, "and I want my dinner."
-
-"All right," said Logan, reaching for his hat; "we'll go to the
-Pot-au-Feu and afterwards to the Paris Café and fish for critics. I
-shall nobble one or two swells through Tysoe. We'll pick up the more
-crapulous and lecherous at the café, and Oliver shall be the bait. So
-look your prettiest, my dear. . . . Let's have a look at you."
-
-He lit the gas and made her stand beneath it.
-
-"You'll do," he said, patting her cheek. "Come along."
-
-He put his arm through hers. She gave a wriggle of pleasure and
-pressed close to him.
-
-Mendel followed them downstairs with an omen at his heart. He felt
-sure that something violent would happen.
-
-* * * * *
-
-But nothing violent did happen. The evening was extraordinarily
-light-hearted and pleasant. Logan was his old self again, cracking
-jokes, mimicking people almost to their faces, giving absurd
-descriptions of his interviews with dealers and buyers, and concocting
-a burlesque history of his life. Mendel had never laughed so much
-since he was at the Detmold. His sides ached, and he was hard put to
-it to keep his countenance when at the café Logan caught two critics
-and told them that they must make no mistake this time: their
-reputations were at stake, nay, the reputation of art criticism was at
-the cross-roads, and art was on the threshold of its greatest period,
-and criticism should be its herald, not its camp-follower.
-
-"You fellows," said Logan, "use your brains, you are articulate. We
-are apt to get lost in paint, in coloured dreams of to-morrow and the
-spaces of the night. We lose touch with the world, with life. We are
-dependent on you--even the greatest genius is dependent on you. You
-are the real patrons of art. The herd follows you. Criticism must not
-shirk its duty. The kind of thing that happened with Manet, with
-Whistler, ought not to happen again."
-
-The two critics were unused to such treatment from painters. Oliver
-used her eyes upon them, detached one of them into a flirtation and
-left the other to Logan's mercies. Logan's blood was up. Here was a
-game he dearly loved, talking, bullying, hypnotizing another man out
-of his individuality. He invented monstrously, outrageously--concocted
-a whole new technique of painting, the discovery of which he ascribed
-to Mendel's genius, and ended up by saying that painting should be to
-England what music had been to Germany, a national and at the same
-time a universal art.
-
-The critic had drunk enough to take it all seriously, and he promised
-to call and see the work of both painters. His colleague, on the other
-hand, made arrangements to take Oliver out to tea and won her promise
-to come and see him at his flat.
-
-"That's all right," said Logan, as they left the café at closing time.
-"They will remember our names. They will forget how they came to know
-them and they will write about us."
-
-
-
-III
-
-SUCCESS
-
-IT was all very well for Logan to talk about modern England being a
-music-hall, but his methods were almost identical with those of the
-publicists whom he decried. The greater part of his energy went to
-find a market for his wares, leaving very little for the production of
-the wares themselves. Because he was excited and busy and full of
-enthusiasm, he took it for granted that he was in a vigorous condition
-and that his vision of the future of art would be expressed in art. He
-talked volubly of what he was doing and what he intended to do, even
-while he worked, and his nerves were so overwrought that he contracted
-a horror of being alone. Though Oliver jeered at him as he worked he
-would not let her go out, and when once or twice she insisted, he
-could not work, and went round to see Mendel and prevented his working
-either.
-
-Mendel knew nothing of markets and dealers and the relation of art to
-the world and its habits and institutions. He was carried off his feet
-by his friend's torrential energy, believed what he said, wore his
-thoughts as he would have worn his hat, and lived entirely for the
-exhibition which was to do such wonders for him. Twelve exhibits were
-required of him. He would have had forty-eight ready if he had been
-asked for them. When he missed the delight and the pure joy he had had
-in working, he told himself that these emotions were childish and
-unworthy of a man, and a nuisance, because they would have prevented
-him from knowing clearly what he wanted to do. He dashed at his canvas
-with a fair imitation of Logan's manner, slung the paint on to it with
-bold strokes, saying to himself: "There! That will astonish them! That
-will make them see what painting is!"
-
-And every now and then he would remember that he was in love. He must
-paint love as it had never been painted before.
-
-For his subject he chose Ruth in the cornfield, but very soon tired of
-painting ears of corn, so he left it looking like a square yellow
-block, and painted it up until it resembled a slice of Dutch cheese.
-Only when he came to Ruth's face and tried to make it express all the
-love with which his heart was overflowing did he paint with the old
-fastidious care, but even that could not keep him for long, and he
-returned to his corn, the shape of which had begun to fascinate him,
-and he wanted somehow to get it into relation with the hill on which
-it was set. But he could do nothing with it, and had to go back to
-Ruth and love.
-
-The effect was certainly startling and novel, and Logan was
-enthusiastic.
-
-"That's it," he said. "The nearest approach to modern art is the
-poster, which is not art, of course, because it is not designed by
-artists. But it does convey something to the modern mind, it does jog
-it out of its routine and habitual rut. Now, your picture wouldn't do
-for a poster. It is too good, but it has the same kind of effect.
-Stop! Look! Listen! Wake up, and see that there are beautiful women in
-the world and blue skies, and love radiant over all! This woman has
-nothing to do with what you felt for your wife when you proposed to
-her, or with what the parson said when the baby died: she is the woman
-the dream of whom lives always in your heart, although you have long
-forgotten it. She is the beauty you have passed by for the sake of
-peace and quiet and a balance at your bank."
-
-"Do you think it is a good picture?" asked Mendel.
-
-"I think it is a good beginning. Two or three more like that and there
-will be a sensation. There will have to be policemen to regulate the
-crowd."
-
-Mendel caught his mood of driving excitement and really was convinced
-that he had broken through to a style of his own, and to the beginning
-of something that might be called modern art.
-
-He was a little dashed when, after Logan had gone, he fetched his
-mother over to see it, and all she could find to say was:--
-
-"You used not to paint like that."
-
-"No, of course not," he said impatiently. "The old way was limited,
-too limited. It was all very well for painting the life down here,
-just what I saw in front of me. This picture is for an exhibition, all
-by myself with one other man."
-
-"Logan?" asked Golda dubiously.
-
-"Yes. It is a great honour to give a private exhibition like that at
-my age. It is most unusual. This is the beginning of a new style. I'm
-beginning a new life."
-
-"You are not going away?" said Golda in a sudden panic that he was to
-be snatched away from her.
-
-"I should never go away until you gave your permission," he said. "I
-am not so very different from Harry that I want to go away and leave
-my people."
-
-"I never know what will come of that painting of yours."
-
-"Success!" he said jestingly. "And fame and money, and beautiful
-ladies in furs and diamonds, and carriages and motor-cars, and fine
-clothes and rings on everybody's fingers."
-
-"I would rather have you seated quietly in my kitchen than all the
-gold of King Solomon and the Queen of Sheba," said Golda.
-
-"Then please like my picture."
-
-"I don't like it."
-
-"Then _say_ you like it."
-
-"I don't like it."
-
-"I shall wipe it out then."
-
-"Your new friends will like it."
-
-"_I_ like it," he said. "I don't think it is a very good picture, but
-it means something to me."
-
-And he longed for Morrison to come and see it, for it was the first
-picture that had directly to do with her. The portrait of her was
-hardly more than a drawing. What he called an "art student" might have
-done it, but this Ruth, he felt, was the beginning of his work as an
-artist, and he thought fantastically that when Morrison saw it she
-would see that he was to be treated with respect and would fall in by
-his side, and they would live happily, or at least solidly, ever
-after.
-
-"Solid" was his great word, and he used it in many senses. It conveyed
-to his mind the quality of which he could most thoroughly approve. If
-a thing, or a person, or an action, or an emotion were what he called
-"solid," then it was a matter of indifference to him whether it was in
-the ordinary sense good or bad. He was perfectly convinced that if
-Morrison could only be brought to reason, then his life would solidify
-and he would be able to go on working in peace.
-
-Meanwhile he was anything but solid. His work, his life, his ideas,
-his ambition had all melted under Logan's warm touch and were pouring
-towards the crucial exhibition. Mendel looked forward to it
-feverishly, because it was to put an end to his present condition, in
-which he was like a wax candle, luminous, but fast sinking into
-nothingness. If only he could reach the exhibition in time, the wind
-of fame would blow out the flame that was reducing him and he would be
-able to start afresh . . . But all the time as he worked words of
-Logan's rolled in his mind, and had no meaning whatever, except that
-they made him think of music-halls and motor-buses and women's legs in
-tights and newspapers and electric sky-signs spelling out words letter
-by letter. Out of this hotch-potch pictures, works of art, were to
-emerge. They were to take their place in it and, according to Logan,
-reduce it to order. But how was it possible? . . . In the quiet,
-ordered, patriarchal world of the Jews a rare nature might arise, but
-in that extraordinary confusion nothing rare could survive. Beauty
-could never compete on equal terms with women's legs in tights and
-electric sky-signs; it could never produce an impression on minds
-obsessed and crammed to overflowing with the multitudinous excitements
-of the metropolis.
-
-Mendel was convinced that Logan was right, that beauty must emerge to
-establish authority, and he thought of himself as engaged in a combat
-with a huge, terrible monster. Every stroke of his brush was a wound
-upon its flanks and an abomination the less. Yet he loved all the
-things against which he was fighting, because they made the world gay
-and stimulating and wonderful. He could see no reason why he should
-change the world. It was full enough of change already. Why, in his
-own time, the electric railways and the motor-buses had brought an
-amazing transformation in the life of the East End. No one now worked
-for such little wages as his father had done at the stick-making, and
-the life of the streets had lost its terrors and dangers. The young
-men had better things to do than to fight each other or to pelt old
-Jews with mud, and there was no reason to suppose that such changes
-would stop where they were.
-
-However, he had Logan's word for it, and Logan had given art a new
-importance in his eyes. He could not think it out himself without
-getting hopelessly confused, and there was nothing for it but to go on
-with his work.
-
-Other relief he had none. He had written three ardent letters to
-Morrison, telling her, absolutely without restraint, of his love and
-his need for her, and she had not replied. He was too much hurt to
-write again, and as he worked he began to hate love, being in love,
-and the idea of it. He persuaded himself that it was a weakness, and
-he had ample reason for thinking so, when he compared his loose
-condition with his old clear singleness of purpose. What chiefly
-exasperated him in this indefinite unsuccessful love of his was that
-it exposed him to the passion, every day growing more furious, between
-Logan and Oliver. It made his own emotions seem fantastic, with the
-most vital current of his being pouring out in a direction far removed
-from the rest of his life, apparently ignoring the solid virtues of
-his Jewish surroundings and the elated vigour of his career among the
-artists.
-
-"It will not do!" he told himself. "I will not have it! What is this
-love? Just nonsense invented by people who are afraid of their
-passions. A lady indeed? _Is_ she? A lady is only a woman dressed up.
-She must learn that she is a woman, or I will have nothing to do with
-her."
-
-And sometimes he could persuade himself that he had driven Morrison
-from his thoughts. He finished the portrait of her from memory and was
-convinced that it was the end of her. It was a good picture and pretty
-enough to find a buyer, and there it ended. He had got what he wanted
-of her and could pluck her out of his thoughts.
-
-Logan said it was a very fine picture, a real piece of creation.
-
-"And if that doesn't make them see how damned awful their Public
-School system is in its effect on women, I'll eat my hat. You've had
-your revenge, my boy. You have shown her up. Why don't you call it
-_The Foolish Virgin_? Of all the mischievous twaddle that is talked in
-this mischievous twaddling country the notion of love is the worst.
-You can't love a woman unless you live with her, and a woman is
-incapable of loving a man unless he lives with her. By Jove! We'll
-hang it and my portrait of Oliver side by side in the exhibition, and
-I'll call mine _The Woman who Did._"
-
-"I won't have them side by side," said Mendel. "I want our pictures
-kept separate. I don't want it said that we are working together."
-
-"But we _are_ working together."
-
-"Yes. But along our own lines. We're only together really in our
-independence. You said yourself that we didn't want to found a
-school."
-
-"That's true," replied Logan, "but I don't see why we shouldn't have
-our little joke."
-
-"I don't joke with art," said Mendel grimly, and that settled the
-matter.
-
-It was the first time he had set his will against his friend's, and he
-was surprised to find how soft Logan was. Surely, then, it was he who
-was the leader, he who was blazing the new trail for art. . . . He had
-to bow to the fact that Logan had a programme while he had none.
-However, having once asserted his will, he became critical, and was
-not again the docile little disciple he had been.
-
-Logan wanted to draw up a manifesto for the catalogue, to enunciate
-the first principles of modern art, namely, that a picture must have
-(_a_) not merely a subject, but a conception based on but not bounded
-by its subject; (_b_) form, meaning the form dictated by the logic of
-the conception, which must of necessity be different from the logic
-dictated by the subject, which would lead either to the preconceptions
-and prejudices of the schools or to irrelevant and non-pictorial
-considerations. All this was set out at some length, and appended were
-a number of maxims, such as:--
-
-"In art the important thing is art.
-
-"Abstraction precedes selection.
-
-"Art exists to keep in circulation those spiritual forces, such as
-ćsthetic emotion, which are denied in ordinary human communications.
-
-"Photography has released art from its ancient burden of
-representation," etc., etc.
-
-With the spirit of this manifesto Mendel was in agreement, though he
-could make but little of its letter. He refused to agree to it because
-so much talk seemed to him unnecessary.
-
-"If we can say what we mean to say in paint, then we need not talk. If
-we cannot say it in paint, then we have no right to talk."
-
-"You'd soon bring the world to a standstill," said Logan, "if you
-limited talk to the people who have a right to it. It is just those
-people who never open their mouths. I think it is criminal of them,
-just out of shyness and disgust, to give the buffoons and knaves an
-open field."
-
-"All the same," grunted Mendel, "I am not going to agree to the
-manifesto. People will read it and laugh at it, and never look at the
-pictures. You seem to think of everything but them. I wonder you don't
-set up as a dealer."
-
-"You're overworking," said Logan, "that's what you are doing. And
-directly the exhibition is open I shall pack you off to Brighton."
-
-* * * * *
-
-Already a week before the opening they began to feel that the eyes of
-London were upon them. They crept about the streets half-shamefacedly
-like conspirators, relaxed and wary, waiting for the moment when their
-triumph should send their shoulders back and their heads up, and they
-would march together through a London which owed its salvation to
-them. Not since his portrait had appeared in the Yiddish paper had
-Mendel been so defiant and so morosely arrogant.
-
-He was ill with excitement and could not do a stroke of work. Every
-minute of the day he spent with Logan and Oliver, to whom Tysoe was
-often added. He dined with them at the Pot-au-Feu, took them all out
-to lunch and tea at places like Richmond and Kew, had them to his
-house, and was squeezed by the approaching success to buy Logan's two
-largest pictures before the public could have access to them.
-
-"They are masterpieces!" he cried, swinging his long hands, "absolute
-masterpieces! You don't know how much good it does me to be with you
-two. Absolutely sincere, you are! That's what I like about you.
-Sincere! One looks for sincerity in vain everywhere else. Sincerity
-has vanished from the theatre, the novel, music, poetry. I suppose it
-is democracy--letting the public in behind the scenes, so that they
-see through all the tricks."
-
-"An artist isn't a conjurer!" said Mendel.
-
-"That is just what artists have been," cried Logan, "and they can't
-bluff it out any more."
-
-"Exactly!" gurgled Tysoe, who when he was roused from his habitual
-weak lethargy lost control of his voice, so that it wobbled between a
-shrill treble and a husky bass. "Exactly! That's what I like about you
-two. No bluff, no tricks. You do what you want to do and damn the
-consequences. Ha! ha!"
-
-So ill was Mendel just before the exhibition that Logan refused to
-allow him anywhere near it, and insisted that they should both go to
-Brighton, leaving Oliver to go to the private view and spy out the
-land.
-
-Oliver protested. She wanted to go to Brighton.
-
-"You shall have a new dress and a new hat," said Logan. "You must go
-to the private view like a real lady. Cluny doesn't know you, and you
-must go up to him every now and then and ask him in a loud voice what
-the prices are. You might even pretend to be a little deaf and make
-him speak clearly and distinctly."
-
-The idea tickled Mendel so that he began to laugh, could not stop
-himself, and was soon almost hysterical.
-
-"What's the matter with you?" asked Oliver, shaking him.
-
-He gasped:--
-
-"I--I was laughing at the idea of your being a real lady. Ha! ha! ha!"
-
-She gave him a clout over the head that sobered him. Logan pounced on
-her like a tiger.
-
-"You devil!" he said. "You she-devil! Don't you see the poor boy's
-ill?"
-
-"What's that to me?" she screamed, with her head wobbling backwards
-and forwards horribly as he shook her. "It's n-nothing t-to m-me!"
-
-She caught Logan by the wrist and sent him spinning, for she was
-nearly as strong as he.
-
-"Go to Brighton!" she shouted. "I don't care. I'll be glad to be rid
-of you both. You won't find me here when you come back, that's all,
-you and your little hurdy-gurdy boy! You only need a monkey and an
-organ to make you complete. Why don't you try it? You'd do better at
-that than out of pictures."
-
-Logan could not contain himself. His rage burst out of him in a howl
-like that of a wind in a chimney, a dismal, empty moan. He stood up,
-and the veins on his neck swelled and his mouth opened and shut
-foolishly, for he could find nothing to say.
-
-"You slut, you squeezed-out dishclout, you sponge!" he roared at last.
-"Clear out, you drab! Clear out into the streets, you trull! Draggle
-your skirts in the mud, you filth, you octopus! Sell the carcase that
-you don't know how to give, you marble!"
-
-She flung up her hands and sank on to her knees, and let down her hair
-and moaned:--
-
-"O God! O God! O God!"
-
-Logan's fury snapped.
-
-"For God's sake! For God's sake!" he said. "What has come over us? Oh,
-God help us! What are we doing? What are we coming to? Nell! Nell! I
-didn't know what I was saying!"
-
-He went down on his knees beside her, and Mendel, who had been numbed
-but inwardly elated by the storm, could not endure the craven
-surrender, the cowardly reconciliation, and he left them.
-
-Out in the street he stood tottering on the curb, and spat into the
-gutter, with extreme precision, between the bars of a grating.
-
-* * * * *
-
-At Brighton, whither they went next day, Logan explained himself.
-
-"It is extraordinary how near love is to hate, and how rotten love
-becomes if hate is suppressed--stale and tasteless and vapid."
-
-"Are you talking about yourself and Oliver?" asked Mendel.
-
-"Yes."
-
-"Then please don't. I don't mind what happens between you and her so
-long as it doesn't happen in front of me."
-
-"I'm sorry," said Logan; "but it can't always be prevented. I don't
-see the use of pretence."
-
-"Neither do I. But some things are your own affair, and it is indecent
-to let other people see them."
-
-"Oh, a row's a row!" said Logan cheerfully. "And one is all the better
-for it."
-
-"But if a woman treated me like that I should never speak to her
-again."
-
-"Love's too deep for that. You can't stand on your dignity in love."
-
-"I should make her understand once and for all that I would not have
-it."
-
-"Then she would deceive you. If you played the tyrant over a girl like
-Oliver she would deceive you."
-
-Mendel stared and his jaw dropped. Had Logan forgotten the night in
-Paris? Was he such a fool as to pretend he did not know, could not see
-that the whole liberation of frenzy in Oliver dated from that night?
-. . . Oh, well! It was no affair of his.
-
-To change the subject he said:--
-
-"We ought to get the press-cuttings to-morrow. I wonder if we shall
-sell the lot? It's a good beginning, having tickets on your two."
-
-"I bet we sell the lot in a week. Oliver has two of the critics in her
-pocket. What do you say to giving a party in honour of the event? We
-can afford to forgive our enemies now, and there's a social side to
-the movement which we ought not to neglect."
-
-Mendel made no reply. They were sitting on the front. The smooth,
-glassy sea, reflecting the stars and the lights of the pier, soothed
-and comforted him. Brighton was to him like a part of London, and he
-sank drowsily into the happy fantasy that he was being thrust out of
-the streets towards the stars and the vast power that lay beyond them.
-He was weary of the streets and the clamour, and he wanted peace and
-serenity, rest from his own turbulence, the peace which has no
-dwelling upon earth and lives only in eternity.
-
-"How good it would be," he said suddenly, "if one could just paint
-without a thought of what became of one's pictures."
-
-"That's no good," replied Logan. "One must live."
-
-* * * * *
-
-The first batch of cuttings arrived in the morning. They were brief,
-for the most part, quite respectful and appreciative. Mendel learned,
-to his astonishment, that he was influenced by Logan, and one critic
-lamented that a promising young painter, who could so simply render
-the life of his race, should have been infected with modern heresies.
-There was no uproar, neither of them was hailed as a master, and Logan
-in more than one instance was dismissed as an imitator of Calthrop.
-
-"Calthrop!" said Logan, gulping down his disappointment and disgust.
-"Calthrop! Oh well, it is good enough for a beginning. It would have
-been very different if you had let me print the manifesto. The swine
-need to be told, you know. They want a lead. . . . We'll wait for the
-Sunday papers."
-
-* * * * *
-
-London was curiously unchanged when they returned. Mendel was half
-afraid he would be recognized as they came out of Charing Cross
-Station, but no one looked at him. The convulsion through which he had
-lived had left people going about their business, and he supposed that
-if an earthquake happened in Trafalgar Square people would still be
-going about their business in the Strand.
-
-They were eager for Oliver's account of the private view, and took a
-taxi-cab to Camden Town. She was wearing her new dress and was quite
-the lady: shook hands with Mendel and asked him haughtily in a mincing
-tone how he was. From all these signs he judged that the exhibition
-had been a success.
-
-"Quite a lot of people came," she said. "Real swells. There were two
-motor-cars outside."
-
-"Yes," said Logan. "Tysoe agreed to leave his car outside for a couple
-of hours to encourage people to go in."
-
-"Kühler's picture of the girl with short hair sold at once," she said.
-
-His pleasure in this news was swallowed up in his dislike of hearing
-Morrison spoken of by her.
-
-"All your drawings but one are gone, Logan. I listened to what people
-said. They wanted to know who you were, and Cluny said you had a great
-reputation in the North. People laughed out loud at Kühler's _Ruth_,
-and I heard one man say it was only to be expected. He said the Jews
-can never produce art. They can only produce infant prodigies."
-
-
-
-IV
-
-REACTION
-
-LOGAN made nearly two hundred pounds out of the exhibition and Mendel
-over a hundred. His family rejoiced in his triumph. A hundred pounds
-was a good year's income to them. They rejoiced, but it was an
-oppression to him to go back to them and to talk in Yiddish, in which
-there were no words for all that he cared for most. Impossible to
-explain to them about art, for they had neither words nor mental
-conceptions. Art was to them only a wonderful way of making money, a
-kind of magic that went on in the West End, where, once a man was
-established, he had only to open his pockets for money to fall into
-them.
-
-Up to a point he could share their elation, for in his bitter moments
-he too was predatory. If the Christian world would not admit him on
-equal terms he had no compunction about despoiling it.
-
-The words "infant prodigy" stuck in his throat, and with his family it
-seemed indeed impossible that the Jews could produce art. How could
-they, when they had no care for it? And how had he managed to find his
-way to it? . . . Going back over his career step by step it seemed
-miraculous, and as though there were a special providence governing
-his life--Mr. Kuit, the Scotch traveller, Mitchell, Logan, all were as
-though they had been pushed forward at the critical moment. And for
-what? Merely to exploit an infant prodigy with a skilful trick? . . .
-He could not, he would not believe it. The pressure that had driven
-him along, the pressure within himself, had been too great for that,
-just to squeeze him out into the open and to fill his pockets with
-money. There was more meaning in it all than that, more shape, more
-design.
-
-Yet when he considered his work he was lacerated with doubt. It ended
-so palpably in the portrait of his father and mother, and he knew that
-he could never go back to that again. An art that was limited to Jewry
-was no art. Among the Jews no light could live. They would not have
-it. They would snuff it out, for it was their will to dwell in dark
-places and to wait upon the illumination that never came, as of course
-it never would until they looked within themselves.
-
-Within himself he knew there was a most vivid light glowing, a spark
-which only needed a breath of air upon it to burst into flame. He was
-increasingly conscious of it, and it made him feel transparent, as
-though nothing could be hidden from those who looked his way. What was
-there to hide? If there was evil, it lived but a little while and was
-soon spent, while that which was of worth endured and grew under
-recognition.
-
-Thence came his devotion to Logan, who simply ignored everything that
-apparently gave offence to others and saluted the rare, rich activity.
-It was nothing to Logan that he was a Jew and poor and uneducated: he
-was educated in art, and what more did he want? Logan was a friend
-indeed, and had proved it over and over again. He would take his
-doubts to Logan and they would be healed, but first he must go to the
-exhibition, the thought of which made him unhappy and uneasy.
-
-Cluny received him with open arms:--
-
-"A most successful exhibition. A great success. I hope you will let me
-have some of your work by me. A most charming exhibition. There was
-only one mistake, if I may say so: the _Ruth._"
-
-Mendel walked miserably through the rooms. All Logan's pictures were
-in the best light: his own were half in shadow.
-
-"Mr. Logan has the making of a great reputation," said Cluny, "a very
-great reputation."
-
-"Oh, very clever!" said Mendel, suddenly exasperated more by Logan's
-pictures than by the dealer.
-
-Indeed, "very clever" was the right description for Logan's work. It
-attracted and charmed and tickled, but it did not satisfy. The
-pictures gave Mendel the same odd sense of familiarity as the picture
-in Camden Town had done, and turning suddenly, his eye fell on his own
-unhappy _Ruth_. The figure was shockingly bad. He acknowledged the
-simpering sentimentality of the face. And he had been trying to paint
-love! But in spite of the figure, the picture held him. It was to him
-the matrix of the whole exhibition. Wiping out of consideration his
-own early drawings, it explained and accounted for every other piece
-of work. The least dexterous of them all, it had freshness and
-vitality and a certain thrust of simplification which everything else
-lacked. It was "solid," and worth all Logan's pictures put together.
-
-"Very good prices," said the dealer. "Very good indeed."
-
-Mendel paid no attention to him. He wanted to study his _Ruth_, to
-find out its precise meaning for him, and, if possible, in what
-mysterious part of his talent it had originated.
-
-It had made him feel happy again and had restored his confidence. He
-was serenely sure of himself, without arrogance. He was almost humble,
-yet tantalized because he could not think of a whole picture in the
-terms of that one piece of paint. He remembered the strange excitement
-in which he had conceived it, the almost nonchalance with which he had
-executed it. And to think that not a soul had seen it! The fools! The
-fools!
-
-He was ashamed to be seen looking so intently at his own work. The
-next day he was back again and told Cluny that it was not for sale.
-
-"I don't think it's a seller, Mr. Kühler," said Cluny.
-
-"It's not for sale," repeated Mendel.
-
-He went every day and had no other thought. He wandered about in a
-dream, not seeing people in the streets, not hearing when he was
-spoken to.
-
-On the fifth day as he entered Cluny's he began to tremble, and he
-fell against a man who was coming out. The blood rushed to his heart
-and beat at his temples. He knew why it was. The air seemed full of an
-enchantment that settled upon him and drew him towards the gallery. He
-knew he was going to see her, and she was there with Clowes, standing
-in front of his _Ruth._ Clowes was laughing at it, but Morrison, with
-brows knit, obviously angry, was trying to explain it.
-
-"I'm trying to explain the cornfield to Clowes," she said. "Do come
-and help me."
-
-"I can't explain it myself," he said, marvelling at the ease of the
-meeting. At once he and she were together and Clowes was out of it,
-like a dweller in another world.
-
-"I don't think you ought to do things you can't explain," said Clowes.
-
-"Then you are wiping out Michael Angelo, and El Greco, and Blake, and
-Piero."
-
-"Yes," said Mendel. "You are wiping out inspiration altogether."
-
-"Oh! if you think you are inspired I have nothing more to say,"
-replied Clowes rather tartly. She had felt instinctively that Mendel
-and Morrison would meet at the gallery, and was annoyed all the same
-that it had happened. She knew how they were regarded, and she herself
-did not approve. Morrison knew how impossible it was, and Clowes
-thought she ought not to allow it to go on.
-
-Clowes also recognized how completely she was out of it, and she made
-excuses and left them.
-
-"You are the only one who likes it," he said.
-
-"I don't like it, but I know that it isn't bad. It isn't good either,
-but it is real and it is you."
-
-"I want no more than that," he said, "from you."
-
-In his mind he had prepared all sorts of reproaches for his meeting
-with her, but they fell away from his lips. He could only accept that
-it was good and sweet and natural to be with her.
-
-He told her quite simply how he had come to paint the picture, and how
-he had tried to paint his love for her. She smiled and shook away her
-smile.
-
-"I'm glad it isn't anything like that really," she said.
-
-"I tried to tell you what it was like when I wrote to you."
-
-"Yes."
-
-That was all she could say. She had been very unhappy, often
-desperately wretched, because her instinct fought so furiously against
-the idea of love with him whom she loved.
-
-"The picture has made me very happy," she added. "It means that what I
-have been wanting to happen to you has happened. You _are_ different,
-you know. I can talk to you so much more easily."
-
-He suggested that they should walk in the Park and spend the day
-together, and she consented, glad that all the reproaches and storms
-she had dreaded should be so lightly brushed away.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Happy, happy lovers, for whom nothing can defile the heavenly beauty
-of this earth; happy, from whom Time streams away, bearing with it all
-the foolish, restless activity of men; happy, for whom the pomps and
-vanities of the world are as though they had never been! Thrice happy
-two, who in your united spirit bear so easily all the beauty, all the
-suffering, all the sorrow in the world, and bring it forth in joy, the
-flower of life that cometh up as a vision, fades, and sheds its seed
-upon the rich, warm soil of humanity. Emblem of immortality for ever
-shining in the union of spirits, in the enchantment of two who are
-together and in love.
-
-* * * * *
-
-So happy were they that they wandered for the most part in silence
-through the avenues and over the grassy spaces of the Park.
-
-Of the two, she had the better brain, and, indeed, the stronger
-character. She had been toughened in the struggle to break out of the
-web of hypocrisy and meaningless tradition of gentility in which her
-family was enmeshed, and the freedom she had won was very precious to
-her. She kept it as a touchstone by which to measure her acquaintance
-and her experience, and, using it now, she realized that there were
-two distinct delights in being with Mendel on this tender autumn day;
-one tempted her with its promise of furious joys and wild, baffling
-emotions. It seduced her with its suggestion that this way lay
-kindness, the gift to him of his desire, peace, and satisfaction. But
-behind the suggestion of kindness lay a menace to her freedom, which,
-being so much more precious than herself, she longed for him to share,
-as in the keen happiness of that day he had done. That was the other
-delight, more serene and more rare, infinitely more powerful, and she
-would not have it sacrificed to the less. The gift of herself to which
-she was tempted must mean the blending of her freedom with his, for
-without that there would be no true gift, only a surrender.
-
-She could not think it out or make it clear to herself, but she knew
-that it was surrender he was asking, and she knew that if she
-surrendered she would be no more to him in a little while than the
-other women of passage with whom his life was darkened.
-
-Ought she not then to tell him, to keep him from living in false
-hopes? She persuaded herself that she ought, but she did not wish to
-spoil this delicious day. It was such torture to her when he blazed
-out at her and he became ugly with egoism.
-
-"Of course," he said, "the _Ruth_ makes all the difference. I can't
-let you go now, because you are the only one who has really understood
-my work. I am almost frightened of it myself, and it makes me feel
-desperately lonely when I think of all I shall have to go through to
-get at what it really means."
-
-"No. If you want me like that I don't want you to let me go," she
-said, "for it is so important."
-
-"Yes," he said. "It may mean an entirely new kind of picture, for I
-don't know anybody's work that has quite what is hammering away in my
-head to get out. It must be because you love me that you can feel it
-when no one else can. Even to Logan it is only like a superior
-poster."
-
-How adorable he was in this mood of simplicity and humility! She could
-relax her vigilance, and sway unreservedly to his mood and give him
-all that he required of her, her clearness, her sensitive purity.
-
-"You are like no other woman in the world to me," he went on. "You
-fill me with the most wonderful joy, like a Cranach or a Dürer
-drawing. I can forget almost that you are a woman, so that it is a
-most wonderful surprise that you are one after all. You are the only
-person in the world whom I can place side by side with my mother."
-
-"You don't know what it is to me," she said, "to have a friend so
-strong and frank as you are."
-
-He put out his hand and laid it on her arm wonderingly, as if to
-satisfy himself that she was really there, much as on his first visit
-to Hampstead he had touched the grass.
-
-"I think I shall live to be very old," he said, "and you will be just
-the same to me then as you are now."
-
-"Oh, Mendel!"
-
-"Say that again!" he said, but she could not speak. Her eyes were
-brimming with tears and she hung her head. She longed to take him to
-her arms and to fondle him, to make him young, to charm away the
-pitiful old weary helplessness that he had. Reacting from this mood in
-her, which he did not understand and took for the first symptoms of
-surrender, he became wild and boastful, and clowned like a silly boy
-to attract her attention.
-
-Her will set against him. She could not endure the sudden swoop from
-the highest sympathy to the gallantry of the streets, and when he was
-weary of his tricks she tried to bring him to his senses by asking him
-suddenly:--
-
-"Is Logan a nice man?"
-
-"He is my best friend. He has wonderful ideas and energy like a
-steam-engine, and he has suffered too. He is not like the art students
-who expect painting pictures to be as easy as knitting. He could have
-been almost anything, but he believes that art is the most important
-thing of all. He has made a great difference to me, by teaching me to
-be independent. . . . I will take you to see him one day."
-
-"I should like to meet him, because he has made a great difference in
-you."
-
-"He steals."
-
-That gave Morrison a shock, for Mendel seemed to be stating the fact
-as a recommendation.
-
-"Yes. When he has no money he steals. I went with him once and we
-stole some reproductions."
-
-She was sorry she had mentioned Logan. Mendel was a different creature
-at once. Their glamourous happiness was gone. Logan seemed to have
-stalked in between them and the purity of their delight withered away.
-
-He felt it as strongly as she, but thought she was deliberately
-escaping from him, that she was fickle and could not stay out the
-day's happiness. Women, he knew, were like that. They gave out just as
-the best was still to come.
-
-It was dusk and they were in a lonely glade. He pounced on her and
-drew her to him:--
-
-"I want you to kiss me."
-
-"No--no!"
-
-"Yes--yes--yes! I say you shall. I will not have you let it all slip
-away."
-
-"Don't! Don't!" she said, in a passion of resentment. He was spoiling
-it all. How could he be so crude and insensible after this matchless
-day?
-
-At last he was convinced of her anger.
-
-"I don't understand you," he said. "Don't you want anything like
-that?"
-
-"It has spoiled the day for me," she answered, "or almost, for nothing
-could really spoil it."
-
-She walked on and he stood still for a moment. Then he ran after her.
-
-"Did you . . . did you hate me then?"
-
-"No, I didn't hate you. I hated myself more because I can't say what I
-feel."
-
-"If you don't love me like that," he said, "I love you all the same. I
-must see you often--always. I can't live, I can't work, if you don't
-let me see you. . . . No. That isn't true. I shall work whatever
-happens."
-
-How she loved his honesty! He was making no attempt to creep behind
-her defences. They had baffled him, and he counted his wounds
-cheerfully.
-
-"If you don't love me like that," he went on excitedly, "it doesn't
-make any difference. You are my love all the same. You are in all my
-thoughts, in every drop of my blood, and you can do with me as you
-will. If you don't love me like that I will never touch you. I can
-understand your not wanting to touch me, because I am dirty. I am
-dirty in my soul. I will never touch you. I promise that I will never
-touch you, and what you do not like in me you shall never see. . . ."
-
-She broke down, and burst into an unrestrained fit of weeping. Why
-could she not make clear to him, to herself, what she felt so clearly?
-. . . Oh! She knew she ought to tell him to go, to spare him all the
-suffering that he must endure, but also she knew by the measure of her
-need for him how sorely he must need her. Their need of each other was
-too profound, too strong, too passionate, easily to find its way to
-surface life, nor could it be satisfied with sweets too easily
-attained. . . . She must wait. To leave him or to surrender to him
-would be a betrayal of that high mystery wherein they had their
-spiritual meeting.
-
-"I shall win," she said to herself, "I shall win. I know I shall win."
-
-And she amazed him with her sudden lightness of heart. She laughed and
-told him how solemnly Clowes was taking it all, and how the
-loose-tongued busybodies were talking. . . . As if it mattered what
-they said! He mattered more than all of them, because they took easily
-what was next to hand and grew fat on it, while he fought his way
-upward step by step and was never satisfied, and would fight his way
-always step by step with bloody pains and suffering.
-
-"Oh, Mendel!" she cried; "I'm so proud--so proud of you."
-
-She was too swift for him. He came lumbering after her, puzzled,
-amazed, confounded at finding in this girl something that was so much
-more than woman, something that could actually live on the high level
-of his creative thought, something as necessary to his thought as dew
-to the grass and the ripening corn.
-
-
-
-V
-
-LOGAN GIVES A PARTY
-
-THE impulse to take his doubts to Logan endured, and was aggravated by
-the wretchedness into which Mendel was plunged by Morrison's return
-and her powerful effect upon his life. He raged against himself as an
-idiot and a fool for taking her seriously and for believing that she
-could realize his work when as yet he understood it so little himself.
-If it was love, then have the love-making and get it over. If she
-refused, then let her go! What did she mean by slipping away just when
-the day's happiness began to demand utterance, closeness, intimacy,
-the promise of the dearest and most comfortable joys?
-
-He knew that he was deceiving himself, that she could do just as she
-liked and it would make no difference, but he also knew that he
-mistrusted her. In his heart he suspected her of being one of those
-who like to pretend that life can be all roses and honey, that there
-can be summer without winter, day without night. . . . Just a pretty
-English girl, he called her, and, in his most bitter moods, he
-regarded himself as caught; and in that there was a certain sardonic
-satisfaction. It seemed appropriate that, having known many women
-without a particle of love for them, he should be in love with a woman
-who did not wish to have anything to do with him.
-
-When he told Logan about it, that experienced individual smoked three
-cigarettes and was silent for ten minutes by the clock.
-
-"It won't do," he said; "give it up. You're in love with her. Oh yes!
-You were bound to have your taste of it, being so young. But, for
-God's sake, keep it clear of your work. I know it is very delightful
-and all that, and like the first blush of spring, and that she seems
-to understand everything. First love is always the same. She seems to
-understand, but so do the violets in the woods, and the apple-blossom
-in an orchard, and the singing birds on a spring morning. They all
-seem to understand everything. Life is solved: there are no more
-problems, and the rarest flower of all is the human heart. Yet the
-violets and the apple-blossoms fade and the birds sing no more: the
-spring passes and the summer is infernally hot and stale, and winter
-comes at last. So it is with love and women. Nothing endures but art,
-and that they are physically incapable of understanding. My God! Don't
-I know it? A picture of mine means no more to Oliver than my boot
-does--rather less, because my boot is warmed with the warmth of my
-body. That's all _she_ understands."
-
-He looked down at the boots and fidgeted with his hands.
-
-"Yes. That's all _she_ understands," he repeated.
-
-He was very haggard, and he looked up at Mendel as though he were
-trying to say something more than he could get into words; but Mendel
-was preoccupied with his own perplexities, and Logan's appealing
-glance was lost upon him.
-
-"I'm older than you," Logan continued, "and of course it is difficult
-for me to say anything that will be of any use to you, but a man like
-you ought not to let life get in his way. It isn't worth it. Life is
-only valuable to you as a condition of working. Nothing in it ought to
-be valuable for its own sake. Do you hear? You ought never to have
-anything in your life that you couldn't sacrifice--couldn't do
-without."
-
-He seemed to be rather thinking aloud than talking, and something
-indescribably solemn in his voice made Mendel shiver. He had hardly
-heard what Logan was saying and, thinking he must be in a draught, he
-looked towards the window.
-
-Logan went on:--
-
-"She'll be back in a moment. We don't often get the opportunity to
-talk like this. She has begun to read books, and thinks she knows
-about pictures now. She won't leave us alone. That damned critic has
-been stuffing her up and she reads all his articles."
-
-He made a grimace of weary disgust.
-
-"I care about you, Kühler, almost more than I do about myself, which
-is saying a good deal. Don't let this love business get mixed up with
-your work, especially if, as you say, it is Platonic--that is the
-worst poison of all--almost, almost. . . . Still, I'd like to see the
-girl. Bring her to the party. We might join up and make a
-quartette--if she can stand Oliver. Women can't, as a rule. They don't
-like full-blooded people of their own sex."
-
-"She wants to know you," replied Mendel half-heartedly. "I'm always
-talking to her about you."
-
-"All right," said Logan. "Bring her to the party."
-
-Downstairs the front door slammed and Logan gave a nervous start. His
-whole aspect changed. He lost the drooping solemnity that had come
-come over him and was stiff, quick, and alert, and prepared to be
-droll, as he was when it was a question of humbugging Tysoe and Cluny.
-
-Oliver came in with a bottle of wine under each arm. She was in very
-good spirits and looking remarkably handsome.
-
-"Hello, Kühler!" she cried. "How do you like being a success? We're
-full of beans. We're going to take a house. Did Logan tell you?"
-
-"No," said Mendel. "I hadn't heard of it."
-
-"Well, it's true. We've done with the slums and being poor and all
-that. We're going to have a house and I'm going to have a servant, and
-I shall have nothing to do all day but eat chocolates and read novels
-and have people to tea."
-
-"So you're going to be a real lady."
-
-"Yes. I'm going to wear a wedding-ring, and we're going to give out
-that we're married, so that Mrs. Tysoe can call on me."
-
-"You're not going to do anything of the kind," snapped Logan.
-
-"I am. I don't see why I should have a beastly time just because you
-won't marry me, setting yourself up against the world and saying you
-don't believe in marriage."
-
-"I don't want to be more tied to you than I am," said Logan,
-endeavouring to adopt a reasonable tone.
-
-He was curiously subdued, and never took his eyes off her. Mendel had
-the impression that they must recently have had a quarrel. Logan was
-endeavouring to placate her, but she was constantly aggressive. She
-seemed to have gained in personality and to be possessed of a definite
-will. She was no longer shrouded in the mists of sensuality, but stood
-out clearly, a figure of such vitality that Mendel could no longer
-keep his lazy contempt for her. Almost admirable she was, yet he found
-her detestable. He thought she should be thanking her lucky stars for
-having found such a man as Logan; she should be taking gratefully what
-he chose to give her, instead of setting herself up and putting
-forward her own vulgar needs. If a woman threw in her lot with an
-artist, she ought to revel in her freedom from the petty interests and
-insignificant courtesies that made the lives of ordinary women so
-humiliating.
-
-What was she up to? He knew that there was a deeper purpose in her,
-something very definite, for which she had been able to summon up her
-raw vitality. He could understand Logan being fascinated. If he had
-been in love with the woman he would have been the same, and his mind
-would have been swamped by sensual curiosity.
-
-Before, he had always been rather mystified to know what Logan saw in
-the woman, but now the infatuation was comprehensible to him. His mind
-played about it with a strange delight, and he was even envious of
-Logan to be consumed in the heart of that mystery upon whose fringes
-he himself was held. And he thought that if he brought Morrison to see
-them he would be able to understand her better, and might even be able
-to place his finger on the weak place in her armour.
-
-"You two do give me the pip," said Oliver. "You sit there as glum and
-silent as though you were in church. Taking yourselves too seriously,
-I call it."
-
-Still in his forbearing tone Logan said:--
-
-"We talk of things which are very hard to understand."
-
-"Oh, give it up!" she said. "Leave all that to folk with brains and
-education. Why can't you just paint without talking about it? You'd
-get twice as much work done."
-
-"Because, don't you see, unless you're a blasted amateur, you can't
-paint without rousing all sorts of questions in your mind--questions
-that don't seem to have anything to do with painting; but unless you
-attempt to answer them there's no satisfaction in working."
-
-"Oh, cheese it!" she said; "I know what the critics look for, and it
-has nothing to do with brains. It is like being in love."
-
-"Who told you that?" asked Logan with sudden heat; but before she
-could answer him Mendel had exploded:--
-
-"It is nothing at all like being in love. That is what all the beastly
-Christians think of--being in love. And they want art always, always
-to remind them of that--how they have been, are, or will be in love,
-as they call it. And what they call being in love is nothing but a
-filthy lecherous longing, which is a thousand miles beneath love, and
-twenty thousand miles beneath art, which is so rare, so noble, so
-beautiful a mystery that only those whom God has chosen can understand
-it at all; for while you are in this state of longing you can
-understand, you can feel nothing at all except a hungry delight in
-yourself and your own sticky sensations. What can women know of art?
-It needs strength and will, and women have neither; they have only
-obstinate fancies."
-
-When he had done he was so astonished at himself that he gasped for
-breath. Logan and Oliver, gaping at him, seemed ridiculous and little.
-Talking to them was a waste of breath, because when she was there
-Logan was not himself, but only a kind of excrescence upon her
-monstrous vitality. The room seemed to stink. It was airless and
-reeking with sex. He must get out and away, under the sky, among the
-trees, upon his beloved Hampstead. . . . Without another word he
-stalked away.
-
-"Well! I never!" exclaimed Oliver. "Is Kühler in love?"
-
-"Oh! shut up!" said Logan wearily.
-
-* * * * *
-
-For the party the room was cleared and a pianola was hired. The guests
-were invited to bring their own glasses and drink, and also any
-friends they liked. The result was that half the habitués of the Paris
-Café turned up, including Jessie Petrie, Mitchell, and Thompson, who
-was over for a short time from Paris, very important and mysterious
-because he had something to do with a forthcoming exhibition of Modern
-French Art which was to knock London silly. And there was a rumour
-that Calthrop himself was coming.
-
-Oliver wore a new evening dress, which she had insisted on buying
-because she was very proud of her bust and arms. The dress was of
-emerald green silk and she looked very lovely in it--"Like a water
-nymph," said Logan, and he went out and bought her a string of red
-corals to give the finishing touch.
-
-"You won't have much of this kind of thing when we move," he said. "It
-is to be farewell to Bohemia. I'm going to settle down to work. I've
-taught Kühler a thing or two, but he has taught me how to work."
-
-"Damn Kühler! I hate him," said Oliver.
-
-"You can hate him as much as you choose. It won't hurt him or me. I'm
-not a Hercules, and my work and you are about as much as I can
-manage."
-
-"You're a nice one to be giving a party. You talk as though you would
-be in your grave next week."
-
-"It is a farewell party."
-
-"'Farewell to the Piano,'" laughed Oliver. "That was the last piece I
-learned when I had music lessons."
-
-Mitchell was among the first to arrive. He had been ill, and looked
-washed-out and unwholesome. There was very little of the Public School
-boy left in him.
-
-"Is Kühler coming?" he asked nervously.
-
-"I expect so," answered Logan. "Do you know how to manage a pianola?"
-
-"Yes. We've got one at home."
-
-"You might play it then, to keep things going until they liven up."
-
-Mitchell was placed at the pianola, and was still there when Mendel
-arrived with Morrison.
-
-"I'm very glad to meet you," said Logan. "Kühler has talked about you
-so often."
-
-"Yes," said Morrison.
-
-"I hope you don't mind a Bohemian party. They are a mixed lot."
-
-"No," said Morrison.
-
-"Good God!" thought Logan. "Not a word to say for herself!"
-
-Mendel introduced her to Oliver, who looked her up and down
-superciliously--this little schoolgirl in her brown tweed coat and
-skirt.
-
-"I'm sorry I didn't dress," said Morrison. "I didn't know."
-
-She shrank from the big, fleshy woman, who made her feel very unhappy.
-Yet she wanted to be fair. She had heard Mendel storm and rage against
-Oliver and she hated to be prejudiced. It distressed her not to like
-anybody, for she found most people likeable. She tried to be
-amiable:--
-
-"I'm so glad the exhibition was such a success. Everybody is talking
-about it."
-
-"Oh! yes, yes," said Oliver vacantly. Obviously she was not listening.
-She had eyes only for the men, and she bridled with pleasure when she
-attracted their attention.
-
-Morrison was glad to escape to a corner, where she could watch the
-strange people and be amused by them, their attitudes and gestures and
-queer, conceited efforts deliberately to charm each other.
-
-She blushed when she saw Mitchell at the pianola, and thought she had
-been rather foolish and weak to allow Mendel to bully her into
-dismissing him from her acquaintance, and she was relieved when she
-saw Mendel take in the situation and go up to Mitchell and tap him on
-the shoulder and enter into eager discussion of the pianola. She was
-less happy when she saw Mendel take Mitchell's place, and Mitchell
-make a bee-line for herself.
-
-An astonishing change came over the music, which got into Mendel's
-blood. It was maddening, it was glorious to feel that he had all that
-wealth of sound in his hands. He knew nothing of music, and it was
-almost pure rhythm to him, and he wished to beat it out, to accentuate
-it as much as possible. The machine confounded him every now and then
-by running too fast or too slow, but he soon learned to pedal less
-violently, and then he was gloriously happy and drunk with excitement.
-
-Astonishing, too, was the change in the company. Everybody began to
-talk and to laugh, and space was cleared in the middle of the room,
-and Clowes and a young man from the Detmold began to dance. Jessie
-Petrie and Weldon joined them, and soon the room was full of whirling,
-gliding couples.
-
-Said Mitchell to Morrison:--
-
-"I didn't expect to find you here. Are you going to dance?"
-
-"No. I like watching."
-
-He sat on the floor by her side, and, hanging his head, he said
-woefully:--
-
-"So Kühler's won! Gawd! He always gets what he wants. There's no
-resisting him."
-
-"Don't be absurd," said Morrison. "I hear you've been ill."
-
-"Yes. I've been going to the dogs, absolutely to the dogs. I had to
-pull up. . . . I didn't know you knew Logan; but, of course, as he's
-so thick with Kühler----!"
-
-"I met him for the first time to-night. What do you think of his
-work?"
-
-"Flashy!" said Mitchell. "Very flashy. . . . Will you let me come and
-see you again?"
-
-"I'd rather not, if you don't mind."
-
-"Why do you dislike me so much?"
-
-"I don't dislike you. I can't trust you not to be silly."
-
-"Gawd! I bet I'm not half so silly as Kühler!"
-
-"He is never silly!"
-
-"Ah! Now you're offended!"
-
-She turned away from him and refused to speak again. His
-half-flirtatious, half-patronizing manner offended her deeply, and was
-far more of an affront to her than Logan's almost open scorn of her as
-a little bread-and-butter miss. She wished Mendel would leave the
-pianola, but he was enthralled and could not tear himself away. He
-played the same tune over and over again, or went straight from one to
-another, swaying to and fro, beating time with his hands, swinging his
-head up and down.
-
-Mitchell went very red in the face and slipped away. Presently she saw
-him dancing with Oliver.
-
-After a few moments she found Logan by her side, and he said kindly:--
-
-"I'm afraid you are not enjoying yourself much."
-
-"Oh yes!" she gasped, in a frightened voice.
-
-"I was thinking you were not used to this kind of thing."
-
-"Oh yes! I often go to parties in people's studios."
-
-"I remember, I saw you at the Merlin's Cave one night."
-
-"Yes, I remember. I didn't enjoy that a bit. It all seemed such a
-sham."
-
-"So it was," said Logan. "So is most of this. These people aren't
-really wicked, though they like to pretend they are. I don't dance
-myself. I'm too clumsy. Clog-dancing I can do, but not dancing with
-anybody else. . . . But perhaps I am keeping you----?"
-
-"Oh no! I'm very happy looking on."
-
-"Kühler's worth watching, isn't he?"
-
-This was said with such insolent meaning that Morrison wilted like a
-sensitive plant. She managed to gasp out "Yes," and went on asking
-wild, pointless questions, with her thoughts whirling far removed from
-her words.
-
-Why were all these people so impertinent, with their trick of plunging
-into intimate life without waiting for intimacy? She felt that in a
-moment Logan would be telling her all about himself and Oliver by way
-of luring her on to discuss Mendel. That she had no intention of
-doing, with him or with any one else.
-
-"She's just a shy little fool," thought Logan, "and hopelessly,
-hopelessly young."
-
-"I'm unhappy!" thought Morrison, and it seemed to her foolish and mean
-to be so. Her loyalty resented her weakness. She owed it to Mendel to
-enjoy herself and to share as far as she could his friends. But there
-was in the atmosphere of that gathering something that repelled her
-and roused the fighting quality in her, something indecent, something
-that hurt her as the picture of the flayed man in the anatomy book
-hurt her.
-
-Mendel was playing a wild rag-time tune.
-
-"I think I'd like to dance to this tune. You must dance with me. I
-don't think you ought to be out of your own party," she said to Logan,
-who caught her up in a great bear's hug, trod on her toes, knocked her
-knees, pressed his fingers so tight into her back that she could
-hardly bear it, and at last, as the music ceased, deposited her by
-Mendel's side.
-
-"It is a marvellous thing, this machine," he said. "I should like to
-go on at it all night. Have you been dancing? You look hot. You said
-you weren't going to dance."
-
-"I made Logan dance. He nearly killed me!"
-
-"How did you get on?"
-
-"Not--not very well."
-
-"You don't like him?"
-
-Jessie Petrie came running up: "Kühler, Kühler!" she cried. "Do, do
-dance with me!"
-
-He was very angry with Morrison for daring not to like Logan, for
-making up her mind in two minutes that she did not like him. He gave
-her a furious glance as Weldon took his place and started a waltz, put
-his arms round Jessie's waist, and swung into the dance.
-
-"Oh, Kühler!" said Jessie in her pretty birdlike voice, "I heard the
-most awful story about you the other day."
-
-"Do be quiet!" he grunted. "Dance!"
-
-But he was out of temper, out of tune, and the music he had been
-crashing out on the pianola was thudding in his head, so that he could
-not respond either to the music of the waltz or to Jessie's eagerness.
-
-"Isn't it funny Thompson being back in London? I don't like him a bit
-now. You have spoiled me for everybody else. Do you want me to come on
-Friday as usual?"
-
-"Do be quiet."
-
-"What's the matter? You aren't dancing at all nicely and you haven't
-looked at me once this evening."
-
-"No; don't come on Friday."
-
-"Not----?"
-
-Her voice was shrill with pain.
-
-"No. That's all over."
-
-She hung limp in his arms and her face was a ghastly yellow. She
-muttered:--
-
-"Take me out. . . . I think I'm going to faint."
-
-He half-carried her into the passage, where she sat on the stairs and
-began to cry. Neither of them noticed Clowes and the young man from
-the Detmold sitting above them.
-
-"Don't cry!" he said roughly; "what have you got to cry about?"
-
-"I never thought you only wanted me for that."
-
-"You came to me. I didn't ask you to come."
-
-"But I do love you so. I only want you to love me a little."
-
-"I don't know how to love a little. When I love it is with the whole
-of me, and it is for always."
-
-"But can't we be pals, just pals? We've been such pals."
-
-"I'm sick to death of it all," he said violently, "sick to death.
-You're the best girl in London, Jessie, but it's no good--it's no
-good."
-
-Clowes and the young man ostentatiously and with a great clatter went
-higher up the stairs, but neither Jessie nor Mendel heard them. The
-pain and the shame they were suffering absorbed them.
-
-"I never thought," said Jessie, "it was near the end. I've always
-known when it was near the end before. It is like being struck by
-lightning."
-
-Mendel was silent. He could do nothing. There was nothing to be said.
-Jessie had consoled him, comforted him, but she had only made his
-suffering worse. By the side of Morrison she simply did not exist, and
-it had been a lie to pretend that she did. That lie must be cut out.
-
-"I never thought you only wanted me for that," she repeated, and began
-to move slowly down the stairs. At the bend she stopped and looked up
-at him, gave a little muffled cry, and moved slowly down into the dim
-lobby of the house.
-
-Mendel gripped the banisters with both hands and shook them until they
-cracked.
-
-"How horrible!" he muttered to himself; "how horrible!"
-
-Upstairs, Clowes was boiling with rage. She lost all interest in her
-young man, and as soon as Mendel had returned to the room she raced
-downstairs, almost sobbing, and saying to herself:--
-
-"That settles you, Master Kühler! That settles you!"
-
-She darted across to Morrison, who had taken refuge in a corner,
-seized her by the hand and whispered:--
-
-"Greta! Greta! I've just heard the most frightful thing. I couldn't
-help overhearing it and I ought not to tell anybody, but you ought to
-know. Kühler and Petrie! It must have been going on for months. He
-broke with her in the most cold-blooded way. It was heart-rending. I
-can't bear it. Oh! these men, these men!"
-
-Morrison clenched her fists and her eyes blazed.
-
-"Don't tell me any more!" she said. "Don't tell me any more!"
-
-"I want to go home," whispered Clowes. "It is a dreadful party. That
-awful green woman spoils everything. It is like a nightmare to me now.
-
-"It wouldn't be fair to go without telling him," said Morrison. "It
-wouldn't be fair."
-
-"But you can't think of him after that," protested Clowes. "Oh! good
-gracious! There's Calthrop coming in. It is getting worse and worse."
-
-Calthrop swung into the room with his magnificent stride. As usual,
-his entrance created a dramatic sensation. Logan, who had always
-decried his work, leaped to meet him and Mendel stood shyly waiting
-for his nod. . . . Whom would the great man speak to? That was the
-question. . . . He fixed his eyes on Oliver and strode up to her.
-
-"You're the best-looking woman in the room," he said. "Do you like
-cinemas?"
-
-"I adore them," said Oliver, with an excited giggle.
-
-"Now, now's the chance!" whispered Clowes. "We can slip away now,
-before they begin drinking."
-
-"I must tell him," replied Morrison, and, summoning up all her
-courage, she went up to Mendel and asked if she could speak to him. He
-went out with her, trembling in every limb.
-
-"I am going," she said. "I have just heard something. Clowes overheard
-you and Jessie Petrie. She ought not to have told me. I don't know
-what I feel about it. Very wretched, chiefly. Please don't try to see
-me."
-
-"I have told you what I am again and again," he said.
-
-"Yes. You are very honest, but it is hard for a girl to imagine these
-things. Please, please see how hard it is and let me be."
-
-"Very well," he answered, feeling that the whole world had come to an
-end. "Very well."
-
-She called Clowes, who had stayed just inside the door, and together,
-like little frightened children, they crept downstairs.
-
-"Good-bye love!" said Mendel. "My God, what rubbish, what folly, what
-nonsense! Love and a Christian girl! That's over. That's finished. I
-am outside it all--outside, outside, outside. Oh! Dark and vile and
-bitter, and no sweetness anywhere but in my own thoughts!"
-
-Inside the room someone began to sing:--
-
- I want to be, I want to be,
- I want to be down home in Dixie. . . .
-
-Oh! the mad folly of these Christians, with their childish songs,
-their idiotic pleasures, their preposterous belief in happiness. . . .
-Happiness! They ruin the world to satisfy their childish longing, and
-all their happiness lies in words and foolish songs. . . . The rhythm
-of the pianola tunes began to beat in his head, and another deeper
-rhythm came up from the depths of his soul and tried to break through
-them. It was the same rhythm that always came up when he had reached
-the lowest depths of misery. It came gushing forth like water from the
-rock of Moses, and crept through his being like ice, up, up into his
-thoughts, bringing him to an intolerable agony.
-
-In the room glasses clinked. He turned towards the light and plunged
-into the carouse.
-
-
-
-VI
-
-REVELATION
-
-THREE weeks later the exhibition of Modern French Art was opened in an
-important gallery in the West End. It roused indignation, laughter,
-scorn, and made such a stir in the papers that public interest was
-excited and the exhibition was an unparalleled success. People from
-the suburbs, people who had never been to a picture gallery in their
-lives, flocked to see the show, and most of them, when they left,
-said: "Well, at any rate we've had a good laugh."
-
-Mendel never read the papers and knew nothing at all about it. These
-three weeks had been a time of blank misery for him. He could not
-work. His people set his teeth on edge. He could not bear to see a
-soul, for he could not talk. When he met friends and acquaintances,
-not a word could he find to say to them. There was nothing to say.
-They were living in a world from which he had been expelled. More than
-once he was on the point of going to his father and asking to be taken
-into the workshop, since the only possible, the only bearable life was
-one of hard manual labour, which left no room for spiritual activity,
-none for happiness, and very little for unhappiness.
-
-He found some consolation in going to the synagogue. His mother was
-delighted, but the religion was no comfort to him. What pleased him
-was to see the old Jews in their shawls and the women in their beaded
-gowns, praying each in their separate parts of the building--praying
-until they wept, and abasing themselves before the Lord. What woe,
-what misery they expressed! All the year round was this dismal
-wailing, and there was only happiness on the day that Haman was
-hanged. . . . It seemed good and decent to him that the sexes should
-be separate before the Lord, as they should be separate before the
-holy spirit that was in them. They should meet in holiness, hover for
-a moment above life, then sink back into it again to gather new
-strength. So love would be in its place. It could be gathered up and
-distilled. It would not be allowed to spread like a flood of muddy
-water over life, which had other passions, other delights, other
-glorious flowerings.
-
-It had been a great day for him when, in a little shop near his home,
-he had come on a pair of wooden figures rudely carved by
-savages--African, the shopman said they were. Rudely carved, they were
-not at all realistic, but admirably simplified, the man and the woman
-sitting side by side, naked. The man was wearing a little round bowler
-hat, while the woman was uncovered. They had the spirit and the idea
-that he most loved--the idea of man and woman sitting side by side,
-bound in love, unfathomably deep and unimaginably high, until one
-should follow the other to the grave.
-
-He showed them to Golda, and told her they were she and his father.
-
-"What next will you be up to?" she said. "Why, they are blackamoors."
-
-"They are you and my father," he said, caressing the figures lovingly.
-
-"I wish you would put the thought of that girl out of your head," she
-said tenderly. "It is making you so ill and so thin, and I dare not
-think what your father will say when he knows you are drinking again."
-
-"Mother," he said, "when did you begin to love me?"
-
-"When you were born," she said.
-
-"Yes, yes. I know, as a cow loves its calf. But I mean _love_, for you
-do not love the others the same as me."
-
-"You were not so very old when it came to me that you were different."
-
-"But it is more now that I am a man?"
-
-"Of course."
-
-That settled his mind on the point that had been bothering him.
-Everywhere among the Christians love--the love that he knew and
-honoured--seemed to be lost in a soft, spongy worship of the mother's
-love for her child. The woman seemed to be wiped out of account
-altogether except as a mother. It seemed that she was not expected to
-love, and she was left by herself with the child, with the man looking
-rather foolish all by himself, seeing his strong, beautiful masculine
-love absorbed and given to the senseless little lump of flesh in the
-woman's arms. It was like discarding the flower for the seed, like
-denying the wonder of spring for the autumn fruit.
-
-"If that is your Christian love," he said to himself, "I will have
-none of it."
-
-He studied the Madonnas in the National Gallery, and they confirmed
-his impression of the weakness of Christian love, that left out the
-strong, vital love of a man for a woman, of a woman for a man. He
-characterized it as womanish, and could not see that the ideal had
-served to save women from male tyranny. Moreover, most of the pictures
-struck him as shockingly bad, which confirmed his notion that the
-ideal that inspired them was rotten.
-
-He could not test his ideas by his experience with Morrison, for he
-dared not think of her at all. When his mother spoke of her, it had
-been like a sharp knife through his heart. . . . Yes. _That_ was love,
-and it could not be bothered with the idea of children. If they came,
-it would make room for them, but it was not going to be robbed by
-them. Its object was the woman, and it detested any idea that got
-between it and her. . . . Yet when this love for Morrison stood
-between himself and his love for art, he hated her almost as
-violently. Sometimes he thought that he would kill her, because she
-stood there smiling. She was always smiling. She could be happy; she
-could so easily be happy. . . .
-
-* * * * *
-
-Logan came to fetch him to go to the exhibition.
-
-"I don't want to go to the exhibition. I don't want to see other
-people's pictures. I want to paint my own."
-
-"What are you working at?"
-
-"Nothing."
-
-"What's the matter?"
-
-"Sex."
-
-"Oh! That's always the matter with everybody."
-
-"But I've thought of something."
-
-"What?"
-
-"Women don't love their children."
-
-Logan roared with laughter, and he went on laughing because he enjoyed
-it. It was long since he had laughed so easily.
-
-"Most of them do," he said. "Even if they've hated having them."
-
-"They don't," said Mendel. "It's instinct just to gloat over them,
-just as one gloats over a picture one has just finished, however bad
-it may be. It has cost you something, and there is something to show
-for it. It is quite blind and stupid, like an animal. It is like lust.
-It is neither true nor false. It just _is_, chaotic and half-created.
-Love is a human thing. Love is the most human thing there is. When a
-clerk marries a girl because he wants a woman, I don't call that love.
-He is only making himself comfortable. There is a little more dirt in
-the world, that is all."
-
-Logan laughed uncomfortably.
-
-"Please listen," said Mendel. "I have been nearly mad this last
-fortnight, ever since the party. All my life seems to have broken its
-way into my mind, and I don't know when I shall be able to get it out
-again. It is very important that I should talk, and I have no one
-really to talk to except you. I am very lonely because I am a Jew and
-people do not understand me, or rather they think they understand me
-because I am a Jew. They think all Jews are the same. It is very
-rarely that I feel I am accepted as a man with thoughts, feelings,
-tears, laughter, tastes, bowels, senses like any other man."
-
-"I know," said Logan sympathetically.
-
-"How can you know? You have only to live in a world that is ready-made
-for you. I have to make mine as I go, step by step."
-
-"That isn't because you are a Jew, but because you are an artist. It
-is the same for all of us."
-
-"It can't be the same, for the ordinary world is not utterly foreign
-to you. You do not find that which you were brought up to believe, the
-wisdom you sucked in with your mother's milk, completely denied. . . .
-I tell you, love is all wrong, and because love is all wrong, art is
-all wrong, everything is wrong, and so is everybody. Everybody is
-living with only a part of himself, so that the cleverest people are
-the worst and most mischievous fools. I tell you, there are times in
-your West End when I can hardly breathe because people are such fools.
-If you are successful, they smile at you. If you are not successful,
-they look the other way. . . . Oh! I know it does not matter, but it
-makes success a paltry thing, and when you have lived for it and
-hungered for it, what then? What are you to do when it is like sand
-trickling through your fingers?"
-
-"You can't stop it," said Logan. "You can't throw it away. You can
-only go on working, come what may."
-
-"Yes," replied Mendel dubiously, and grievously disappointed. He had
-so hoped to squeeze out his twisted, tortured feelings into words, but
-at a certain point Logan failed him and seemed to shy at his thought.
-To a certain quality of passion in himself Logan was insensible. Where
-his own passion began to gain in clear force and momentum, swinging
-from the depths of life to the highest imagination, only gaining in
-strength as the ascent grew more arduous, Logan's remained in an
-exasperated intensity.
-
-"I'm sorry," said Mendel. "Talking is no use. I've found my way out of
-as bad times as this, and shall again. It is no good talking. I will
-sit as silent as the little figures there, and in time I shall know
-what I must do."
-
-"You want taking out of yourself," muttered Logan irritably. "Come and
-see Thompson's show."
-
-* * * * *
-
-As successful artists they entered the gallery self-consciously and
-rather contemptuously. That did not last long. There were many people
-sniggering at the Van Goghs and the Picassos, but Mendel's thoughts
-flew back to a still-life he had painted of a blue enamel teapot and a
-yellow matchbox years ago. He had painted them as he had seen them, in
-raw, crude colour, but the picture had been so derided, and he had
-been so scornfully reminded that there were no brilliant colours in
-nature, that he had painted the same subject over again with a very
-careful rendering of what was called "atmosphere."
-
-Here were crude colours indeed--almost, in many cases, as they came
-from the tubes, and as for drawing, there was hardly a trace of it,
-yet in the majority of the pictures there was a riotous freedom which
-rushed like a cleansing wind through Mendel's mind, and it seemed to
-him that here was the answer to many of his doubts--not a clear vision
-of art, but a roughly indicated road to it. It was absurd to sit
-cramping over rules and difficult technicalities when the
-starting-point of art lay so far beyond them. There was much rubbish
-in the show, but the works of Cézanne and Picasso were undeniably
-pictures. They were not flooded with a clear loveliness, like the
-pictures of Botticelli or Uccello, but they had beauty, and lured the
-mind on to seek another more mysterious beauty beyond them.
-
-The two friends went through the exhibition in silence. As they left,
-Mendel asked:--
-
-"Well! what did you think of it?"
-
-"We're snuffed out," replied Logan despondently.
-
-"Not I!" cried Mendel. "I'm only just beginning."
-
-"I don't understand it yet. It has made my eyes and my head ache. At
-first it seemed to me too cerebral to be art at all, but there's no
-denying it, and it has to be digested. In a way it is what I have
-always been talking about. It has to do with the life we are living,
-which may not be much of a life, but it is ours and we find it good.
-It has not been a plunge into another world, like a visit to the
-National Gallery, but into some reality a little beyond this
-extraordinary jumble and hotch-potch of metropolitan life."
-
-"It is painting," said Mendel. "That is enough for me. And they are
-not afraid of colour. Why should they be? The colours are there: why
-not use them? I'm going to."
-
-And he went home and dashed off a savage mother with a green face
-thrusting a straw-coloured breast into the gaping red lips of a child.
-
-So much for maternity and the Madonnas! He knew how a man loved his
-mother, and it was not in that milky way, setting her above nature,
-she who was tied and bound to natural, instinctive, animal life. If a
-man loved his mother, it was because with her it was the easiest thing
-in the world to be intimate and frank and honest and without pretence
-of any kind.
-
-His mother was marvellous to him because she was his dearest friend,
-not because she had given him suck. That was a fact like any other,
-and facts were not marvellous until more and more light was thrown on
-them from the mind, for in the murk and muddle of human life they were
-distorted.
-
-For Mendel this was the wildest and rarest adventure yet. It was a
-flinging of his cap over the windmills, and with it he had the sense
-of losing all his troubles, all his perplexities. Nothing for the time
-being seemed to matter very much. He had always been denied colour,
-and here he had the right to use it because it had been used by other
-men rightly. In the world of art, or rather of artists, he had always
-been a sort of Ishmael, ever since he had outgrown being a prodigy,
-and here was a new world of art where he could be free. . . . True, he
-had seen the same things in Paris and had not thought much of them,
-but so much had happened since then, and he had passed through the
-greatest crisis of his life.
-
-Always after his crises he expected to find himself, and now he
-thought he had surely done so. He would be entirely free, completely
-independent.
-
-For three weeks he lived between his studio and the gallery, studying
-these strange new vibrant pictures and experimenting with their
-manners as now this, now that painter influenced him. Picasso baffled
-him altogether. These queer, violent, angular patterns actually hurt
-him, and he was repelled by their intellectual intensity. Gauguin he
-found too easy, Van Gogh too incoherent. It was when he came to
-Cézanne that he was bowled out and reduced to impotence and all the
-egoistic excitement oozed out of him.
-
-He was not so free then. Here was an art before which he must be
-humbled and subdued if he was to understand it at all. He abandoned
-his experiments and made no attempt to work at all, but bought a
-reproduction of Cézanne's portrait of his wife and spent many days
-poring over it. It held him and fascinated him, and yet it looked
-almost like the unfinished work of an amateur who could not draw. Of
-psychological interest the picture was bare. It was just a portrait of
-a woman at peace, with her hands folded in her lap, bathed in a
-serenity beyond mortal understanding, though not beyond mortal
-perception, since a man had rendered it in paint. It released directly
-the swift, soaring emotion which, though it was roused in him by many
-pictures and by some poetry--passages in the Bible, for instance--was
-quickly entangled in sensual pleasure and never properly set free.
-Here, the more he gazed the more that emotion, pure, disinterested,
-unearthly, rushed through him, exploring all the caverns in his
-imagination and delivering from them new powers of perception. He
-felt, as he told Logan afterwards, like a tree putting out its leaves
-in the spring.
-
-And yet he could not tell how this miracle was accomplished. No words
-could explain it--abstraction, composition, design, none of these
-words helped at all. It was not so much the doing of the thing, the
-art of the painter, as the setting out of the woman on the canvas
-without reference to anything in heaven or earth, or any idea, or any
-emotion or desire. It was enough that she was a woman, not especially
-beautiful, not particularly remarkable. So perfect a vision had no
-need to be tender or affectionate or sensual, or to call in aid any of
-the emotions of life. It needed no force but the rare religious
-ecstasy which has no need of ideas or common human feelings, and this
-vision of a woman gave Mendel a new appreciation of life and love and
-art. It gave human beings a new value. It was enough that they were
-alive and upon the earth with all that they contained of good and
-evil. They were in themselves wonderful, and there was no need to
-worry about whence they came or whither they were going, or what was
-their relation to God and the universe. In each man, each woman was
-enough of God and of the universe to keep them poised for their little
-hour.
-
-What, then, was love? What but the sense of being poised, of being
-borne up by God, an intimation that could only be won through contact
-with life at its purest. And beyond that again lay a further degree of
-purity which could only find expression in art, since life, even at
-its rarest, was too gross.
-
-Often Mendel kissed his reproduction reverently and hugged it to his
-bosom, thinking childishly that some of its spirit could enter into
-him by contact. He whispered to it:--
-
-"I love you. You are my truth and my joy rising up through life, even
-from its very depths, and shaking free of it at last into pure, serene
-beauty. You weigh neither upon my senses nor upon my thoughts, but,
-following you, they are joined together to become a high sense which
-can know deliverance."
-
-Followed days of a supreme delight. He wandered through the streets
-seeing all men and all women and all things as wonderful, since
-through them all flowed this lovely spirit which in the few men here
-and there could find its freedom and its expression in form.
-
-Through Thompson he met a journalist who was writing a book about the
-new painting, and from him he learned the little that was known about
-Cézanne: how he worked away experimenting unsuccessfully until he was
-middle-aged, and then withdrew from the world of artists in Paris, to
-live the life of a simple country bourgeois and to paint the vision
-which he had begun to divine: and how he painted out in the fields,
-leaving his canvases in the hedges and by the wayside, because not the
-painting but the expression of his spirit and the solution of his
-problem mattered to him: and how he never sold a single picture, never
-attempted to sell them.
-
-Such, thought Mendel, should the life of an artist be. But how was it
-possible if life would not let him alone, but was perpetually dragging
-him down into the mud? What mud, what filth he had had to flounder
-through to get even so far as he had!
-
-And already he began to feel that he was slipping back. He could not
-accept that knowledge of the spirit vicariously, but must fight for
-his own knowledge of it in direct contact with life. To endeavour to
-escape from life was to isolate himself, to lose the driving force of
-life from darkness into the light, to dwell in the twilight of
-solitude armed only with his puny egoism and the paltry tricks of
-professional painting. He felt that at last he knew his desire, but in
-no wise how to attain it. Cézanne had had a wife: that had settled one
-of the torments of life. He had had ample means: that had absolved him
-from the ever-present difficulty of money.
-
-These considerations relieved Mendel from another weighty puzzle.
-Perhaps if Cézanne had had to please other people and not only his own
-spirit, he would have cared more for his craft and for the quality of
-his paint. . . . All the same, it was good to have pictures reduced to
-their bare essentials, relieved of ornament and trickery, and yet
-retaining their full pictorial quality.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Shortly after the party Logan and Oliver had moved to a little cottage
-on Hampstead Heath, just below Jack Straw's Castle. Mendel went to see
-them there and met Logan on the Spaniard's Road. He was in a
-deplorable condition. His right eye was blackened, his nose was bloody
-and scratched, the lobe of his ear was torn and his forehead was
-purple with bruises.
-
-"What on earth have you been doing to yourself!" asked Mendel.
-
-"I've had a fight," said Logan glibly. "The other night on the Heath I
-came on a man beating a girl. I went for him. He was a huge lout of a
-man. We had a terrific tussle, and just as I was getting him down the
-girl went for me and scratched my face."
-
-"If you lived where I do," said Mendel, "you would know better than to
-interfere."
-
-"Oh! I enjoyed it," said Logan. "I couldn't stand by and see it done."
-
-They ran down the grassy slope to the cottage, where they found Oliver
-entertaining Thompson and her critic. She had a slight bruise over her
-right eye, and Mendel thought:--
-
-"Why does he lie? Why should he lie to me? I should think no worse of
-him for beating her. If I could not shake her off I should kill her."
-
-He was filled with a sudden disgust at the household, which in his
-eyes had become an obscene profanation.
-
-The talk was excited, and formerly he would have found it interesting.
-Thompson was full of the triumph of the exhibition and its success in
-forcing art upon the public. He spoke glibly of abstraction and
-cubing, and it was clear that they only delighted him as new tricks.
-
-Oliver took part in the conversation. She had picked up the jargon of
-painters and made great play with the names of the new masters. To
-hear her talking glibly of Cézanne and saying how he had shown the
-object of pictorial art to be pattern filled Mendel's soul with
-loathing. He could not protest. What was the good of protesting to
-such people? . . . If only Logan had not been among them! He wanted to
-talk to Logan, to tell him what this new thing meant, to make him see
-that he must give up all thought of turning art back upon life,
-because life did not matter so very much. It could look after itself,
-while the integrity of art must at all costs be maintained.
-
-However, when Thompson said that the artist was now free to make up a
-picture out of any shapes he liked, Mendel could not contain himself,
-and said:--
-
-"The artist is no more free than ever he was. He does not become free
-by burking representation. He is not free merely to work by caprice
-and fantasy. He is rather more strictly bound than ever, because he is
-working through his imagination and cannot get out of it merely by
-using his eyes and imitating charming things. If he tries to get out
-of it by impudent invention, then pictures will be just as dull and
-degraded as before."
-
-"'I am Sir Oracle,'" said the critic, "'and when I ope my lips let no
-dog bark.'"
-
-"You can bark away," cried Mendel, "but you must not complain if a man
-loses patience with you and kicks you back into your kennel."
-
-"Just listen to the boy!" cried Oliver. "Success has turned his pretty
-little head. Just listen to him teaching the critics their business!"
-
-Mendel gave her a furious look of contempt and left the room and the
-house. Logan came running after him.
-
-"I say, old man," he said, "you mustn't mind what she says. Those damn
-fools have stuffed her head up with their nonsense and she hasn't the
-brains of a louse."
-
-"If it was my house, I would kick them out."
-
-"They are good fellows enough."
-
-"Good fellows! When they make her more idiotic and blatant than she
-is!"
-
-"I can't think what made you so angry. There was nothing to flare up
-about. You are so touchy."
-
-Mendel was walking at a furious pace. Logan was out of condition and
-had to beg him to go more slowly.
-
-"I'm all to bits," said Logan. "That row----"
-
-"Why do you tell lies? It was she who mauled you. Why do you tell lies
-to me? I have never told lies to you about anything. You have always
-jeered at women and said they can know nothing about art, and yet you
-let her talk. . . . Why don't you leave her?"
-
-"We're very fond of each other," replied Logan. "It has gone too deep.
-We hate each other like poison sometimes, but that only makes it--the
-real thing--go deeper."
-
-"I can't bear it," said Mendel; "I can't bear it. It was bad enough
-when she kept quiet, but now that she gives herself airs and talks, I
-can't stand it. I hate her so that I feel as if the top of my head
-would blow off. . . . Perhaps there was nothing much in what she said.
-Perhaps it was only a slow growing detestation coming to a head. But
-there it is. It is final. I have tried to like her, to be decent to
-her, to make allowances for her, but it is impossible."
-
-"You don't mean you are not going to come to see us again?"
-
-"Yes. That is what I do mean. She doesn't exist for me any longer. If
-I met her in a café or in the streets she would be all right. She
-would be in her place. There would be some truth in her. In connection
-with you she is a festering lie."
-
-"She can't settle down to it," replied Logan lamely, ashamed of his
-inability to defend Oliver from this onslaught. Defence would be quite
-useless, for he knew that Mendel would detect his untruth. If only
-Mendel were a little older, if only he could have grown out of youth's
-dreadful inability to compromise.
-
-"She can't settle down," Logan continued. "She is a creature of
-enormous vitality and she has no life outside herself, no imagination.
-Can't you see that her vitality has no outlet? I don't know, but it
-seems to me appalling to think of these modern women with their
-independence, and nothing at all to do with it. They won't admit the
-authority of the male, and they have broken out of the home. A lot of
-them refuse to have children. I feel sorry for them."
-
-"Don't go on talking round and round the subject," cried Mendel
-wrathfully. He was really alarmed and pained as he saw himself being
-carried nearer and nearer to a breach with his friend. "I can't feel
-sorry for her and I don't. She is ruining you. You never laugh
-nowadays. You are always more dead than alive, and I cannot bear to
-see you with her. I cannot bear even to think of you with her."
-
-"For God's sake, don't talk like that!" muttered Logan, quickening his
-pace to keep up, for Mendel was flying along.
-
-"You must either give her up or me," said Mendel.
-
-"Don't say that!" pleaded Logan; "don't say that! I can't get on
-without you. I don't see how I can get on without you. All the
-happiness I have ever had has come through you. Every hope I have is
-centred in you. If you go, life will become nothing but work, work,
-work, with nobody to understand. Nobody. . . . And I have been so full
-of hope. All this new business has made such a stir and has brought
-such life into painting that I had begun to feel that anything was
-possible. There might be even a stirring of the spirit to stem the
-tide of commercialism. You know what my life has been--one long
-struggle to find a way out of the pressure of vulgarity and sordid
-money-making, out of sentimentality and pretty lying fantasy, out of
-the corruption that from top to bottom is eating up the life of the
-country. You know that when I met you I had almost given up the
-struggle in despair. One man alone could not do it. But two men
-could--two men who trusted and believed in each other. . . . You were
-very young when I first met you, but you have come on wonderfully. It
-has been thrilling for me to watch the growth of your mind and the
-strengthening of your character. You are the only man I ever met who
-could really stand by himself. . . . It isn't easy for me to say all
-this, but I must tell you what your friendship has meant to me."
-
-The more Logan talked, the more he divulged his feelings, his very
-real affection, the more Mendel's mind was concentrated on the one
-purpose, to get him away from Oliver.
-
-"You must give her up," he said.
-
-"I can't," gasped Logan.
-
-They stood facing each other, Mendel staring into his friend's eyes
-that looked piteously, wearily, miserably out of his haggard, battered
-face. He could not endure it, and he could not yield to the entreaty
-in Logan's eyes.
-
-He turned quickly and ran to a bus which had stopped a few yards in
-front. He rushed up the steps and was whirled away. Unable to resist
-turning round, he saw Logan standing where he had left him, with his
-head bowed, his shoulders hunched up, a figure of shameful misery.
-
-After some minutes of numbness, of trying to gather up the threads
-snapped off by his astonishment at the quickness of the affair, Mendel
-began to tremble. His hands and his knees shook, and he could not
-control them. It was only gradually that he began to realize how
-strong his feelings had been, and how great the horror and the shock
-of knowing through and through, without blinking a single fact, the
-terrible relationship that bound Logan and Oliver--tied together in an
-insatiable sensuality, locked in a deadly embrace, like beasts of prey
-fighting over carrion: a furious, evil conflict over a dead lust.
-. . . At the same time he knew that he was bound with them, that in
-their life together he had his share, and that it was dragging him
-down, down from the ecstatic exaltation he had perceived in his new
-friend, Cézanne, a friend who could never fail, a friend upon whom no
-devastation could alight, a friend through whom he could never be
-clawed back into life.
-
-By the time he reached home he was completely exhausted, and begged
-his mother to make him a cup of strong tea.
-
-"What is it now?" Golda asked. "What is the trouble? There is always
-something new, and I think you will never be a man. For a man expects
-trouble and does not make himself ill over it."
-
-"I have quarrelled with Logan," said Mendel, dropping with relief into
-Yiddish as a barrier against the outer world, in which terrible things
-were always happening.
-
-"A good job too!" said Golda; "a good job too! He was no good to you.
-He only made you do the work that nobody likes. Now you can go back to
-the old way, and Mr. Froitzheim and Mr. Birnbaum will be pleased with
-you again. . . . You had better give up your friends. You are like a
-woman, the way you must always be in love with your friends. . . . But
-it is no good. Men will always fall in love, and then it is over with
-friendship. . . . Friends are only for moments. They come and
-disappear and come again. It is foolish to think you can keep them.
-. . . Is your head bad?"
-
-"Pretty bad."
-
-"You have not been drinking again?"
-
-"No. I've been leading a decent life. I expect it doesn't suit me."
-
-"Rubbish. . . . Rosa says the Christian girl has been to see you."
-
-He leaped to his feet.
-
-"Didn't she stay? Didn't you make her stay? What did she say? How did
-she look? Did she leave no message?"
-
-Golda smiled at him.
-
-"You had better go and see," she said.
-
-He darted from the room and across to his studio panting with
-excitement, persuading himself at every step that she was there,
-waiting for him, perhaps hiding to tease him, for she was a terrible
-tease.
-
-By the time he reached his studio he was so convinced that she was
-there that he hardly dared open the door. He pushed it open very
-gently and peered in. The room was empty, but he felt sure that she
-was there. He peeped round the corner into his bedroom. She was not
-there. He had to believe it, and came dejectedly back into the studio.
-
-On his painting-table were autumn flowers daintily arranged in the old
-jug he used for a vase. He buried his face in them. She was there! She
-was there in the sweetness and fragrance of the flowers.
-
-
-
-VII
-
-CONFLICT
-
-MORRISON had fought bravely through her storms and difficulties. She
-frightened Clowes with the violence of her efforts and the terrible
-strain she inflicted on her vitality. There were times when she
-thought the simplest way would be to cut adrift from all her old
-associations and to throw in her lot with Mendel, to give him his
-desire and so save him from the terrible life he was leading. But that
-was too drastic, too simple. She could only have done it on a great
-impulse, but always her deepest feelings shrank from it, and without
-her deepest feelings she could not go to him, for they were engaged
-most of all. . . . She felt cramped and confined, as though her love
-were a cord wound round and round her limbs, and she could not, she
-would not go to him bound. He must release her; she must compel him to
-release her. If it took half her lifetime she would so compel him. Her
-will was concentrated upon him. She would not have their love droop
-from the high sympathy it had known, nor should it be torn from it by
-his savage strength and the adorable violence of his passion. Neither,
-on the other hand, would she turn back from him. That would be to deny
-her freedom which she had bought so dearly. She had thought her
-freedom would give her the easy joy of flowers and clouds and birds,
-and she still believed in that easy joy, but it lay beyond the tangled
-web of this love for the strange, dark, faunlike creature whom she had
-found in the woods. If she turned back, if she denied the urgent
-emotions that drove her on, she had nothing to turn to but the old
-captivity, the life where all difficulties were arranged for, where
-all roads led to marriage, where men could only talk to women in a
-half-patronizing, half-flirtatious way that led to a ridiculous
-meeting of the senses, then to an engagement, and so to church. To
-that she would never, never return. She had fought her way out of it.
-She had learned to live by herself, within herself, to wrestle with
-her thoughts and emotions and to get them into shape. (It had been at
-a great cost to her external tidiness and orderliness, but that too
-she hoped to tackle in time.) She had won all this, and she had found
-a glorious outlet in work. So far as she had gone she had been
-successful, and she was ambitious, terribly ambitious, to show that a
-woman could do good work.
-
-And then there was the dark side of Mendel's life--Logan, Oliver,
-Jessie Petrie. At the thought of it she shuddered, but her honesty
-made her confess that it made no difference to her central feeling. It
-had shocked her, outraged her, roused her to a fury of jealousy, but
-that she would not have. She fought it down inch by inch until she had
-it so well in control that, whenever it reared its head, she could
-crush it down.
-
-Many a tear had it cost her, but she insisted that she must
-understand.
-
-When she cut her hair short, she found, to her horror, that it was
-taken by many men as a sign that she was open to their advances, and
-all sorts and conditions of men had found to their astonishment that,
-although she was an artist and lived an independent life, she was
-immovable, and when it came to argument she was more than a match for
-them.
-
-Again, she had had the confidence of more than one of the models, and
-she knew how they courted their own disasters. If there was to be any
-question of blame, the women must share it with the men.
-
-She had no thought of blaming Mendel, but she hated to have that
-underworld in contact with the world which it was her whole desire to
-keep beautiful. It was no good pretending that the underworld was not
-there, but if she could have her way she would keep a tight control
-over it, and suppress it as she suppressed her jealousy, that other
-source of ugliness. If she could only, somehow, find an entrance to
-Mendel's life, not only to his rare moments, but to the life that went
-on from day to day, she would suppress it, she would cut it out and
-throw it away. She thought of it almost as a surgical operation, or as
-cutting a bruise out of an apple, for all her thoughts of life were as
-simple as herself, and life too was simple in her eyes. Anything that
-threatened to complicate it she expunged.
-
-After a time she discovered that it was no good hoping to understand
-so long as she regarded the dark aspect of Mendel from outside his
-life. She must find her way inside it and see how it looked there.
-That was hard.
-
-Clowes could not help her at all. To Clowes it was simply
-unintelligible that men could do these things. They bewildered her,
-and her only way out of it was to suppose that men were like that, and
-the less said about it the better. She was really very annoyed with
-Morrison for worrying over it, and she was disappointed. She had hoped
-that the unfortunate adventure would be over and that Morrison would
-wait tranquilly for her affections to be engaged by someone who
-was--presentable. . . . Still, there was no accounting for this
-strange, impulsive creature, though it was a pity she should throw
-away her growing popularity with people who were, after all,
-important, both in themselves and by their position; for Morrison's
-frank charm carried her to places where Clowes would have given her
-eyes to be seen. Clowes was baffled by her friend, but she would not
-abandon her. She was often bored with her, often exasperated, and more
-than once she said:--
-
-"Well, if you like these wild people so much, why don't you take the
-plunge and join them? You are wild enough yourself."
-
-"I'm not wild in that way," replied Morrison. "And I know that if I
-did do it it would be wrong."
-
-And she returned to her task of labouring to understand Mendel. She
-carried the idea of him wherever she went, and was sometimes able to
-call up a clear image of him, and she was fearful for him because he
-seemed to her so helpless, so much a stranger in a strange land, so
-easily caught up in any strong current of feeling or enthusiasm. . . .
-She, too, often felt outside things, but she so much enjoyed being a
-looker-on. She loved to watch the race among the young artists, and
-she longed for Mendel to win. It was right that he should win, because
-he was so much the best of them all. He had taken the lead. It had
-looked as though he must infallibly win, and then Logan had appeared
-and he had stumbled in his stride.
-
-Yet this had never been satisfying. She had no right to turn Mendel
-into a figure on a frieze, to see him in the flat, as it were, and it
-was in revolt against this conception that she had agreed to go with
-him to Logan's party, which had been so disastrous. . . . Had she not
-been cowardly to run away? But what could she do, what else could she
-do, when confronted so suddenly with the appalling fact?
-
-A week before the party Mendel had insisted on lending her "Jean
-Christophe" volume by volume. She had read the first without great
-interest. The friendship between the two boys struck her as silly and
-sentimental and not worth writing about, and she had read no further.
-However, when she found that Mendel was becoming a fixed idea, to
-escape from it she took up the second volume, and was enthralled by
-the tale of Christophe's love for Ada, thrilled by the sudden scene of
-his assault on the peasant girl in the field, and with a growing sense
-of illumination followed his life as it passed from woman to woman,
-finding consolation with one, relief with another, comfort with
-another, comradeship with yet another, and the physical relationship
-slipped into its place and was never dominant. And Christophe, too,
-had had women of passage because his vitality was so abundant that it
-could not be contained in his being. It must be always flowing out
-into art or into life, taking from life more and more power to give to
-art. . . . With Gratia she was out of patience. Gratia was altogether
-too complacent an Egeria. Morrison thought she could have given
-Christophe more than that.
-
-She made Clowes read the book, but Clowes found it no help. That was
-in a story, this was actually happening in London; and besides, the
-book had a rhapsodic, dreamlike quality that smoothed away all
-ugliness, all difficulties. In life things were definitely ugly, and
-it was no good pretending they were anything else.
-
-"Anyhow," said Morrison, "I'm going on."
-
-"You are going to see him again?"
-
-"Yes, I will not be beaten. If I were married to him I should put up
-with everything, and I don't see why not being married should make any
-difference."
-
-Clowes threw up her hands and said:--
-
-"Well, if you come to grief, don't blame me."
-
-"I'm not going to come to grief," said Morrison. "I'm going to
-win--I'm going to win."
-
-It was then that she went out and bought the flowers. Her courage
-nearly failed her as she approached the door in the little slummy
-street. Suppose he should be angry with her for running away, and
-contemptuous of her cowardice! His anger and contempt were not easy
-things to face.
-
-She was relieved, therefore, when the dirty little Jewish servant
-opened the door and told her Mendel was out. She handed in the flowers
-shyly and went away without a word.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Mendel wrote to thank her for the flowers, but said nothing about
-going to see her or about what he was doing. She thought he must be
-contemptuous of her, though it was not like him to be so stupid as not
-to respond to a direct impulse. On the other hand, he had always tried
-to impose his authority on her, and she was not going to do his
-bidding. Either he must take her on her own level or not at all. She
-would make him understand that she too was driving at something, and
-that love was to her not an end in itself, much though she might
-desire love and its freedom. He had always made her feel that he
-regarded love as sufficient for her. She must curl up in it and be
-happy while he went on with his work. Against that all the free
-instinct in her cried out. A woman was not a mere embryo to be
-incubated in a man's passion, hatched out into a wife and a helpmate.
-. . . When she tried to imagine what life with him would be like, she
-shivered until she thought what life with him might be if she could
-bring to it all her force and all her freedom.
-
-At last she began to think that perhaps it was her own fault for not
-having left a note or a message with the flowers, which might be
-regarded only as a token of sentimental forgiveness. She knew how
-easily he was sickened by any sign of Christian
-sentimentality--"filthy gush" as he called it. . . . To safeguard
-against that and to have done with it once and for all, she wrote to
-him and told him that she had been reading "Jean Christophe," and that
-it had helped her to understand both his sufferings and his need of
-what in an ordinary foolish vain man would have to be condemned.
-
-To this letter he did not reply, and she determined that she would go
-and see him. She would take Clowes, in case things had become
-impossible and their sympathy had somehow been undermined and
-destroyed. Even if it were, she would not accept or believe it, and
-she would fight to restore it. A vague intuition took possession of
-her by which she surely knew that something strange, perhaps even
-terrible, was happening to him, and she felt that he needed her but
-did not know his need.
-
-It required some persuasion to take Clowes down to Whitechapel. She
-declared that she would stand by her friend whatever happened, but
-that she did not wish to be personally mixed up in it. It would, she
-said, make her in part responsible for whatever happened, and she did
-not think she could bear it. However, Morrison explained that she only
-wanted her there in case things were impossible, and that, if they
-were not, she could make good her escape as soon as she liked. On that
-Clowes consented and they journeyed to the East End.
-
-The little Jewish servant said that Mr. Mendel was engaged. Would she
-go up and see if he would soon be disengaged? She ran upstairs and
-came down in a moment to ask if they would wait, and to their
-surprise, darted past them, along the street, beckoned to them to
-follow, and led them to Golda's kitchen. Golda bobbed to them, dusted
-chairs for them to sit on, and, not knowing enough English to be able
-to talk to them, went on with her ironing. When she had finished that,
-she shyly produced an album and showed them all the photographs of
-Mendel since he was a baby.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Meanwhile, in his studio Mendel was in agitated conversation with Mr.
-Tilney Tysoe, who had arrived half an hour before, wagging his hands,
-rolling his enormous eyes, almost demented by the lamentable news he
-had to tell. Logan had left Oliver!
-
-"When?" asked Mendel.
-
-"A few days ago," said Tysoe. "The poor fellow came round to me one
-night after dinner. You know, he often drops in in the evening. Such a
-splendid fellow, so sincere, such a force! And his admiration for you
-is very touching. He came in and raved like a madman and said terrible
-things--oh, terrible things! He told me that I was a fool and did not
-know a picture from my foot, and he denounced himself as a scoundrel
-and a thief and a liar. He wanted me to destroy all the pictures I had
-bought from him, and said they were not worth the stretchers of the
-canvas they were painted on. . . . Oh! it was terrible, terrible! He
-said that for years he had been pulling my leg, and had got such a
-taste for it that he had begun to pull his own leg, and he went on to
-say that his soul was rotten with lies; and then he broke into a
-torrent of wild, splendid stuff that made my spine tingle. I assure
-you, I could not contain my enthusiasm. . . . Oh! he is a splendid
-fellow. . . . I can't remember it all very well, but he said that love
-is impossible in the world as it is, and that everybody is living in
-hate. It sounded most true--most true--though you know I adore my
-wife. . . . He said that humanity has tried aristocracy and failed,
-and it has tried democracy and failed. It has swung from one extreme
-to the other and found satisfaction in neither, and now it must bend
-the two extremes together so as to get the electric spark which can
-illumine life, and also to create a circle in which life can be
-contained. Of course, I haven't got it at all clear, but it was most
-inspiring--most inspiring. Certainly life is very unsatisfactory, and
-it must be maddening for artists, maddening, though of course it
-should drive them on to make a mighty effort. We are all looking to
-the artists nowadays, especially since that wonderful exhibition."
-
-"Yes, yes," said Mendel impatiently; "but what about Logan?"
-
-"He told me you had quarrelled with him. Such a pity! Dear me! dear
-me! You were such a splendid pair, so sincere. He said it was
-irrevocable. But, you know, 'The falling out of faithful friends
-renewing is of love.' Have you read the Oxford 'Book of Verse'? A
-storehouse of poetry. . . . I came to see you for that reason.
-Quarrels ought not to be irrevocable. . . . I have been to see Oliver
-too. Poor girl! poor girl! I am keeping their little nest at Hampstead
-for them. . . . I told Logan he ought to marry her. Of course, I know,
-artists have their own view on that subject, but there is a great deal
-to be said for marriage. Most people are married, you know, and a
-woman who is not married must feel out of it. Nothing to do with
-morality, of course, but you know what women are. They can't bear even
-their clothes to be different, and, after all, marriage is only a
-garment which we wear for decency's sake."
-
-"But where is Logan?"
-
-"That I don't know," said Tysoe. "Oliver said he would be here. She
-said it was your fault that they had quarrelled. . . . Poor girl! So
-pretty too! . . . I thought if you made it up with Logan, then he
-could make it up with her and we should all be happy again. We might
-have a nice little dinner of reconciliation at my house."
-
-"It is no use, no use whatever," said Mendel. "Logan might go back to
-her, but he will never come back to me. We have gone different ways,
-not only in life, but in our work."
-
-"You won't make it up?" asked Tysoe plaintively.
-
-"No," answered Mendel. "I should like to, but it is impossible. It is
-very good of you to try to intervene. Logan was my friend. He is no
-longer the same man. He is altered, he is changed, he is done for."
-
-"Nothing could ruin a man like that. It is disastrous, it is terrible
-that he should lose his friend and the girl he loves at one stroke.
-Kühler, I implore you, I entreat you, if he comes to see you, you will
-not refuse him."
-
-"If he comes I will see him, certainly," said Mendel.
-
-"Ah! That is all I want," said Tysoe, beaming hopefully.
-
-"But he will not come."
-
-"We shall find a way. We shall find a way. . . . Ah! superb!" he
-added, catching sight of Mendel's green-faced _Mother._ "Ah! The new
-spirit at work in your art. Colour! What you have always wanted! . . .
-How--how much?"
-
-"Ten pounds," said Mendel.
-
-"May I take it with me? I will send you my cheque."
-
-Mendel wrapped the picture up in brown paper and gave it him, told him
-he must go, thanked him for his kindness, and with unutterable relief
-watched him go shambling down the stairs.
-
-* * * * *
-
-It was very certain that Logan would not come. There could be nothing
-but futile suffering for both of them, and Logan would know that as
-well as he. Logan knew himself better than most men, and he must have
-felt the finality of that parting in the street. The breach was final
-and irrevocable, for Oliver was definitely a part of Logan, as much a
-part of him as his hand or his eyes, and Mendel hated Oliver with a
-pure, simple, immovable passion. He saw in her embodied the natural
-enemy of all that he loved: order, decency, honesty, art, and beauty.
-He would have liked to blot out all trace of her everywhere, but she
-lived most intensely in his mind. She existed for him hardly at all as
-a person, but as an evil, fixed will set on the destruction of Logan,
-of friendship, of art, of love, of beauty, of everything that lived
-distinctly and clearly and with a flame-like energy. She existed to
-drag all down into the glowing ashes of lust and lies. There were
-times when she became symbolical of that Christian world that had made
-him suffer so intensely. In her was the only discernible will of that
-world in which everything was losing shape and form, every flame was
-dying down, and everything, good and bad, was being reduced to ashes.
-
-"Good and bad?" thought Mendel. "I don't know what they mean. I know
-what is false and what is true. What is false I hate. What is true I
-love. That woman is a lie and I hate her, and I wish she were dead."
-
-Logan might hate her too, but he would always try, always hope to love
-her, always waste himself in trying to kindle her lust into a passion.
-The fool, the weak fool! Let her rot; let her drop down to her own
-level, where she could be decently a beast of prey, marked out to be
-shunned except by those who were her natural victims. Logan was too
-good: but if there was so much good in him, might not something be
-done? . . . No. Only Logan's own will could save him. Nothing could be
-done for him except out of pity: and who wants pity? Leave that to men
-like Tysoe, the kindly, emasculate fools of the world.
-
-Yet Mendel knew that he was bound to Logan. At first he thought it
-must be by pity, but it was deeper than that. There was not much
-capacity for pity in Mendel. Ruthless with himself, he could see no
-reason why others should be spared what he himself was ready to
-endure. He had never thought that others might be weaker than he.
-Logan, for instance, with ten years' more experience behind him, had
-always seemed infinitely stronger.
-
-And so Logan had left Oliver! There must have been a terrible row.
-. . . Oh, well, he would go back to her. There would be no end to the
-affair, there could be no end unless Logan were strong enough to stand
-by himself. But when had he ever tried to do that? Even in his work he
-borrowed here and there. Mendel was sure now that all Logan's work had
-grown out of his own, and was often, by some amazing sleight of mind,
-an anticipation of his own ideas. That explained a good deal: his
-growing sense that Logan was really his enemy, and was cramping and
-thwarting him, a sense that endured even after the quarrel. It was
-strong upon him now. Tysoe had brought Logan vividly to his mind and
-made him feel impotent, possessed by a vision of art but unable to
-move a step towards it, rather dragged further and further away from
-it. He was ashamed when he thought of how often he had excitedly
-followed Logan's lead, only to come now to this discovery that he was
-brought back to his own inchoate ideas. . . . He was reminded oddly of
-the journalist who had interviewed him after his first success and had
-produced so grotesque a parody of his innocently conceited remarks.
-
-A tap at the door reminded him of the "two young ladies" who were
-waiting to see him. He rushed eagerly to the door and flung it open,
-thinking to find healing and refreshment in the sight of Morrison.
-Only Clowes was standing there, and in his disappointment her face
-seemed to him so foolish and flabby and idiotic that his impulse was
-to shut the door. . . . He would bang the door in her face and it
-would shut out the Christian world for ever. It did not want him, and
-he did not want it, for it was full of lies. . . . Then he heard a
-footstep on the stairs and Morrison appeared.
-
-"Come in," he said. "Come in."
-
-"I can't stay long," said Clowes nervously.
-
-"All right," he replied.
-
-Morrison reached the top of the stairs, and he stood looking at her.
-
-"How are you?"
-
-"I'm very well."
-
-She was horrified at the change in him. He looked so tragic and drawn.
-
-"Clowes can't stop long," she said. "But I'll stop, if I may. I should
-like to."
-
-"I'm afraid I haven't got anything to show you. I haven't been working
-lately."
-
-"It seems to be a pretty general complaint," said Clowes. "Everybody
-is so upset by the French pictures. I should like to shake that
-Thompson until his teeth rattled. He is so pleased with himself."
-
-"He's an awful man," muttered Mendel. "He seems to think he told
-Cézanne and Van Gogh how to do it. There seems to be a whole army of
-men ready to take the credit of a thing when someone else has done it.
-I suppose they are all talking like mad."
-
-"What is so astonishing is that these things are actually selling, and
-people who never sold a picture in their lives dab a few straight
-lines on a picture and off it goes."
-
-Mendel laughed.
-
-"I've just sold one," he said. "I came straight back from the
-exhibition and painted it. They sell just as if they were a new kind
-of toy that is all the rage."
-
-So they kept up a cheerful rattle of conversation until Clowes said
-she really must go. No; she would not have tea, but she hoped Mendel
-would come to tea with her one day.
-
-He saw her to the front door and ran upstairs again, three steps at a
-time.
-
-"Now, then," he said, "what have you come for, and why did you bring
-her?"
-
-"In case there was nothing to be said and this visit was another
-failure. I'm sick of failure; aren't you?"
-
-"I didn't answer your letter. I thought it was all over."
-
-"But I told you what had made me change."
-
-"It was nothing to do with that. Everything seemed all over, and I'm
-not sure even now that it isn't."
-
-"I knew something was happening to you. What is it?"
-
-"I've quarrelled with Logan."
-
-She was silent for a moment or two, and then she said:--
-
-"I'm so glad."
-
-"You didn't like him. Why?"
-
-"I thought him second-rate."
-
-"He isn't that. He has a good mind, and he was a good friend."
-
-"Are you so sure of that?"
-
-"Of some things in him--of his affection, for instance--I am as sure
-as I am of myself."
-
-She smiled at him.
-
-"Yes. That is saying a good deal. But why did you quarrel?"
-
-"It was over his woman."
-
-"Oh yes!"
-
-"He has left her."
-
-"Has he been to see you?"
-
-"No. It was a friend of his. I don't know what will happen. They are
-bound to come together again. Perhaps they will go through life like
-that--parting and coming together again. I can't get it out of my
-head. I shall never forget it. It is like my father knocking a drunken
-soldier down with a glass. I never forget that, though it was
-different. That was just something that I saw. This is in my own life.
-I feel as though it had somehow happened through me. I was with him
-when he met her, you know, and his whole life changed when he met me.
-Perhaps he wasn't meant to take things seriously. . . . I didn't write
-to you because I didn't want to drag you into it. But I'm glad you've
-come. I'm glad you've come. . . . You know, it was beginning to be a
-horror with me that Logan would come in at that door, looking like a
-poor, battered, broken little Napoleon, and I should have to tell him
-that I was not his friend. . . . You know, he was something vital and
-living in my work, but Cézanne has kicked him out. He was only my
-friend really in my work, and if that goes everything goes. I couldn't
-explain it to him, for he wouldn't understand. He used to laugh at me
-for talking about my work to you. I'm afraid I told him more about you
-than I ought to have done, but, you see, he was my friend. He laughed
-at everything. He ought to have been a very happy man, the way he
-laughed at everything."
-
-He placed in her hands his reproduction of Cézanne's portrait of his
-wife.
-
-"That's better than Cranach," he said.
-
-"But why is her mouth crooked?" asked Morrison, puzzled by the picture
-and by his setting it above Cranach.
-
-"I don't know," replied Mendel, "but Cézanne knew when he did it."
-
-And he tried to explain the making of the picture, but she could not
-understand it. However, she could understand and love his enthusiasm,
-and they were both happy, talking rather aimlessly and often relapsing
-into silence.
-
-"I never can make out," he said, "why you are more wonderful to me
-than anybody else. Directly I am with you, I am not so much happy as
-free. Even if I am miserable and you don't make me any happier, I want
-you with me. . . . You mustn't go away again."
-
-"No. I don't want to go away."
-
-"Why need you actually go? Why shouldn't you stay here now? Stay with
-me. Don't go. Don't think of going. I want you always with me. . . .
-If you don't like the place we will find another studio and go there.
-And if you want to be married we can get married at once. I have
-nearly a hundred pounds in the bank."
-
-He knelt by her side and held her knees in his two hands. She took his
-face in her hands and said gently:--
-
-"You mustn't talk like that, Mendel. Please don't think I don't love
-you because I don't want you to talk like that. It is the first thing
-to come into your mind, but with me it is almost the last thing. I
-want love to be very, very beautiful before it comes to me. I want
-love to be as beautiful to me as that picture of Cézanne's is to you.
-Do you understand me?"
-
-He sprang to his feet and turned away from her.
-
-"No, I don't!" he shouted; "no, I don't!"
-
-He was wildly angry. Her words had acted like salt upon his raw
-feelings.
-
-"No, I don't understand you. You want love to be like art. You want to
-mix love up with art. Love belongs to life. Love is rich and ripe and
-warm. You want it to be like the dew on the grass. It can't be!--it
-can't be! Love bursts out of a man's body into his soul, and you want
-it to live in his soul and to leave him with an impotent, cold body.
-You want me to bend to your woman's will, for you know I cannot break
-away from you. You are with your soul like Oliver with her body. You
-are with your love like Oliver with her lust, and Logan and I are a
-pair--a miserable, broken pair."
-
-"Oh!" she cried, hiding her face in her hands. "You are wrong, wrong,
-hideously wrong. You have understood nothing at all. Your mind has
-rushed away with you. For God's sake be quiet for a little, to see if
-we can't get it straight."
-
-His desire was to batter down her opposition, yet he could not but
-realize that she was too strong, and that he would only do grievous
-and useless harm. He controlled himself, therefore, and was silent. At
-last he grunted:--
-
-"Can't you make me see what you mean?"
-
-"It isn't a thing I could say in cold blood," she said.
-
-He moved towards her, but she held up her hands to ward him off.
-
-"No, no!'" she almost whispered. "That only makes my heart grow colder
-and colder until it aches."
-
-"Do you mean that you--don't--want me?"
-
-"Foolish, foolish, foolish!" she said. "If you loved me one tenth part
-as much as I love you, you would know what I mean."
-
-"I don't," he said simply. "I don't, honestly I don't. Perhaps you are
-so beautiful to me that I am blinded with it."
-
-Of the truth of her feeling against him he had no doubt, but though he
-laboured bitterly to understand it, he could make nothing of it. He
-was driven back on his simple need for her.
-
-"Very well," he said; "if it makes you feel like that for me to touch
-you, I never will. Only don't talk of loving me more than I love you.
-It isn't true."
-
-"Yes. It was silly of me to say that," she agreed. "It isn't true."
-
-"What do you want, then?"
-
-"I want to share as much of your life as I can."
-
-"It is a bleak, grimy business, a good deal of it."
-
-"I want to share it."
-
-"There is a good deal in it that will horrify you."
-
-"I must get used to that. . . . When I am in London I want you to
-promise that you will see me at least once a week."
-
-"There are seven days in the week. Let it be seven times."
-
-She laughed at that.
-
-"And some day," she went on, "I want to take you down into the
-country."
-
-He began to suspect her of wanting to meddle with his work.
-
-"I don't want the country," he rapped out. "I am a Londoner. All the
-life I care about is in the streets and in the houses, in the
-restaurants and the shops, and the costers' barrows and the cinemas
-and the picture galleries. That is why I live here, because I love the
-coarse, thrumming vitality all round me."
-
-"But _I_ want the country," she said, "and you should know the life
-_I_ love."
-
-For a moment it seemed to him that the key to the mystery she talked
-of was in his hands. He clutched at it and it evaded him, but his
-idolatry of her was shaken, and he began dimly to see her as a
-creature like himself, with feelings, thoughts, desires, and a will.
-There was no doubt at all about the will, and he had to recognize it.
-
-
-
-VIII
-
-OLIVER
-
-THEN began a period of quiet, happy friendship for them both. Mendel
-was astonishingly amenable to many of her disciplinary suggestions and
-allowed her to cut his hair (though not without thinking of Delilah),
-and when she ordered him to get some new clothes he went off
-obediently to a friend of Issy's and had a suit made--West End style
-at East End prices.
-
-"You will soon have me looking like a Public School gentleman," he
-said.
-
-"Never!" she replied. "You will never move like one--thank goodness."
-
-"Why thank goodness?"
-
-"Because they walk about as though they owned the earth and the
-fatness thereof, as though the earth existed for them to walk about on
-it without their needing even to look at it to see how beautiful it
-is."
-
-"That's like Logan," he said. "He used always to be railing against
-the English. He said they had no eyes, only stomachs. But I think the
-English must be the nicest people in the world, for there is no place
-like London for living in."
-
-Indeed, they both thought there could be no place like London. Once or
-twice a week they dined together at the Pot-au-Feu and went on to a
-party or to a music-hall or to the cinema, which he adored. He said it
-gave him ideas for pictures and that there were often wonderful
-momentary pictures thrown on the screen.
-
-"The cinema does what the bad artists have been trying to do for
-generations. It is a great relief to have it done by a machine. The
-artist need not any more try to be a machine. There is no need for him
-now to please the public. He can leave all that to the machine and go
-straight for art. The few decent people will follow him, and what more
-does he want? Art is not for the fools. . . . Logan was wrong. He
-wanted art to go to the people. That is all wrong. The people must
-come up to art. When they are sick of the machine, art is there, ready
-for them." He added naďvely, "I shall be there, waiting for them."
-
-He loved especially the dramas, when they were not clogged and
-obscured with sentimentality. The simple values that governed them,
-the triumph of virtue and the downfall of evil, appealed to him as
-solid, as related to a process, a drama, that went on in himself, and,
-he supposed, in everybody else. It worried and annoyed him when
-Morrison made fun of these values and jeered at them.
-
-"But things don't work like that," she protested.
-
-"I think they do," he said.
-
-"Good people are often crushed," she replied, "and bad people often
-have things all their own way."
-
-"But it is inside people that it happens like that. False people have
-their souls eaten away with lies, and true people have free, happy
-souls like yours. Being rich or poor, or what you call good or bad,
-has nothing to do with it. Yes. It is inside people that it happens
-like that, and I am more often the villain than the hero inside
-myself."
-
-"It seems absurd to me, and I can't think why you should take it
-seriously."
-
-"It is because you are so idiotically good. You have only one side to
-your nature. You are like a heroine in your Dickens."
-
-"I'm not. I'm sure I'm not. I'm bad-tempered and mean and unjust."
-
-"You don't even know how bad I am. You have no more idea of what my
-life is like than a rose has of an onion's."
-
-"I don't like onions."
-
-"That's the trouble. You don't like the smell of onions, and so you
-don't eat them. Very poor people live on bread and onions and they
-find them good. I have no patience with you. You want to be a rose
-growing in a sheltered English garden."
-
-"I don't. I don't want anything of the kind."
-
-"A wild rose, then; and you have no right to want such a life. You are
-not a flower. You are a human being, and you can't have a sheltered
-life, or a summer hedgerow life, because you have truth and falsehood
-in you, and if you will not live for the truth you will die for the
-falsehood. That is why cinemas are good and theatres are rotten. All
-the plays are false, because they have forgotten truth and falsehood
-and are all about being rich or poor, or old or young, or married or
-unmarried, and in the worst plays of all they are about people
-pretending to be children so as to get out of the whole thing. I hate
-you sometimes when you seem to be trying that game of refusing to be
-grown up, denying your own feelings and letting men love you and
-pretending you don't know what it is all about."
-
-"I never do that," she cried indignantly.
-
-"I'm not so sure," he said, unable to resist the temptation to press
-home the advantage he had won in rousing her out of her placid
-happiness. "I'm not so sure. There are too many girls do that."
-
-"I don't. I may have done it. But I have never done it with you. It is
-a wicked lie to say anything of the kind."
-
-"You can't blame me if I catch at any idea that will help me to
-understand you."
-
-"You never will, if you go grubbing about with your mind."
-
-"Oh! my mind is no good, is it? Then take your hands off my feelings.
-They'll understand you right enough."
-
-"No. They won't."
-
-"Why not?"
-
-"Because they're blind."
-
-"Good God! What am I to do, then?"
-
-"Wait."
-
-"How long?"
-
-"Till you can see."
-
-"I never shall see more than I do now. If you love me, why don't you
-love me as I am?"
-
-"I do. But you don't know what you are--yet, and you don't know what I
-am."
-
-"I know what I want."
-
-"It isn't what I want."
-
-"If you knew at all what I wanted, you would want it too."
-
-"What is it?"
-
-"Love."
-
-"You've got it."
-
-"You don't call this love?"
-
-"I do."
-
-"Then I don't. It is just playing the fool--wasting time."
-
-"It isn't wasting time. We are much better friends than we were."
-
-"I don't want to be friends. I've had enough of friends. They have
-never done me any good. It's a silly, thin kind of happiness at best."
-
-"It is better than no happiness at all, which the other would be."
-
-"How can you say that?" he cried, revolted. "How can you say that?
-Every thought, every dream I have is centred on it. It is such
-happiness that my imagination, is baffled by it."
-
-"Please let us stop talking about it. We are only getting horribly at
-cross-purposes."
-
-He had learned when it was wise to stop, but he needed every now and
-then the assurance that her serene confidence was shot with doubt.
-Once or twice when he had tried to thrust her back on her doubts she
-had flared up, and had fought tooth and nail, declaring that she would
-never see him again. And, as he knew she meant it, he yielded, and
-said that any sacrifice was better than that.
-
-On her part, as she came more nearly to see his point of view, she was
-often shaken and tempted to admit that he was right. There was no
-looseness or formlessness about his ideas. He lived in a world that
-apparently made room for everything, a world in which he stood solidly
-on his feet while the waves of life broke upon him, and he only
-absorbed into himself that which his passions needed. It was a plain,
-simple world, where good and evil were equally true, and, apparently,
-largely a matter of chance--a world in which he was gloriously
-independent. But was he free? Sometimes she thought that he was
-amazingly free. His only prejudice seemed to be against pink, fleshy
-young men who had to do nothing for a living--young men like her
-brothers, for instance, of whom she had drawn an amusing series of
-caricatures showing the effect of introducing Mendel to them. . . .
-Sometimes she wondered if her own longing for freedom was not just her
-ignorance, just a craven desire to escape from knowing anything about
-life, to remain an amused but fundamentally indifferent onlooker. And
-when she had to face the suffering she inflicted on him, then she was
-often moved to cry out within herself:--
-
-"Oh! Take me, take me! Have your will. It will make an end of it all,
-and you will pass on and forget me, but you will no longer suffer
-through me."
-
-But she could not bend her own will, which insisted that the treasure
-she desired lay through him, and that he needed it even more than she.
-It was because of his need that he clung to her through all his
-suffering and exasperation. . . . Why, why was he so blind that he
-could not see it? Why could he, who was so sure and so strong, not see
-what was to her so clear through all her vacillation and all the
-confusion of her idealism? . . . She tried to make him read English
-poetry, but he could make little of it, and said none of it was worth
-the Bible. He declared that Shelley wrote romantical nonsense, because
-men could never be made perfect, and it was cruelly absurd to try
-it--like dressing a monkey up in human clothes. And he countered by
-making her read "Candide."
-
-"When you have been through as much as Cunegonde," he said, "I'll
-believe in your purity."
-
-"It isn't purity that I'm fussing about."
-
-"What is it, then?"
-
-"Don't let us begin it all over again."
-
-They found common ground in Blake, whom Mendel consented to read
-because Blake was the only English painter who had had any idea of art
-at all.
-
-Blake brought them much closer together, and their tussles were
-sharper, but less futile and exasperating.
-
-"Why don't you take a lesson from Mrs. Blake?" he asked, after they
-had read the Life.
-
-"What? And sit and hold your hand? You'd turn round and hit me."
-
-"I believe I would," he laughed. "By Jove! I believe I would."
-
-* * * * *
-
-He was not easy for her to handle. It was like playing with high
-explosives, save that she was not playing.
-
-She said to him once, when they had come very near the intimacy she
-desired:--
-
-"I believe you would understand me if only you could let go."
-
-"How can I let go," he roared, "when I feel that you are weighing and
-judging and criticizing every word I say, every thing I do?"
-
-And she was silent for a long time. It was a new and dreadful idea,
-that she was hemming him in by making him feel that she was judging
-him. It was so far from her intention that she protested:--
-
-"I am not judging you. I accept you just as you are."
-
-"Accept!" he grumbled. "Accept! When you keep me at arm's-length!"
-
-"I go as far as we can, then it breaks down."
-
-"What breaks down?"
-
-"I don't know what to call it. Sympathy, if you like."
-
-"Oh! then if it breaks down it isn't any good, and we may as well give
-it up for ever. I will learn to shuffle along without you."
-
-"I won't shuffle. I refuse to hear of your shuffling."
-
-"Then you want to know what to do?"
-
-"What?"
-
-"Take your place by my side, walk along with me like a sober, decent
-woman."
-
-"But I want to fly with you, hand in hand."
-
-She was elated, exalted. Her eyes shone and she glowed with excitement
-and hope. Surely he would understand now! Surely she had found words
-for it at last!
-
-"That's rubbish," he said. "Men aren't birds, and they are not angels.
-If you want to fly, go up in an airyoplane. That's another machine
-like the cinema. It relieves human beings of another mania."
-
-She turned away to hide the tears that had gushed to her eyes. Why did
-he waste his strength? Why did he keep his force from entering into
-his imagination?
-
-That evening was most miserable for her, and she was glad when it came
-to an end.
-
-* * * * *
-
-To add to her difficulties he was making himself ill over his work,
-which, as he said, had gone completely rotten, and he did not scruple
-to ascribe it to her. He would spend a delightful happy evening with
-her and feel that his difficulties were over, that in the morning he
-would be able to make a beginning upon all the ideas that were so
-jumbled and close-packed in his head. But in the morning he would be
-dull and nerveless, and though he might work himself up into a frenzy,
-yet he could produce nothing that was any good. His work was easier,
-and even a little better, after the evenings when they almost
-quarrelled.
-
-Again and again he told himself that he could not go on, that life was
-as thick and heavy as the air before a thunderstorm. Often he thought
-that this density, this opaqueness, with which he was surrounded,
-meant that he must quarrel and break with her once and for all. It
-would nearly kill him to do it, but if it must be done, the sooner the
-better. Perhaps it was wrong for him to have anything to do with the
-Christian world at all. No single friendship or relationship that he
-had had in it had been successful or of any profit to him. Little by
-little his peace of mind had been taken from him. Everything had been
-taken from him, even, now, his work. . . . That he would not have. He
-set his teeth and stuck to it, every day and all day, but the few
-pictures he turned out did not sell. Cluny would not have them, and
-they were rejected by the exhibitions, even by the club of which he
-was a member.
-
-Of all this he said not a word to a soul, not even to Morrison, not
-even to Golda. His money was dwindling. That put marriage out of the
-question. Fate, or the ominous pressure of life, or whatever it was,
-played into Morrison's hands.
-
-Every now and then, unable to endure this pressure, he plunged into
-excesses. There seemed to be no other way out. The Christian world
-refused him. He no longer belonged to his own people. Their poverty
-disgusted him. People had no right to be so poor as that, to have no
-relief from the joyless daily grind for bread. . . . It was the fault
-of the Christians who prayed to the Lord for their daily bread and
-stole it from each other because they had forgotten that it was not
-given them except in return for daily work.
-
-That was the one strand of sympathy he had left with his
-father--Jacob's absolute refusal to receive his daily bread from any
-other hands than his own, and his almost crazy refusal to let Issy and
-Harry go out and work for other masters. They could work for their
-father because he had authority over them, but other masters had no
-authority except what they bought or stole.
-
-But a talk with Harry decided Mendel that his people's way, the Jewish
-way, was no longer his.
-
-Harry was bored. He had bouts of boredom when he could not endure the
-workshop and refused to go near it, however great the pressure of
-business might be. Like his father, he said:--
-
-"I want nothing."
-
-"Very well then," said Mendel; "you've got nothing. What are you
-grumbling at?"
-
-"But there _is_ nothing."
-
-"Then it is easy to want nothing and you should be satisfied."
-
-"That's it. It is too easy. Work, work, work. Play, play, play. How
-disgusting it all is!"
-
-"Why didn't you stay in Paris?"
-
-"I could not bear to be away from the people."
-
-"But if they give you nothing?"
-
-"They have nothing to give. Nothing but old Jews who believe and young
-Jews who cannot believe and are nothing."
-
-"It is the same everywhere. The Christians do not believe either."
-
-"But they are fools and can make themselves happy with their cinemas
-and their newspapers and their forward women."
-
-"I thought you liked women, Harry."
-
-"I don't like women who like me. . . . I don't want to marry, I don't
-want anything. I shall see the old people into their graves, and then
-I don't know what I shall do. You are the only one I know who has
-anything to live for or any life in him."
-
-"I have little enough."
-
-"Oh God! don't you start talking like me, or we shall all go to the
-cemetery at once."
-
-"All right, Harry. I'll keep you going. I'll keep you astonished."
-
-His brother's despondency helped Mendel on a little, but what a mean
-incentive to work, to astonish his poor ignorant family!
-
-Very soon there came a terrible day when he had to tell them that he
-had not a penny in the world and that he was a failure. It would have
-gone hardly with him but for Harry, who espoused his cause, saying
-dramatically that he believed in his young brother as he believed in
-God, and that Mendel should not be stopped for want of money. And he
-went upstairs and came down with his savings, nearly thirty pounds.
-
-"Don't be a fool!" said Jacob. "He will only spend it on drink and
-women."
-
-"He is a genius," said Harry simply, and Issy, fired by his brother's
-example, said he had saved ten pounds and he would add that. Together
-they shouted Jacob down when he tried to raise his voice, until at
-last he produced his cash-box and gave Mendel a ten-pound note,
-saying:--
-
-"If the Christians are liars when they say they believe in you, we are
-not. You must learn that the Christians are all liars and you must
-show them that you are the greatest artist in the world."
-
-"I'll show them," mumbled Mendel. "Yes, I'll show them."
-
-* * * * *
-
-He returned to his work with a better determination to succeed, but he
-felt more barren than ever, and had nothing to work with but his will.
-Into that he gathered all his force and determined to go back and pick
-up the thread of his work at the point where Logan had broken into the
-weaving of it. He would paint yet another portrait of his mother, and
-then he would choose a subject from among the life of the Jews. He
-would start again. The Jews believed in him; he would glorify them,
-although he no longer believed in but only admired them. When he came
-to look at them clearly, they were squat and stunted, because he could
-only look at them from a superior height. . . . He turned over his
-early work, and studied it carefully, but he could not recover his
-childish acceptance of that existence.
-
-For some weeks he did not go near Morrison and frequented the Paris
-Café, where he felt hopelessly out of it. No one spoke to him. Hardly
-a soul nodded to him. Night after night he sat there despondently,
-conjuring up the exciting evenings he had spent there. They were like
-ashes in his mouth.
-
-* * * * *
-
-One night, to his amazement and almost fear, someone slipped into the
-seat at his side. It was Oliver. She laid her hand on his knee and
-said:--
-
-"You look pretty bad, Kühler. Anything wrong?"
-
-"Much as usual. How are you? What'll you drink?"
-
-"Kümmel's mine," she said.
-
-He ordered two Kümmels.
-
-"I'm all right. How are you?"
-
-"I've told you how I am," he said testily.
-
-"All right, all right!" she said, "I haven't been here for a long
-time. I wish you'd come and see me, Kühler. We never did get on, but
-I'd like to have a talk about old times."
-
-"Old times!" he said. "It seems only yesterday."
-
-"It's nearly a year since I saw you. Logan came back, you know. Mr.
-Tysoe was so good. He kept on the house for me. Wasn't it good of
-him?"
-
-The waiter brought the Kümmel. She drank hers off at a gulp, and
-said:--
-
-"It is like old times to see you, Kühler. I _am_ glad."
-
-"Go on about Logan."
-
-"He went back to that Camden Town place, you know, and we didn't see
-each other for nearly two months. It was awful. I couldn't sleep at
-nights, and I knew he wouldn't be able to sleep. He never slept, you
-know, when we had had one of our hells and I wouldn't speak to him.
-He! he!" she gasped and giggled nervously at the memory.
-
-"Go on," said Mendel. He was icy cold. All the strange oppression that
-was brooding in his life seemed to gather into a thick snowy cloud
-about his head and to fit it like a cap of ice. "Go on."
-
-"Mr. Tysoe gave me money. Wasn't it good of him? He used to see Logan.
-Not very often--just occasionally. Logan was painting a wonderful
-portrait of me, in my green dress and the corals he gave me. . . .
-See: I always wear them, even now."
-
-She thrust her hand into her bosom and produced the string of corals.
-
-"I lived all alone and refused to see anyone. I got so thin, all my
-skirts had to be taken in. I knew Logan was jealous, so I didn't see
-anyone, and when I heard about the portrait I knew he would come back.
-So I used to wear the green dress every evening and wait for him till
-twelve, one, two, three in the morning, all alone, in that little
-cottage on the Heath. . . . My, I _was_ tired, I can tell you. But I
-never was one for getting up in the morning. . . . At last, one night,
-he came. He walked in quite quietly, as though nothing had happened.
-He had brought the picture with him. My word, it _is_ good. You'd love
-it. He had offers for it, but he wouldn't sell it. He said a funny
-thing about it. He said: 'It's literature. It isn't art.' So he
-wouldn't sell it. . . . We had a glorious time--a glorious time! It
-was better even than the beginning."
-
-She stopped to linger over the memory, and she drew her hand
-caressingly along her thigh.
-
-"Go on," said Mendel, to break in upon her heavy silence.
-
-"He had plenty of money. He sold everything he did. There were one or
-two society ladies, the cats! Common property, I call them."
-
-"So it broke down again," said Mendel.
-
-"Yes. He got---- You know what he could be like. Sometimes I thought
-he was going off his head, and I often wonder if he wasn't a bit
-touched. . . . I haven't seen him since. I wondered if you had seen
-him."
-
-"No. I haven't seen him. He doesn't come back to me."
-
-"Mr. Tysoe hasn't seen him. Cluny has some of his things, but won't
-say a word. I think he must have left London."
-
-"I should think so," said Mendel wearily, suddenly losing all
-interest. "I should think so."
-
-"I've left Hampstead. I'm living over the Pot-au-Feu, I'm working as a
-model. Don't forget me, and if you hear of Logan, do let me know, and
-come and have a talk over old times."
-
-She had caught sight of an acquaintance smiling at her and went over
-to him, for all the world, as Mendel thought, like a fly-by-night.
-
-He half ran, half staggered out of the place, saying to himself:--
-
-"I must see Morrison. I must see her at once."
-
-* * * * *
-
-He tried to see her next day, but Clowes told him she had gone to the
-country.
-
-"I insisted on her going, she was looking so pale. You know when she
-feels lonely she won't eat. When she is miserable she gets so shy that
-she can't even go into a shop. . . . I have taken a cottage in the
-country, just outside London. Two rooms, two shillings a week. Isn't
-it cheap? So I packed her off there two days ago."
-
-"When will she be back?"
-
-"I don't know. When she is tired of being alone. She said she wanted
-to be alone."
-
-"I want to see her. It is a very important for me to see her."
-
-"I won't have you making her ill," said Clowes.
-
-"I must see her. Will you give me her address, so that I can write to
-her?"
-
-Clowes gave him the address, and he wrote saying that life was
-intolerable without her.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Morrison did not need his letter, and, indeed, it only reached the
-cottage after she had left. She knew he needed her. Never for an
-instant was his image absent from her mind, and at night, when she lay
-awake, she could have sworn she heard a moaning cry from him. No wind
-ever made a sound like that.
-
-There was a pouring rain and a howling wind, but she walked the four
-miles to the station and sent him a wire telling him to meet her at
-the station in London. He received it just in time and was on the
-platform.
-
-He took her in his arms and kissed her.
-
-"What is the matter?"
-
-"Did you get my letter?"
-
-"No. But I knew. What is it?"
-
-"I don't know. My work, I think. I met Oliver last night. It upset me.
-But I wanted you for my work. It is like a knife stuck through my
-brain. I wanted to be with you, just to see you and to hear your
-voice. Nothing else. That part of me feels dead. . . . Oliver is
-living over the Pot-au-Feu, where Hetty Finch used to be. I wonder
-what's become of her. I expect she has found a millionaire by now.
-. . . We'll have the evening together. We'll dine at the Pot-au-Feu.
-We might meet Oliver, but I can't think of any other place."
-
-"We'll dine with Clowes, if you like."
-
-"No; I want to go to the Pot-au-Feu."
-
-"Very well. Are you very tired? Your voice sounds tired."
-
-"I'll be all right now I am with you. Mr. Sivwright asked me to go to
-the Merlin's Cave to-night. He has to shut it up. I thought I wouldn't
-go, but I want to go, if you will come with me."
-
-"It might cheer us up, and you love dancing."
-
-They both thought of the night when he had danced with Jessie Petrie.
-
-"I'm painting a picture of a Jewish market. I want you to see it."
-
-"I'm glad you've gone back. I'm sure it is right."
-
-"What are you doing?"
-
-It was the first time he had asked after her work and a glow of
-happiness overcame her.
-
-"Oh! I . . . I'm doing a landscape--just a road running up a hill with
-some houses on top."
-
-"Like Rousseau. He was good at roads."
-
-"Mine's just painting. It isn't abstract."
-
-"You can't paint without being abstract," he said irritably. "Even
-Academicians can't really imitate, but they abstract without using
-their brains. You can't really copy nature, so what's the good of
-trying?"
-
-"You can suggest."
-
-"Then it's a sketch and not a picture."
-
-"Perhaps mine is only a sketch," she said rather forlornly, because
-she had been rather hopeful of her work.
-
-They went back to his studio, where he showed her his studies and
-drawings for the new picture. She saw that he was working again with
-his old love of his craft.
-
-They dined at the Pot-au-Feu, and had it all to themselves because the
-weather was so bad. There were only the goggle-eyed man in the corner
-with his green evening paper and Madame Feydeau and Gustave, the
-waiter.
-
-Over the dinner Mendel waxed very gay and gave her a very comic
-description of the scene when he had gone to his family to confess his
-failure. He had a wonderful power of making them comic without
-laughing at them.
-
-"They are wonderful people," he said. "They know what is sense and
-what is nonsense. If you gave them the biggest problem in the world
-they would know what was true in it and what was false. They are
-always right about politics and public men. But when it comes to art,
-they are hopeless."
-
-"But they believe in you."
-
-"Because I belong to them. They believe in themselves. . . . My mother
-was quite sound about Logan. She said it could not go on. I thought it
-was for ever. I've been thinking about Logan. He could never be
-himself. He was always wanting to be something--something big. I
-thought he was big for a long time. But he's just a man. I don't think
-Cézanne was ever anything but just a man. It makes one think, doesn't
-it? All these people who are written about as though they were
-something terrific, all trying to be something more than they
-are--just men. And then a quiet little man comes along and he is
-bigger than the lot of them, because he has never tried to blow
-himself out, but has given himself room to grow."
-
-She had never known him so gentle and tender and wise, and if he had
-wanted to love her she would not have denied him. She trusted him so
-completely. And he looked so ill and tired. But he only wanted to be
-with her, and to talk to her and to hear her voice.
-
-After dinner they went to a cinema to fill in time, and he shouted
-with laughter like a boy, threw himself about, and stamped his feet at
-the comic film. And she laughed too, and took his hand in hers and
-held it in her lap.
-
-"That was good!" he said. "I think I should like to be a cinema actor.
-If I get really hard up I shall try it. I might be a star, if I could
-learn to wear my clothes properly and could get my hair to lie down in
-a solid shiny block."
-
-"I'll go with you. I'm sure I could roll my eyes properly."
-
-"Come along," he said.
-
-It was still raining hard, so they took a taxi to the Merlin's Cave,
-though it was not half a mile away.
-
-Everything was the same, even to the two rich young men who entered
-just after them. They signed the book, and then, hearing the music,
-Mendel seized Morrison by the wrist and dragged her down the stairs.
-
-The place was astonishingly full. Nearly all the tables were occupied,
-and they had to take one between the orchestra and the door. Calthrop,
-Mitchell, Weldon, Jessie Petrie, everybody from the Paris Café was
-there. Oliver was sitting with Thompson and the critic. In a far
-corner Clowes was sitting with the young man from the Detmold. There
-were models, male and female, all the strange people who for one
-reason or another had lived in or on the Calthrop tradition. In the
-middle of the room were two large tables which Sivwright had packed
-with celebrities--authors, journalists, editors, actors, and
-music-hall comedians. They were being fed royally, as became lions,
-and there were champagne bottles gleaming on the tables. Tall young
-soldiers in mufti began to arrive with chorus-girls who had not
-troubled to remove their make-up.
-
-"It's a gala!" said Mendel.
-
-Oliver saw him, and beamed and raised her glass. He rose and bowed
-with mock solemnity.
-
-Dancing had not begun. Apparently the lions were to sing for their
-supper.
-
-An author read a short play, which he explained had been suppressed by
-the censor. To Mendel it sounded very mild and foolish. It was a
-tragedy, but no one was moved; the audience much preferred the
-music-hall comedian, who followed with a song about a series of
-mishaps to his trousers.
-
-The same reedy-voiced poet recited the same poem as before, and the
-same foolish girl sang the same foolish song, and it looked as though
-the programme would never end.
-
-Mendel was irritated and bored, and called for champagne.
-
-"Waiter!"
-
-But the waiter did not hear him.
-
-"You don't want any champagne," said Morrison.
-
-"Waiter!"
-
-The door by them opened and Logan slipped in. He was almost a shadow
-of his old self. The plump flesh had gone from his face, which was all
-eyes and bones. He looked famished. His eyes swept round the room,
-and, fastening on Oliver, lit up with a gleam of satisfaction. He was
-like a starving man looking at a nice pink ham in a shop window. He
-moved swiftly towards her, but stopped on seeing the men she was with
-and swerved to a table a few yards behind her. From where Mendel was
-sitting it looked as though he were peering over her shoulder, an
-evil, menacing face.
-
-Mendel shivered, and his eyes suddenly felt dry and hot, as though
-they were being pushed out of his face. His throat went dry, and when
-he tried to call the waiter he could make no sound. The waiter met his
-eyes and came.
-
-"Champagne!" said Mendel.
-
-"Very good, sir. One bottle?"
-
-"Half-a-bottle," said Morrison.
-
-"One bottle," roared Mendel.
-
-A young artist, who knew them both slightly, hearing the order, came
-and sat with them.
-
-The dancing began.
-
-"Come and dance," said Morrison.
-
-"No, I don't want to dance. That was Logan who came in. He hasn't seen
-me yet."
-
-"Which is Logan?" asked the young artist. "He's done some good things.
-Someone told me the other day he had softening of the brain."
-
-"Rubbish!" said Mendel. "They say that of every man who makes a
-success, as though it needed something strange to account for it. It's
-either softening of the brain, or consumption, or three wives, or he
-is killing himself with drink. They talk as though art itself were
-some kind of disease."
-
-Logan had seen Mendel, and their eyes met. Mendel felt that Logan was
-looking clean through him, looking at him as a ghost might look at a
-man whom he had known in life, fondly, tenderly, icily through him,
-without expecting him to be aware of the terrible scrutiny. But Mendel
-was aware of it, and it chilled him to the marrow. Logan gave no sign,
-but stared and stared, and presently turned his eyes away without a
-sign, without a tremor. It was like turning away the light of a
-lantern. He turned his eyes from Mendel to Oliver in one sweep. No one
-else but those two seemed to exist for him, and Mendel felt that he no
-longer existed. And more than ever Logan looked as if he were peering
-over Oliver's shoulder with those staring, piercing eyes of his from
-which the soul had gone out. Only the glowing spark of a fixed will
-was left in them to keep them sane and human.
-
-Mendel began to drink. The orchestra behind him sent the rhythm of a
-waltz thumping through him. But it went heavily, without music or
-tune. One--two--three. It was like having molten lead poured on the
-nape of his neck, threatening to jerk his head off his spine. From
-where he sat he could not see the dancing-floor, except reflected in a
-mirror opposite him. . . . Oh! it was a gay sight and a silly It had
-nothing to do with him. He could see nothing but Oliver with the grim,
-haggard face looking over her shoulder. He gulped down a glass of
-wine. That was better. It made things bearable. He poured out another
-glass of wine.
-
-"I think there is more in the Futurists than the Cubists," said the
-young artist.
-
-"In art," said Mendel, turning on him savagely, "there is neither past
-nor present nor future; there is only eternity. You try to make a
-group out of that, and see how you will get on. You can put that at
-the head of your manifesto and your group would melt away under it
-like the fat on a basted pigeon."
-
-He put out his hand for his glass, but Morrison had taken it and was
-drinking.
-
-"You'll make yourself drunk," he said, taking it from her gently.
-
-"I finished it all," she said, with an unhappy smile. "I didn't want
-you to drink it, and you looked so tragic I knew it would be bad for
-you."
-
-The young artist crept away. Mendel took Morrison's hand and gripped
-it.
-
-"I'm glad you are with me," he said. "Look at Logan!"
-
-Never taking his eyes off Oliver, Logan had begun to move towards her
-with his hand in his breast pocket. He had nearly reached her, with
-his eyes glowing almost yellow under the electric light, when he
-changed his mind, swung round, and went to another table and sat with
-his head down, biting his nails.
-
-The dancing was fast and furious, and this time it was the flute which
-played an obbligato, thin, fantastic, and comic, real silvery fun,
-like a trickle of water down a crag into a pool in sunshine.
-
-Thompson went to the dancing-floor with a girl in fancy dress--a
-columbine's costume. That seemed to relieve Logan, who jumped to his
-feet, walked quickly round to Oliver, bent over her, and spoke to her.
-Her face wore an expression of amazed delight. Her eyes were drawn to
-his, and though she shrank under them, she seemed to go soft and
-flabby: she could not resist them. There was no menace in Logan now,
-only an attitude of fixed mastery, an air of taking possession of her
-once and for all, of knowing that at last he would get the longed-for
-satisfaction.
-
-They spoke together for a little longer, then she rose and put her
-hand up and caressed his cheek and neck as though it hurt her to see
-them so thin--as though, indeed, she refused to believe what her eyes
-told her.
-
-They walked past Mendel and Morrison without seeing them. Mendel
-gripped Morrison's hand until she felt that the blood must gush out of
-her nails. Logan opened the swing-door for Oliver, devouring her with
-his burning eyes, in which there was a desperate set purpose of which
-he seemed to be almost weary. So frail he looked, as if but a little
-more and he would loose his hold even on that to which he clung. And
-Oliver smiled at him with a malicious promise in her eyes that he
-should have his will, that his hold should be loosened and his
-weariness come to an end. Clearly she knew that he had no thought
-outside herself.
-
-And outside the two of them Mendel had no thought. His mind became as
-a tunnel down which they were moving, and soon they were lost to his
-sight and he was left to wait. There his thoughts stopped, while he
-waited.
-
-
-
-IX
-
-LOGAN MAKES AN END
-
-ALL night long he paced up and down his studio. His thoughts would not
-move, but went over and over the scene in the Cave, and probed vainly
-in the darkness for the next move. When he heard footsteps in the
-street he hung out of the window, making sure that it must be Logan
-come for him. But no one stopped at the door, and soon within himself
-and without was complete silence, save for his footsteps on the floor
-and the matches he struck to light cigarette after cigarette, though
-he could not keep one of them alight.
-
-His imagination rejected the facts and refused to work on them. The
-scene in the Cave had left an impression upon his retina, like that of
-the cinema--just a plain flat impression containing no material for
-his imagination. And yet he knew that he was deeply engaged in
-whatever was happening.
-
-With his chin in his hands he leaned out of his window and watched the
-dawn paint the eastern sky and the day wipe out the colours. Doors
-were opened in the street. Windows were lit with the glow of the
-fires, and the day's activity had begun, but he had no share in it,
-for he knew that this day was like no other. For him it was a day lost
-in impenetrable shadow, and he could not tell what should take him out
-of it. And still he expected Logan would come.
-
-He heard Rosa get up and go downstairs and light the fire and bawl up
-to Issy to jump out of his bed, filthy snoring sluggard that he was.
-He heard the voices of the children and the baby yelling. . . . How
-indecent, how abominable it was to cram so many people into one small
-house!
-
-At the usual time he went over to his mother's kitchen for breakfast,
-and gulped down his tea, but made no attempt to eat. Golda looked at
-him reproachfully, but said nothing, for she saw that he was in some
-deep trouble.
-
-After breakfast, as usual, he went for his walk down through
-Whitechapel almost as far as Bow Church and back.
-
-In his studio when he returned he found a policeman, who said:--
-
-"Mr. Mendel Kühler?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-The policeman handed him a letter from Logan who had scrawled:--
-
-"I believe in you to the end."
-
-To the end?
-
-"Is he dead?" asked Mendel.
-
-"Next door to it," said the policeman. "The woman's done in."
-
-"Where?"
-
-"At the Pot-au-Feu, Soho."
-
-"Where is he now?"
-
-"Workhouse infirmary. If you want to see him the police will raise no
-objection."
-
-"Thank you," said Mendel.
-
-He asked the direction and set out at once.
-
-The workhouse was a dull grey mass of buildings, rising out of a dull
-grey district like an inevitable creation of its dullness, and it
-seemed an inevitable contrast to the Merlin's Cave, so that it was
-right that Logan should walk out of the glitter into it. This was the
-very contrast that Mendel's imagination had been vainly seeking, and
-now, with the violence of a sudden release, his thoughts began to work
-again. . . . Oliver was dead. That was inevitable too. But why?
-
-Logan had surrendered to her. They would go home from the Merlin's
-Cave to the Pot-au-Feu, to Hetty Finch's room. He would surrender to
-her absolutely, because she had willed his destruction and could not
-see that his destruction meant her own. She wanted recognition,
-acknowledgment that her vitality was more important than anything else
-in the world, and she had brought Logan to it. There had been a cold,
-set purpose in his eyes last night--an intellectual purpose. The
-equation was worked out. She could have what she wanted, at a price.
-She could destroy the will and the desire of a man, but not his mind,
-not his spirit, which would still be obedient to a higher will, and
-that would break her as she had broken.
-
-Very bare and grim was the waiting-room in which Mendel had to bide
-until the nurse came for him. Its walls were of a faded green, dim and
-grimy, and when the door was opened as people went in or out, there
-was wafted in a smell of antiseptics. But as his thoughts gathered
-force the room seemed to be filled with a great light, which revealed
-beauty in the poor people waiting patiently to see their sick. They
-became detached and pictorial, but he could not think of them in terms
-of paint. His mind had begun to work in a new way, and he felt more
-solid, more human, more firmly planted on the ground, as though at
-last he was admitted to a place in life. It mattered to him no more
-that he was a Jew and strange and foreign to the Christian world.
-There were neither Jews nor Christians now. There were only
-people--tragic, wonderful people . . . He even forgot that he was in
-love. All his mind was concentrated upon Logan, who was now also
-tragic and wonderful, a source of tragedy and wonder, and his whole
-effort was to discover and to make plain to himself his share in the
-tragedy: not to weigh and measure and to wonder whether at one point
-or another he could have stopped it. Nothing could have stopped it.
-
-There was no room for judgment in this tragic world.
-
-A nurse came to fetch him.
-
-She said:--
-
-"He is very weak, but he will be strong enough to know you. Don't
-excite him."
-
-She led him into the bare, white ward, across which the sun threw
-great shafts of light, to Logan's bedside. At the head of the bed a
-policeman was sitting with his helmet on his knees, staring straight
-in front of him. He turned his eyes on Mendel, who thought he looked a
-very nice man, something amusingly imperturbable in this racking world
-of tragedy.
-
-He stood by the bedside and looked down at Logan, in whose face there
-was at last the noble, conquering expression at which, through all his
-foolish striving, he had always aimed. His brow was strong and
-massive, his mouth relentless as Beethoven's, his nose sharp and
-stubborn, and there was something exquisite and sensitive in the drawn
-skin about his eyes. From his white brow his shock of black hair fell
-back on the pillow.
-
-His hand was outside the grey coverlet. Mendel took it in his. Logan
-opened his eyes, and into them came an expression of almost
-incredulous surprise, of ecstatic, intolerable happiness. He had
-wakened out of his dream into his dream, to be with Mendel, to have
-gone through the very depths to be with Mendel. His hand closed tight
-on his friend's and his lids drooped over his eyes.
-
-He opened them again after a few moments and said:--
-
-"You!"
-
-The nurse placed a chair for Mendel, and he sat down and said:--
-
-"How are you feeling?"
-
-"Pretty weak. I dreamed of your coming, but I didn't really believe
-it. . . . I've done it, you know."
-
-"Yes."
-
-"What are you doing?"
-
-"I've painted another portrait of my mother. A good one, this time.
-She is sitting in a wooden chair as she always sits, with her hands
-folded on her stomach. And I am planning a picture of a Jewish market,
-something bigger than I have attempted yet."
-
-"I see. Good--good. . . . We must work together. We can do it now."
-
-"Yes," said Mendel, rather mystified. It was very strange to have
-Logan talking like that, as though he were going back to the first
-days of their friendship.
-
-"It is such peace," said Logan; and indeed he looked as if he were at
-peace, lying there so still and white, with the hard strain gone from
-his eyes, in which there was none of the old roguish twinkle, but an
-expression of pain through which there shone a penetrating and most
-tender light.
-
-"Peace," murmured Logan again. "Tell me more. There is only art."
-
-"There is nothing else," answered Mendel, carried away on the impulse
-of Logan's spirit and understanding what he meant when he said "we."
-Life, the turbulent life of every day, the life of desire, was broken
-and had fallen away from him, so that he was living without desire,
-only in his enduring will, which had lost patience with his desires
-and had destroyed them.
-
-Through Mendel trembled a new and strange elation. He recognized that
-his friendship with Logan was just beginning, and that he was absolved
-from all share in the catastrophe, if such there had been. And from
-him too the turbulent life of desire fell away, and he could be at one
-with his friend. There was no need to talk of the past--it was as
-though it had never been.
-
-He described the design he had made for his picture: two fat old women
-bargaining, and a strong man carrying a basket of fruit on his head.
-
-"A good beginning," said Logan. "I . . . I could never get going. I
-was always overseen in my work."
-
-"Overseen!" said Mendel, puzzled by the word.
-
-"Yes. I was always outside the picture, working at it. . . . Too . . .
-too much brains, too little force."
-
-"I see," said Mendel, for whom a cold finger had been put on one of
-his own outstanding offences against art. For a moment it brought him
-to an ashamed silence, but Logan's words slipped so easily into his
-understanding and took up their habitation there, that he was
-powerless to resent or to attempt to dislodge them.
-
-"Overseen," Logan repeated, with an obvious pleasure in plucking out
-the weeds from their friendship, in the fair promise of which he found
-peace and joy. "That was the trouble. It couldn't go on. . . . City
-life, I think. Too much for us. Things too much our own way. . . .
-Egoism. . . ."
-
-"I know that I am feeling my way towards something and that it is no
-good forcing it," said Mendel.
-
-An acute attack of pain seized Logan, and he closed his eyes and was
-silent for a long time, with his brows knit in a kind of impatient
-boredom at having to submit to such a thing as pain.
-
-"They've been very good to me," he said. "Given me everything as if I
-were really ill."
-
-He sank back into pain again.
-
-Mendel looked across at the policeman with a feeling of irritation
-that he should be there, a typical figure of the absurd chaotic life
-which had fallen away, a symbol of the factitious pretence of order
-which could only deceive a child.
-
-"Can't you leave me alone with him?" he whispered.
-
-The policeman shook his head.
-
-"No, sir."
-
-"You mustn't worry about outside things," said Logan, with an effort.
-"We _are_ alone. . . . Have you found a new friend?"
-
-"No."
-
-"You will. Better men than I have been. . . . Do you see that girl
-still?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"She was the strongest of us."
-
-"How?"
-
-Logan made no answer, and gave a slight shake of impatience at
-Mendel's not understanding him.
-
-"Something," he said, "that I never got anywhere near. . . . I . . . I
-was overseen in that too."
-
-The blood drummed in Mendel's temples. Logan's cold finger went
-probing into his life too, and showed him always casting his own
-shadow over his passions. In love it was the same as in art. . . . It
-was very odd that, with every nerve at stretch to understand Logan and
-how he had been brought to smash the clotted passion of his life, it
-should only be important to understand himself, and that he should be
-able to understand so coldly, so clearly, so easily.
-
-And now the presence of the policeman became a relief. It was a
-guarantee that the whole visible world would not be swept away by the
-frozen will in Logan, which was like a floe of ice bearing everything
-with it, nipping at Mendel's life, squeezing it up high and dry and
-bearing it along. He felt that if the policeman were to go away he
-would be drawn down into the doom that was upon Logan, into the valley
-of the shadow, even while the good sun came streaming in through the
-tall windows. . . . He had lost all the emotional interest which had
-kept him awake through the night. . . . It had been simple enough.
-There had been himself, Logan and Oliver, three people, living in
-London the gay, reckless life of artists in London, a city so huge
-that men and women could do in it as they pleased. Oliver and he had
-hated each other, and Logan had had to choose between them. He had
-chosen wrongly and had put an end to his misery in the only possible
-way.
-
-Mendel fought back out of the shadow--back to the policeman, and the
-sick men lying in the rows of beds, and the dead man lying in the bed
-which had just been surrounded by a screen, and the simple, wonderful
-people in the waiting-room downstairs, and the sun streaming through
-the windows, and the teeming life outside in London--wonderful,
-splendid London, the very heart of the world. . . . It was well for
-Logan to lose sight of these things. He was a dying man. But Mendel
-was alive, never more alive than now, in face of the shadow of death,
-and he would not think the thoughts of a dying man unless they could
-be shaped in the likeness of life. He gathered together all his
-forces, summoned up everything that urged him towards life and towards
-art, and of his own strong living will plunged after Logan, no longer
-in obedience to Logan's frozen purpose, but as a friend giving to his
-friend the meed that was due to him.
-
-He took Logan's hand and pressed it, and chafed it gently to make it
-warm, and Logan smiled at him, and an expression of anguish came into
-his face as the warmth of his friend wrapped him round, penetrated
-him, thawed and melted his purpose, with which he had lived for so
-many empty, solitary days until it had driven him to make an end. The
-coldness in his friend touched Mendel's heart and was like a stab
-through it, and he felt soon a marvellous release, as if his blood
-were flowing again, and it seemed that the weaknesses on which Logan
-had laid his finger were borne down with him into the shadow.
-
-Mendel remembered Cézanne's portrait of his wife, and how he had
-intended to tell Logan that it had made him feel like a tree with the
-sap running through it to the budding leaves in spring.
-
-He told him now, and added:--
-
-"It doesn't matter that I did not understand you in life."
-
-"No," said Logan. "Don't go away!"
-
-"I'll stay," replied Mendel; "I'll stay."
-
-Then he was in a horrible agony again, as the marvellous clarity he
-had just won disappeared. Logan knew what he was doing, that he was
-taking with him all the weaknesses and vain follies which had so
-nearly brought them both to baseness, and Mendel knew that Logan must
-continue as a powerful force in his work; but he crushed the rising
-revolt in himself, the last despairing effort of his weakness, and
-gave himself up to feeding the extraordinary delight it was to the
-poor wretch, lying there with his force ebbing away, to give himself
-up to a pure artistic purpose such as had been denied him in his
-tangled life. Through this artistic purpose Logan could rise above the
-natural ebbing process of his vitality, which sucked away with it the
-baseness and the folly he had brought into his friend's life. He could
-rejoice in the contact of their minds, the mingling of their souls,
-the proud salute of this meeting and farewell. It was nothing to him
-that he was dying, little enough that he had lived, for he knew that
-he had never lived until now.
-
-The nurse came and said the patient must rest.
-
-"Don't go away!" pleaded Logan.
-
-"I'll wait," said Mendel, patting his hand to reassure him.
-
-"Half-past two," said the nurse as she followed Mendel out. "What a
-remarkable man!" she added. "What a tragedy! I suppose the girl was to
-blame too."
-
-"Blame?" said Mendel, rather dazed at being brought back to customary
-values. "Blame?"
-
-* * * * *
-
-He went down to the dingy waiting-room and sat there subdued,
-cowering, exhausted. He felt very cold and miserable. It was so
-terrible waiting for a thing that had happened. The physical fact
-could make no difference. . . . Logan had made an end, a very complete
-and thorough end. . . . Oh! the relief of it, the relief of having
-Logan for his friend at last, of having seen him freely and fully
-tasting at last his heart's desire, of being himself brought up to
-that level, that pure contact with another human being, for which he
-had always longed. . . . That desire in both of them had been violated
-and despoiled, God knows how. Lies? Lust? Profanation of the holy
-spirit of art? . . . What words could describe the evil that
-everywhere in life lay in wait for the adventurous, letting the
-foolish and the timid, the faint of heart and the blind of soul, go
-by, and waiting for strong men who walked with purpose and a single
-mind?
-
-* * * * *
-
-At half-past two the nurse came to fetch him.
-
-"He is very weak now," she said.
-
-Logan's face wore a noble gathering serenity. He was too weak to talk
-much, and only wanted Mendel to hold his hand and to talk to him about
-art, about pictures "they" were going to paint, and about pictures
-they had both loved: Cranach, Dürer, Uccello, Giotto, Blake, Cézanne.
-
-"Good men, those," said Logan. "Good company."
-
-"Good, decent, quiet little men."
-
-"We shall do good things."
-
-His hand closed more tightly on Mendel's, who surrendered himself to
-the force of the ebb in his friend, felt the cold, salt waves of death
-close about him and drag him out, out until Logan was lost, and with a
-frightful wrench all that was dead in himself was torn away, and he
-was left prostrate upon the fringes of his life. . . . He became
-conscious to find himself leaning over Logan, gazing at his lips, with
-his own lips near them, waiting for the breath that would come no
-more.
-
-It was finished. Logan had made an end.
-
-Turning away, Mendel saw through the window the lovely grey-blue sky,
-fleecy with mauve-grey clouds heaped up by the driving
-wind--beautiful, beautiful. . . .
-
-
-
-X
-
-PASSOVER
-
-IT was many days before Mendel could take up his work again. His mind
-simply could not express itself in paint.
-
-His first clear thought as he emerged from the numbness of the crisis
-was for Morrison, and to her he wrote, telling her what had happened,
-describing in minute detail his experience in the hospital, and adding
-that he was without the least wish to see her, and would write to her
-if his life ever became again what it had been before Logan's violent
-end.
-
-It seemed to him that Logan had claimed him, that he was destined to
-go through life with Logan, a dead man, for sole companion, and always
-behind Logan was the ominous and dreadful shadow of Oliver, from whom
-he had thought to escape those many months ago.
-
-His isolation was complete. It seemed that he had not a friend in the
-world, and there was not a soul towards whom he could move or wished
-to move. He could only rake over the ashes of the dead past and marvel
-that there had ever been a flame stirring in them. And as he raked
-them, he thrust into them much that only a short while ago had been
-living and delightful.
-
-What had happened? Youth could not be gone while he was yet so young,
-but he felt immeasurably old, and, in his worst condition, outside
-Time, which took shape as a stream flowing past him, bearing with it
-all his dreams, loves, aspirations, hopes, thoughts. When he tried to
-cast himself into it, to rescue these treasured possessions, he was
-clutched back, thrown down, and left prostrate with his eyes darkened
-and the smell of death in his nostrils.
-
-Sometimes he thought with terror that he had plunged too far, had
-given too much to Logan, had committed some obscure blasphemy, had
-been perhaps "overseen" even in that moment when the weakness and all
-that was dead in him had been wrenched away. And he said to himself:--
-
-"No. This is much worse than death. It is foolish to seek any meaning
-in death, for death is not the worst."
-
-It was no good turning to his people, for he knew that he was cut off
-from them. They were confined in their Judaism, from which he had
-broken free. That was one of the dead things which had been taken from
-him.
-
-His mother could not help him, because she could not endure his
-unhappiness. The pain of it was too great for her, and he had to
-invent a spurious happiness, to pretend that he was working as usual,
-though with great difficulty, and that, as usual, he was out and
-about, seeing his friends. And in a way this pretence gave him relief,
-though he suffered for it afterwards. He suffered so cruelly that he
-was forced by it into making an effort to grope back into life.
-
-He was able to take up his work again, and the exercise of his craft
-soothed him, though it gave him no escape. The conception of his
-market picture was dead. It was enclosed in Judaism, from which he was
-free. Yet he had no other conception in his mind, and he knew that any
-picture he might paint must spring from it. So he clung to the dead
-conception and made studies and drawings for its execution.
-
-Some of these drawings he was able to sell to Tysoe, who worried him
-by coming to talk about Logan and was nearly always ashamed to leave
-the studio without buying. Mendel was saved from borrowing of his
-people, which had become repugnant to him now that he no longer
-belonged to them.
-
-It was through Tysoe's talk that he was able to push his way through
-the tragedy of Logan and Oliver back to life. Tysoe insisted that the
-cause of it was jealousy, but Mendel knew that Logan was beyond
-jealousy, and, piecing the story together, he saw how Oliver had set
-herself to smash their friendship because it fortified in her lover
-what she detested, his intellect, which, because she could not satisfy
-it, stood between him and his passion for her. If anyone was
-responsible it was she, for she had tried to smash a spiritual thing
-and had herself been smashed. . . . And Mendel saw that had he tried
-to smash the relationship between Logan and Oliver he too would have
-been broken, for that also was a spiritual thing, though an evil. And
-he saw that, but for Morrison, he must have tried to smash it. His
-obligation to her had given him the strength to resist, to make his
-escape. Oliver had triumphed, evil had triumphed, and she and Logan
-were dead and he had to grope his way back to life, and if he could
-not succeed in doing that, then she and evil would have triumphed
-indeed, and what was left of him would have to follow the dead that
-had gone with Logan.
-
-He sought the society of his father and of the old Jews, the friends
-of the family, and was left marvelling at their indifference to good
-and evil. They knew neither joy nor despair. They had yielded up their
-will to God, upon Whom, through fair weather and foul, their thoughts
-were centred. They lived in a complete stagnation which made him
-shudder. Their lives were like stale water, like unmoved puddles, from
-which every now and then their passions broke in bubbles, broke
-vainly, in bubbles. Nothing brought them any nearer to the God upon
-Whom their thoughts were centred, and only Time brought them any
-nearer to the earth.
-
-And yet Mendel loved them in their simple dignity. They had a quality
-which he had found nowhere in the Christian world, where men and women
-had their thoughts centred on the good, leaving evil to triumph as it
-had triumphed in Oliver. . . . She had wanted good. With all the power
-of her insensate passion, her blind sensuality, she had wanted love,
-the highest good she could conceive. . . . But these old Jews were
-wiser: they wanted God, Whom they knew not how to attain. Yet God was
-ever present to them.
-
-In Mendel, too, this desire for God became active and kindled his
-creative will. He plunged into his work with a frenzy, but soon
-recognized that he was committing the old offence and was "overseen."
-. . . Yet how shall a man approach his God if not through art?
-
-"Something is lacking!" cried Mendel desperately. "Something is
-lacking!"
-
-His imagination flew back to that last sublime moment of friendship
-with Logan, but it lacked warmth. It seemed that he could not take it
-back into life with him, or that until he had established contact with
-life its force could not be kindled. . . . Oh! for sweet, comfortable
-things--flowers, and rare music, a white, gleaming tablecloth, and
-good meats!
-
-He thought, with envy, of Edward Tufnell and his wife going along the
-road on either side smiling at each other, so happily smiling. And
-then he thought with more satisfaction of the old Jews. They were the
-wiser and the more solid. They walked in the middle of the way, and
-good and evil went on either side and neither could attain them. . . .
-His thoughts swung between those two extremes like a pendulum, and out
-of the momentum thus created grew a force in his mind which began to
-find its way towards the God he was seeking. But it was only in his
-mind. His force, his passion, were left slumbering in the hypnotic
-sleep imposed on them by the tragedy.
-
-Yet the mental impulse kept him working in a serene ecstasy. He could
-make the design for his picture, and simplify his figures into a form
-in which he knew there was some beauty, or at least that it could hold
-beauty and let no drop of it escape.
-
-He could return then to his normal life, and made Golda very happy by
-joking with her and spending many evenings in her kitchen.
-
-"You should take a holiday," she said. "You look tired out."
-
-"I will," he said, "when the spring comes. I am going to be an artist,
-but I am afraid it will not mean carriages and horses and the King
-commanding his portrait to be painted."
-
-* * * * *
-
-He had the very great joy of beginning to understand Cézanne's delight
-in the intellectual craft of painting and to see why he had neglected
-the easier delights of handicraft and the mere pleasure of the eye.
-But the more he understood, the harder it became to finish his
-picture. He slaved at it, but there was still no beauty in it.
-
-He would not surrender. It would have been so easy to slip back to
-fake a pictorial quality. He had only to go to the National Gallery to
-come out with his head buzzing with ideas and impressions. He had only
-to go into the street to have a thousand mental notes from which to
-give his work a human and dramatic quality.
-
-He stuck to it and slaved away until he was forced to give in.
-
-"You devil!" he said, as he shook his fist at the picture. "You empty
-jug!"
-
-But there was some satisfaction in it, unfinished failure as it was,
-and he wanted Morrison to see it.
-
-He wrote and asked her to come.
-
-* * * * *
-
-She and Clowes were in the country, painting, and they wired to him to
-come and stay with them for a week. Clowes wrote to tell him that she
-could put him up in the farm of which her cottage was a part.
-
-With her letter he went racing over to see his mother.
-
-"I'm going away," he said, "I'm going away to the country. The
-Christian girl has a house in the country and I am going to stay in
-it."
-
-"You will have fresh air and new milk to make you well again," cried
-Golda, scarcely able to contain her joy at seeing him once more his
-happy, elated, robustious self. "You will be well again, but you
-should have done with that nonsense about the Christian girl. A
-sparrow does not mate with a robin, and a cock robin is what you are."
-
-"Yes. I'm a robin," said Mendel, and he whistled blithely,
-"Tit-a-weet! tit-a-weet! tit-a-weet! I shall go on the halls as a
-whistler. Tit-a-weet! and I shall make three hundred pounds a week.
-Tit-a-weet! tit-a-weet!"
-
-Golda laughed at him till the tears ran, so happy was she to have him
-come back to her.
-
-"It is not nonsense about the Christian girl," he said. "She is going
-to turn me into a Public School gentleman, and I shall bring her to
-see you, so that you can know for yourself that it is not nonsense."
-
-"It is not the girl who is nonsensical, but you."
-
-"Tit-a-weet!"
-
-"I will bake her a Jewish bread and you shall take it to her. Yes.
-Bring her to me and I will thank her for bearing with you."
-
-"Tit-a-weet! Tit-a-weet!"
-
-"Cock robin!"
-
-* * * * *
-
-His luggage consisted of a brown-paper parcel, a paint-box and two
-canvases.
-
-Morrison met him at the station. She was glowing with health and good
-spirits and began to tease him at once about his luggage, of which she
-insisted on taking charge.
-
-"It's the loveliest little cottage!" she said; "only two rooms. . . .
-I hope you don't mind walking along the road. There is another way
-through the fields, but I daren't try to find it; besides, it goes
-through the woods, and I don't want you to see any woods before you
-have been to mine. I don't believe there'll be room for you in the
-cottage. You'll have to sit in the garden and have your meals handed
-out to you, among the chickens and the pigs."
-
-"Pigs?" said Mendel, "I want to draw pigs. Marvellous animals!"
-
-"These are the most marvellous pigs that ever were."
-
-So they chattered in a growing glee as they walked along the winding
-road up into the hills. They were unwilling to let their deep thoughts
-emerge until they had been caught up in the beauty of the place, the
-serene lines of the comfortable folding hills, the farmsteads tucked
-in the hollows, the rich velvet plough-lands, the blue masses of
-woods, the gorse-grown common, and the single sentinels the trees, and
-the hedges where the birds sang and twittered, Tit-a-weet! tit-a-weet!
-. . . And over the hills hung the wide sky, vast and open, with great
-clouds that seemed to be drawn from the edge of the earth and sent
-floating up and up to show how limitless was the space above the
-earth.
-
-For the first time Mendel had no sting of anger at the exhilaration in
-the English girl, no desire to pluck her out from the surroundings of
-the lovely English country in which it seemed to be her desire to lose
-herself. She was one with the rich fields and the mighty trees and the
-singing birds in the hedges, and when his heart sang Tit-a-weet, he
-knew it for a comic Cockney note. It was he who was at fault, not she,
-and she was the very comfort he had come to seek.
-
-The farmer's wife received him with a kindly pity--the poor, pale
-London foreigner--and told him he must have plenty of good plain
-country food, plenty of milk, plenty of fresh air.
-
-"I do the cooking for Miss Clowes," she said, "and if you'll excuse my
-saying so, the young ladies take a deal of tempting."
-
-Mendel thought her a wonderful woman, his room a wonderful room, the
-cottage a wonderful cottage, and the place the finest in the world.
-The air was rare and buoyant and he had never felt so free and so
-strong. His life in London looked to him like a bubble which he could
-break with a touch or with a puff of his breath. But he was reluctant
-to break it yet, for the time had not come.
-
-The girls showed him their work and he praised it, and began to talk
-of his own picture. Clowes led him on to explain what she called the
-modern movement, which she could not pretend to understand.
-
-Conversation that first evening was all between Clowes and Mendel,
-while Morrison sat silent, curled up on the floor by the fire, gazing
-into it, sometimes listening, sometimes dreaming, sometimes shaking
-with a happy dread as she thought how near she was to her heart's
-desire. It had been for so long her central thought that she would
-take him down to the country and get him away from the terrible
-pressure of London upon his spirit, so that she could see released in
-him, perhaps slowly, perhaps painfully, what she loved--the vivid,
-clear vitality. And now she had won. She had him sitting there within
-reach, with good, faithful Clowes, and already she could feel the new
-glow of health in him. Almost she could detect a new tone in his
-lovely rich voice. . . . Sometimes, as she gazed into the fire, her
-eyes were clouded with tears. It seemed so incredible that she could
-have won against the innumerable enemies, invisible and intangible,
-against whom action had been impossible, even if she had known what to
-do.
-
-She had been happy enough with Clowes in this place, but now she could
-not help a wickedly ungrateful desire that Clowes should be spirited
-away.
-
-* * * * *
-
-Clowes absented herself in the day-time, but Mendel had very little
-energy, and for the most part of the day sat by the fire brooding over
-the bubble of his London life, which he knew he must break with a
-touch. Often Morrison sat with him, and neither spoke a word for hours
-together.
-
-On the fifth day, when the sun shone so that it was wicked to be
-indoors, Morrison suggested lunch in the woods. Clowes excused
-herself, but Mendel agreed to go with her, and the farmer's wife
-packed them a basket of food. They set out gaily, over the common, up
-the rolling field green with winter corn, down through the jolly
-farm-yard full of gobbling turkeys and strutting guinea-fowl, under
-the wild cherry-trees to the woods, where in a clearing they made a
-fire, and Morrison, declaring that she was a gipsy, sang the only song
-she could remember, "God Save the King," and told his fortune by his
-hand. He was to meet a dark woman who would make a great change in his
-life, and money would come his way, but he must beware of the Knave of
-Clubs.
-
-Entering into her mood, he insisted that they must act a Wild West
-cinema drama, and he rescued her from Indians and a Dago ravisher, and
-in the end claimed her hand from a grateful father; and so hilarious
-did they become that the cinema drama turned into an opera, and he was
-Caruso to her Melba. In the end they laughed until they were
-exhausted, and decided that it was time for lunch.
-
-* * * * *
-
-After they had eaten they were silent for a long time, and at last,
-rather to her surprise, she found herself beginning to explain to him
-that this was love, this the heaven at which she had been aiming, the
-full song whereof they had played the first few notes as boy and girl
-at the picnic and again in the dewy grass on the Heath. And she told
-him quite simply that she had loved him always, from the time when
-they had met on the stairs at the Detmold, and even before that,
-though she could not remember clearly. And she told him that love
-dwelt in the woods and the hedgerows, in the sweet air and the song of
-the birds, not only in the springtime but in the harsh winter weather
-and in the summer heat of the sun. . . .
-
-"Oh, Mendel," she said, "I have been wanting you to know, but it
-seemed that you would never know while you looked for love in the heat
-and the dust of London."
-
-And he as simply believed her. It was lovely there in the woods, among
-the tall grey-green pillars of the trees, with the pale yellow
-sunlight falling on the emerald of the moss and the russet of the dead
-bracken, and the brilliant enamel of the blackberry leaves. He was
-overcome with his exquisite delight, and she, to comfort him, held him
-in her arms, her weary shaggy faun, so bitterly conscious of his own
-ugliness. She soothed him and caressed him, and won him over to her
-own serene joy, which passed from her to him in wave upon wave of
-flooding warmth, melting the last coldness in his soul, healing the
-last wounds upon his spirit.
-
-He roused himself, flung up his head, and began to whistle:--
-
-"Tit-a-weet!"
-
-And he looked so comical that she laughed.
-
-"That isn't anything like a bird," she said.
-
-"It is. It is very like cock robin."
-
-To their mutual amazement it seemed entirely unnecessary to discuss
-the future or the past, and the present demanded only happy silence.
-Here in the enchantment of the woods was love, and it was enough.
-
-While they stayed in the woods they hardly talked at all, but as they
-walked home he became solemn and said, as though it pained and puzzled
-him:--
-
-"We are no longer young."
-
-"We shall never be anything else," she protested, for she was pained
-by the change in his mood.
-
-"Youth passes," he said.
-
-And her exhilaration died in her, for she knew she had touched his
-obstinacy. He saw her droop and was sorry, and began to whistle and to
-laugh, but she could not be revived. She had thought to have secured
-him, to have made him safe with the charm of love for ever, but she
-was sure now that the hardest of all was yet to come.
-
-In the evening, as they sat by the fire in the little white room,
-Mendel and Clowes talking and Morrison curled up on the floor gazing
-into the coals, he suddenly ceased to hear Clowes' voice, and saw very
-clearly the bubble of his life in London before him--Mr. Kuit, Issy,
-Hetty Finch, Mitchell, Logan and Oliver--Logan and Oliver leaving the
-Merlin's Cave and going out into the street and walking home to the
-Pot-au-Feu, up the narrow, dark stairs to Hetty Finch's room. . . . He
-put out his hand to touch the bubble and it broke, and with a
-shuddering, gasping cry he heard Clowes saying:--
-
-"On the whole I don't think all this modern stuff can be good for
-anything but decoration."
-
-And he began to think of his own picture, which was full of life.
-Wherever he picked up the design he could follow it all round the
-picture, and through and through it, beyond it into the mystery of
-art, and out of it back into life. It was poised, a wonderful, lovely
-created thing, with a complete, unaccountable, serene life of its own.
-The harsh, gloomy background of London fell away, and in its place
-shone green hills and a clear blue sky, fleecy with mauve-grey clouds.
-. . .
-
-Following the clouds, he came easily back to life again, to the two
-girls sitting in this wonderful snug cottage, and he was overwhelmed
-by a feeling that he was sharing their comfortable happiness on false
-pretences. It was not to him the perfectly satisfying wonder they so
-obviously wished it to be for him, and at last he could not contain
-himself, and burst out:--
-
-"You must not expect me to be happy. I cannot be happy. I will swing
-up to it as high as ever you like, but I must swing back again.
-Happiness is not life, love is not life, any more than misery is life.
-If I stay in happiness I die as surely as if I stay in misery. I must
-be like a pendulum. I must swing to and fro or the clock will stop.
-. . . I can't make it clear to you, but it is so. What matters is that
-the clock should go. Jews understand, but they forget that they are
-the pendulum and they do not live at all. Jews are wonderful people.
-They know that what matters is the impulse of the soul. It matters so
-much to them that they have forgotten everything else. And those who
-are not Jews think of everything else and forget the impulse of the
-soul. But I know that when I swing from happiness to unhappiness, from
-good to bad, from light to dark, then a force comes into my soul and
-it can move up to art, and beyond art, into that place where it can be
-free. . . . Don't, please, misunderstand me." He addressed himself
-frankly to Morrison, who dropped her head a little lower. "In love I
-can no more be free than I can in misery. I will swing as high on one
-side as I will on the other, and then I can be free."
-
-Morrison folded her hands in her lap and her hair fell over her face.
-Mendel got up, said good-night, and went over to the farm.
-
-"Well," said Clowes uneasily, "I really think he must be a genius."
-
-Morrison made no reply, and presently Clowes went upstairs to bed,
-leaving her with her hair drooping over her face, staring into the
-glowing fire.
-
-"I must learn my lesson," said Morrison to herself. "I must learn my
-lesson."
-
-She was so little trained for misery, but this was misery enough. But
-she sat and brooded over it, and summoned up all her strength for the
-supreme effort of her will, not to be broken and cast down in the
-swing back from love. She had taught him to surrender himself to love;
-she must learn to surrender herself to misery, to swing as high on one
-side as on the other.
-
-For many, many hours she wrestled with herself and broke down fear
-after fear, weakness after weakness, until she was utterly exposed to
-the enemies of love and knew that she could be with Mendel through
-everything. She took out from her paint-box his letter describing the
-scene in the hospital, which had shocked and horrified her before, and
-now read and re-read it until she had lived through all the story and
-could understand both Logan and Oliver.
-
-At last, when she could endure no more, relief came, a new vision of
-love, no longer lost in the woods or in any earthly beauty, but a
-clear light illuminating men and women and the earth upon which they
-dwell. And in her soul, too, the upward impulse began to thrill, and
-with a sob of thankfulness she lay on her bed fully clothed and went
-to sleep.
-
-* * * * *
-
-She was not at all disturbed when Mendel said in the morning that he
-must go back to London to work on his picture. It was right. Their
-happiness was too tremulous. There was plenty of time for them to take
-up their ordinary jolly human lives, plenty of time now that they were
-no longer young.
-
-She walked with him to the station, and on the way they laughed and
-sang, and he whistled and talked breathlessly about his picture.
-
-"My mother says a cock robin can never mate with a sparrow," he said.
-"I promised I would take you to see her."
-
-"I should love to come, for I love your mother."
-
-"I would like you to see the Jews as they are," he said, "so simply
-serving God that their souls have gone to sleep."
-
-As they stood on the platform she said:--
-
-"Mendel, I did . . . begin to understand last night, and it has made
-you and your work more important than anything else in my life."
-
-He gripped her fiercely by the arm.
-
-"Come to London, now," he said.
-
-"Not now."
-
-"Soon."
-
-"Very soon."
-
-He got into the train, and as it carried him off she could not bear
-him to go, and, forgetting all the other people, she ran as hard as
-she could along the platform, and stood at its extremity until the
-train disappeared round the corner of the embankment, and even then
-she called after him:--
-
-"Mendel! Mendel!"
-
-
-
-_Transcriber's Note_
-
-This transcription is based on the British edition published by T.
-Fisher Unwin in 1916. Scans of this edition are available through the
-Hathi Trust Digital Library at:
-
- http://catalog.hathitrust.org/Record/100597585
-
-As an additional resource, the American edition published by George H.
-Doran in 1916 was also used. Scans of this edition are posted by the
-Internet Archive at:
-
- https://archive.org/details/mendelstoryofyou00canniala
-
-The right margins of several page scans of the Unwin edition available
-through the Hathi Trust were cut off, so the Doran edition was used to
-correct for the missing text. No attempt was made to list all these
-corrections.
-
-The following changes to the text were noted:
-
--- Cover: The cover image is from the Doran edition.
-
--- p. 20: what you want, that you shall have. . .--Added an additional
-period at the end of the sentence in keeping with the Doran edition.
-
--- p. 20: "These children have only to go out into London and all will
-be given to them,"--Changed the comma to a period.
-
--- p. 42: their voices seemed to him to come from very far away, The
-unheaval had stunned him, had destroyed his volition and paralysed his
-dreams.--Changed the comma after "away" to a period and "unheaval" to
-"upheaval" in keeping with the Doran edition.
-
--- p. 48: "That'll do. That'll do," said Moscowitch.--Changed
-"Moscowitch" to "Moscowitsch" for consistency.
-
--- p. 84: "No," said the Professor." I don't know what that is. It
-certainly isn't drawing."--Changed the closing quotation mark after
-"Professor" to an opening quotation mark before "I".
-
--- p. 84: and he says: "I mean to say, that isn't drawing.--Changed
-the opening double quotation mark to an opening single quotation mark.
-
--- p. 116: You may renember her--glorious chestnut hair, big blue
-eyes, but as shy as a little mouse.--Changed "renember" to "remember".
-
--- p. 139: And then when I get home and it is just a house and I am
-just a girl living it it--Changed the first "it" after "living" to
-"in".
-
--- p. 158: hair brushed back from a round, well shaped brow.--Inserted
-a hyphen between "well" and "shaped".
-
--- p. 184: as they went through their Public Schools and were more and
-compressed into type--Inserted the word "more" between "and" and
-"compressed" in keeping with the Doran edition.
-
--- p. 189: "But he cares for poetry and the Bible and he loves
-pictures. . ."--Added an additional period at the end of the sentence
-in keeping with the Doran edition.
-
--- p. 216: finding some dam fool to take you to a music-hall--For
-consistency and in keeping with the Doran edition, changed "dam" to
-"damn".
-
--- p. 217: When you're starving you don't want chocolates. . .--Added
-an additional period at the end of the sentence in keeping with the
-Doran edition.
-
--- p. 234: He says its something deeper--Changed "its" to "it's".
-
--- p. 245: No, no, no! . . . .--Deleted the fourth period in keeping
-with the Doran edition.
-
--- p. 266: "What has happened?" Does he knock her about?"--Deleted the
-closing quotation mark after "happened?"
-
--- p. 271: "That is all very well while you are young " said
-Logan--Inserted a comma between "young" and the closing quotation
-mark.
-
--- p. 290: the furniture was old and exquisite. . .--Added an
-additional period at the end of the sentence in keeping with the Doran
-edition.
-
--- p. 297: and through that love his passion for art--Added a period
-at the end of the sentence.
-
--- p. 298: Cluny."--Inserted an opening double quotation mark at the
-beginning of the sentence.
-
--- p. 316: "O God! O God! O God!'--Changed the closing single
-quotation mark to a closing double quotation mark.
-
--- p. 341: You said you were'nt going to dance.--Changed "were'nt" to
-"weren't".
-
--- p. 344: "Yes You are very honest--Added a period after "Yes".
-
--- p. 351: "You can't stop it," said Logan--Added a period at the end
-of the sentence.
-
--- p. 358: "If it was my house, I would kick them out.'--Changed the
-closing single quotation mark to a closing double quotation mark.
-
--- p. 380: "What do you want, then?--Added a closing double quotation
-mark at the end of the sentence.
-
--- p. 397: "Then it's a sketch and not a picture.'--Changed the
-closing single quotation mark to a closing double quotation mark.
-
--- p. 414: clouds heaped up by the driving wind--beautiful,
-beautiful. . .--Added a fourth period at the end of the sentence.
-
-In the original text, section breaks within a chapter are indicated
-with space between paragraphs. This convention has been retained in
-the html-based files. For clarity, section breaks in the text file are
-indicated with a row of asterisks.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Mendel, by Gilbert Cannan
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MENDEL ***
-
-***** This file should be named 54931-8.txt or 54931-8.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/4/9/3/54931/
-
-Produced by Paul Haxo with special thanks to the University
-of Illinois at Urbana-Champaign, the Hathi Trust Digital
-Library, the University of California, and the Internet
-Archive.
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/54931-8.zip b/old/54931-8.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 645ebb3..0000000
--- a/old/54931-8.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/54931-h.zip b/old/54931-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 854ebd6..0000000
--- a/old/54931-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/54931-h/54931-h.htm b/old/54931-h/54931-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index b4873ce..0000000
--- a/old/54931-h/54931-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,14402 +0,0 @@
-<?xml version='1.0' encoding='utf-8'?>
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.1//EN"
-"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml11/DTD/xhtml11.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml">
-<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=utf-8" />
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
-<title>Mendel: A Story of Youth, by Gilbert Cannan</title>
-<meta name="author" content="Gilbert Cannan" />
-<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-<style type="text/css">
-body {
- font-family:serif;
- margin-left: 15%;
- margin-right: 15%;
- color: black;
- background-color: white;
- }
-
-a {
- text-decoration: none;
- }
-p {
- text-align: justify;
- text-indent: 1.1em;
- margin-top: 0;
- line-height: 120%;
- margin-bottom: 0.4em;
- padding-bottom:0
- }
-span.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 89%;
- font-size:0.75em;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- display: inline
- }
-/*For consistent placement in html file, only place in dialogue, regular paras, etc. */
-
-h1,h2,h3,h4,h5,h6 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
- }
-h3 {
- padding-top:3em;
- font-size: 0.9em;
- font-weight:bold;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
- padding-bottom: 0.25em;
- line-height:100%;
- }
-h3.toc {
- font-size:1.2em;
- padding-top:2em;
- font-weight:bold;
- font-style:normal;
- margin-bottom:1em;
- }
-h4 {
- font-size:1.05em;
- font-weight:bold;
- padding-top:3em;
- line-height:200%;
- margin-bottom:0.75em;
- }
-span.chap_title {
- font-size: 100%;
- }
-
-.title1 {
- padding-top: 4em;
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-size:130%;
- letter-spacing: 0.1em;
- }
-.title2 {
- text-indent: 0.3em;
- text-align: center;
- padding-top: 1.5em;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-size:100%;
- padding-bottom: 0.5em;
- letter-spacing: 0.4em;
- }
-.subtitle {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-size:100%;
- }
-.publisher {
- margin-top: 0.15em;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-size:100%;
- letter-spacing: 0.1em;
- }
-
-/*Dedication page*/
-.dedication {
- padding-top: 4em;
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- padding-bottom: 0em
- }
-blockquote.dedicatory_verse {
- padding-top: 0em;
- padding-bottom: 0em;
- margin-left:10%;
- margin-right:8%
- }
-.dedicatory_verse p {
- text-align: left;
- font-style: italic;
- margin-left: 2em;
- font-size: 90%;
- padding-bottom: 0em;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
- line-height:120%
- }
-p.i0 {
- text-indent: -4em;
- }
-p.i0a {
- text-indent: -3.5em; /* for double quote left indent */
- }
-p.i1 {
- text-indent: -3em;
- }
-p.i2 {
- text-indent: -2em;
- }
-p.i3 {
- text-indent: -1em;
- }
-
-/*For Table of Contents*/
-table.toc {
- margin-left: auto;
- padding:0;
- margin-right: auto;
- border: none;
- }
-.tdc {
- font-size: 95%;
- text-align:center;
- padding-bottom: 0.50em;
- }
- /* center align cell for "Book" titles */
-.tdl {
- font-size: 100%;
- margin-left: 2em;
- text-indent: -0.5em;
- padding-bottom: 0.5em;
- text-align: left;
- }
- /* left align cell for chapter names */
-.tdr {
- text-align: right;
- vertical-align: bottom;
- font-size: 65%;
- }
- /* right align table cell for "PAGE" row*/
-.tdrch {
- font-size: 100%;
- text-align: right;
- padding-bottom: 0.5em;
- padding-right: 1.15em;
- vertical-align: top;
- }
- /* right align cell for chapter numbers */
-.tdrpg {
- font-size: 100%;
- text-align: right;
- padding-bottom: 0.5em;
- vertical-align: top;
- }
- /* right align cell for chapter page numbers */
-
-.blocktext10 {
- padding-left: 10%;
- padding-right:10%;
- }
-.blocktext15 {
- padding-left: 15%;
- padding-right:15%;
- }
-
-.pagebreak {
- page-break-before: always;
- }
-.noindent {
- text-indent: 0em;
- }
-.center {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- }
-.right {
- text-align: right;
- }
-.italics {
- font-style: italic;
- }
-.top1 {
- padding-top: 1em;
- }
-.top3 {
- padding-top: 3em;
- }
-.top6 {
- padding-top: 6em;
- }
-.top8 {
- padding-top: 8em;
- }
-
-small {
- font-size: 80%;
- }
-.biggerfont {
- font-size: 230%;
- }
-.bigfont {
- font-size: 140%;
- }
-.slightlybigfont {
- font-size: 115%;
- }
-.smallfont {
- font-size: 88%;
- }
-.smallerfont {
- font-size: 80%;
- }
-.reallysmall {
- font-size: 70%;
- }
-.tinyfont {
- font-size: 65%;
- }
-.reallytinyfont {
- font-size: 55%;
- }
-.no_bottom {
- margin-bottom: 0;
- padding-bottom: 0;
- }
-
-blockquote.verse {
- padding-top: 0.25em;
- padding-bottom: 0.25em;
- margin-left:5%;
- margin-right:4%
- }
-.verse p {
- text-align: left;
- margin-left: 4em;
- font-size: 90%;
- padding-bottom: 0em;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
- line-height:110%
- }
-
-blockquote.letter {
- padding-top: 0.25em;
- padding-bottom: 0.25em;
- margin-left: 0em;
- margin-right: 0em;
- }
-.letter p {
- font-size: 90%;
- padding-bottom: 0em;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
- line-height:110%
- }
-.greeting {
- text-indent: 1.22em;
- }
-.letter_body {
- text-indent: 3em
- }
-.closing {
- margin-right: 5em;
- text-align: right;
- }
-.signature {
- margin-right: 1em;
- text-align: right;
- }
-
-.transition {
- padding-top: 0.1em;
- padding-bottom: 0.1em;
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- }
-
-div.tnote {
- padding-bottom:0.5em;
- padding-top:0.25em;
- padding-left:0.5em;
- padding-right:0.5em;
- margin-right: 1.1em;
- margin-left: 1.1em;
- margin-top: 1em;
- font-size: 90%;
- background: #eeeeee;
- border: solid 0.075em
- }
-h3.tnote {
- font-style:italic;
- font-size: 110%;
- font-weight: bold;
- padding-top:0em;
- padding-bottom:0.5em;
- }
-ul {
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.25em
- }
-li {
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- }
-p.link {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- padding-top: 0.4em;
- line-height: 100%;
- padding-bottom: 0.4em
- }
-
-</style>
-</head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Mendel, by Gilbert Cannan
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Mendel
- A Story of Youth
-
-Author: Gilbert Cannan
-
-Release Date: June 19, 2017 [EBook #54931]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MENDEL ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Paul Haxo with special thanks to the University
-of Illinois at Urbana-Champaign, the Hathi Trust Digital
-Library, the University of California, and the Internet
-Archive.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-<div class="image">
-<p class="center"><img alt="Cover" src="images/cover.jpg" title="Cover" height="100%"
-/></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Front_matter">
-
-<p class="title1">MENDEL</p>
-
-<div class="pagebreak"></div>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 noindent italics smallfont top3">BY THE SAME AUTHOR</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">ROUND THE CORNER</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">OLD MOLE</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">YOUNG EARNEST</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext10 noindent italics smallfont">LONDON, T. FISHER UNWIN LTD.</p>
-
-<p><br />
-<br /></p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">PETER HOMUNCULUS</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">LITTLE BROTHER</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">THREE PRETTY MEN</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">SAMUEL BUTLER</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">WINDMILLS</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">SATIRE</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">THE JOY OF THE THEATRE</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">FOUR PLAYS</p>
-
-<p class="blocktext15 smallfont">ADVENTUROUS LOVE (P<small>OEMS</small>)</p>
-
-<div class="pagebreak"></div>
-
-<div id="Title_Page">
-<p class="title2"><span class="biggerfont">MENDEL</span></p>
-
-<p class="subtitle">A&nbsp;&nbsp;STORY&nbsp;&nbsp;OF&nbsp;&nbsp;YOUTH</p>
-
-<p class="subtitle">BY&nbsp;&nbsp;GILBERT&nbsp;&nbsp;CANNAN</p>
-
-<p class="top8 publisher"><small>LONDON</small></p>
-
-<p class="publisher">T. FISHER UNWIN LTD</p>
-
-<p class="publisher"><small>ADELPHI TERRACE</small></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="pagebreak"></div>
-
-<p class="top3 center italics smallerfont">First published in 1916</p>
-
-<p class="top8 center smallerfont">(<i>All rights reserved</i>)</p>
-
-<div class="pagebreak"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-5">[Pg 5]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="dedication italics">To D. C.</p>
-
-<blockquote class="dedicatory_verse">
-<p class="i3">Shall tears be shed because the blossoms fall,</p>
-
-<p class="i3">Because the cloudy cherry slips away,</p>
-
-<p class="i3">And leaves its branches in a leafy thrall</p>
-
-<p class="i3">Till ruddy fruits do hang upon the spray?</p>
-
-<p class="i3 top1">Shall tears be shed because the youthful bloom</p>
-
-<p class="i3">And all th’excess of early life must fade</p>
-
-<p class="i3">For larger wealth of joy in smaller room</p>
-
-<p class="i3">To dwell contained in love of man and maid?</p>
-
-<p class="i3 top1">Nay, rather leap, O heart, to see fulfilled</p>
-
-<p class="i3">In certain joy th’uncertain promised glee,</p>
-
-<p class="i3">To have so many mountain torrents spilled</p>
-
-<p class="i3">For one fair river moving to the sea.</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div class="pagebreak"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-7">[Pg 7]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="contents">
-<h3 class="toc" id="contents_hdg">CONTENTS</h3>
-
-<table border="0" cellpadding="2" cellspacing="0" class="toc" summary="Table of Contents">
-<tbody>
-<tr>
-<td class="tdc no_bottom" colspan="4" id="Chapter100_toc"><a href="#Chapter100_hdg">BOOK
-I: EAST</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr no_bottom"><span class="reallysmall">&nbsp;</span></td>
-
-<td class="tdr no_bottom">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdr no_bottom">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdr no_bottom"><span class="reallysmall">PAGE</span></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>I</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter101_toc"><a href="#Chapter101_hdg"><small>LONDON WHERE THE KING
-LIVES</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">11</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>II</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter102_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter102_hdg"><small>POVERTY</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">21</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>III</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter103_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter103_hdg"><small>PRISON</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">34</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>IV</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter104_toc"><a href="#Chapter104_hdg"><small>FIRST
-LOVE</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">52</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>V</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter105_toc"><a href="#Chapter105_hdg"><small>A
-TURNING-POINT</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">63</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>VI</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter106_toc"><a href="#Chapter106_hdg"><small>EDGAR FROITZHEIM AND
-OTHERS</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">74</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>VII</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter107_toc"><a href="#Chapter107_hdg"><small>THE
-DETMOLD</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">83</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>VIII</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter108_toc"><a href="#Chapter108_hdg"><small>HETTY
-FINCH</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">96</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>IX</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter109_toc"><a href="#Chapter109_hdg"><small>THE
-QUINTETTE</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">109</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>X</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter110_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter110_hdg"><small>MORRISON</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">134</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdc top1" colspan="4" id="Chapter200_toc"><a href="#Chapter200_hdg">BOOK II:
-BOHEMIA</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>I</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter201_toc"><a href="#Chapter201_hdg"><small>THE
-POT-AU-FEU</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">145</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>II</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter202_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter202_hdg"><small>LOGAN</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">156</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>III</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter203_toc"><a href="#Chapter203_hdg"><small>LOGAN SETS TO
-WORK</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">167</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>IV</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter204_toc"><a href="#Chapter204_hdg"><small>BURNHAM
-BEECHES</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">183</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>V</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter205_toc"><a href="#Chapter205_hdg"><small>HAPPY
-HAMPSTEAD</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">196</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>VI</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter206_toc"><a href="#Chapter206_hdg"><small>CAMDEN
-TOWN</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">209</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>VII</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter207_toc"><a href="#Chapter207_hdg"><small>MR. TILNEY
-TYSOE</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">221</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>VIII</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter208_toc"><a href="#Chapter208_hdg"><small>THE
-MERLIN</small>’<small>S CAVE</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">235</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>IX</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter209_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter209_hdg">“<small>GOOD-BYE</small>”</a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">247</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>X</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter210_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter210_hdg"><small>PARIS</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">259</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdc top1" colspan="4" id="Chapter300_toc"><a href="#Chapter300_hdg">BOOK III:
-THE PASSING OF YOUTH</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>I</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter301_toc"><a href="#Chapter301_hdg"><small>EDWARD
-TUFNELL</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">283</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>II</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter302_toc"><a href="#Chapter302_hdg"><small>THE CAMPAIGN
-OPENS</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">295</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>III</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter303_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter303_hdg"><small>SUCCESS</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">306</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>IV</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter304_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter304_hdg"><small>REACTION</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">320</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>V</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter305_toc"><a href="#Chapter305_hdg"><small>LOGAN GIVES A
-PARTY</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">331</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>VI</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter306_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter306_hdg"><small>REVELATION</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">346</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>VII</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter307_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter307_hdg"><small>CONFLICT</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">364</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>VIII</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter308_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter308_hdg"><small>OLIVER</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">382</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>IX</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter309_toc"><a href="#Chapter309_hdg"><small>LOGAN MAKES AN
-END</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">404</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdrch"><small>X</small>.</td>
-
-<td class="tdl" id="Chapter310_toc"><a
-href="#Chapter310_hdg"><small>PASSOVER</small></a></td>
-
-<td class="tdl">&nbsp;</td>
-
-<td class="tdrpg">415</td>
-</tr>
-</tbody>
-</table>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter101">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-9">[Pg 9]</a></span></p>
-
-<h3 id="Chapter100_hdg"><a href="#Chapter100_toc">BOOK ONE<br />
-<br />
-<span class="slightlybigfont">EAST</span></a></h3>
-
-<div class="pagebreak"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-11">[Pg 11]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter101_hdg"><a href="#Chapter101_toc">I<br />
-<span class="chap_title">LONDON WHERE THE KING LIVES</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">T<small>HE</small> boat-train had disgorged its passengers, who had
-huddled together in a crowd round the luggage as it was dragged out of the vans, and then
-had jostled their way out into the London they had been so long approaching. When the
-crowd scattered it left like a deposit a little knot of strange-looking people in
-brilliant clothes who stared about them pathetically and helplessly. There were three old
-men who seemed to be strangers to each other and a handsome Jewess with her family—two
-girls and three boys. The two elder boys carried on their backs the family bedding, and
-the youngest clung to his mother’s skirts and was frightened by the noise, the hurrying
-crowds of people, the vastness and the ugly, complicated angular lines of the station. The
-woman looked disappointed and hurt. Her eyes searched through the crowds, through every
-fresh stream of people. She was baffled and anxious. Once or twice she was accosted, but
-she could not understand a word of what was said to her. At last she produced a piece of
-paper and showed it to a railway official, who came up thinking it was time these
-outlandish folk moved on. He could not read what was written on it, for the paper was very
-dirty and the characters were crabbed and awkwardly written. He turned to the old men, one
-of whom said excitedly the only English words he knew—“London—Jewish—Society.” The
-official looked<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-12">&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;[Pg 12]</a></span> relieved. These people did
-not look like Jews, and the eldest girl and the little boy were lovely. He went away, and
-the woman, whose hopes had risen, once more looked disconsolate. The little boy buried his
-face in her apron and wept.</p>
-
-<p>A suburban train came wheezing into the platform, which was at once alive with hurrying
-men in silk hats and tail-coats. Catching sight of the brilliantly attired group, the
-handsome woman and the lovely girl, the boys with their heads bowed beneath the billowing
-piles of feather bedding, some of them stopped. The little boy looked up with tears in his
-eyes. One man put his hand in his pocket and threw down a few coppers. Others followed his
-example, and the little boy ran after the showering pennies as they bounced in the air,
-and rolled, span, and settled. He danced from penny to penny and a crowd gathered; for, in
-his bright jerkin and breeches and little top-boots, dancing like a sprite, gay and wild,
-he was an astonishing figure to find in the grime and ugliness of the station. Silver was
-thrown among the pennies to keep him dancing, but at last he was exhausted and ran to his
-mother with his fists full of money, and the men hurried on to their offices.</p>
-
-<p>The official returned with an interpreter, who discovered that the woman’s name was
-KĂĽhler, that she had expected to be met by her husband, that she had come from Austrian
-Poland, and that the address written on the piece of paper was Gun Street. The number was
-indecipherable.</p>
-
-<p>The three old men were given instructions and they went away. The interpreter took
-charge of the family and led them to a refuge, where he left them, saying that he would go
-and find Mr. KĂĽhler. With a roof over her head and food provided for her children, Mrs.
-KĂĽhler sat stoically to wait for the husband she had not seen for two years. She had no
-preconceived idea of London, and this bleak,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-13">[Pg 13]</a></span> bare room was London to her, quite acceptable. The stress
-and the anxiety of the detestable journey were over. This was peace and good. Her husband
-would find her. He had come to make a home in London. He had sent for her. He would
-come.</p>
-
-<p>Hours passed. They slept, ate, talked, walked about the room, and still Mr. KĂĽhler did
-not come. The peace of the refuge was invaded with memories of the journey, the rattle,
-rattle, rattle of the train-wheels, the brusque officials who treated the poor travellers
-like parcels, the soldiers at the frontiers, the wet, bare quay in Holland, the first
-sight of the sea, immense, ominous, heaving, heaving up to the sky; the stinking ship that
-heaved like the sea and made the brain oscillate like milk in a pan; the solidity of the
-English quay, wet and bare, and of the English train, astonishingly comfortable.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And still Mr. KĂĽhler did not come.</p>
-
-<p>The girls were cold and miserable. The boys wrestled and practised feats of strength
-with each other to keep warm, and looked to their mother for applause. She gave it them
-mechanically as she sat by the little boy, whom she had laid to sleep on the bedding. He
-would be hungry, she thought, when he woke up, and she must get him food. There was the
-money which had been thrown to him, but she did not know its value. People do not throw
-much money away. At home people do not throw even small money away. There such a thing
-could not happen. There money, like everything else, avoids the poor. But this was rich
-England, where it rained money.</p>
-
-<p>When the boy woke up she would go out and buy him something good to eat, and if Mr.
-KĂĽhler did not come to-morrow she would find some work and a room, or a corner of a room,
-to live in. Perhaps Jacob had gone to America again.<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-14">[Pg 14]</a></span> He had been there twice, and both times
-suddenly. People always went to America suddenly. He went out and bought a clean collar,
-and said he was going and would send money for her as soon as he had enough.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Poor Jacob, he could not endure their poverty and he would not steal, but
-he would always fight the soldiers and the bailiffs when they came to take the bedding.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. The sea heaved, and it rained money. The two boys began to fight, a sudden
-fury in both of them. Their sisters rushed to part them and Mrs. KĂĽhler rose.</p>
-
-<p>At the end of the long room she saw Jacob peering from group to group. He looked white
-and ill, as he had done when he came again and again to implore her to marry him, and she
-felt half afraid of him, as she had done when the violent fury of love in him had broken
-down her resistance and dragged her from her comfortable home to the bare life he had to
-offer her. He came to her now with the same ungraciousness that had marked his wooing,
-explained to her that he had just got a job and could not get away to meet her, and turned
-from her to the children. The boys were grown big and strong, and the eldest girl was a
-beauty. He was satisfied, stooped and picked up little Mendel in his strong arms. The
-child woke up, gave a little grunt of pleasure as he recognized the familiar smell of his
-father, and went to sleep again.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s heavy,” said Mrs. Kühler. “You cannot carry him all the way.”</p>
-
-<p>“His face is like a flower,” said Jacob.</p>
-
-<p>He went first, carrying the boy, and his family followed him into the roaring streets.
-The lamps were lit and the shops were dazzling. There were barrows of fruit, fish, old
-iron, books, cheap jewellery, all lit up with naphtha flares. The children were half
-frightened, half delighted. The smells and the noise of the streets excited them.
-Every<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-15">[Pg 15]</a></span> now and then
-they heard snatches of their own language and were comforted. They came to shops bearing
-Yiddish characters and London no longer seemed to them forbiddingly foreign, though they
-began to feel conscious of their clothes, which made them conspicuous. The boys cursed and
-growled under the bedding and began to complain that they had so far to go. Mr. KĂĽhler
-found the child too heavy and had to put him down. Mendel took his mother’s hand and
-trotted along by her side.</p>
-
-<p>They turned into a darkish street which ran for some length between very tall houses.
-It was obscure enough to allow the clear sky to be seen, patched with cloud and deep blue,
-starry spaces. At the end of it was a building covered with lights and illuminated signs.
-They shone golden and splendid. Never had Mendel seen anything so glorious, so rich, so
-dream-like, so clearly corresponding to that marvellous region where all his thoughts
-ended, passed out of his reach, and took on a brilliant and mighty life of their own, a
-glory greater than that of the Emperor at home. But this was England and had only a
-King.</p>
-
-<p>“Does the King live there?” he asked his mother.</p>
-
-<p>“No; that is a shop.”</p>
-
-<p>“Has father got a shop like that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not yet.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will he soon have a shop like that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Very soon.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel would have liked to have stood and gazed at the glorious, glittering shop. He
-felt sure the King must buy his boots there, and he thought that if he stayed long enough
-he would see the King drive up in his crystal coach, with his crown on his head, and go
-into the shop. But his father led the way out of the darkish street into another that was
-still darker, very narrow, and<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-16">[Pg
-16]</a></span> flanked with little low houses. One of these they entered, and in a small,
-almost unfurnished room they had supper, and Mendel went to sleep hearing his father say
-to his mother, “Thirteen shillings.” Just before that his father had held his hands out
-under the candle, and they were raw and bleeding.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>One room was luxury to them. At home in Austria they had had a corner of a room, and
-the three other corners were occupied by the carpenter, the stableman, and the potter. In
-the centre of the room stood the common water-bucket and the common refuse-tub. London had
-showered money on them and provided them with a whole room. They felt hopeful.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. KĂĽhler made thirteen shillings a week polishing walking-sticks, and when that trade
-was bad he could sometimes get work as a furrier. He had intended to take his family over
-to America, but finding work in London, he thought it better to stay there. Besides, he
-had a grudge against America, for while there he had invented a device for twisting tails
-of fur, but his invention had been stolen from him and he had missed his chance of making
-a fortune. America was evil and living was very dear. London was the more comfortable
-place for the struggle. And in London he had found Abramovich, the friend of his boyhood,
-the one creature in the world upon whom he relied. He had no reason for his faith.
-Abramovich had never done him any good, but he was not of those who pass. He might
-disappear for years, but he always came back again, and time made no difference. He was
-always the same. If help was needed he gave it, and if he needed help he asked for it.
-Abramovich was a very strong reason for staying in London. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. The boys would
-soon be working and the eldest girl was a beauty. The match-makers would be busy with her.
-Another<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-17">[Pg 17]</a></span> two years,
-and the match-makers would find her a rich man who would help them all and put money into
-a business. That was Jacob’s desire, to have a business of his own, for he loathed working
-for another man. He could not do it for long. Always he ended with a quarrel, perhaps with
-blows, or he simply walked out and would not return.</p>
-
-<p>He was a devout Jew and despised Christians, as he despised luxury, pleasure, comfort,
-not actively nor with any hatred. He simply did not need them. He had lived without them,
-and he asked nothing of life. He was alive; that was enough. Passions seized him and he
-followed them. Without passion he never moved, never stirred a finger except to keep
-himself alive. Passion had chosen his wife for him. Golda, the beautiful, was his wife. In
-her he was bound more firmly to his race and his faith, and there was no need to look
-beyond. He was rooted. She had borne him children, but he had no more ambition for them
-than for himself. Leah, the beauty, should wed a rich man, not for ambitious reasons, but
-because, in life, beauty and riches were proper mates. There is a certain orderliness
-about life, and certain things can only be prevented by an irruption of passion. If that
-happens, then life takes its revenge and becomes hard and bleak, but it is still life, and
-only a fool will complain. Jacob never complained, and he took his Golda’s reproaches in
-silence, unless she became unjust, and then he silenced her brutally and callously. She
-bore with him, because she prized his honesty, his steadfast simplicity, and because she
-knew that his passion had never wakened a profound answer in herself. She had very slowly
-been roused to love, which had flowered in her with the birth of her youngest child, in
-whom she had learned a power of acceptance almost equal to her husband’s. Like him,<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-18">[Pg 18]</a></span> she clung to her race
-and her faith and never looked beyond.</p>
-
-<p>In London she found that she was left alone and her life was no longer hemmed in by a
-menacing world of soldiers and police and peasants, who swore the Jews cheated them and
-spread terrifying tales of Jewish practices upon Christian children. Christian London was
-indifferent to the Jews, and she could be indifferent to Christian London. She had no
-curiosity about it and never went above a mile from her house. She made no attempt to
-learn English, but could not help gleaning a few words from her children as they picked it
-up at school. The synagogue was the centre of her life, and from it came all the life she
-cared to have outside her family. She was absorbed in little Mendel, by whom her world was
-coloured. If he was happy, that was sunshine to her. If he was oppressed and tearful, her
-sky was overcast. If he was ill, it seemed to her a menace of the end.</p>
-
-<p>He was a strange child and very slow in growing into a boy. The other children had
-seemed to shoot into independence almost as soon as they could walk. But Mendel clung to
-her, would not learn to feed himself, and would not go to sleep at night unless she sang
-to him and rocked him in the cradle, in which he slept even after he went to school. As
-long as he could curl up in it he slept in his cradle, and he made her learn as much as
-she could of an English song which had caught his fancy. It was the only English song she
-ever knew, and night after night she had to sing it over and over again as she rocked the
-heavy cradle:—</p>
-
-<blockquote class="verse">
-<p class="i3">Daisy, Daisy, give me your answer, do;</p>
-
-<p class="i3">I’m half crazy, all for the love of you.</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p>She had no idea what the words meant, but the boy loved the tune and her funny accent
-and<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-19">[Pg 19]</a></span> intonation,
-and even when she was ill and tired she would sing him to sleep, and then sit brooding
-over him with her fingers just touching his curly hair. And in her complete absorption in
-his odd, unchildlike childhood she was perfectly content, and entirely indifferent to all
-that happened outside him. Brutal things, terrible things happened, but they never touched
-the child, and if she could, she hid the knowledge of them from him.</p>
-
-<p>Abramovich collected a little capital and persuaded Mr. KĂĽhler to join him in a
-furrier’s business. They were not altogether unsuccessful, and Mr. Kühler took a whole
-house in Gun Street and bought a piano, but soon their capital was exhausted and they had
-given more credit than they were accorded and the business trickled through their fingers.
-Mr. KĂĽhler took to his bed, for he could sleep at will and almost indefinitely, and so
-could avoid seeing poverty once more creeping up like a muddy sea round his wife and
-children. It had been bad enough when that happened at home, where at the worst there were
-his relations to help, and there were the potato fields to be despoiled, and, at least,
-the children could be happy playing in the roads or by the river, or on the sides of the
-mountain. But here in London poverty was black indeed, and there was no one but Abramovich
-to help, and he was in almost as bad case as himself. Yet astonishingly Abramovich came
-again and again to the rescue. He was a little squat, ugly man, the stunted product of
-some obscure Russian ghetto, and he seemed to live by and for his enthusiasm for the
-KĂĽhler family. In their presence he glowed, greedily drank in every word that Jacob or
-Golda said, and was always loud in his praises of the beautiful children. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-“The sky is dark now,” he used to say, “but they will be rich, and they will give you
-horses and carriages, and Turkey carpets, and footmen, and flowers in the winter, and they
-will<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-20">[Pg 20]</a></span> bring English
-gentlemen to the house and what you want, that you shall have. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.” “I want
-nothing,” Jacob would say. “I want nothing. I will work and be my own master. I will not
-steal or help other men to steal.” “You wait,” Abramovich would reply. “These children
-have only to go out into London and all will be given to them.”</p>
-
-<p>Only the eldest girl listened to these conversations, and she used to hold her head
-high, and her face would go pale as ferociously she followed up the ideas they suggested
-to her.</p>
-
-<p>But Abramovich could bring no consolation. Jacob would not go back to the
-stick-polishing, and at last he could bear it no longer, went out and bought a clean
-collar, clipped his beard, and without a word of farewell, went to America.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter102">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-21">[Pg 21]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter102_hdg"><a href="#Chapter102_toc">II<br />
-<span class="chap_title">POVERTY</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">T<small>HEN</small> followed, for Golda, the blackest years of her
-life. She removed once more to one room in Gun Street, and she and the two boys earned
-enough to keep body and soul together. She found work in other people’s houses, helped at
-parties, and when nothing else was available she went to a little restaurant to assist as
-scullery-maid, and stayed after closing-time to scrub the tables and sweep the floor. For
-this she was given crusts of bread and scraps from the plates. She never had a word from
-her husband, and she knew she would not hear unless he made money. If he failed again, as
-of course he would, he would live in silence, solitary, proud, avoiding his fellow-men,
-who would have nothing to do with him except he made the surrender of dignity which it was
-impossible for him to make. She would not hear from him, and he would return one day
-unannounced, without a word, as though he had come from the next street; and as likely as
-not he would have given the coat off his back to some one poorer than himself.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Jacob was like that. He would give away on an impulse things that it had
-cost him weeks of saving to acquire. Low as he stood in the world, he seemed always to be
-looking downwards, as though he could believe in what came up from the depths but not in
-anything that went beyond him. Golda could not understand him, but she believed in him
-absolutely. She knew that he suffered even more than she, and she had learned<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-22">&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;[Pg
-22]</a></span> from him not to complain. The Jews had always suffered. That was made clear
-in the synagogue, where, in wailing over the captivity in Babylon, Golda found a vent for
-her own sorrows. She would weep over the sufferings of her race as she wept for those who
-were dead, her father and her mother, and her father’s father and her little brother, on
-the anniversary of their death. However poor she might be she had money to buy candles for
-them, and whatever the cost she kept the observances of her religion.</p>
-
-<p>So she lived isolated and proud, untouched by the excitements her children found in the
-houses of their friends and in the streets.</p>
-
-<p>Very wild was the life in the neighbourhood of Gun Street. There were constant feuds
-between Jews and Christians, battles with fists and sticks and stones. Old Jews were
-insulted and pelted by Christian youths, and the young Jews would take up their cause.
-There were violent disputes between landlords and tenants, husbands and wives, prostitutes
-and their bullies. Any evening, walking along Gun Street, you might hear screaming and
-growling in one of the little houses. Louder and louder it would grow. Suddenly the male
-voice would be silent, the female would rise to a shriek, the door would open, and out
-into the street would be propelled a half-naked woman. She would wail and batter on the
-door, and, if that were of no avail, she would go to the house of a friend and silence
-would come again. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Or sometimes a door would open and a man would be shot
-out to lie limp and flabby in the gutter.</p>
-
-<p>Harry, the second boy, took to this wild life like a duck to water. He practised with
-dumb-bells and learned the art of boxing, and so excited Mendel with his feats of strength
-that he too practised exercises and learned to stand on his hands, and cheerfully allowed
-his brother to knock him down over and over again in his ambition to<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-23">[Pg 23]</a></span> learn the elements of
-defence and the use of the straight left. In vain: his brain was not quick enough, or was
-too quick. His hands would never obey him in time, but he dreamed of being a strong man,
-the strongest man in the world, who by sheer muscle should compel universal admiration and
-assume authority.</p>
-
-<p>In the family the child’s superiority was acknowledged tacitly. He had his way in
-everything. He wanted such strange things, and was adamant in his whims. If he were not
-allowed to do as he wished, he lay on the ground and roared until he was humoured; or he
-would refuse to eat; or he would go out of the house with the intention of losing himself.
-As he was known all through the neighbourhood for his beauty that was impossible. He was
-an object of pride to the neighbours, and whenever he was found far from home, there was
-always some one who knew him to take him back. But Golda could not realize this, and she
-suffered tortures.</p>
-
-<p>The boy loved the streets and the shops, the markets with their fruit-stalls and
-fish-barrows, the brilliant colours in Petticoat Lane. He would wander drinking in with
-his eyes colour and beauty, shaking with emotion at the sight of the pretty little girls
-with their little round faces, their ivory skins, and their brilliant black eyes. Ugliness
-hurt him not at all. It was the condition of things, the dark chaos out of which flashed
-beauty. But cruelty could drive him nearly mad, and he would tremble with rage and terror
-at the sight of a woman with a bloody face or a man kicking a horse.</p>
-
-<p>He had a friend, a Christian boy, named Artie Beech, who adored him even as Abramovich
-adored his father. Golda was alarmed by this friendship, thinking no good could come out
-of the Christians, and she tried to forbid it, but the boy had his way, and he loved Artie
-Beech as a child loves a doll<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-24">[Pg
-24]</a></span> or a king his favourite. Together the two boys used to creep home from
-school gazing into the shop windows. One day they saw a brightly coloured advertisement of
-a beef extract: a picture of a man rending a lion. “It will make you stronger than a
-lion,” said Mendel. “Yes,” said Artie, “one drop on the tip of your tongue.” “I would be
-stronger than Harry if I ate a whole bottle,” replied Mendel, and they decided to save up
-to buy the strength-giving elixir. It took them seven weeks to save the price of it. Then
-with immense excitement they bought the treasure, took it home, and, loathing the taste of
-it, gulped it down and tossed a button for the right to lick the cork. Feeling rather
-sick, they gazed at each other with frightened eyes, half expecting to swell so that they
-would burst their clothes. But nothing happened. Mendel took off his coat and felt his
-biceps and swore that they had grown. Artie took off his coat: yes, his biceps had grown
-too.</p>
-
-<p>They went through the streets with growing confidence, and at school they were not
-afraid. Mendel’s new arrogance led him into the only fight he ever had and he was laid
-low. Aching with humiliation, he shunned Artie Beech and went alone to gaze at the picture
-of the man rending the lion. It took him a week of hard concentrated thought to realize
-that the picture and its legend were not to be taken literally, and his close study led
-him to another and a strangely emotional interest in the picture. His eyes would travel up
-the line of the man’s body along his arms to the lion’s jaws, and then down its taut back
-to its paws clutching the ground. The two lines springing together, the two forms locked,
-gave an impression of strength, of tremendous impact, which, as the boy gazed, became so
-violent as to make his head ache. At the same time he began to develop an appetite for
-this shock, and unconsciously used his eyes so<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-25">[Pg 25]</a></span> as to obtain it. It would sometimes spring up in him
-suddenly, without his knowing the cause of it, when he watched his mother sitting with her
-hands folded on her stomach, or cooking with her hand—her big, strong, working hand—on a
-fish or a loaf of bread.</p>
-
-<p>One day in Bishopsgate, that lordly and splendid thoroughfare which led from the dark
-streets to the glittering world, he came on a man kneeling on the pavement with coloured
-chalks. First of all the man dusted the stones with his cap, and then he laid another cap
-full of little pieces of chalk by his side, and then he drew and smudged and smudged and
-drew until a slice of salmon appeared. By the side of the salmon he drew a glass of beer
-with a curl of froth on it and a little bunch of flowers. On another stone he drew a ship
-at sea in a storm, a black and green sea, and a brown and black sky. Mendel watched him
-enthralled. What a life! What a career! To go out into the streets and make the dull
-stones lovely with colour! He saw the man look up and down and then lay a penny on the
-salmon. A fine gentleman passed by and threw down another penny. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh,
-certainly, a career! To make the streets lovely, and immediately to be rewarded!</p>
-
-<p>From school Mendel stole some chalk and decorated the stones in the yard at Gun Street.
-He drew a bottle and an onion and a fish, though this he rather despised, because it was
-so easy. Always he had amused himself with drawing. As a tiny child, the first time his
-father went to America, he drew a picture of a watch to ask for that to be sent him, and
-this picture had been kept by his mother. And after that he often drew, but chiefly
-because it made his father and mother proud of him, and they laughed happily at everything
-he did. The pavement artist filled him with pride and pleasure in the doing of it: and
-every minute out of school and away from the Rabbi<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-26">[Pg 26]</a></span> he devoted to drawing. His brothers bought him a box of
-colours, and he painted imaginary landscapes of rivers and swans and cows and castles.
-Every picture he made was treasured by his mother. They seemed to her, as they did to
-himself, perfectly beautiful. He used his water-colours as though they were oils, and laid
-them on thick, to get as near the pavement artist’s colours as possible. At school there
-were drawing-lessons, but they seemed to have no relation to this keen private pleasure of
-his.</p>
-
-<p>In the evenings he would lie on the ground in the kitchen and paint until his eyes and
-his head ached. Sometimes his perpetual, silent absorption would so exasperate his
-brothers that they would kick his paints away and make him get up and talk to them. Then
-he would curse them with all the rich curses of the Yiddish language, and rush away and
-hide himself; for days he would live in a state of gloom and dark oppression, feeling
-dimly aware of a difference between him and them which it was beyond his power to explain.
-He would try to tell his mother what was the matter with him, but she could not
-understand. His happiness in painting, the keen delight that used to fill him, were to her
-compensation enough for her anxiety and the stress and strain of her poverty.</p>
-
-<p>His little local fame procured her some relief. At school he won a prize accorded by
-vote for the most popular boy. This had amazed him, for he had very little traffic with
-the others, and during playtime used to stand with his back to the wall and his arms
-folded, staring with unseeing eyes. When his sister asked one of the boys why Mendel had
-won the vote, the answer she received was: “He <i>can</i> draw.” As a result his brothers
-were helped and his mother was able to get work as a sempstress. They were relieved from
-the poverty that paralyses. They could go from day to day<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-27">[Pg 27]</a></span> and carry their deficit from week to week.
-They could afford friends, and the visits of friends on a ceremonious basis, and
-Abramovich was always trying to interest rich men in the wonderful family.</p>
-
-<p>It was Abramovich who bought Mendel his first box of oil-paints, not so much to give
-the boy pleasure as with the idea that he might learn to paint portraits from photographs.
-That, however, was not in the boy’s idea. He abandoned his imaginary landscapes and began
-to paint objects, still in the manner of the pavement artist, thrilled with the discovery
-that he could more and more exactly reproduce what he saw. He painted a loaf of bread and
-a cucumber so like the originals that Abramovich was wildly excited and rushed off to
-bring Mr. Jacobson, a Polish Jew, a timber-merchant and very rich, to see the marvel.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was unprepared. He sat painting in the kitchen with his mother and Lotte, his
-younger sister. Abramovich and Mr. Jacobson came in. Jacobson was ruddy, red-haired, with
-a strange broad face and a flat nose, almost negroid about the nostrils. He wore a
-frock-coat, a white waistcoat with a cable-chain across it, and rings upon his fingers.
-Mendel had a horror of him, and was overcome with shyness. Mr. Jacobson put on his
-spectacles, stared at the picture. “Ye-es,” he said. “That bread could be eaten. That
-cucumber could be cut and put into the soup. The boy is all right. Eh? Ye-es, and a
-beautiful boy, too.” Mendel writhed. Golda was almost as overcome with shyness as he. In
-silence she produced all the boy’s drawings and pictures and laid them before the
-visitors. Abramovich was loud in his praises, but not too loud, for he knew that Mr.
-Jacobson loved to talk. And indeed it seemed that Mr. Jacobson would never stop. He stood
-in the middle of the room and wagged his fat, stumpy hands and held forth:—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-28">[Pg 28]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“In my country, Mrs. Kühler, there was once a poor boy. He was always drawing. Give him
-a piece of paper and a pencil and he would draw anything in the world. The teacher at
-school had to forbid him to draw, for he would learn nothing at all. So one day the
-teacher could not find that boy. And where do you think they find him? Under the table.
-The teacher pulled him out and found in his hand a piece of paper—a piece of paper. The
-teacher looked down at the piece of paper and fainted away. The boy had drawn a picture of
-the teacher so like that he fainted away. Well, when the teacher came to himself, he said:
-â€Boy, did you do that?’ â€Yes,’ said the boy, â€I did that.’ â€Then, said the teacher, â€I
-will tell you what you must do. You must paint a portrait of the King and take it to the
-King, and he will give you money, and carriages, and houses, and rings, and watches, for
-you and your father, and your uncles and all your family. Ahin and aher. The boy did that.
-He painted a portrait of the King and he took it to the palace. He went to the front door
-and knock, knock, knock. A lady opened the door and she said: â€What do you want, little
-boy?’ â€I want to see the King. I have something to show him.’ â€I am the Queen,’ said the
-lady. â€You can show it to me.’ The boy showed the picture and the Queen fainted away. The
-servants and the King came running in to see what had happened, and they stood like stone.
-â€Who did that?’ said the King. â€I did,’ said the boy. â€I don’t believe him,’ said the
-King. â€Shut him up for a day and a night, give him paint and brushes, and we will see what
-he can do.’ Well, they shut the boy up for a day and a night, and in the morning the door
-was opened and the King and the Queen came in. The King took off his hat and put it on the
-table and it fell to the ground. That boy had painted a picture of a table so like that
-the King thought it was a real table and tried to put his hat on it. It<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-29">[Pg 29]</a></span> is true, and the boy
-painted the King’s portrait every Saturday until he died, and he had houses and money and
-footmen and statues in his garden, and his father and mother drove in their carriages and
-wore sables even in the summer. And some day, Mrs. KĂĽhler, we shall see you in your
-carriage and this boy painting the portrait of the King.”</p>
-
-<p>The story was received in silence. The emotions it aroused in Golda and her son were so
-profound, so violent that they were dazed. The tension was relieved by a giggle from
-Lotte, who knew that kings do not wear hats. Mendel sat staring at his picture, which, try
-as he would, he could not connect with the story.</p>
-
-<p>Abramovich said: “I told you so, Mrs. Kühler. I told you something would come of it.”
-Already he was convinced that Mendel only had to go out into London to make the family’s
-fortune.</p>
-
-<p>But Golda replied: “There’s time enough for that, and don’t go putting ideas into the
-boy’s head.”</p>
-
-<p>There was no danger of that. Mendel’s was not the kind of head into which ideas are
-easily put. He was slow of comprehension, powerful in his instincts, and everything he
-perceived had to be referred to them. School was to him a perfectly extraneous experience.
-What he learned there was of so little use to any purpose of which he was conscious, and
-it could not be shared with his mother. To her schooling was the law of the land. A
-strange force took her boy from her every day and, as it were, imprisoned him. When he was
-fourteen he would be free. She must endure his captivity as she had learned to endure so
-much else.</p>
-
-<p>When Mr. Jacobson had gone she said: “There have been boys like that, and a good boy
-never forgets his father and mother.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel looked puzzled and said: “When <i>I</i> drew a picture of teacher he caned
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Caned you?” cried Golda, horrified.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-30">[Pg 30]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“He often does.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thrashed you!” cried Golda; “on the hands?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” replied Mendel, “on the seat and the back.”</p>
-
-<p>Golda made him undress, and she gave a gasp of anger when she saw the weals and bruises
-on his back. “But what did you do?” she cried.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” answered Mendel. This was true. At school he would suddenly find the
-teacher towering over him in a fury; he would be told to stay behind, and then he would be
-flogged. He had suffered more from the humiliation than from the pain inflicted. He could
-never understand why this fury should descend upon him out of his happy dreams. And now as
-his mother wept over the marks upon his body the suffering in him was released. All the
-feeling suppressed in him by his inability to understand came tearing out of him and he
-shook with rage. He could find no words to express these new emotions, which were terrible
-and frightened him.</p>
-
-<p>Lotte came up and felt the weals on his back with her fingers, and she said: “They
-don’t do that to girls.”</p>
-
-<p>“Be quiet, Lotte,” said Golda. “Don’t touch him. You will hurt him.” And she stood
-staring in amazement at the boy’s back. “That’s an awful mess,” she said to herself, and
-her thoughts flew back to men who had been flogged by the soldiers in Austria. But this
-was England, where everybody was left alone. She could not understand it. She did not know
-what to do. The boy could not be kept from school, for they would come and drag him to it.
-There were often dreadful scenes in Gun Street when children were dragged off to school.
-She made Lotte sit at the table and write: “Please, teacher, you must not beat my son. His
-back is like a railway-line, and it is not good to beat children.” She could think of no
-threat which could intimidate the teacher, no power she could invoke to her aid. Her
-powerlessness<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-31">[Pg 31]</a></span>
-appalled her. She signed the letter and thought she would go to the Rabbi and ask him what
-she must do. “Yes,” she said, “the Rabbi will tell me, and perhaps the Rabbi will write to
-the teacher also.” She could feel the torture in the boy, and she knew that it must be
-stopped. It was all very well to knock Harry or Issy about. They could put up with any
-amount of violence. But Mendel was different. With him pain went so deep. That was what
-made it horrible. He was like a very little child. It was wicked to hurt him. His silence
-now was almost more than she could bear.</p>
-
-<p>There came a knock at the door. Lotte went to open it and gave a little scream. It was
-her father come back from America. He came into the room, not different by a hair from
-when he went away; thinner, perhaps, a little more haggard and hollow under the eyes, so
-that the slight squint in his right eye, injured to avoid conscription, was more
-pronounced. He came in as though he had returned from his day’s work, nodded to his wife,
-and looked at the boy’s back.</p>
-
-<p>“Who has done that?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“At school,” replied Golda. “The teacher.”</p>
-
-<p>Jacob took off his coat, rolled up his sleeves, picked up a chair and smashed it on the
-floor. Mendel put on his shirt and coat again and said: “It is like when you knocked the
-soldier over with the glass.”</p>
-
-<p>Jacob gave a roar: “Ah, you remember that? Ah! yes. That was when I had the inn near
-the barracks. He was an officer. Two of them came in. They were drunk, the swine! The man
-made for your mother and the officer for your sister. The glasses were big, with a heavy
-base. I took one of them .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p>“And the man spun round three times and fell flat on the floor,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-32">[Pg 32]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Ah! you remember that? Yes. And I lifted him out into the street and left him there in
-the snow. I was a strong man then. I wanted nothing from them, but if they touch what is
-mine .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;!” He seized Mendel and lifted him high over his head. He was
-tremendously excited and could not be got to sit down or to talk of his doings in America
-or of his voyage. That was his way. He would talk in his own time. His doings would come
-out piecemeal, over years and years. Now he was entirely absorbed with his fury. He was
-nearly ill with it and could not eat. Up and down the room he walked, lashing up his rage.
-Mendel was sent to bed, and until he went to sleep he could hear his father pacing up and
-down and his mother talking, explaining, entreating.</p>
-
-<p>Next morning Mendel had almost forgotten the excitement and went to school as usual. In
-the middle of an arithmetic lesson in walked Jacob, very white, with his head down. He
-went quickly up to the teacher and spoke to him quietly. The class was stunned into
-silence. Jacob raised his fist and the teacher went down. Jacob picked him up, shook him,
-and threw him into a corner. Then he shouted: “You won’t touch my boy again!” shook
-himself like a dog, and walked out, closing the door very quietly. The teacher hurried out
-and did not return. The class slowly recovered from its astonishment, shrill voices grew
-out of the silence like a strong wind, and books and inkpots began to fly. Soon the walls
-were streaked and spattered with ink and when it became known that it was Kühler’s father
-who had done it, Mendel found himself a hero. But he took no pride in it. He was haunted
-by the teacher’s white, terrified face. He had always thought of the teacher as a nice
-man. The thrashings inflicted on him had always seemed to him impersonal and outside
-humanity altogether. Yet because it was his father who had<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-33">[Pg 33]</a></span> thrashed the teacher he accepted it as
-right. At home his father, even in his absence, was the law, and could do no wrong. The
-violent scene seemed to Mendel to have nothing to do with himself, and he resented having
-become the centre of attention.</p>
-
-<p>The head master hurried in, quelled the class, went on with the lesson where it had
-been interrupted. Mendel could not attend. He was bewildered by a sudden realization of
-life outside himself. It was no longer a procession of events, figures, scenes, colours,
-shapes, light and darkness passing before his eyes, always charming, sometimes terrifying,
-but something violent which met another something in himself with a fearful impact. It
-could hurt him, and he knew that it was merciless, for the thing in himself that answered
-to it and rushed out to meet it was wild and knew no mercy either. He had heard of a thing
-called the maelstrom in the sea, a kind of spout, with whirling sides, down which great
-ships were sucked. And he felt that he was being sucked down such a spout, in which he
-could see all that he had ever known, the mountain and the river in Austria, the train,
-the telegraph wires, towns, buses, faces, the street, the school, Artie Beech, Abramovich,
-his father. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Only his mother stood firm, and from her came a force to
-counteract that other force which was dragging him towards the whirlpool.</p>
-
-<p>He became conscious of the discomfort in which he lived and was acutely aware of the
-people by whom he was surrounded.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter103">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-34">[Pg 34]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter103_hdg"><a href="#Chapter103_toc">III<br />
-<span class="chap_title">PRISON</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">T<small>HIS</small> time in America Jacob had fared better, and by
-dint of half-starving himself and sleeping when he had nothing to do, he had managed to
-save over fifty pounds. Abramovich borrowed another fifty, and once again they set up in
-business as furriers. They took one of the old Georgian houses off Bishopsgate, started a
-workshop in the top rooms, and in the lower rooms the KĂĽhler family lived, with Abramovich
-in lodgings round the corner. They were only twenty yards from the synagogue and Golda was
-happy; Jacob too, for in such a house he felt a solid man. And, indeed, amid the extreme
-poverty with which they were surrounded he could pass for wealthy. He had his name on a
-brass plate on the door and was always proud when he wrote it on a cheque. He took his
-eldest son into his workshop to rescue him from the fate of working for another master,
-and he assumed a patriarchal authority over his family. His sons were never allowed out
-after half-past nine, and, tall youths though they were, if they crossed his will he
-thrashed them. The girls were forbidden to go out alone. They were kept at home to await
-their fate.</p>
-
-<p>The eldest boy flung all his ardour into dancing, and was the champion slow waltzer of
-the neighbourhood. With egg-shells on his heels to show that he never brought them to the
-ground, he could keep it up for hours and won many prizes. Harry scorned this polite
-prowess. For him the<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-35">[Pg
-35]</a></span> romance of the streets was irresistible: easy amorous conquests, battles of
-tongues and fists, visits to the prize-ring, upon which his young ambition centred. A bout
-between a Jew and a Christian would lead to a free-fight in the audience, for the Jews
-yelled in Yiddish to their champion, and the British would suspect insults to them or vile
-instructions, and would try to enforce silence .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And Harry would bring gruff
-young men to the house, youths with puffy eyes and swollen or crooked or broken noses, and
-he would treat them with an enthusiastic deference which found no echo in any member of
-the family save Mendel, who found the world opened up to him by Harry large and
-adventurous, like the open sea stretching away and away from the whirlpool.</p>
-
-<p>There was one extraordinarily nice man whom Harry brought to the house. His name was
-Kuit, and he had failed as a boxer and had become a thief, a trade in which he was an
-expert. His talk fascinated Mendel, and indeed the whole family. None could fail to listen
-when he told of his adventures and his skill. He had begun as a pickpocket, plying his
-trade in Bishopsgate or the Mile End Road, and to show his expertise he would run his
-hands over Jacob’s pockets without his feeling it, and tell him what they contained. Or he
-would ask Golda to let him see her purse, and she would grope for it only to find that he
-had already taken it. He had advanced from picking pockets to the higher forms of theft:
-plundering hotels or dogging diamond merchants, and he was keenly interested in America.
-It was through him that the family knew the little that was ever revealed to them of
-Jacob’s doings there.</p>
-
-<p>Kuit said he would go to America and not return until he had ten thousand pounds, all
-made by honest theft, for he would only rob the rich, and, indeed, he was most generous
-with his earnings,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-36">[Pg 36]</a></span>
-and gave Golda many handsome pieces of jewellery, and he lent Jacob money when he badly
-needed it. That, however, was not Jacob’s reason for admitting Kuit to his family circle.
-He liked the man, was fascinated by him, and thought his morals were his own affair. He
-knew his race and the poor too well to be squeamish, and never dreamed of extending his
-authority beyond his family. He warned Harry that if he took to Kuit’s practices he would
-no longer be a son of his, and as the accounts of prison given to Harry by some of his
-acquaintances were not cheering, Harry preferred not to run any risks. Instead, he devoted
-himself to training for the glory of the prize-ring.</p>
-
-<p>For Mendel the moral aspect of Kuit’s profession had been settled once and for all by
-his seeing the Rabbi with his face turned to the wall, in the middle of the most terrible
-of prayers, filch some pennies from an overcoat. Religion therefore was one thing, life
-was another, and life included theft. Kuit was the only man who could think of painting
-apart from money, and it was Kuit who gave him a new box of oil colours, stolen from a
-studio which he broke into on purpose, and <i>en passant</i> from one rich house in
-Kensington to another. Kuit used to say: “One thing is true for one man and another for
-another. And what is true for a man is what he does best. For Harry it is boxing, for Issy
-it is women and dancing, and for Mr. KĂĽhler it is being honest. For me it is showing the
-business thieves that they cannot have things all their own way, and outwitting the
-police. Oh yes! They know me and I know them, but they will never catch me.”</p>
-
-<p>So charming was Mr. Kuit that Jacob could not object to taking care from time to time
-of the property that passed through his hands, and the kitchen was often splendid with
-marble clocks and Oriental china and Sheffield plate, which never<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-37">[Pg 37]</a></span> looked anything but out of place among the
-cheap oleographs and the sideboard with its green paper frills round the flashing gilt
-china that was never used. The kitchen was the living-room of the house, for Jacob only
-ate when he was hungry, and it was rarely that two sat down to a meal together.</p>
-
-<p>As often as not Mendel had his paints on the table, and the objects he was painting
-were not to be moved. He clung to his painting as the only comfort in his distress, and he
-would frequently work away with his brushes though he could hardly see what he was at, and
-knew that he was entirely devoid of the feeling that until the discomfort broke out in his
-soul had never failed him. He dared not look outside his circumstances for comfort, and
-within them was the most absolute denial of that cherished feeling for loveliness and
-colour. Beyond certain streets he never ventured. He felt lost outside the immediate
-neighbourhood of his home, and only Mr. Kuit reassured him with the confidence with which
-he spoke of such remote regions as Kensington and Bayswater and Mayfair. The rest clung to
-the little district where the shops and the language and the smells were Jewish. Yet
-there, too, Mendel felt lost, though he had an immense reverence for the old Jews, for the
-Rabbis who pored all day long over their books, and the ancient bearded men who, like his
-mother, could sit for hours together doing nothing at all. He loved their tragic, wrinkled
-faces and their steadfast peace, so stark a contrast to the chatter and the wrangling and
-the harshness that filled his home.</p>
-
-<p>There were constant rows. Harry upset the household for weeks after his father forbade
-him to pursue his prize-fighting ambitions. Jacob would not have a son of his making a
-public show of himself. To that disturbance was added<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-38">[Pg 38]</a></span> another when Issy began to court, or was
-courted by, a girl who was thought too poor and base-born. If he was out a minute later
-than half-past nine Jacob would go out and find him at the corner of the street with the
-girl in his arms. Issy would be dragged away. Then he would sulk or shout that he was a
-man, and Jacob would tell him in a cold, furious voice that he could go if he liked, but,
-if he went, he must never show his face there again. For a time Issy would submit. Poor
-though the home was, he could not think of leaving it except to make another for himself.
-But there was no keeping the girl away, and he would be for ever peeping into the street
-to see if she were there, and if she were he could not keep away from her.</p>
-
-<p>Leah, the eldest girl, had her courtships too. The match-makers were busy with her, and
-a number of men, young and old, were brought to view her. She was dressed up to look fine,
-and Jacob and Golda would sit together to inspect the suitors, and at last they chose a
-huge, ugly Russian Jew, named Moscowitsch—Abraham Moscowitsch, a timber-merchant, who had
-pulled himself up out of the East End and had a house at Hackney. He was a friend of
-Kuit’s and was willing to take the girl without a dowry. Leah hid herself away and wept.
-It was in vain that Golda, primed by Jacob, told her that she would be rich, and would
-have servants and carriages, and could buy at the great shops: she could not forget the
-Russian’s bristling hair and thick lips and coarse, splayed nostrils. The tears were of no
-avail; the marriage had been offered and accepted. The wedding was fixed, and nothing was
-spared to make it a social triumph. The bride was decked out in conventional English
-white, with a heavy veil and a bouquet: and very lovely she looked. Jacob wore his first
-frock-coat and a white linen collar, Golda had a dress made<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-39">[Pg 39]</a></span> of mauve cashmere, with a bodice heavily
-adorned with shining beads, and Mendel had a new sailor suit with a mortar-board cap.
-There were three carriages to drive the party the twenty yards to the synagogue. The
-wedding group was photographed, and a hall was taken for the feast and the dance in the
-evening. The wedding cost Jacob the savings of many years and more, but he grudged not a
-penny of it, because he had a rich son-in-law and wished it to be known. There were over
-fifty guests at the feast.</p>
-
-<p>Within a week Leah came home again, pale, thin, and shrunken. Moscowitsch had been
-arrested. He had gone bankrupt and had done “something with his books.”</p>
-
-<p>“Bankrupt!” said Jacob; “bankrupt!”</p>
-
-<p>He stood in front of his weeping daughter and beat against the air with his clenched
-fists. She moaned and protested that she would never go back to him. Jacob shook her till
-her teeth chattered together.</p>
-
-<p>“You dare talk like that! He is your husband. You are his wife. It is a misfortune. You
-should be with the lawyers to find out when you can see him. I am to lose everything
-because he is unfortunate! A dog will not turn from a man in his misery, and must a woman
-learn from a dog? You are a soft girl! Go, I say, and find out when you can see him. Was
-ever a man so crossed by Fate! Where I go, there luck takes wings.”</p>
-
-<p>His violence shook Leah out of the dazed misery in which she had come home, having no
-other idea, no other place to which to go. Jacob was at first for making his daughter wait
-in her new home until her husband was returned to her. His simple imagination seized on
-the idea and visualized it. It seemed to him admirable, and Golda had hard work to shake
-it out of his head. As a piece of unnecessary cruelty he could<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-40">[Pg 40]</a></span> not realize it, but when it was brought
-home to him that he would have to pay the rent of the house in Hackney, he yielded and
-allowed the girl to stay at home.</p>
-
-<p>Moscowitsch was sentenced to six months’ imprisonment, and a gloom, such as not the
-darkest days of poverty had been able to create, descended upon the house. Jacob was
-ashamed and irritable. He insisted upon the most scrupulous observance of all the rites of
-his religion, and he forbade Mendel to paint. Painting had nothing to do with religion and
-he would have none of it. He trampled on Mendel’s friendship with Artie Beech. The
-Christian world of police and judges and the law had destroyed his happiness, and not the
-faintest smell of Christendom should cross his door. Friction between the father and his
-two sons was exasperated, and it seemed to Mendel that Hell was let loose. He was nearly
-of an age to leave school, and he dreamed by the hour of the freedom he would have when he
-went to work. He would go out early in the morning and come home late in the evening. He
-would stay in the streets and look at the shops and watch the girls go by. He would go one
-day out beyond London to see what the world was like there. He would find a place where
-there were pictures, and he would feast on them: for when he went to work he would paint
-no more, since painting would be shed with the miserable childhood that was so fast
-slipping away from him.</p>
-
-<p>Yet a worse calamity was to happen. Once again the Christian world of police, law, and
-judges was to invade the home of the KĂĽhlers, and this time it was Jacob himself who was
-taken. He was charged with receiving stolen goods. A detective-inspector and two
-constables invaded the house and took possession of an ormolu clock, a number of silver
-knives, and a brooch which Mr. Kuit had given to Golda.<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-41">[Pg 41]</a></span> Five of Mr. Kuit’s friends had been
-arrested, but Mr. Kuit himself was not implicated. He paid for the defence of the
-prisoners and took charge of the Kühler family, transferred the business into Issy’s name,
-and advanced money to keep it going. He spared neither time nor trouble to try to
-establish Jacob’s innocence, but it looked almost as though some one else was taking an
-equal amount of trouble to prove his guilt, for every move of Mr. Kuit’s was countered,
-and Jacob himself was so bewildered and enraged that he could not give a coherent answer
-to the questions put to him. He babbled and raved of an enemy who had done this thing, of
-a rival who had plotted his ruin, but as he could not give a satisfactory account of the
-articles found in his possession, his passionate protestations and his fanatical belief in
-his own honesty were of no avail. From the dock in which he was placed with Mr. Kuit’s
-other friends he delivered a vehement harangue in broken English, not more than ten words
-of which were intelligible to the judge and jury. The judge was kindly, the jury
-somnolent. Jacob was the only member of the party with a clean record, and he received the
-light sentence of eighteen months; the rest had double that term and more. In the Sunday
-papers they were described as a dangerous gang, and their portraits were drawn like
-profiles on a coin by an artist whose business it was to make villains look villainous for
-the delectation of the sober millions who tasted the joys of wickedness only in print.
-Golda was staggered by the blank indifference of the world to her husband’s honesty. His
-word to her was law, but the judge and the newspapers swept it aside, and he was regarded
-as one with the wicked men whose crooked dealings had involved the innocent. This was the
-worst disaster that had ever broken upon her: husband and son-in-law both swept away from
-her, as it<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-42">[Pg 42]</a></span> seemed
-now, in one moment. The sympathy she received from the neighbours touched her profoundly,
-and she accepted their view that the sudden abstraction of male relatives was a natural
-calamity, like sickness or fire. Thanks to Mr. Kuit the business would be kept together,
-and thanks to Abramovich she never lacked company. That faithful friend would come in in
-the evenings and go over the trial, every moment of which he had heard, and recount every
-word of Jacob’s speech, which to him was a piece of magnificent oratory. “Not a tear was
-left in my eyes,” he said. “Not a throb was left in my heart, and the judge was moved, for
-his face sank into his hands and I could see that he knew how unjust he must be.” And he
-spent many days ferreting out a villain to be the cause of it all, some inveterate,
-implacable enemy who had plotted the downfall of the most honest man in London. He fixed
-on a certain Mr. Rosenthal, who years ago had tried to sell them machines for the business
-when they had already bought all that were necessary. He was quite sure it was Mr.
-Rosenthal who had bribed the thieves to hold their tongues, when any one of them could
-have cleared Jacob in a moment. And Golda believed that it was Mr. Rosenthal and dreamed
-of unattainable acts of revenge.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel used to listen to them talking, and their voices seemed to him to come from very
-far away. The upheaval had stunned him, had destroyed his volition and paralysed his
-dreams. He felt as though a tight band were fixed round his head. He had neither desire
-nor will. The world could do as it liked with him. If the world could suddenly invade his
-home and brand its head and lawgiver as thief, then the world was empty and foolish and it
-did not matter what happened. It amazed him that his brothers and sisters could go about
-as usual: that Harry could come home<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-43">[Pg 43]</a></span> and talk of prize-fighters and sit writing to girls, and
-that Issy could go out to meet his Rosa at the corner of the street. It was astonishing
-that his mother could still cook and they could still eat, and that every morning Harry
-could go down and open the door to let in the workpeople to clatter up the stairs.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And Harry disliked getting out of bed in the morning. In his father’s
-absence he ventured to apply his considerable ingenuity to the problem, and rigged up a
-wire from his bed to the knob of the front-door. Nor was this the only sign of the removal
-of the centre of authority from the family, for Issy actually brought his girl Rosa to the
-house and made his mother be pleasant to her. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Golda felt that her children
-were growing beyond her, and she thought it was time Issy was thinking of getting married,
-though not to Rosa, whose father was a poor cobbler and could give her no money.</p>
-
-<p>At regular intervals. Golda swallowed down her dread of the busy streets and went to
-Pentonville, where through the bars of the visitors’-room Jacob received her report and
-gave his instructions. He decreed against Rosa, who accordingly was forbidden to enter the
-house again. He had orders for every one of his children except Mendel, as to whom Golda
-did not consult him. Deep in her inmost heart she was in revolt against her husband, for
-she had begun to see that he had carried pride to the point of folly, and all her hopes,
-all her dreams, all her ambitions were centred upon her darling boy. Her ambitions were
-not worldly. She knew nothing at all about the world, and did not believe three parts of
-what she heard of it. Only she longed for him to escape the bitterness and bareness that
-had been her portion. The boy was so beautiful and could be so gay and could dance so
-lightly, and would sometimes be so tempestuous and masterful. It would be a sin if he were
-to be cramped over a board or<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-44">[Pg
-44]</a></span> were sent to work in a tailoring shop. She herself had a love of flowers
-and of moonlight and the stars shining through the smoky sky, and she would sometimes find
-herself being urged to the use of strange words, which would make Mendel raise his head
-and cock his ears as though he were listening to the very beat of her heart. To that no
-one in the world had ever listened, and her life seemed very full and worthy when Mendel
-in his childish fashion was awake to it. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Pentonville seemed to suit Jacob.
-He looked almost fat and said the cocoa was very good.</p>
-
-<p>The time came for Mendel to leave school and Issy said he had better be taken into the
-workshop. Harry wanted him in the timber-yard in which he loafed away his days. Abramovich
-was for getting Mr. Jacobson to take him into his office, for Mr. Jacobson never failed to
-ask after the boy who painted the pictures. Now it so happened that Mendel had found a
-bookshop, outside which he had discovered a life of W. P. Frith, R.A. In daily visits over
-a period of three weeks he had read it from cover to cover, the story of a poor boy who
-had become an artist, rising to such fame that he had painted the portrait of the Queen.
-There it was in print, and must be true. Mr. Jacobson’s boy was only in a story, but here
-it was set down in a book, with reproductions of the artist’s wonderful pictures—“The
-Railway Station,” “Derby Day.” The book said they were wonderful. The book spoke with
-reverence and enthusiasm of pictures and the men who painted them.</p>
-
-<p>With tremulous excitement he secretly produced his box of paints again, and squeezed
-out the colours on to the plate he used for a palette. He adored the colours and amused
-himself with painting smooth strips of blue, yellow, green, red, orange, grey, for the
-sheer delight of handling the delicious stuff. It was a new pleasure, the joy<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-45">[Pg 45]</a></span> of colours in
-themselves without reference to any object, or any feeling inside himself except this
-simple thrilling delight. He could forget everything in it, for it was his first taste of
-childish glee. Nothing would ever be the same again. Nothing could ever again so oppress
-and overwhelm him as distasteful and even pleasant things had done in the past. He would
-be an artist, a wonderful artist, like W. P. Frith, R.A.</p>
-
-<p>So when he was called into the kitchen one night and they told him he was to go into
-Mr. Jacobson’s office, he looked as though their words had no meaning for him, and he
-said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I want to be an artist.”</p>
-
-<p>An artist? Nobody knew quite what that meant. Golda thought it meant painting pictures,
-but she could not imagine a man devoting all his time to it—a child’s pastime.</p>
-
-<p>“He means the drawing!” said Abramovich. “I had a friend at home who used to paint the
-flowers on the cups.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m going to be an artist,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“But you’ve got to make your money like everybody else,” replied Issy.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel retorted with details of what he could remember of the career of his idol. Issy
-said that was a <i>Christlicher kop.</i> There weren’t such things as Jewish artists;
-whereon Harry threw in the word “Rubinstein.” Asked to explain what he meant, he did not
-know, but had just remembered the name.</p>
-
-<p>Abramovich said he thought Rubinstein was a conductor at the Opera, and there were
-Jewish singers and actors.</p>
-
-<p>“My father,” said Harry, “won’t hear of that. He won’t have a son of his making a
-public show of himself.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel by this time was white in the face, and his eyes were glaring out of his head.
-He knew that not one of them had understood his meaning,<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-46">[Pg 46]</a></span> and he felt that Issy was bent on having
-his way with him. He was in despair at his helplessness, and at last, when he could endure
-no more, he flung himself down on the floor and howled. Issy lost his temper with him,
-picked him up, and carried him, kicking and biting, upstairs, and flung him on his
-bed.</p>
-
-<p>The subject was dropped for a time, but Mendel refused to eat, or to sleep, or to leave
-the house. He was afraid that if he put his nose outside the door Abramovich would pounce
-on him and drag him off to Mr. Jacobson’s office.</p>
-
-<p>However, the matter could not be postponed for long, because money was very scarce and
-the boy must be put into the way of providing for himself. Golda asked Abramovich to find
-out what an artist was and how much a week could be made at the trade. Abramovich came in
-one evening with a note-book full of facts and figures. He had read of a picture being
-sold for tens of thousands of pounds, and this had made a great impression on him. Mendel
-was called down from the room in which he had exiled himself.</p>
-
-<p>“Well?” said Abramovich kindly. “So you want to be an artist? But how?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know. I shall paint pictures.”</p>
-
-<p>“But who will feed you? Who will buy you paints, brushes?”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall sell my pictures.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where, then? How?”</p>
-
-<p>“To the shops.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where are the shops? Tell me of any shop near here, for I don’t know a single
-one.”</p>
-
-<p>Again Mendel felt that they were too clever for him, and he was on the brink of another
-fit of despair when, fortunately for him, Mr. Macalister, a commercial traveller in furs,
-came in. When he was in London he made a point of calling on the KĂĽhlers, whom he liked,
-much as he liked strong drink. He was a man of some attainments, a<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-47">[Pg 47]</a></span> student of Edinburgh, who had found the
-ordinary walks and the ordinary people of life too tame for his chaotic and vigorous
-temper, and he went from place to place collecting just such strange people as these
-Polacks, as he used to call them. He looked for passion in men and women, and accepted it
-gratefully and even greedily wherever he found it. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He had red hair and a
-complexion like a white-heart cherry, with little twinkling eyes as blue as
-forget-me-nots.</p>
-
-<p>He kindled at once to the passion with which Mendel was bursting, stooped over Golda’s
-hand and kissed it—for he knew that was how foreigners greeted a lady—and then he sat
-heavily waiting for the situation to be explained to him. Mendel instinctively appealed to
-him. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh yes! he knew what an artist was, and some painters had made tidy
-fortunes, though they were not the best of them. There were Reynolds, and Lawrence, and
-Raeburn, and Landseer, and some young fellows at Glasgow, and Michael Angelo—a tidy lot,
-indeed. Never a Jew, that he had heard of.</p>
-
-<p>“I told you so!” said Abramovich.</p>
-
-<p>Golda showed Mr. Macalister the boy’s pictures, and he was genuinely impressed,
-especially by a picture of three oranges in a basket.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s not,” he said, “that they make you want to eat them, as that they make you look
-at them as you look at oranges. I’ll look closer at every orange I see now. That’s talent.
-Yes. That’s talent. Aye.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was so grateful to him that he forgot the others and began to point out to him
-how well the oranges were painted, with all their fleshiness and rotundity brought out.
-And very soon they were all laughing at him, and that made the meeting happier.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Macalister explained that in old days artists used to take boys into their studios,
-but that now there were Schools of Art where only very talented<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-48">[Pg 48]</a></span> people could survive. He certainly thought
-that Mendel ought to be given a chance, and if it were a question of money, he, poor
-though he was, would be only too glad to help. Golda would not hear of that, and
-Abramovich protested that, in an unhappy time like this, he regarded himself as the
-representative of his unfortunate friend.</p>
-
-<p>The corner was turned. Feeling was now all with Mendel, and he went to bed singing in
-head and heart: “I’m an artist! I’m an artist! I’m an artist!”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>So the ball was set rolling. Jacob, seen behind the bars, raised no objection. He had
-had time to think, and, to the extent of his capacity, availed himself of it. When he was
-told that his youngest son wanted to be an artist and wept at the suggestion of anything
-else, he thought: “Who am I to say â€Yea’ or â€Nay’?” and he said “Yea.” “Let the boy have a
-little happiness while he may, for the Christians are very powerful and will take all that
-he cherishes from him.”</p>
-
-<p>The question of ways and means was considered, and here Abe Moscowitsch took charge.
-His business had prospered during his enforced absence, and his bankruptcy had been very
-profitable. He was a decent man, and anxious to make amends to his young wife and her
-family for the trouble his adventurousness had brought on them. To please her he took a
-new house with bow-windows and a garage, and to please them he jumped at the opportunity
-of helping Mendel, and offered to pay his fees at a School of Art. When the boy heard this
-he ran to his brother-in-law’s office and, before all his workmen, flung his arms round
-his neck and embraced him.</p>
-
-<p>“That’ll do. That’ll do,” said Moscowitsch. “Don’t forget us if you’re a rich man
-before I am.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall never leave home,” said Mendel. “I shall never marry. I shall live all my days
-with my mother, painting.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-49">[Pg 49]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>There arose the difficulty that no one had ever heard of a School of Art. Mr.
-Macalister was deputed to look into the matter. He inquired, and was recommended to the
-Polytechnic as being cheap and good, and the Polytechnic was decided on.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Kuit came in at the tail of all this excitement, and added to it by saying that he
-was just off to America, first-class by the Cunard Line, for he was going to start in
-style, live in style, and come back in style. He was delighted to hear of the brilliant
-future opening up before Mendel, and told wonderful stories of famous pictures that had
-been stolen, cut out of their frames and taken away under the very noses of the owners. He
-was wonderfully overdressed, not loudly or vulgarly, but through his eagerness to be and
-to look first-class. He produced a pack of cards and showed how he could shuffle them to
-suit himself, and three times out of five, through the fineness of the touch, he could
-“spot” a card. He was a wonderful man. The Kühlers gaped at him, and Moscowitsch, in
-emulation, was led on to brag of his smartness in business, and how he had thrice burned
-down his timber-yard and made the insurance people pay up. Yet, though he warmed up as he
-boasted, he lacked the magic of Mr. Kuit and could not conceal the meanness of his deeds
-behind their glamour. He lumbered along like a great bear behind Mr. Kuit, and was vexed
-because he could not overtake him, and when the glittering little Jew, who seemed more
-magician than thief, said he would give Mendel a new suit of clothes for his entry into
-the world of art, Moscowitsch promised to provide a new pair of boots. Mr. Kuit countered
-with two new hats, Moscowitsch with underclothes. On they went in competition until Mendel
-was magnificently equipped, and at last Moscowitsch laid two new sovereigns on the table
-and said they were for the boy’s pocket-money.<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-50">[Pg 50]</a></span> Not to be outdone, Mr. Kuit produced a five-pound note and
-gave it to Golda to be put into the Post Office Savings Bank.</p>
-
-<p>In her inmost heart Golda was alarmed. For the first time she began to realize the vast
-powerful London with which she was surrounded. At home, in Austria, people stole because
-they were poor, because they were starving. She herself had often sent Harry and Issy out
-into the market with a sack and a spiked stick with which to pick up potatoes and cabbages
-and bread, but here the old simplicity was lacking. The swagger and the magnitude of Mr.
-Kuit’s operations and her son-in-law’s frauds alarmed her, and she felt that no good could
-come of it. They belonged to some power which moved too fast for her, and it was being
-invoked for Mendel, her youngest-born, her treasure. Truly it was a black day that took
-Jacob from her. Where he was, there was simplicity. Everything was kept in its place when
-he was in authority. Everything was kept down on the earth. There was the good smell of
-the earth in all his dealings, all his emotions. Never in him was the easy fantastic
-excitement of Kuit and Moscowitsch .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. They were mad. Surely they were mad.
-Their excitement infected everybody. Golda could feel it creeping in her veins like a
-poison. It came from the world to which these men belonged, the world of prison. That one
-word expressed it all for Golda. She had only been out into it to go to the prison, and to
-her that seemed to be the cold empty centre of it all. The bustle and glitter of the
-streets led to the prison, and she had always to fight to get back into her own life,
-where things were simple and definite—ugly, maybe—but clear and actual. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-And now into that world of hectic excitement playing about the prison and about Mendel was
-to go, to be she knew not what, to learn to play with brushes and colours, to practise
-tricks which<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-51">[Pg 51]</a></span>
-seemed to her not essentially different from Mr. Kuit’s sleight with the cards. She was
-sure no good could come of it; but for the present the boy had his happiness, and to that
-she yielded.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter104">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-52">[Pg 52]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter104_hdg"><a href="#Chapter104_toc">IV<br />
-<span class="chap_title">FIRST LOVE</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">F<small>OR</small> Mendel every day became romantic, though he
-suffered tortures of shyness and used to bolt like a rabbit through the doors of the
-Polytechnic, rush upstairs to his easel, and never raise his eyes from it except to gaze
-at the objects placed before him. He worked in a frenzy, convinced that it was his
-business to translate the object on to the canvas. When he had done that he felt that the
-object had no further existence. It ought to vanish as completely as his consuming
-interest in it. As a matter of fact, it never did vanish, but it was lost in the praises
-of Mr. Sivwright, and the young women and old ladies who attended the class. The first
-task set the class after he joined it was a ginger-beer bottle, of which his rendering was
-declared to be a marvel, even to the high light on the marble in the neck of the
-bottle.</p>
-
-<p>He was rather small for his age and was almost absurdly beautiful, with his curly hair,
-round Austrian head, and amusing pricked ears. His eyes were set very wide apart. They
-were blue. His nose was straight, and very slightly tip-tilted, and his lips were as
-delicately modelled as the petals of a rose. They were always tremulous as he shrank under
-the vivid impressions that poured in on him in bewildering profusion. He began to grow
-physically and spiritually, though not at all mentally, and he lived in a state of
-bewilderment, retaining shrewdness enough to cling to the necessary plain fact that he was
-at the school to<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-53">[Pg 53]</a></span>
-be a success, for if he failed he would sink back into the already detestable world
-inhabited by Issy and Harry.</p>
-
-<p>He created quite a stir at the school. Mr. Sivwright, a Lancashire Scotsman, whose
-youthful revolt against commerce and grime had carried him in the direction of art only so
-far as the municipal school, said he was an infant prodigy and made a show of him. To
-Mendel’s disgust Mr. Sivwright assured the other pupils that he was a Pole. This was his
-first intimation that there was, in the splendid free Christian world, a prejudice against
-Jews. He was rather shocked and disgusted, for never in his life had he found occasion to
-call anything by other than its right name. It took him weeks to conquer his shyness
-sufficiently to protest.</p>
-
-<p>“I am a Jew,” he said to Mr. Sivwright. “Why do you call me a Pole?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Mr. Sivwright, “there’s Chopin, you know, and Paderewski, don’t you know,
-and Kosciusko, and the Jews don’t stand for anything but money. And, after all, you do
-come from Poland.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I am a Jew.”</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t look it, and there’s some swing about being a Pole. There’s no swing about
-being a Jew. It stops dead, you know. I don’t know why it is, but it stops dead.”</p>
-
-<p>The words frightened Mendel. How awful it would be if he were to stop dead, to reach
-the Polytechnic and to go no further!</p>
-
-<p>He was soon taken beyond the Polytechnic, for Mr. Sivwright led him to the National
-Gallery and showed him the treasures there. The boy was at once prostrate before Greuze.
-Ah! there were softness, tenderness, charm: all that he had lacked and longed for. It was
-in vain that Mr. Sivwright took him to the Van Eycks and the Teniers and the Franz Hals,
-striking an attitude and saying:<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-54">[Pg
-54]</a></span> “Fine! Dramatic! That’s the real stuff!” The boy would return to his Greuze
-and pour out on the pretty maidens all the longings for emotion with which he was filled,
-and the yearning seemed to him to be the irresistible torrent of art which carried those
-who felt it to the pinnacles of fame. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Yet he knew that Mr. Sivwright was a
-shoddy failure of a man, and he knew that Mr. Sivwright’s ecstasies were forced and had
-small connection with the pictures before him. He also knew that he had not the least
-desire to paint like Greuze, but he could not resist the fascination of the pretty maidens
-and the gush of feeling he had in front of them. The Italians he did not understand and
-Velasquez and El Greco repelled him. Also, the pictures as a whole excited him so that
-they ran into each other and he could not extricate them, and Greuze became his stand-by.
-He felt safe with Greuze.</p>
-
-<p>Every day he used to go home and tell his mother of the day’s doings, from the moment
-when he mounted the bus in the morning to the time when he walked home in the evening. He
-gave her minute accounts of all the people in the class, of the cheap restaurant where he
-had lunch, of the marvels of the streets: the old women selling flowers at Oxford Circus;
-the gorgeous shop-windows; the illuminated signs and advertisements, green, red, and
-yellow; the theatres; the posters of the comic men outside the music-halls; the rich
-people in their motor-cars; the marvellous ladies in their silks and their furs; the poor
-men selling matches; the scarlet soldiers and blue sailors; the big policemen who stopped
-the traffic with their white hands; the awful, endless desolation of Portland Place, with
-trees—actually trees—at the end of it; the whirl, the glitter, the roar, the splendour of
-London. And he used to mimic for her the strange people he saw, the mincing ladies and the
-lordly shopwalkers, the tittering girls<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-55">[Pg 55]</a></span> and the men working in the streets. The more excited he
-was the more depressed was Golda. What was it all for? Why could not people live a decent
-quiet life? Why was all this whirligig revolving round the prison? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. But she
-smiled and laughed and applauded him, and believed him when he said none of the Christians
-could draw as well as he.</p>
-
-<p>He began to win prizes. It became his whole object to beat the Christians. What they
-told him to paint he would paint better than any of them. And by sheer will and
-concentration he succeeded.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Sivwright said there was no holding him, and very soon declared he had nothing more
-to learn.</p>
-
-<p>This was taken by Mendel and his family to mean that he was now an artist. In all good
-faith he established himself in a room below the workshop at home, called it his studio,
-and set to work. For a few months he painted apples, fish, oranges, portraits of his
-mother, brothers, and sisters, and for a time was able to sell them among his
-acquaintance. He had one or two commissions for portraits and could always make a few
-shillings by painting from photographs. But appreciation of art among his own people was
-limited; he soon came to an end of it, and there was that other world calling to him. Art
-lay beyond that other world. He felt sure of that. It lay beyond Mr. Sivwright. If he
-stayed among his own people he would stop dead; for he knew now that it was true that the
-Jews stopped dead.</p>
-
-<p>And then to his horror he stopped. For no reason at all his skill, his enthusiasm, his
-eagerness left him. He forced himself to paint, transferred innumerable idiotic faces from
-photographs to cigar-box lids, made his mother neglect her work to sit to him, bribed
-Lotte to be his model, but hated and loathed everything that he did.<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-56">[Pg 56]</a></span> He was listless,
-sometimes feverish, sometimes leaden and cold. Often he thought he was going to die—to die
-before anything had happened, before anything had emerged from the chaos of his painful
-vivid impressions.</p>
-
-<p>To make things worse, his father came home and said that he would give him six months
-in which to make his living, and at the end of that time, if he had failed, he would have
-to go into the workshop.</p>
-
-<p>He felt hopeless. He went to see Mr. Sivwright and poured out his woes to him, who
-wrote a letter to Jacob saying that his son was a genius and would be one of the greatest
-of painters. Jacob said: “What is a genius? I do not know. I know what a man is, and a man
-works for his living. In six months, if you can make fifteen shillings a week I will
-believe in this painting. If not, what is there to believe? What will you do when you are
-to marry, heh? Tell me that. Will your little tubes of paint keep a wife, heh? Tell me
-that.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel could say nothing. He could do nothing. He gave up even trying to paint, for he
-might as well have played with mud-pies. He borrowed money from his brothers and prowled
-about the streets, and went to the National Gallery. Greuze meant nothing to him now. He
-began to feel, very faintly, the force of Michael Angelo, but the rest only filled him
-with despair. He knew nothing—nothing at all. He could not even begin to see how the
-pictures were painted. They were miraculous and detestable. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He went home
-and comforted himself with a little picture of some apples on a plate. He had painted it
-two years before in an ecstasy—a thrilling love for the form, the colour, the texture of
-the fruit and the china. It was good. He knew it was good, but he knew he could do nothing
-like it now—never again, perhaps.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-57">[Pg 57]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>And how disgusting the streets had become! Such a litter, such a noise, such aimless,
-ugly people! He could understand his mother’s horror of them. Ah! she never failed him. To
-her his words were always music, his presence was always light. Half-dead and miserable as
-he was, she could know and love the aching heart of him that lived so furiously behind all
-the death and the misery and the ashes of young hopes that crusted him. She was like the
-sky and the trees. She was like the young grass springing and waving so delicately in the
-wind. She was like the water and the rolling hills. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He had discovered
-these things at Hampstead, whither he had gone out of sheer aimlessness. He had never been
-in the Tube, and one day, with a shilling borrowed from Harry, it seemed appropriate to
-him to plunge into the bowels of the earth. The oppression of the air, the roar of the
-train, the flash of the stations as he moved through them, suited his mood, fantastic and
-futile. He got out at Hampstead.</p>
-
-<p>It was his first sight of the country. He could hardly move at first for emotion. He
-found himself laughing, and he stooped and touched the grass tenderly, almost timidly, as
-though he were afraid of hurting it. He was fearful at first of walking on it, but that
-seemed to him childish, and he strode along with his quick, light-footed stride and lost
-himself in the willow groves. He made a posy of wild-flowers and took them back to his
-mother, carrying them unashamedly in his hand, entirely oblivious of the smiles of the
-passers-by. He knew he could not tell his mother of the happiness of that day, and the
-flowers could say more than any words.</p>
-
-<p>Yet the happiness only made his misery more acute. He suffered terribly from the pious
-narrowness of his home, the restricted, cramped life of his brothers and sisters, who
-seemed to him to be<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-58">[Pg
-58]</a></span> stealing such life as they had from the religious observances to which they
-were bound by their father’s rigid will. Prayers at home, prayers in the synagogue: the
-dreadful monotony of the home, of the talk, of the squabbles: human life forced to be as
-dull as that of the God who no longer interfered in human life. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. There was
-a tragedy in the street. There had been a scandal. A young Rabbi, a gloriously handsome
-creature, who sang in the synagogue, had fallen in love with a little girl of fourteen who
-lived opposite the KĂĽhlers. Golda had watched the intrigue from her windows, and she said
-it was the girl’s fault. The Rabbi used to go every day when her father was out and she
-used to let him in. Jacob wrote to the girl’s father, and the Rabbi left his lodgings and
-took a room over a little restaurant round the corner. He had his dinner and went upstairs
-and sat up all night singing, in his lovely tenor voice, love songs and religious chants,
-so sweetly that the neighbours threw their windows open and there was a little crowd of
-people in the street listening. And in the morning they found him with his throat cut.</p>
-
-<p>“It was the girl’s fault,” said Golda, but Jacob said: “A man should know better than
-to melt when a little girl practises her eyes on him.”</p>
-
-<p>This tragedy relaxed the nervous strain which had been set up in Mendel by his
-troubles. New forces stirred in him which often made him hectic and light-headed. Women
-changed their character for him. They were no longer soothing ministrants, but creatures
-charged with a mysterious, a maddening charm. He trembled at the rustle of their skirts
-and his eyes were held riveted by their movements. He was suffocated by his new curiosity
-about them.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes, in his despair over his painting and the apparently complete disappearance
-of his talent, he would fill in the day in his father’s<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-59">[Pg 59]</a></span> workshop, stretching rabbit-skins on a
-board. Girls and men worked together, busily, quietly, dexterously, for the most part in
-silence, for they were paid by the piece and were unwilling to waste time. There was a
-girl who had just been taken into the workshop to learn the trade. She was small and plump
-and swarthy, but her face was beautiful, the colour of rich old ivory. Her eyes were black
-and golden from a ruddy tinge in her eyelashes. Her lips were full and pouting, and she
-had long blue-black hair, which she was always tossing back over her shoulder. When Mendel
-was there she rarely took her eyes off him, and even when her head was bent he could feel
-that she was watching him.</p>
-
-<p>He waited for her one evening, and with his knees almost knocking together he asked if
-she would come to his studio and let him draw her. With a silly giggle she said she would
-come, and she ran away before he could get out another word.</p>
-
-<p>The next evening he waited in his studio for her, but she did not come. So again the
-next and the next, and it was a whole week before she knocked at the door. He pulled her
-in. Neither could speak a word. At last he stammered out:</p>
-
-<p>“I—I haven’t got my drawing things ready.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t mind,” she said, and she gave a little shiver.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you cold?” he asked, and he touched her neck.</p>
-
-<p>She threw up her head, seemed to fall towards him, and their lips met.</p>
-
-<p>Thrilling and sweet were the hours they spent, lost in the miracle of desire, finding
-themselves again, laughing happily, weeping happily, breaking through into the enchanted
-world, where the few words that either knew had lost their meaning. They were hardly
-conscious of each<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-60">[Pg 60]</a></span>
-other. They knew nothing of each other, and wished to know nothing except the lovely
-mystery they shared. It was some time before he even knew her name, or where she lived, or
-what her people were. She existed for him only in the enchantment she brought into his
-life, in the release from his burden, in the marvellous free life of the body. Royal he
-felt, like a king, like a master, and she was a willing slave. From home she would steal
-good things to eat, and she would sit with shining eyes watching him eat; and then she
-would wait until he had need of her. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Strange, silent, happy hours they
-spent, free together in the dark little room, free as birds in their nest, happy in warm
-contact, utterly quiescent, utterly oblivious. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p>Soon their silence became oppressive to them, but neither could break it, so far beyond
-their years and their childish minds was the experience in which they were joined. When
-the first ecstasy passed and they became conscious and deliberate in their delight, they
-had unhappy moments, to escape from which he began to draw her. Into this work poured a
-strong cool passion altogether new to him, a joy so magnificent that he would forget her
-altogether. He was tyrannical, and kept her so still that she would almost weep from
-fatigue and boredom. But he was not satisfied until he had drawn every line of her, and
-had translated her from the world of the body to the world of vision and the spirit. He
-knew nothing of that. He was only concerned to draw her as he had drawn the ginger-beer
-bottle at the Polytechnic. Certain parts of her body—her little budding breasts and her
-round arms—especially delighted him, and he drew them over and over again. Her head he
-drew twenty times, and he found a shop in the West End where he could sell every one. And
-each time he bought her a little present.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-61">[Pg 61]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She was not satisfied with that. She wanted to display him to her friends. She wanted
-him to take her to music-halls and to join the parade of boys and girls. He refused. That
-would be profanation. He and she had nothing to do with the world. He and she were the
-world. Outside it was only his drawing. He could not see that she was unable to share it.
-Did he not draw her? Did he dream of drawing anything but her? . .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. To go
-from that to restaurants, the lascivious pleasantries of the streets, the garish
-music-halls, was to him unthinkable.</p>
-
-<p>She said he cared more for his drawing than for her, and indeed he would sometimes draw
-for a couple of hours and then kiss her almost absent-mindedly, just as she was going. He
-was so happy and satisfied and could not imagine her being anything less, or that she
-might wish to express in music-halls and “fun” what he expressed in his work.</p>
-
-<p>He felt gloriously confident, and naĂŻvely told his mother how happy he was. Everything
-had come back. He could draw better than ever. He would be a great artist.</p>
-
-<p>Once more he took to painting in the kitchen. The studio was dedicated to the girl,
-Sara, who came to him in spite of her disappointment. He had spoiled her for other
-boys.</p>
-
-<p>He painted all day long in the kitchen, and his life became ordered and regular. He
-went for a walk in the morning, then worked all day long until the workpeople began to
-clatter downstairs, when he would pack up his paint-box and run up to the studio to wait
-for Sara to come tapping softly at his door.</p>
-
-<p>Golda was overjoyed at his new happiness and the budding manhood in him, but she knew
-that this springtime of his youth could not be without a cause. She knew that he was in
-love and was fearful of consequences, and dreaded his being<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-62">[Pg 62]</a></span> fatally entangled. She kept watch and saw
-Sara stealthily leave the house hours after the other workpeople had gone. She told Jacob,
-and Sara was dismissed and forbidden ever to come near the house again.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter105">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-63">[Pg 63]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter105_hdg"><a href="#Chapter105_toc">V<br />
-<span class="chap_title">A TURNING-POINT</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">A<small>T</small> first Mendel hardly noticed the passing of Sara. He
-waited anxiously for her to come, but when she never appeared he went on working, only
-gradually to discover that the first glorious impulse had faded away. However, the habit
-of regular work was strong with him, and he could go on like a carpenter or a mason or any
-other good journeyman. But there was no one to buy what he produced, and his father began
-to talk gloomily and ominously of the workshop.</p>
-
-<p>“Never!” said Mendel. “If I am not a great artist by the time I am twenty-three I will
-come and work. If I have done nothing by the time I am twenty-three I shall know that I am
-no good.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can see no reason,” said Jacob, “why you should not work like any other man and
-paint in your spare time. Issy is a good dancer in his spare time, and Harry is good at
-the boxing. Why should you not paint in your spare time and work like an honest man?”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel turned on his father and rent him.</p>
-
-<p>“You do not know what work is. You work with your hands. Yes. But do you ever work till
-your head swims, and your eyes ache because they can see more inside than they can
-outside? If I cannot paint I shall die. I shall be like a bird that cannot sing, like a
-woman that has no child, like a man that has no strength. I tell you I shall die if I
-cannot paint.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-64">[Pg 64]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, he will die,” said Golda. “He will surely die.”</p>
-
-<p>“He will die of starvation if he goes on painting,” replied Jacob.</p>
-
-<p>“And if you had not been able to sleep you would have died of starvation for all that
-work ever did for you,” cried Golda, convinced that Mendel was speaking the truth.</p>
-
-<p>Shortly before this crisis Mendel had discovered a further aspect of the Christian
-world. A good young man from an Oxford settlement had heard of him and had sought him out.
-This young man’s name was Edward Tufnell. He was the son of a rich Northern manufacturer,
-and he believed that the cultured classes owed something to the masses. He believed there
-must be mute, inglorious Miltons in the slums, and that they only needed fertilization.
-When, therefore, he heard of the poor boy who sat in his mother’s kitchen painting oranges
-and fish and onions, he was excited to bring the prodigy within reach of culture. He made
-him attend lectures on poetry and French classes. These duties gave Mendel a good excuse
-for escaping from home in the evenings, and he attended the classes, but hardly understood
-a word of what was said. He liked and admired Edward Tufnell, who was very nearly what he
-imagined a gentleman to be—generous and kind, and quick to appreciate the human quality of
-any fellow-creature, no matter what his outward aspect might be. Edward Tufnell treated
-Golda exactly as he would have treated an elderly duchess.</p>
-
-<p>To Edward Tufnell, therefore, Mendel bore his difficulty, and Edward took infinite
-pains and at last, through his interest with the Bishop of Stepney, procured him a
-situation in a stained-glass factory, where he was set to trace cartoons of the Virgin
-Mary and S. John the Baptist and other figures of whom he had never heard. But,<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-65">[Pg 65]</a></span> though he had never
-heard of them, yet he understood that they were figures worthy of respect, and it shocked
-him to hear the workmen say: “Billy, chuck us down another Mary,” or “Jack, heave up that
-there J. C. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.” He was acutely miserable. To draw without impulse or delight
-was torture to him, and he could not put pencil to paper without a thrill of eagerness and
-desire, which was immediately baffled when his pencil had to follow out the conventional
-lines of the stained-glass windows. And the draughtsmen with whom he worked were empty,
-foul-mouthed men, who seemed to strive to give the impression that they lived only for the
-mean pleasures of the flesh. They knew nothing, nothing at all, and he hated them.</p>
-
-<p>He was paid five shillings a week, and was told that if he behaved himself, by the time
-he was twenty or twenty-one he would be making thirty shillings a week. Jacob was very
-pleased with this prospect, and told his unhappy son that he would soon settle down to it,
-and he even began to upbraid him for not painting in the evenings. Mendel could not touch
-his brushes. He tried hard to think of himself as an ordinary working boy, and he
-endeavoured to pursue the pleasures of his kind. He went with Harry to boxing matches and
-joined him in the raffish pleasures of the streets, which, however, left him weary and
-disgusted. He had known something truer and finer, and he could not help a little
-despising Harry, who pursued girls as game, and directly they were kindled and moved
-towards him he lost interest in them, and, indeed, was rather horrified by them.</p>
-
-<p>Strange in contrast was Mendel’s relation with Edward Tufnell, who was entirely
-innocent and could see nothing in his protégé but a touching sensitiveness to beauty. The
-urchin with his complete and unoffended knowledge of the life<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-66">[Pg 66]</a></span> of the gutter was hidden from him. Edward
-found, and was rejoiced to find, that the boy was sensitive to intellectual beauty and to
-ideas. He gave him poetry to read—Keats and the odes of Milton—and was very happy to
-explain to him the outlines of Christianity and the difference that the coming of Christ
-had made to the world. He did not aim at making a convert, but only at feeding the boy’s
-appetite for tenderness and kindness and all fair things. Mendel was striving most loyally
-to be resigned to his horrible fate, and the teachings of Christ seemed to fortify his
-endeavour. When, therefore, he asked if he might read the New Testament, Edward lent it to
-him without misgiving.</p>
-
-<p>The result was disastrous. Mendel pored over the book and it seemed to let light into
-his darkness. He read of the conversion of S. Paul and his own illumination was apparently
-no less complete. The notion of holding out the other cheek appealed to him, for he felt
-that the whole world was his enemy. It had insulted him with five shillings a week, and if
-he were meek it would presently add another five. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And then what a prospect
-it opened up of a world where people loved each other and treated each other kindly and
-lived without the rasping anger and suspicion and jealousy that filled his home.</p>
-
-<p>He went to the National Gallery and began to understand the Italians. He would become a
-Christian and paint Madonnas, mothers suckling their children, with kindly saints like
-Edward Tufnell looking on. Yet the new spirituality jarred with his life at home and was
-not strong enough to combat it. That life contained a quality as essential to him as air.
-It stank in his nostrils, but it was the food of his spirit and he could not, though his
-new enthusiasm bade him do it, sentimentalize his relation with his mother. Her relation
-with his father forbade it, and his father<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-67">[Pg 67]</a></span> cast a shadow over the greater life illuminated by the
-figure of Christ. Yet because of the pictures he could not abandon the struggle, and he
-tried to find support by proselytizing Harry. That roisterer had begun to find his life
-very unsatisfying, and he gulped down the new idea simply because it was new. He got drunk
-on it, refused to go to the synagogue, and performed a number of acts that he thought
-Christian, as wasting his money on useless and hideous presents for his mother and
-sisters. Also he took a delight in talking of the Messiah, and ascribed all the
-misfortunes of the family to its adherence to an exploded faith.</p>
-
-<p>Jacob was furious. This soft Christian nonsense was revolting to him.</p>
-
-<p>“Say another word,” he shouted, “say another word and I turn you out of the house.
-Jeshua! I will tell you. In America it has been proved, absolutely proved in a court of
-law, that this Jeshua was nothing better than a pimp. It was proved by a very learned
-Rabbi before a Christian judge, and when the judge saw that it was proved he broke down
-and wept like a woman.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve only your word for it,” said Harry, already rather dashed.</p>
-
-<p>“I tell you I’ve seen it in print. If you like I will send for the book to
-America.”</p>
-
-<p>Harry held his peace. That settled it for him, and even Mendel was shaken by the storm
-his Christian inclinations had let loose.</p>
-
-<p>“The Christians are liars,” said Jacob. “Every one of them is a liar, and they eat
-filth.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a passion of belief in his father which Mendel could not but honour, and that
-other faith, so far as he knew, was held but mildly. It was charming in its results, but
-its spirit was unsatisfying to him who had been bred on stronger fare. All the same, his
-attitude towards his father’s authority was changed. His simple<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-68">[Pg 68]</a></span> acceptance was shaken, and he was in
-revolt against the repression of his dearest desires enjoined by it. His tongue was loosed
-and he began to talk enthusiastically to Edward Tufnell about his ambitions.</p>
-
-<p>“I beat them all at the school,” he used to say, “and I would never let anybody beat
-me. I can see more clearly than anybody. I can see colour where they can see none, and
-shadows where they can see none. And when I have painted them, then they can see
-them.”</p>
-
-<p>He was entirely unconscious in his egoism, and Edward was so generous a creature that
-he was not shocked or offended by it. He was a Quaker and as simple in his faith as a
-peasant, and he was young enough to know how difficult it was for the boy to expose his
-thoughts. After he had listened to his outpourings he would lead the boy on to talk of his
-experiences at the stained-glass factory. Mendel had a wonderful gift of vivid narration.
-Everything was so real to him, he had no reason to respect anything in the outside world
-unless it compelled the homage of his instinct, and in his broken Cockney English he could
-give the most dramatic descriptions of everything he saw and did. When he was engaged upon
-such tales, helping them out with wonderful mimicry, he had no shyness and laid bare his
-feelings as though they were also a part of the external scene.</p>
-
-<p>Edward knew nothing at all about painting, but he could respond to quality in a human
-being, and he recognized that here was no ordinary boy. His first impulse was to rescue
-him from his surroundings, support him, send him to school. But what a Hell that would be
-for the sensitive foreigner brought face to face with the ruthless force of an ancient
-tradition! Edward himself had suffered enough from being such an oddity as a Quaker, but
-to send this Jew, who had learned nothing and had none but his natural<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-69">[Pg 69]</a></span> manners, to a Public
-School would be an act of cruelty. Besides, the boy would not hear of being parted from
-his mother, whom he was never tired of praising. He told Edward quite solemnly that his
-mother had said things far more beautiful than anything in Keats or Milton and that no
-book could ever have held anything more moving than her descriptions of the life at home
-in Austria, with the Jews in their gaberdines with their long curls hanging by their ears,
-and the foolish peasants in their bright clothes, and the splendid officers who clapped
-children into prison if they splashed their great shining boots with mud. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-As he listened Edward felt more and more convinced that it was his duty not to allow this
-rich nature to be swallowed up in the grey squalor of the slums. He had begun his
-philanthropic work believing that Oxford had much to give to the poor, and he had come in
-time to realize that the world of which Oxford was the romantic symbol stood sorely in
-need of much that the poor had to give. Mendel confirmed and strengthened an impression
-which had for some time been disturbing Edward’s peace of mind. He felt that if he could
-help the boy he would be translating his perception into action.</p>
-
-<p>He discussed the matter with his friends, who smiled at his solemnity. “Dear old
-Edward” was always a joke to them, so seriously did he take the problems with which he was
-faced. They said that, of course, if the boy was a genius he would find his way out and
-would be all the greater for the struggle. Edward protested that young talent was easily
-snuffed out, but again they laughed and said that if it were so then it was no great loss.
-Edward then said that the boy had a fine nature which might easily be crippled by evil
-circumstances. That they refused to believe either, and Edward made no progress until he
-told his tale to a rich young Jew who had lately<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-70">[Pg 70]</a></span> come to the settlement. This young man, Maurice Birnbaum,
-was at once fired. His father was a member of a committee for aiding young Jews of talent.
-With Edward he swooped down on the KĂĽhlers in his motor-car, and Golda showed him all her
-son’s work, from the watch he drew at the age of three to a study of Sara’s breasts.
-Birnbaum knew no Yiddish, and Golda scorned a Jew who could not speak the language of his
-race. He was also extremely gauche and talked to her rather in the manner of a
-parliamentary candidate canvassing for votes. He patronized her and told her that her son
-had talent, but that she must not expect Fortune to wait on him immediately. “A Christian
-Jew!” said Golda scornfully when he had gone. “He stinks of money and shell-fish. If you
-are going to eat pork, eat till the grease runs down your chin.” And she had a sudden
-horror that Mendel might grow like that, all flesh and withered, uneasy spirit. She felt
-inclined to destroy all the pictures, and when Mendel came in she told him of her visitor
-and of her alarm, and he reassured her, saying: “What I am I will always be, for without
-you I am nothing. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.” It was only from Mendel that Golda had such sayings. No
-one else ever acknowledged in words her quality or her power for sweetness in their lives,
-and she was terrified at the thought of his going. The big motor-car would come and take
-him and all his pictures away, she imagined, and he would be swept up into glittering
-circles of which alone he was worthy, though they were quite unworthy of him. And some
-rich woman would be enraptured with him, and she would take him to her arms and her bed,
-and he would be lost for ever. Mendel told her it meant nothing, that such people forgot
-those who were poor and never really helped them, because they could never know what it
-was like to need help: but he had a premonition that he had done with the stained-glass
-factory. He<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-71">[Pg 71]</a></span> took
-up his brushes again and cleaned them, and chattered gaily of the things he would do when
-the motor-car fetched him and he was asked to paint the portraits of lords and
-millionaires.</p>
-
-<p>Edward inquired further of Birnbaum, and he brought Mendel a paper to fill up, stating
-his age, circumstances, parentage, etc., etc. He was to send this, with a letter, to Sir
-Julius Fleischmann, who was a famous financier and connoisseur. Edward drafted a letter,
-but Mendel found it servile, and wrote as follows:—</p>
-
-<blockquote class="letter">
-<p class="greeting">D<small>EAR</small> S<small>IR</small>,—</p>
-
-<p class="letter_body">I send you my paper filled up. My father is a poor man and I wish
-to be a painter. I have won prizes at a school, but I cannot make my living by my art. I
-am not asking for charity. I am only asking that my work shall be judged. If it is good
-painting, then let me paint. Give me my opportunity, please. If it is bad painting, then
-it is no great matter, and I will go on until I can paint well, and then I will show you
-my work again. If money is given me I will pay every penny of it back when I am as
-successful as I shall be. I am sending three drawings and two paintings.</p>
-
-<p class="closing">Yours faithfully,</p>
-
-<p class="signature">M<small>ENDEL</small> K<small>ĂśHLER</small>.</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p>This letter was sent enclosed in a parcel made up with trembling hands. He knew that
-the great moment had come, that at last he had attained the desired contact with the
-outside world. He was wildly elated, and had fantastic and absurd visions of Sir Julius
-himself driving down at once in his motor-car, knocking at the door and saying: “Does Mr.
-Mendel Kühler live here?” Then he would enter and embrace him and cry: “You are a great
-artist.” And he would turn to Golda and say: “You are the mother of a great artist. You
-shall no longer live in poverty.” And he would sit down and write a cheque for a hundred
-pounds. The story swelled and swelled like a balloon. It rose and soared aloft with
-Mendel<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-72">[Pg 72]</a></span> clinging
-desperately to it. But every now and then it came swooping down to earth again, and then
-Mendel would imagine his drawings and pictures being sent back without a word. Elated or
-despondent, he passed through life in a dream, and was hardly conscious of his
-surroundings either at the factory or at home.</p>
-
-<p>This went on for weeks, during which he composed letters of savage insult to Sir
-Julius, to Birnbaum, and even to Edward Tufnell, telling them that he needed no help, that
-he was a Jewish artist and would stay among the Jews, the real Jews, those who kept
-themselves to themselves and to the faith of their fathers, and had no truck with the
-light and frivolous world outside. But he tore all these letters up, for he knew that the
-answer he desired would come.</p>
-
-<p>At last one morning there was a note for him. The secretary of the committee wrote
-asking him to take more specimens of his work to Mr. Edgar Froitzheim, the famous artist,
-at his studio in Hampstead. Mendel had never heard of Froitzheim, but it seemed to him an
-enormous step towards fame to be going to see a real artist in a real studio. He felt
-happier, too, at having this intermediary appointed, for he knew that artists always knew
-each other by instinct and helped each other for the sake of the work they loved.</p>
-
-<p>Golda made him put on his best clothes, and washed him and brushed his hair. He packed
-up half a dozen drawings and his picture of the apples, which had been too precious to
-trust to the post or to Sir Julius, and he set out for Hampstead. To cool his excitement
-he walked across the Heath, remembering vividly the day when he had first seen it, and
-again it seemed to him a place of freedom and surpassing loveliness, the sweet,
-comfortable quality of the grass only accentuated by the bare patches of ground, which
-were here and there of an amazing colour, purple and brown. A rain-cloud<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-73">[Pg 73]</a></span> came up on the gusty
-wind and shed its slanting shower, and its shadow fell on the rounding slopes. He became
-aware of the form of the Heath beneath its verdure and colour. Between himself and the
-scene he felt an intimacy, as though he had known it always and would always know it. It
-amused him and filled him with a pleasant glee, which, when it passed, left him shy for
-the encounter with the famous Froitzheim, the arbiter of his immediate fortunes.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter106">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-74">[Pg 74]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter106_hdg"><a href="#Chapter106_toc">VI<br />
-<span class="chap_title">EDGAR FROITZHEIM AND OTHERS</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">V<small>ERY</small> bright was the brass on Mr. Froitzheim’s front
-door, very bright the face of the smiling maid who opened it. Mendel blushed and stammered
-inaudibly.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you come in?” said the maid, “and I will ask Mr. Froitzheim.”</p>
-
-<p>She left Mendel in the hall and disappeared. This was a very large house, marvellously
-clean and light and airy. The wallpaper and the woodwork were white. On the stairs was a
-brilliant blue carpet. Through the window at the end of the passage were seen trees and a
-vast panorama of London—roofs, chimneys, steeples, domes—under a shifting pall of blue
-smoke.</p>
-
-<p>The maid went into the studio and told Mr. Froitzheim that a boy was waiting for him—a
-boy who looked like an Italian. She thought he might be selling images, and he had a
-package under his arm. Mr. Froitzheim told her to bring the visitor in. He was arranging
-draperies, Persian and Indian coats, yellow and red and blue, and he did not look up when
-Mendel was shown in. He was a little dark Jew, neat and dapper in figure and very sprucely
-dressed, but so Oriental that he looked out of place in Western clothes. But that
-impression was soon lost in Mendel’s awe of the studio. Here was a place where real
-pictures were painted. There were easels, a table full of paints, an etching plant, a
-model’s throne, a lay figure, pictures on the walls, stacks of pictures behind the door,
-and<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-75">[Pg 75]</a></span> the little man
-standing there, fingering the silks, was a real artist.</p>
-
-<p>“Hullo, boy!” said Mr. Froitzheim.</p>
-
-<p>“M-Mendel Kühler.”</p>
-
-<p>“Something to show me, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ye-yes. Pictures.”</p>
-
-<p>“What did you say your name was?”</p>
-
-<p>“Kühler. Mendel Kühler.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes. I remember. You know Maurice Birnbaum?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“Eh? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. What do you think of these? Lovely, eh? Bought them in India. You
-should go there. You don’t know what sunlight is until you’ve been there—to the East. Ah,
-the East! Fills you with sunlight, opens your eyes to colour. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Persian
-prints! What do you think of these?”</p>
-
-<p>He showed Mendel a whole series of exquisite things which moved him so profoundly that
-he forgot altogether why he had come and began to stammer out his rapture, a condition of
-delight to which Mr. Froitzheim was so unaccustomed that he stepped back and stared at his
-visitor. There was a glow in the boy’s face which gave it a seraphic expression. Mr.
-Froitzheim tiptoed to the door and called, “Edith! Edith!” And his wife came rustling in.
-She was a thin little woman with a friendly smile and an air of being only too amiable for
-a world that needed sadly little of the kindness with which she was bursting. They stood
-by the door and talked in whispers, and Mendel was brought back to earth by hearing her
-say, “Poor child!” He knew she meant himself, and his inclination was to fly from the
-room, but they barred the door. She came undulating towards him, and she seemed to him
-terrifyingly beautiful, the most lovely lady he had ever seen. He thought Mr. Froitzheim
-must be a very wonderful artist to have such a studio, such a house, and such a woman to
-live with him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-76">[Pg 76]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Froitzheim made him sit down and drew his attention to a bowl of flowers—tulips
-and daffodils. Mendel touched them with his fingers, lovingly caressed the fleshy petals
-of a tulip. Mrs. Froitzheim went over to her husband and whispered to him, who said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Yes. It is true. He responds to beauty like a flower to the sun.”</p>
-
-<p>In the centre of the studio was a large picture nearly finished of three children and a
-rocking-horse, cleverly and realistically painted. Mendel looked at it enviously, with a
-sinking in the pit of his stomach, partly because he could not like it, and partly because
-he felt how impossible it would be for him to cover so vast a canvas.</p>
-
-<p>“Like it?” said Mr. Froitzheim, wheeling it about to catch the best light.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Mendel, horrified at his own insincerity and unhappy at the vague notion
-possessing him that the picture was too large for him, whose notion of art was
-concentration upon an object until by some inexplicable process it had yielded up its
-beauty in paint. Composing and making pictures he could not understand.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, well,” said Mr. Froitzheim. “So you want to be an artist? Art, as Michael Angelo
-said, is a music and mystery that very few are privileged to understand. I have been asked
-by the committee to give my opinion, and I feel that it is a serious responsibility. It is
-no light thing to advise a young man to take up an artistic career.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Edgar, that is very true,” said his wife, with a wide reassuring smile at Mendel,
-whom she thought a very charming, very touching little figure, standing there drinking in
-the words as they fell from Edgar’s lips.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Froitzheim produced a pair of spectacles and balanced them on his nose.</p>
-
-<p>“It is a serious thing, not only for the sake of<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-77">[Pg 77]</a></span> the young man but also for Art’s sake. The
-sense of beauty is a dangerous possession. It is like a razor, safe enough when it is
-sharp, injurious when it is blunted. Your future, it seems, depends upon my word. I am to
-say whether I think your work promising enough to justify your being sent to a school. I
-asked you to bring more of your work to confirm the impression made by what I have already
-seen.”</p>
-
-<p>He spoke in an alert, sibilant voice so quickly that his words whirled through Mendel’s
-mind and conveyed very little meaning. Only the words “a music and mystery” lingered and
-grew. They were such lovely words, and expressed for him something very living in his
-experience, something that lay, as he would have said, below his heart. He loosened the
-string of his untidy parcel and took out the picture of the apples. There were music and
-mystery in it, and he held it very lovingly as he offered it to Mrs. Froitzheim, much as
-she had just offered him the bowl of flowers.</p>
-
-<p>“Very well painted indeed,” said she, and Mendel winced. He turned to the artist as to
-an equal, expecting not so much praise as recognition. Mr. Froitzheim took the picture
-from him and went near the window. He became more solemn than ever.</p>
-
-<p>“This is much better than the drawings. Have you always painted still-life?”</p>
-
-<p>“I painted what there was at home.”</p>
-
-<p>“Have you studied the still-life in the galleries? Do you know Fantin-Latour’s
-work?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Mendel blankly.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course, there is no doubt that you must go on.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel had never had any doubt of it, and he began to feel more at his ease. That was
-settled then. There would be no more factory for him. He was to be an artist, a great
-artist. He knew that Mr. Froitzheim was more excited than he let<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-78">[Pg 78]</a></span> himself appear. The apples could no more
-be denied than the sun outside or the flowers on the table. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He looked with
-more interest at Mr. Froitzheim’s picture. It amused him, much as the drawings in the
-illustrated papers amused him, and he was pleased with the quality of the paint. He was
-still alarmed by the hugeness of it. His eyes could not focus it, nor could his mind grasp
-the conception.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Froitzheim asked him to stay to tea and encouraged him to talk, and he told her in
-his vivid childish way about Golda and Issy and Harry and Leah and Lotte. She found him
-delightfully romantic and told him that he must not be afraid to come again, and that they
-would be only too glad to help him. Mr. Froitzheim said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I will write to the committee. There is only one school in London, the Detmold. You
-should begin there next term, six weeks from now. Don’t be afraid, work hard, and we will
-make an artist of you. In time to come we shall be proud of you. I will write to your
-mother, and one of these days I will give myself the pleasure of calling on her.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. You must come and see me again, and I will take you to see pictures.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was in too much of a whirl to remember to say “Thank you.” He had an enormous
-reverence for Mr. Froitzheim as a real artist, but as a man he instinctively distrusted
-him. It takes a Jew to catch a Jew, and Mendel scented in Mr. Froitzheim the Jew turned
-Englishman and prosperous gentleman. And in his childish confidence he was aware of
-uneasiness in his host, but of course Mr. Froitzheim could easily bear down that
-impression, though he could not obliterate it. He was an advanced artist and was just
-settling down after an audacious youth. He had been one of a band of pioneers who had
-defied the Royal Academy, and he had reached the awkward age in a pioneer’s life when he
-is forced to realize<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-79">[Pg
-79]</a></span> that there are people younger than himself. He believed in his “movement,”
-and wished it to continue on the lines laid down by himself and his friends. To achieve
-this he deemed it his business to be an influence among the young people and to see that
-they were properly shepherded into the Detmold, there to learn the gospel according to S.
-Ingres. He had suffered so much from being a Jew, had been tortured with doubts as to
-whether he were not a mere calculating fantastic, and here in this boy’s work he had found
-a quality which took his mind back to his own early enthusiasm. That seemed so long ago
-that he was shocked and unhappy, and hid his feelings behind the solemnity which he had
-developed to overawe the easy, comfortable, and well-mannered Englishmen among whom he
-worked for the cause of art.</p>
-
-<p>He was the first self-deceiver Mendel had met, and the encounter disturbed him greatly
-and depressed him not a little, so that he was rather overawed than elated by the prospect
-in front of him. He felt strangely flung back upon himself, and that this help given to
-him was not really help. He was still, as always, utterly alone with his obscure desperate
-purpose for sole companion. Nobody knew about that purpose, since he could never define it
-except in his work, and that to other people was simply something to be looked at with
-pleasure or indifference, as it happened. He used to try and explain it to his mother, and
-she used to nod her head and say: “Yes. Yes. I understand. That is God. He is behind
-everybody, though it is given to few to know it. It is given to you, and God has chosen
-you, as He chose Samuel. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Yes. Yes. God has chosen you.” And he found it a
-relief sometimes to think that God had chosen him, though he was disturbed to find Golda
-much less moved by that idea than by the letter which Mr. Froitzheim<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-80">[Pg 80]</a></span> wrote to her, in which
-he said that her son had a very rare talent, a very beautiful nature, and that a day would
-come when she would be proud of his fame.</p>
-
-<p>Yet there were unhappy days of waiting. Jacob would not hear of his leaving the factory
-until everything was settled, and when Mendel told the foreman he was probably going to
-leave to be an artist, that worthy drew the most horrible picture of the artist’s life as
-a mixture of debauchery and starvation, and told a story of a friend of his, a marvellous
-sculptor, who had come down to carving urns for graves—all through the drink and the
-models; much better, he said, to stick to a certain income and the saints.</p>
-
-<p>At last Maurice Birnbaum came in his motor-car. Everything was settled. The fees at the
-Detmold would be paid as long as the reports were satisfactory, and Mendel would be
-allowed five shillings a week pocket-money, but he must be well-behaved and clean, and he
-must read good literature and learn to write good English. “I will see to that,” said
-Maurice. “I am to take him now with some of his work to see Sir Julius. His fortune is
-made, Mrs. Kühler. Isn’t it wonderful? He is a genius. He has the world at his feet.
-Everything is open to him. I have been to Oxford, Mrs. KĂĽhler, but I shall never have
-anything like the opportunities that he will have. It is marvellous to think of his
-drawing like that in your kitchen.” Maurice was really excited. His heart was as full of
-kindness as a honeycomb of honey, but he had no tact. His words fell on Golda and Mendel
-like hailstones. They nipped and stung and chilled. Golda looked at Mendel, he at her, and
-they stood ashamed. “We must hurry,” said Maurice. “Sir Julius must not be kept waiting.
-He is a stickler for punctuality.”</p>
-
-<p>As a matter of fact, Maurice only knew Sir Julius officially. His family had never
-been<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-81">[Pg 81]</a></span> admitted to
-the society in which Sir Julius was a power and a light. The entrance to the house of the
-millionaire was a far greater event to him than it was to Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>The splendid motor-car rolled through the wonderful crowded streets, Maurice fussing
-and telling Mendel to take care his parcel did not scratch the paint, and swung up past
-the Polytechnic into the desolation of Portland Place. At a corner house they stopped. The
-double door was swung open by two powdered footmen, and by the inner door stood a bald,
-rubicund butler. Maurice gave his name, told Mendel to wait, and followed the butler up a
-magnificent marble staircase with an ormolu balustrade. Mendel was left standing with his
-parcel, while one of the footmen mounted guard over him. He stood there for a long time,
-still ashamed, bewildered, smelling money, money, money, until he reeled. It made him
-think of Mr. Kuit, who alone of his acquaintance could have been at his ease in such
-splendour. He felt beggarly, but he was stiffened in his pride.</p>
-
-<p>The butler appeared presently and conducted him upstairs to a vast apartment all
-crystal and cloth of gold. In the far corner sat a group of people, among whom, in his
-confusion, Mendel could only distinguish Maurice Birnbaum and a small, wrinkled, bald old
-man with a beard, whose eyes were quick and black, peering out from under the yellow
-skull, peering out and taking nothing in. For the purposes of taking in his nose seemed
-more than sufficient. It was like a beak, like an inverted scoop. And yet his features
-were not so very different from those of the old men at home whom Mendel reverenced. There
-was a strange dignity in them, yet not a trace of the fine quality of the old faces he
-loved that looked so sorrowfully out on the world, and through their eyes and through
-every line seemed to absorb from the world all its suffering, all its vileness, and to
-transmute<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-82">[Pg 82]</a></span> it into
-strong human beauty. There were some women present, but they made no impression whatever
-on Mendel, who was entirely occupied with Sir Julius and with resisting the feeling of
-helplessness with which he was inspired in his presence. He heard Maurice Birnbaum talking
-about him, describing his life, his mother’s kitchen, the street where he lived, and then
-he was told to exhibit his pictures. A footman appeared and put out a chair for him, and
-on this, one after another, he placed his drawings and pictures. Not a word was said. Even
-the apples were received in silence. Sir Julius gave a grunt and began to talk to one of
-the women. Maurice gave Mendel to understand that the interview was over, and the poor boy
-was conducted downstairs by the butler. He had not a penny in his pocket and had to walk
-all the way home with his parcel, which his arms were hardly long enough to hold.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter107">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-83">[Pg 83]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter107_hdg"><a href="#Chapter107_toc">VII<br />
-<span class="chap_title">THE DETMOLD</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">F<small>LUNG</small> into the art school, he was like a leggy colt in
-a new field, very shy of it at first, of the trees in the hedges, of the shadows cast by
-the trees. This place was very different from the Polytechnic. There were fewer old
-ladies, and more boys of his own age. The teachers were Professors, and the pupils held
-them in awe and respect. There were real models in the life-class, male and female, and
-the students, male and female, worked together. No ginger-beer bottles here, where art was
-a practical business. The school existed for the purpose of teaching the craft of making
-pictures, and its law was that the basis of the mystery was drawing.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel’s first attitude towards the other students was that he was there to beat them
-all. He would swell with eagerness and enthusiasm, and tell himself that he had something
-that they all lacked. He would watch their movements, their heads bending over their work,
-their hands scratching away at the paper, and he could see that they had none of them the
-vigour that was in himself. And by way of showing how much stronger he was he would use
-his pencil almost as though it were a chisel and his paper a block of stone out of which
-he was to carve the likeness of the model. He was rudely taken down when the Professor
-stood and stared with his melancholy eyes at his production and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Is that the best you can do?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-84">[Pg 84]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why do it?”</p>
-
-<p>This was a stock phrase of the Professor’s, but Mendel did not know that, and he was
-ashamed and outraged when the class tittered.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said the Professor. “I don’t know what that is. It certainly isn’t drawing.” And
-with his pencil he made a lovely easy sketch of the model, alongside Mendel’s black,
-forbidding scrawl. It was a masterly thing and it baffled him, and humiliated him because
-the Professor moved on to the next pupil without another word. Not another line could
-Mendel draw that day. He sat staring at the Professor’s sketch and at his own drawing,
-which, while he had been doing it, had meant so much to him, and he still preferred his
-own. The Professor’s drawing had no meaning for him. He could not understand it, except
-that it was accurate. That he could see, but then his own was accurate too, and true to
-what he had seen. The light gave the model a distorted shoulder, and he had laboured to
-render that distortion, which the Professor had either ignored or had corrected.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel cut out the Professor’s drawing and took it home and copied it over and over
-again, but still he could not understand it. He was in despair and told Golda he would
-never learn.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall never learn to draw, and the Christian kops will all beat me,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“But they sent you to the school because you can draw. Didn’t Mr. Froitzheim say that
-you could draw!”</p>
-
-<p>“The Professor looks at me with his gloomy face, like an undertaker asking for the
-body, and he says: â€I mean to say, that isn’t drawing. It isn’t impressionism. I don’t
-know what it is.’”</p>
-
-<p>“It can’t be a very good school,” said Golda.</p>
-
-<p>“But it is. It is the only school. All the best painters have been there, and Mr.
-Froitzheim sent<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-85">[Pg 85]</a></span>
-his own brother to it. The Professor says I shall never paint a picture if I don’t learn
-to draw, and I can’t do it, I can’t do it!”</p>
-
-<p>To console himself he painted hard every evening and regarded the Detmold entirely as a
-place to which his duty condemned him—a place where he had to learn this strange wizardry
-called drawing, which he did not understand. He went there every day and never spoke to a
-soul, because he realized that his speech was different from that of the others, and he
-would not open his mouth until he could speak without betraying himself. He listened
-carefully to their pronunciation and intonation, and practised to himself in bed and as he
-walked through the streets.</p>
-
-<p>So woeful were his attempts to emulate the Detmold style of drawing, that at last the
-Professor asked him if he was doing any work at home. To this Mendel replied eagerly that
-he was painting a portrait of his mother.</p>
-
-<p>“Hum,” said the Professor. “May I see it?”</p>
-
-<p>So Mendel brought the picture, and the Professor said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I mean to say, young man, that it wouldn’t be a bad thing if you gave up work a
-little. I don’t want to have to send in a bad report, but what can I do? There’s something
-in you, plenty of grit and all that, but you’re young, and, I mean to say, you’re here to
-learn what we can teach you. When we’ve done with you, you can go your own way and be
-hanged to you. If you want to smudge about with paint and fake what you can’t draw,
-there’s the Academy.”</p>
-
-<p>At this awful suggestion Mendel shuddered. He was imbued enough with the Detmold
-tradition to regard the Academy as Limbo.</p>
-
-<p>He gave up painting at home, and hurled himself desperately at the task of producing a
-drawing that should satisfy the Professor. Towards the end of his first term he succeeded,
-and had<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-86">[Pg 86]</a></span> his reward
-in words of praise in front of the class.</p>
-
-<p>The Professor had meanwhile taken one of the pupils aside and asked him not to leave
-the poor little devil so utterly alone. “After all,” he said, “the school doesn’t exist
-only for drawing. It has its social side as well, and I don’t like to see any one
-cold-shouldered unless he deserves it. I mean to say, you other fellows have advantages
-which don’t necessarily entitle you to mop up all the good things and leave none for your
-fellow-creatures.”</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell, the pupil, took his homily awkwardly enough, but promised that he would do
-what he could. He seized his opportunity one day when Mendel at lunch had horrified the
-company by picking up a chicken bone and tearing at it with his teeth. Mitchell took him
-aside and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I say, Kühler, old man, you’ll excuse my mentioning it, you know, but it isn’t done. I
-mean, we eat our food with forks.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel knew what was meant, for at lunch he had been conscious of horrified eyes
-staring at him and had wished the floor would open and swallow him up. He muttered
-incoherent words of thanks and wanted to rush away, but Mitchell caught him by the arm and
-said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I say, we artists must hang together. There aren’t many of this crowd who will come to
-anything, and the Pro thinks no end of you. Won’t you come along and have tea with me and
-some of the other fellows?”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel went with him, delighting in the young man’s easy, condescending Public School
-manner and pleasant, crisp voice, in which he spoke with an exaggerated emphasis.</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd!” he said. “It makes me sick to see all the fools and the women wasting their
-time there, scratching away, while those of us who have any talent and could learn
-anything are left to flounder along as best we may. Do you smoke?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-87">[Pg 87]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Mendel had never smoked, but he did not like to refuse. He took a cigarette, which very
-soon made him feel sick and giddy. He lurched along with Mitchell until they came to a
-tea-shop, where they found two other young men whose faces were familiar.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve brought Kühler,” said Mitchell. “He’s a genius. This is Weldon, who is also a
-genius, and Kessler, who can’t paint for nuts, and I’m a blame fool, though it’s not my
-fault. My father’s a great man. Gawd! what can you do when your own father takes the shine
-out of you at every turn?”</p>
-
-<p>They began to talk of pictures and of one Calthrop, who was apparently the greatest
-painter the world had ever seen and a product of the Detmold.</p>
-
-<p>“Sells everything he puts his name to,” said Kessler.</p>
-
-<p>“What a man!” said Weldon. “Goes his own way, absolutely believing in his art. If they
-like it, well and good. If they don’t like it, let ’em lump it. He’s as often drunk as
-not, and as for women .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;!”</p>
-
-<p>Weldon and Kessler deserted pictures for women. Mitchell grew more and more glum, while
-Mendel was still feeling the effects of the cigarette too strongly to be able to take in a
-word.</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd!” said Mitchell. “There they go, talking away, absolutely incapable of keeping
-anything clear of women. I can’t stand it.”</p>
-
-<p>He dragged Mendel away, leaving his friends to pay the bill; and, as they walked, he
-explained that he was in love, and could not stand all that bawdy rubbish, and he
-elaborated a theory that an artist needed to be in love to keep himself alive to the
-sanctity of the human body, familiarity with which was apt to breed contempt or an
-excessive curiosity. Mendel said that he also had been in love, and he gave a vivid
-account of his raptures with Sara.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-88">[Pg 88]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“My God!” cried Mitchell; “you don’t mean to say that she came to you—a girl like
-that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Mendel; “I was never so happy.”</p>
-
-<p>“But, I say, weren’t you afraid?”</p>
-
-<p>“She was very beautiful.”</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell pondered this for a long time. He seemed to be profoundly shaken. At last he
-said:—</p>
-
-<p>“But with a girl you <i>loved?</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“I loved her when she was there.”</p>
-
-<p>“But when she wasn’t there?”</p>
-
-<p>“I was busy painting.”</p>
-
-<p>“I say, you are a corker! If it were Weldon or Kessler I should say you were
-lying.”</p>
-
-<p>“I do not lie,” replied Mendel with some heat. “It may have been wrong, but it was
-good, and I was happier after it. I think I should have gone mad without it, for
-everything had disappeared—everything—everything; and without painting you do not
-understand how terrible and empty life is to me. I have nothing, you see. I am poor, and
-my father and mother will always be poor. Their life is hard and beastly, but they do not
-complain, and I should not complain if I did not have this other thing that I must
-do.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’m jolly glad to know you,” said Mitchell. “I’m not much of a fellow, but I’d
-like you to know my people. My father’s a great man. He’ll stir you up. And you must come
-along with me and Weldon and Kessler and see life while you’re young. Good-bye.”</p>
-
-<p>He shook hands vigorously with Mendel and strode off with his long, raking stride,
-while Mendel stood glowing with the happiness of having found a friend, some one to whom
-he could talk almost as he talked to Golda: a fine young Englishman, pink and oozing
-robustious health, ease, refinement, and comfort. He thought with a devoted tenderness of
-Mitchell’s rather absurd round face, with its tip-tilted nose and blinking eyes, its<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-89">[Pg 89]</a></span> little rosebud of a
-mouth and plump round chin, on which there was hardly a trace of a beard. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-“My friend!” thought Mendel, “my friend!” And he gave a leap of joy. It meant for him the
-end of his loneliness. No longer was he to be the poor, isolated Yiddisher, but he was to
-move and have his being with these fine young men who were the leading spirits of the
-school, the guardians of the tradition bequeathed to it by the great Calthrop.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh! he would learn their way of drawing, he would do it better than any of
-them. He would be gay with them and wild and merry and young. And all the while secretly
-he would be working and working, following up that inner purpose until one day he appeared
-with a picture so wonderful that the Professor would say, like Mr. Sivwright, that he had
-nothing more to learn. And because of his wonderful work, everybody would forget that he
-was a Jew, and he would move freely and easily in that wonderful England which he had
-begun to perceive behind the fresh young men like Mitchell and the cool, pretty girls at
-the school. That England was their inheritance and they seemed hardly aware of it. He
-would win it by work and by dint of the power that was in him.</p>
-
-<p>Of the girls at the school he was afraid. He blushed and trembled when any one of them
-spoke to him, and he never noticed them enough to distinguish one from another, so that
-they existed only as a vague nuisance and a menace to his happiness. Before Mitchell he
-was prostrate. He bewildered and confounded that young man with his outpourings, both by
-word of mouth and by letter. He had absolutely no reserve, and poured out his thoughts and
-feelings, his experiences, and Mitchell at last took up a protective attitude towards him
-and defended him from the detestation which he aroused in the majority of his
-fellow-students. At the same time Mitchell<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-90">[Pg 90]</a></span> often felt that of the two he was the greater child, and
-he would look back upon the years he had spent at school in a rueful and puzzled state of
-mind, half realizing that he had been shoved aside while the stream of life went on, and
-that now he had to fight his way back into it. While Mendel had been wrestling and
-struggling, he had been put away in cotton-wool, every difficulty that had cropped up had
-been met, every deep desire had found its outlet in convention. And now that he had set
-out to be an artist, here was this Jew with years of hard work behind him, and such a
-familiarity with his medium that he could do more or less as he liked without being held
-up by shyness or awkwardness. And it was the same in life. Mendel was abashed by nothing,
-was ashamed of nothing. Life had many faces. He was prepared to regard them all, and to
-fit his conduct to every one of them. He was critical, not because he wished to reject
-anything, but because he must know the nature of everything before he accepted it. He
-hated and loved simply and passionately, and if he felt no emotion he never disguised the
-fact. Whereas Mitchell and the others were so eager to feel the emotions which their
-upbringing had denied that they leaped before they looked and fabricated what they did not
-feel. Mendel learned from them that life could be pleasant, and they became aware that
-there were regions of life beyond the fringes of pleasantness. They softened him and he
-hardened them. They were always together, Mendel, Mitchell, Weldon and Kessler, working
-steadily enough, but out of working hours kicking up their heels and stampeding through
-the pleasures of London. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Calthrop was the divinity they served. He was a
-man of genius and had made the Detmold famous. Those, therefore, who came after him at the
-school must support him in everything. That was Mitchell’s<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-91">[Pg 91]</a></span> contention, who was by now in full swing
-of revolt against his Public School training, and in his adoration Mendel followed him,
-and the others were dragged in their train. Calthrop dressed extravagantly: so did the
-four. Calthrop smashed furniture: so did the four. And as Calthrop drank, embraced women,
-and sometimes painted outrageously, the four did all these things.</p>
-
-<p>To Mendel it was Life—something new, rich, splendid, and thrilling. He had lived so
-long cramped over his work that it was almost agony to him to move in this swift stream of
-incessant excitement. There was no spirit of revolt in him. He could shed some of the
-outward forms of his religion, as to Golda’s great distress he did, but against its spirit
-he could not rebel. That he carried with him everywhere: the bare stubborn faith in man,
-ground down by life and living in sorrow all his days. Happy he was not, nor did he expect
-to be so. He might be happy one day, but he would be miserable the next. Life in him was
-not greatly concerned with either, but only to have both happiness and misery in full
-measure. His deepest feelings arose out of his work, the first condition of his existence;
-they arose out of it and sank back into it again. His work was the visible and tangible
-form of his being, which he hated and loved as it approached or receded from the terrible
-power that was both beautiful and ugly, and yet something transcending either.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And away there in London was the Christian world of shows. What he was
-seeking lay beyond that, and not in the dark Jewishness of his home. There lay the spirit,
-but the outward and visible form was to be sought yonder, where the lights flared and the
-women smiled at themselves in mirrors. He hurled himself into the shows of the Christian
-world in a blind desire to break through them, but always he was flung back, bruised,
-aching, and weary.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-92">[Pg 92]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Day after day he would spend listlessly at home or at the school until seven o’clock
-came and it was time to go to the Paris Café, to sit among the painters and listen to
-violent talk, talk, talk—abuse of successful men, derision of the great masters,
-mysterious and awful whispers of what men were doing in Paris, terrible denunciations of
-dealers, critics, and the public.</p>
-
-<p>The café was a kind of temple and had its ritual. It was the aim of the painters to
-“put some life into dear old London.” Calthrop had given a lead. He had determined that
-London should be awakened to art, as the writing folk of a past generation had aroused the
-swollen metropolis to literature and poetry. London should be made aware of its painters
-as Paris was aware of the Quartier Latin. Bohemia should no longer be the territory of
-actresses, horse-copers, and betting touts. The Paris Café therefore became the shrine of
-Calthrop’s personality, and thither every night repaired the artists and their parasites,
-who saw in the place an avenue to liberty and fame. In the glitter and the excitement, the
-brilliance, the colour, the women with their painted faces, the white marble-topped
-tables, the mirrors along the walls, the blue wreathing tobacco-smoke, Calthrop’s
-personality was magnified and concentrated as in a theatre. The café without him was
-Denmark without the Prince, and Mendel found the hours before he came or the evenings when
-he did not come almost insupportable. Yet it was not the man’s success or his fame or his
-notoriety that fascinated the boy, whose instinct went straight to the immense vitality
-which was the cause of all. Calthrop was a huge man, dark and glowering. To Mendel he was
-like a figure out of the Bible—like King Saul, in his black moods and the inarticulate
-fury that possessed him sometimes; and when he picked up and hurled a glass at<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-93">[Pg 93]</a></span> some artist whose face
-or whose work had offended him, he was very like King Saul hurling the javelin.</p>
-
-<p>There was always a thrill when he entered the café. The buzz would die down. Where
-would he sit and whom would he speak to? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It was one of the greatest
-moments in Mendel’s life when one evening Calthrop came sweeping in with his cloak flung
-round his shoulders and sat opposite him and his three companions and raised a finger and
-beckoned.</p>
-
-<p>“He wants you,” said Mitchell, pushing Mendel forward.</p>
-
-<p>“Come here, boy,” growled Calthrop, stabbing with his pipe-stem in the direction of the
-seat by his side. “Come here and bring your friends. Bought a drawing of yours this
-morning. Damn good.”</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell, Kessler, and Weldon came and sat at the table, all too overawed to speak.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s your drink, heh?”</p>
-
-<p>Drinks were ordered.</p>
-
-<p>“Rotten trade, art,” said Calthrop. “Dangerous trade. Drink, women, flattery. Don’t
-drink. Marry, settle down, and your wife’ll hate you because you’re always about the
-place. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. God! I wish I could be a Catholic. I’d be a monk. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-My boy, don’t get into the habit of doing drawings. They won’t look at your pictures if
-you do, and we want pictures—my God, we do! Everybody paints pictures as though they were
-for a competition. You’ve got life to draw from—real, stinking life. That’s why I have
-hopes of you.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was so fluttered and flattered that he could only gulp down his drink and blink
-round the café, feeling that all eyes were upon him; and indeed he was attracting such
-attention as had never before been bestowed on him. A girl at the next table ogled him and
-smiled. She was with a young man whom the four detested<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-94">[Pg 94]</a></span> and despised. This young man reached over
-to take a bowl of sugar from their table. To take anything from the great man’s table
-without so much as “By your leave” was sacrilege and was very properly resented. There was
-a scuffle, the sugar was scattered on the floor, glasses fell crashing down, Mitchell and
-Weldon hurled themselves on the young man, and the manager came bustling up, crying:
-“If-a-you-pleess-a-gentlemen.” But there was no breaking the mêlée. A waiter was sent out
-for the police, and three constables came filing in. One of them seized Mitchell, and
-Mendel, half mad with drink and excitement, seeing his beloved friend, as he thought,
-being taken off to prison, leaped on the policeman’s back and brought him down. In the
-confusion Calthrop and the others slipped away and Mendel was arrested, still fighting
-like a wild cat, and led off to the police-station, the constable whispering kindly in his
-ear: “Steady, my boy, steady. A youngster like you should keep clear of the drink.”</p>
-
-<p>The inspector smiled at the extreme youthfulness of the offender, but decided that a
-taste of the cells would do no harm and that the boy had better be sober before he was
-sent home. So Mendel had four hours on a hard bench until a constable came in and asked
-him if he wanted bail. He said “Yes,” and, when asked for a name, gave Calthrop’s, who
-presently arrived and saw him liberated, after being told to appear in court next morning
-at ten o’clock.</p>
-
-<p>When he reached home he found his mother waiting up for him with wet cloths in case his
-head should be bad.</p>
-
-<p>“What now? What now?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve been in prison.”</p>
-
-<p>“Prison!” Golda flung up her hands and sat down heavily. For her all was lost. It was
-true then, that, outside in the world, at the other end<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-95">[Pg 95]</a></span> of it, was always prison, for the just and
-for the unjust, for the old and for the young, for the innocent and for the guilty.</p>
-
-<p>He tried to make light of it. For him, too, it was a serious matter. He saw himself
-figuring in the Sunday papers: “Famous Artist in the Police Court,” with his portrait in
-profile as on a medallion. Birnbaum and Sir Julius would read it. He would be taken away
-from the Detmold and Edward Tufnell would never speak to him again. He astonished,
-embarrassed, and delighted Golda by flinging himself in her arms and sobbing out his
-grief.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter108">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-96">[Pg 96]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter108_hdg"><a href="#Chapter108_toc">VIII<br />
-<span class="chap_title">HETTY FINCH</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">G<small>OLDA</small> was passing through a very difficult time. Rosa
-was hotter on the pursuit of Issy than ever. Harry had had a violent quarrel consequent on
-his reiterated demand for proof of the judicial destruction of Christianity in America,
-and at last, like his father, he went out and bought a clean collar and announced his
-departure for Paris. He went away and not a word had been heard from him. Lotte refused to
-look at any of the young men brought by the match-makers, and Leah was the only
-comfortable member of the family, and she made no attempt to conceal her unhappiness with
-Moscowitsch. She would come on Saturday evenings and go up to her mother’s room and fling
-herself on the bed and cry her heart out, until late in the evening Moscowitsch came to
-fetch her, when she would go meekly and apparently happily enough. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And on
-the top of all these troubles, here was Mendel going to the devil at a gallop.</p>
-
-<p>Leah’s trouble with Moscowitsch was that he would never let her go out without him, and
-he could very rarely be persuaded to go out at all. As for going away in the summer, he
-could see no sense in it. He gave his wife a fine house. What more did she want? She had
-her children to look after. What greater pleasure could she desire? His life was entirely
-filled with his business and his home, and he would not look beyond them. The neighbours
-went to the seaside? The neighbours were<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-97">[Pg 97]</a></span> fools who lived for ostentation and display. They did not
-know when they were well off. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Moscowitsch had a great admiration for his
-father-in-law as a man who knew what life was and refused to dilute its savour with folly,
-and he regarded Golda as a perfect type of woman, one who left the management of life to
-her husband and allowed herself to be absorbed in her duties as a wife and mother.</p>
-
-<p>But Leah longed to go to the seaside. It became an obsession with her, and, because she
-could never talk of it, she thought of nothing else. She was sick with envy when she saw
-the neighbours going off with the children carrying buckets and spades. Secretly she
-bought her own children buckets and spades, though they were much too small to use
-them.</p>
-
-<p>At last, when her worries began to tell on Golda, Leah declared that what she needed
-was sea air, and offered to take her for a fortnight to Margate, and Golda, anxious to
-escape from the horror of Mendel’s coming home night after night drawn and white with
-dissipation, and from the dread of an explosion from Jacob, consented, and asked if Issy
-might go, as that Rosa of his was making him quite ill.</p>
-
-<p>For Golda, Leah knew that Moscowitsch would do anything in the world, and so she
-procured his consent on condition that he was not expected to accompany them, for he hated
-the sea, which had made him very ill when he came to England, and he never wished to set
-eyes on it again.</p>
-
-<p>Leah already had the address of some lodgings recommended to her by a neighbour. She
-engaged them, and on a fine July day went down to Margate by the express with her
-children, Golda, and Issy.</p>
-
-<p>The lodgings were let by a handsome, florid woman with masses of bleached golden hair,
-a ruddled complexion, fat hands covered with cheap<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-98">[Pg 98]</a></span> rings, plump wrists rattling with bracelets, and a full
-bosom on which brooches gleamed. Leah thought her a very fine woman, and was so fascinated
-by her that she stayed indoors day after day, helping with the housework and gossiping, so
-that she never once saw the sea, except from the train as she was leaving. Mrs. Finch was
-a lady, by birth, but she had been unfortunate. She had an uncle in the Army and a cousin
-in the War Office, and she had lived in London, in the best part of the town, where, in
-her best days, she had had her flat. Also she had travelled and had been to Paris and
-Vienna. But she had been unfortunate in her friends. Leah commiserated her, and,
-open-mouthed, gulped down all her tales of the gentlemen she had known, while Golda, eager
-for more information of the glittering world which had swallowed up her Mendel, listened
-too, fascinated and shuddering. And Leah, to show that she also was a person of some
-consequence, began to talk of her wonderful brother. She told of the motor-car which had
-come and whirled him away, of his visit to the millionaire’s house, of the fine friends he
-was making, of the men and women he knew whose names were in the papers.</p>
-
-<p>“Every day,” she said, “he is out to tea, and every evening he is out at theatres and
-music-halls and parties and flats and hotels, and his friends are so rich that they pour
-money into his pockets. He just makes a few lines on a piece of paper and they give him
-twenty pounds, or he makes up some paint to look like a face or a pineapple and his
-pockets are full of money.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Golda uneasily. “He will be very rich.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then next time you come to Margate,” said Mrs. Finch, “it will be the Cliftonville,
-and you’ll despise my poor lodgings.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-99">[Pg 99]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh no,” cried Leah, “for it is like staying with a friend.”</p>
-
-<p>Every day Leah added something to the legend of Mendel, Mrs. Finch urging her on with
-romances of her own splendid days. But the most eager listener was Hetty, the girl who did
-the rough work of the house and was never properly dressed until the evening, because,
-from the moment when she woke up in the morning until after supper, she was kept running
-hither and thither at Mrs. Finch’s commands. She was sufficiently like Mrs. Finch to
-justify Golda in her supposition that she was that fine woman’s daughter, but nothing was
-ever said in the matter. Hetty did not have her meals with them, and, indeed, there was no
-evidence that she had any meals. In the evenings she was allowed to go out, and she would
-come back at half-past ten or so with her big eyes shining and a flush fading from her
-cheeks and leaving them whiter than ever. Very big were her eyes, very big and pathetic,
-and her face was a perfect oval. She had rather full lips, always moist and red. During
-the whole fortnight she never spoke a word except to Issy. Indeed, she avoided Golda and
-Leah, and she alarmed Issy by what he took to be her forwardness, when she asked him to
-take her to the theatre. He complied with her request, but he was much too frightened of
-her to speak, and he could think of nothing to say except to offer to buy her chocolates
-and cigarettes, which she accepted as though it was the natural thing for him to give her
-presents. She talked to him about Mendel, and wanted to know if it was true that he knew
-lords and had real gentlemen to tea with him in his studio.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s more goes on in his studio than I could tell you,” said Issy with a dry,
-uncomfortable laugh. “Artists, you know!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes! Artists!” said Hetty with a dreamy,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-100">[Pg 100]</a></span> wistful look in her eyes as she drew in her lower lip
-with a slight sucking noise. “I wish I lived in London, I do. Ma used to live in London,
-but she’s too old now to find any one to take her back there. It’s dull here. Does your
-brother ever come to Margate?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Issy. “He’d go to Brighton if he went anywhere. I’ve got another brother
-who’s gone to Paris.”</p>
-
-<p>“O-oh! Paris! Is he rich too?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>Issy shut up like an oyster. He could feel the girl probing into him, and he was sorry
-he had brought her. She was spoiling his fun, the adventures he had promised himself
-during his holiday from Rosa’s indefatigable attentions. Hetty was too dangerous. He knew
-that if she got hold of him she would not let go.</p>
-
-<p>He took her home and never spoke another word to her during the remainder of his visit,
-and he said to his mother once:—</p>
-
-<p>“That’s an awful girl.”</p>
-
-<p>“Worse than Rosa?” asked Golda.</p>
-
-<p>“Rosa would stay. That girl would be off like a cat on the tiles.”</p>
-
-<p>Golda retorted with a description of Rosa of the same kind, but of a more offensive
-degree.</p>
-
-<p>Declaring that they were better for the sea air, and warmly enjoining Mrs. Finch to
-visit then if ever she should come to London, the party left Margate with shells and
-toffee and painted china for their friends and relations, conspicuous among their luggage
-being the buckets and spades which had never been used.</p>
-
-<p>As Issy and his mother reached their front-door, he saw Rosa at the corner of the
-street, and bolted after her, leaving Golda to enter the house and give an account of her
-doings. Mendel, for once in a way, was at home. He was at work on a picture for a prize
-competition at the Detmold, as<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-101">[Pg
-101]</a></span> also were Mitchell and Weldon, so that they were living quietly for the
-time being. Golda gave a glowing description of the beauties of Margate and of Mrs. Finch
-and her jewellery. She began to talk of Hetty, but for some reason unknown to herself,
-with a glance at Mendel she stopped, and went off into a vague, dreamy rhapsody concerning
-Margate streets.</p>
-
-<p>“The streets are so clean, so nice, and the air is so strong, and the sky is so clear,
-with the clouds tumbling across it, little clouds like cotton-wool and grey clouds like
-blankets, almost as it was in Austria, and I was so happy my heart was full of flowers,
-almost as it was in Austria.”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s the good of talking of Austria?” growled Jacob. “There you had a corner. Here
-you have a whole house.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I was happy there.”</p>
-
-<p>Issy came in on that and announced that he was going to be married to Rosa. There was
-half a house vacant in the next street, and he proposed to take it.</p>
-
-<p>“You shall not,” said Jacob. “I will not have that slut in the house. What sort of
-children will she give you? Squat-browed and bow-legged they will be. How will she look
-after them? A woman that cannot contain her love for her man will have none for the
-children. She is a dirty girl, I tell you, and so is her mother and her father’s mother,
-and her father’s father’s mother.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know who we are, to hold up our heads so high. You are my father, but in some
-things I cannot obey you. The business is mine .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is not. It is mine!” said Jacob. “It is in your name, but it is mine. It is in your
-name, but your name is my name, and you shall not give it to a woman like that, who goes
-smelling about street corners like a dog. Her father has no money, and he never goes to
-the synagogue.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am not marrying her father. I shall go out of the business, then, and I shall start
-for myself.<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-102">[Pg 102]</a></span> Rosa
-will kill herself if I do not marry her, and I must do it.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is true,” said Golda quietly. “I think she will kill herself.”</p>
-
-<p>Jacob stormed on and Issy blustered, until at last he confessed that Rosa had caught
-him, and that he had to marry her. Jacob threw up his hands and in a shrill voice of icy
-contempt told Issy exactly what he thought of such marriages; they were nothing but dirt.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. “Because you have a little dirt on you, must you roll in the mud? You are
-like dirty dogs, all of you. You, and Harry, and Mendel. I don’t know what has come to you
-in this London. God gave me one woman, and I have asked for nothing else.”</p>
-
-<p>“You would not let me marry Rosa when I was young.”</p>
-
-<p>Words and feeling ran so high that Mendel, aghast, fled away to his studio, where the
-sound of the storm reached him. It raged for hours, and ended in Issy flinging himself out
-of the house and slamming the door.</p>
-
-<p>A week later Rosa was brought to see Golda, and she fawned on her like a dog that has
-been whipped, sat gazing at her with her stupid brown eyes, and whimpered: “I should have
-killed myself. Yes, I should have killed myself.”</p>
-
-<p>“You would not have been so wicked,” said Golda. “It is sinful to throw good fish after
-bad. Can you cook?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Rosa. “I can make cucumber soup. I could do anything for Issy, he is so
-strong and handsome.”</p>
-
-<p>And Golda said to Mendel after the interview: “A woman like that is like a steam bath
-for a man.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>A few days later Issy and Rosa were married, without ceremony, without carriages, or
-photographs, or guests, or feast. It was a wedding to<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-103">[Pg 103]</a></span> be ashamed of, but Jacob would not, and
-Rosa’s father could not, lay out a penny on it. The couple took half the house in the next
-street, and Issy discovered at once that he hated his wife, and was at no pains to conceal
-it either from her or from his family.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was profoundly depressed by this disturbance and plunge downwards, for he still
-half expected his family to rise with him. He was to make all their fortunes, but, with
-the rest of the family, he detested the unhappy Rosa and regarded her as little short of a
-criminal. He was depressed, too, because the summer holidays were approaching and he would
-be bereft of his beloved Mitchell, who was going away for three months to the country. He
-would be left with his family, in whom there was no peace. Why could they not be like the
-Mitchells and the Weldons, who could live together without quarrels, and could take a
-happy, humorous interest in each other’s doings without these devastating passions and
-cursings and denunciations? And yet when he thought of the Mitchells and the Weldons and
-the Froitzheims, in their charming, comfortable houses, there was something soft and
-foolish about them all—something savouring of idolatry, for instance, in the homage
-Mitchell paid his father, in the assumption that Mrs. Mitchell was a very remarkable
-woman, whose children could not be expected to be ordinary. More and more did Mendel value
-his mother, who was content to be just a woman and to live without flattery of any kind,
-and to accept everyone whom she met and to value them as human beings, without regard to
-their rank, station, possessions, or achievements. Himself she esteemed no more because he
-was an artist, though he had tried hard to make her give her tribute to that side of his
-nature. She loved him simply, neither more for his attainments nor less for his doings,
-that pained her deeply. And that<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-104">[Pg
-104]</a></span> direct human contact he obtained nowhere else, and in no one else could he
-find it existing so openly and frankly. Yet he loved the follies and pretences of the
-outside world. He adored theatricality, and among his polite friends there was always some
-drama towards. It was never drowned in incoherent passions, and he himself, among the nice
-cultured folk, was always a startling dramatic figure. Sometimes they seemed to him all
-slyness and insincerity, and then he loathed them; but that was generally when he had
-aimed at and failed in some dramatic coup, or when they had encouraged him to talk about
-himself until he bored them. On the whole, he was successful with them, as he wished to
-be, easily and without calculation. It was when they made calculation necessary, by
-feigning an interest that they did not feel, that he was shocked and angry. If anywhere
-the atmosphere was such that he could not be frank, then he avoided that place and those
-people.</p>
-
-<p>Now he was bored, bored to think of the hot stewing months with no relief except such
-as he could find in vagrom adventures from the harsh rigidity of life among his own
-people. And he was in a strange condition of physical lassitude. Even his ambition was
-stagnant. In his work he had only the pleasure of dexterity. It had no meaning, and
-contained no delight. When he painted apples or a dead bird or a woman, the result was
-just apples or a dead bird or a woman. The paint made no difference and the subject was
-still better than his rendering of it. He was only concerned with technical problems.
-Fascinated by a gradated sky in a picture in the National Gallery, he practised gradated
-skies until he could have done them in his sleep.</p>
-
-<p>And he was tired, tired in body and in soul. Both in his life and in his work he had
-had to conquer a convention in order to keep his footing<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-105">[Pg 105]</a></span> in the world of his desire. Just as he
-had only learned the Detmold style of drawing by a supreme effort of will, so also by a
-tremendous effort he had learned the rudiments of manners and polite conversation. He had
-had to overcome his tendency to fall violently in love with every charming person, male or
-female, he met, and to regard with an aversion equally violent those in whom he found no
-charm. Such charm must for him be genuine and not a matter of tricks, and for this reason
-he had regarded every person whom he thought of as old with dislike. For him anybody above
-twenty-five was “old.” He still thought he would be made or marred by the time he was
-twenty-three, but that age seemed immeasurably far off. Long before then, like a
-thunderbolt, his full genius would descend upon him and all the world would know his name.
-He was almost innocent of conceit in this. Such, he believed, was the history of genius,
-and so far nothing had happened to deny his inward consciousness of his rarity. Relieve
-the pressure of circumstance and he soared upwards. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. There was a queer,
-uncomfortable pleasure in such thoughts and dreams and in imagining a fatality that should
-drag him down and down to Issy’s level and lower. There was a sickening fascination in
-picturing to himself a descent as swift and irresistible as his upward flight. Yet dreary
-were the hours of waiting for the impetus that had once or twice so freely and so strongly
-moved in him. Sick with waiting, he would work in a fury to master trick after trick and
-difficulty after difficulty in painting, so as to be ready when the time came. All the
-cunning and wariness of his race welled up in him as he prepared deliberately, slowly,
-patiently for his opportunity.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>One afternoon, as Golda was sleeping in her kitchen, she was awakened by a knock at
-the<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-106">[Pg 106]</a></span> door. Going
-to open it, she found Hetty Finch waiting there, neatly clad in a brown tailor-made coat
-and skirt, very smart, with a trim little feathered hat on her head. Golda’s thoughts flew
-to Mendel, and her first inclination was to slam the door in Hetty’s face, but,
-remembering that the boy was out, she admitted her.</p>
-
-<p>Hetty followed Golda into the kitchen and stood looking round it with obvious
-disappointment. She had not imagined the KĂĽhlers to be so poor.</p>
-
-<p>“I promised Ma I would call,” she said, taking the chair which Golda dusted for
-her.</p>
-
-<p>“And how is your Ma?” asked Golda.</p>
-
-<p>“She’s given up the house and gone into a hotel as manageress,” replied Hetty, lying as
-usual, for her mother had been sold up and had taken a place as barmaid in a tavern. “And
-I’ve come to London to earn my living. Ma gave me fourteen shillings, and that was all she
-could do for me. Still, I’m off her hands now.”</p>
-
-<p>Golda asked her what she was going to do, and she said she thought of going into
-service until she had had a look round. Where was she living? She had taken a room with
-some friends, lodgers of Ma’s, off Stepney Green.</p>
-
-<p>Conversation was lifeless and desultory until Issy came into the room, when she
-brightened up, but he was overcome with his old terror of the girl and soon hurried away.
-Then she noticed the pictures on the wall and asked if they were Mendel’s. Golda refused
-flatly to talk about them, but Hetty persisted and would talk of nothing else. Jacob came
-in and she made him talk about Mendel, and she made herself so charming to him and
-flattered his simple vanity so grossly that presently Golda was staggered by the sight of
-him making tea with his own hands and pouring it out for the visitor.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-107">[Pg 107]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Jacob, “the boy did all those before he was fourteen. He will get on, that
-boy. He is bound to get on, but I shall not live to see him in his glory.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think they’re lovely,” said Hetty, sipping her tea. And she went on chattering
-vivaciously until Jacob was called away to the workshop, when once again conversation
-became lifeless and desultory. Golda made one excuse after another to try to get rid of
-her, but Hetty would not budge. At last there came the sound of Mendel’s key in the door.
-Golda bustled out of the room and whispered to him:—</p>
-
-<p>“You must not come in. I have visitors and there are letters waiting for you
-upstairs.”</p>
-
-<p>But Mendel had seen a girl sitting in the kitchen and he wanted to know whether she was
-pretty or not. She turned and he saw that she was charmingly pretty. He brushed by his
-mother. He felt at once that he had made a good impression, and, indeed, all Hetty’s
-dreams and fancies were more than realized, though she was a little affronted and
-disappointed by the poorness of his clothes.</p>
-
-<p>“It is Hetty Finch,” said Golda, “from Margate.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel had had Issy’s account of Hetty and he was on his guard at once.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I’ve come to live in London,” said she.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve never lived out of it,” he answered.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought perhaps, as you know so many people, you could help me to find some work.
-There must be room somewhere in London for poor little me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll see about it,” said Mendel, taking note of her features and figure, and rather
-upset to find himself so little excited by her. Issy had given him to imagine a dashing,
-overwhelming woman. He only felt vaguely sorry for Hetty and a desire to stroke her,
-though he knew her at once for what<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-108">[Pg 108]</a></span> she was, and how she was drinking in the strongly
-developed male in him. For the first time he felt cool and detached in the presence of a
-woman: a deliciously grown-up sensation, and he wanted more of it.</p>
-
-<p>She soon said she must go, and in Golda’s hearing he promised to write to her, but when
-he took her to the door he asked her to come to his studio, and she said she would come
-the next day.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter109">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-109">[Pg 109]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter109_hdg"><a href="#Chapter109_toc">IX<br />
-<span class="chap_title">THE QUINTETTE</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">H<small>E</small> had more of the deliciously grown-up sensation the
-next day, when Hetty came to see him. She was something new. The girls of the streets he
-knew, and unattainably above them were the girls at the school and his friends’ sisters,
-whom he called “top-knots,” because of the way they did their hair. The “top-knots” were
-hardly female at all to him, so remote were they, so entirely unapproachable; utterly
-different from the girls of the streets, who were so accessible that he had but to hold
-out his arms to find one of them, as if by magic, in his grasp. And now Hetty was
-different again.</p>
-
-<p>“You are cosy up here,” she said, moving at once to the only comfortable chair and
-curling up in it. “Your sister told me about you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Leah? What lies did she tell you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I knew it wasn’t <i>all</i> true, about the money you were making, because you
-wouldn’t live here if it was true, would you? But I suppose some of your friends make a
-lot of money.”</p>
-
-<p>“They’re rich, some of them,” replied Mendel, aghast to find himself thinking coldly of
-his friends in terms of money, his mind rushing swiftly between the two poles of his
-father and Sir Julius. “Yes. There’s plenty of money in London.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s what Ma said when she gave me the fourteen shillings. She said a girl with eyes
-like mine had no need to go short in London.” Hetty<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-110">[Pg 110]</a></span> raised her eyes and looked full at him,
-who met her stare boldly and yet with some alarm, finding himself acting a part.</p>
-
-<p>Hetty was flattering him by regarding him as the possessor of a key to the wealth of
-London, and in spite of himself he could not help accepting the rĂ´le. She had touched an
-element of his character of which till then he had been unconscious. The knave in him
-sprang into being and thrust all his other qualities aside. He began to boast of his
-success and to swagger about the luxury and immorality of London life, though it was not
-all braggadocio, but also a kindly desire to make Hetty happy by talking to her of the
-things that interested her.</p>
-
-<p>He told her about Calthrop and the Paris Café, and Maurice Birnbaum and his motor-car
-and richly furnished flat in Westminster, and a Lord’s son who was at the Detmold, and
-Mitchell, whose father was a great man. And all the time, as he talked, he was astonished
-at the sound of his own voice, so different did it sound.</p>
-
-<p>Hetty wriggled with pleasure in her chair and pouted up her lips. Presently she said
-her hat made her head ache, and she took it off and stretched out her arms and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“No more pots and pans for me! I do think you’re lovely. It’s just like a story. I call
-that real fun. Not like Margate. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Do you think I could get work as a model,
-or do you have to be slap-up?”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel thought of the drabs who posed and he could not help smiling.</p>
-
-<p>“I could only tell by your figure, though your face is all right.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think I’m pretty?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Very.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll show you my figure, if you like.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right, I’ll light the gas-stove in the bedroom. It’s a little cold in here.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-111">[Pg 111]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He showed her into the bedroom, and when she was ready she called to him.</p>
-
-<p>She was beautifully made, but she looked so foolish with her anxiety to please him that
-he could take hardly any interest in her, and he was distressed, too, because the only
-background he could give her consisted of his new knavish thoughts of the wealth of
-London. Yet nothing could disturb it, for the background was suitable. Her white body was
-her offering.</p>
-
-<p>“How much would I be paid?”</p>
-
-<p>“A shilling an hour.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you pay that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“If you could get me work I would sit to you for nothing.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d pay you,” he said. His generous qualities strove hard to reassert themselves, but
-there was something about this girl that compelled just what he was giving her—hardness
-for hardness, value for value. Yet she was certainly beautiful, and it was strange to him
-to be unable to give her the warm homage that within himself he could not help
-feeling.</p>
-
-<p>She sat on the bed, making no move to cover herself, and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Artists <i>are</i> different. There was an artist once at Margate. It was him put the
-idea into my head. But he was very poor and not a gentleman.”</p>
-
-<p>And now to Mendel she was an object of sheer astonishment. He stood and warmed his legs
-by the gas stove and gaped at her, sitting on his bed and chattering in her clear, hard
-voice of her ambitions, her dreams, the drudgery at home, while in everything she said was
-a flattery which he could not resist. Worst of all, he felt that he was one of a pair with
-her. His talent, her body, were shining offerings with which they both emerged from the
-depths of the despised. Entering<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-112">[Pg
-112]</a></span> into her spirit, he too was filled with a desire for revenge. Yet in him
-this desire was charged with passion, which made their present situation ridiculous. He
-thought of the poverty and the obscure suffering downstairs, the dragging penury to which,
-but for his talent, he would have been condemned. Then he imagined her as Issy had
-described her at Margate, lurking in the kitchen, listening behind the door as Leah spun
-her yarns. He could sympathize with her, and she seemed to him almost gallant.</p>
-
-<p>He got out a piece of mill-board and began to draw her, but to his annoyance could not
-get interested in what he was doing. He wanted to know more about her, could not rest
-content that a human being should be so reduced to a cold purpose. Yet, though she talked
-freely enough, nothing fell from her lips to meet his desire. She had no people, no class,
-no tradition, but still she was a person. He could not dismiss her as he dismissed so
-many, as “nonsensical.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t make much of you now,” he said, almost wailing. “I believe I’m tired.”</p>
-
-<p>And suddenly he hurled away his drawing and rushed at her and kissed her. She clung to
-him and he yielded to her will, seeing clearly that this was her purpose, this her desire,
-this her ambition, her all.</p>
-
-<p>He knew that she was using him, was making certain of being able to use him. The newly
-discovered knave in him insisted on having his existence, and through it he enjoyed a
-certain defiant happiness.</p>
-
-<p>Happiness! To be happy! That had seemed impossible. His first year at the Detmold had
-been miserable. He had been discouraged and almost listless. Often he would go to his
-mother and say: “I shall never be an artist.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not all at once,” Golda would say. “Take a boy who is apprenticed to a bootmaker.
-He<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-113">[Pg 113]</a></span> cannot all at
-once make good boots. He must spoil a deal of leather first. Or a tailor-boy: he must
-spoil cloth. A trade must be learned, and you can learn this, for you work hard enough at
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>For a moment or two he would see through her clear eyes and that was enough to set him
-working again, half believing that he would soon master his craft. But there had been the
-struggle to master what at the Detmold, with such unquestionable authority, they called
-“drawing.”</p>
-
-<p>This now, with Hetty, was in its way happiness, though he detested it and her. It was
-an escape. It was easy. It made no demands on him, save the small effort to achieve
-self-forgetfulness, and in that she aided him, for she seemed superior to himself and
-enviable in the clearness of her purpose. She offered herself and made no demands upon him
-except of what could cost him nothing: just a few words to his friends, a start in her
-chosen profession.</p>
-
-<p>All the same, he was horrified at himself. Every other crisis and sudden change in his
-life had been attended with violent suffering, an eruption within himself, profound
-depression, almost a collapse. This had been as easy as walking through a door, a slipping
-from one part of his being to another. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Here suddenly was happiness, a
-queer detached, almost indifferent condition, full of pleasure, and he rejoiced in the
-novelty of it. He watched Hetty draw on her clothes again and was sickened by the sensual
-languor of her movements. She was drowsy, like a cat before a fire.</p>
-
-<p>“No, I certainly shan’t draw you to-day.”</p>
-
-<p>“What about to-morrow?”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall be painting to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p>“I do think you’re a devil sometimes.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll take you to the Paris Café, if you like.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-114">[Pg 114]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She perked up on that. She had not expected so soon to gain her desire.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. If you’ve got to earn your living you should meet people, and the sooner you get
-going the better.”</p>
-
-<p>Hetty sat with her chin in her hands, crouched in elation. Everything had turned out as
-she had hoped and planned, as she had willed that it should, and she regarded him with
-some contempt because he had been so easy and because he was so young. She was the same
-age as he, but she thought him a little vain boy. Yet when he looked at her she was afraid
-of him, for he knew so much and guessed so much more. To defend herself, her instinct
-drove through to his vanity and flattered it to blind him. She feigned an animation she
-was incapable of feeling to make herself more beautiful in his eyes, and he thought of his
-friends, Mitchell and Weldon, and how they would be stirred with her. He thought how she
-would please Calthrop, and he was lured into believing that he would gain in importance
-through her.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve come at a very bad time,” he said. “They’ll all be going away for the
-summer.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” she looked dashed, hating to be caught out in a mistake. “Do they go away for
-long?”</p>
-
-<p>“Three months.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, well!” she drawled. “I can get a place if nothing turns up. But something always
-does turn up. I’m one of the lucky ones, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t believe in luck,” said he, with a sudden irruption of the old self that seemed
-to have been left so far behind.</p>
-
-<p>“I must go now,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>They groped their way down the dark stairs, and he went out with her, feeling that he
-could not face his family, from whom he knew now that his face was turned. In the street a
-mood of freedom and adventure came over him, and for this mood she was a fitting mate. He
-took her on the top of a bus to<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-115">[Pg
-115]</a></span> the West End, among the promenading crowds, and she drank it all in with a
-kind of exaltation, her big eyes glowing, her body trembling with excitement. Into one
-café after another he led her, completely absorbed as he was in her purpose, and at last,
-when they mounted the eastward bus, she leaned her head on his shoulder, and he could hear
-her murmuring to herself: “London .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. London .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. London.”</p>
-
-<p>He too was thrilled as he had never been before by London. He had never so strongly
-realized it before. The great city had thrilled him with its beauty and had stirred him
-with its business, but never before had its spirit crept into his blood to send it
-whirling and singing through his veins. He hardly slept at all that night, and the next
-morning it was a long time before he could begin to work, which then seemed far removed
-from the effort and almost anguish it used to cost him. The still-life with which he had
-been wrestling became quite easy to do, and very soothing was the handling of brushes and
-paint. Every touch was like a caress upon his aching soul.</p>
-
-<p>So began a period of real happiness. The pieces he painted with such soothing ease were
-generally admired and readily bought. The dealer to whom he took them was also a colourman
-and gave him apparently unlimited credit; and he laid in an immense stock of colours and
-amused himself with experiments. It seemed that his career was to be successful without a
-struggle. His patrons were delighted to find him so soon making money, and the Birnbaums
-and the Fleischmanns invited him down into the country, but as he found that they put him
-up in a servant’s bedroom or a gardener’s cottage he refused to go more than once, or to
-any more of their kind who were not prepared to forget his poverty.</p>
-
-<p>He would rather stay in London with Hetty,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-116">[Pg 116]</a></span> whom he had begun to regard as a mascot. With her coming
-everything had changed. She had made everything easy and happy and delightful. He had no
-love for her, but he could not help feeling grateful. She had turned work into a pleasure,
-pleasure into a riot of ecstasy.</p>
-
-<p>Alone with her in the evenings or with some chance acquaintance, during the holidays he
-roamed through London, basking in the summer evenings, discovering unimagined splendours,
-the Parks, the river, the Zoo, boating on the Serpentine, the promenade on the romantic
-Spaniard’s Road at Hampstead. Nearly every night he wrote to Mitchell in the country,
-describing his new easy happiness in his work and his discovery of the charm of nights in
-London. And once a week Mitchell would write to him and give him a delightful account of
-English country life in a valley, shut in by rolling hills between which wandered a slow,
-pleasant stream. Here Mitchell was painting, boating, playing tennis, making love.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s a Detmold girl lives near here with her people—Greta Morrison. You may
-remember her—glorious chestnut hair, big blue eyes, but as shy as a little mouse. I
-couldn’t get a word out of her until I began to talk about you, and there’s no end to her
-appetite for that. I don’t mince matters. I tell her exactly what you are, exactly what
-you come from, and what a wild beast you are. She has seen you throw things about at the
-Detmold, and she seems absolutely to like it. Yet she is not a fool, and I like her
-enormously. She makes me feel what a rotter I am, but I can’t get on with her unless I
-talk about you. I <i>have</i> heard that her work is good, but she won’t show me a
-thing.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was pleased that a “top-knot” should be interested in him, but beyond the
-flicker of delight he gave no thought to the idea of Greta Morrison. The “top-knots”
-belonged to the world<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-117">[Pg
-117]</a></span> which he was going to despoil with Hetty Finch. That world must disgorge.
-It had condemned, and still condemned, his father and mother to bitter poverty, and he
-remembered how on their first coming to London the whole family had slept in one room, and
-how he had sat up in the middle of the night and looked at the recumbent bodies and
-suffered under the indignity of it. And his brothers had grown from ruddy, bronzed boys
-into pale-faced, worn young men. And behind Hetty was the dirty lodging-house and her Ma,
-of whom he had a very clear idea. He used to wax violent, and his imagination would run
-riot with the fantastic visions of success he conjured up.</p>
-
-<p>Who were the “top-knots” that they should have an easy, pleasant time in the country
-while he was left to stew in London?</p>
-
-<p>Hetty began genuinely to admire him, and her flattery was no longer empty. There was
-some sustenance in it.</p>
-
-<p>“O—oh!” she used to say. “You’ll get on. There’s no doubt about that. You’ll have a big
-stoodio and the nobs will come up in their motor-cars, and you’ll be able to paint what
-you like then.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re a liar,” he would reply. “I shall always paint what I like. I never do anything
-else, and never will. Once paint for the fools and you have to do it always, because you
-become a fool yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Golda once met Hetty coming down the stairs. She told her she was a dirty slut and was
-not to show her face inside the house again. A few days later she saw her open the front
-door and slip out. In her anger she informed Jacob of the danger to Mendel, and Jacob went
-up to the studio.</p>
-
-<p>“I will not have that harlot in my house,” he said.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-118">[Pg 118]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“She is not a harlot,” replied Mendel rather shakily, for, though his father’s power
-had dwindled, yet he was still a figure of authority.</p>
-
-<p>“She is a harlot and a daughter of a harlot, and I will not have her in my house.”</p>
-
-<p>“She is a model, and I must have models, as I have tried to explain to you again and
-again. I am allowed money for models. I must have models, just as you must have
-skins.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then there are other models. I know this girl, what she is after, and she will ruin
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Neither she nor anyone else in the whole world could ruin me,” said Mendel, “for I am
-an artist, and while I have my art I ask nothing outside it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t argue with me!” shouted Jacob. “I will not have that drab in my house.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel had a great respect and regard for his father. He was silent, and Jacob went
-downstairs, satisfied that he had asserted himself.</p>
-
-<p>He said to Golda:—</p>
-
-<p>“They will blow the boy’s head off his shoulder with the fuss they make of him. I know
-how to take him down a peg or two.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t go too far,” said Golda. “It would be a black day for me if he went away and was
-ashamed of us.”</p>
-
-<p>“If I saw that he was ashamed of you,” replied Jacob, “I would thrash him within an
-inch of his life. Ashamed of you, among all the dirt and trumped-up people he goes
-among!”</p>
-
-<p>However, Hetty still came to the studio and there were frequent explosions, until at
-last Mendel, intent on the new independence he had won, declared that he could bear it no
-longer, and he arranged with Issy to take the top floor of his house and to turn that into
-a studio. This compromise was successful, and pleased both parties: Golda was happy to be
-relieved from further friction and Mendel was glad to be away, for he knew that his doings
-must hurt her, and that he<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-119">[Pg
-119]</a></span> hated. Yet he could see no way out of it. He was done for ever with the
-old simplicity of his untutored painting in her kitchen. Art was no longer a pure and
-hardly-won joy. It was a trade, like any other, and, like any other, it had its sordid
-aspect, and, to compensate for that, it was a career and could also be a triumph. These
-things he did not expect his mother to understand. He had Mitchell to talk to now,
-Mitchell to whom to impart the burden upon his soul, and Mitchell and he were to work
-together and to give to the world such art as it had never seen since the primitives.</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell and he! That friendship was the source of his new confidence. Golda had been
-and still was much to him, but when it came to painting she knew nothing at all, and
-painting was the important thing. Through painting lay not only satisfied ambitions and
-fame and riches, but life itself, and of that what could Golda know?</p>
-
-<p>It was a great thing, therefore, to be established away from home when Mitchell
-returned from the country. And Mitchell approved. He had suffered from being under his
-father’s shadow, and with Weldon and Kessler he had taken a studio near Fitzroy Square. He
-said:—</p>
-
-<p>“A time will come when you will have to leave the East End.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall never leave them,” replied Mendel. “What I want to paint is there. They are my
-people, and all that I have belongs to them.”</p>
-
-<p>“Rubbish. You’ll soon be getting commissions, and you can’t ask people who can afford
-to pay for portraits to a hole like that.”</p>
-
-<p>“They will come to my studio,” said Mendel, “or I will not take their commissions.”</p>
-
-<p>Though Mitchell was rather shocked by his frank conceit, he could not but admire and
-envy the way his impulses came rushing to the surface and were never deterred by
-considerations as to<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-120">[Pg
-120]</a></span> the impression he might be making. Mendel trusted Mitchell absolutely and
-hid nothing from him, neither the most scabrous of his deeds nor the most childish of his
-desires. He made no secret of the new manly feeling that had come to him through Hetty,
-the conviction that he could meet the West End on its own terms.</p>
-
-<p>When he showed Mitchell the work he had done during the holidays, his friend said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd! The difference is absolutely startling. There’s charm in every one of them, and
-they’re not fakes either.”</p>
-
-<p>With Hetty he was enraptured.</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd!” he said; “I’ll give ten years to painting her, as Leonardo did to Monna Lisa,
-and then it would not be finished. Came from a Margate lodging-house, did she? Mark my
-words: she’ll marry a successful artist and queen it among the best.”</p>
-
-<p>With Mitchell, Hetty put forth all her cajolery when she found that he knew what she
-thought good people. She could look very pathetic and delicate, and middle-aged artists
-were sorry for her, and thought being a model a perilous profession for her. One of them
-warned her of the dangers she must run, and especially mentioned Mitchell and KĂĽhler as
-young men to be avoided. They roared with laughter when she told them.</p>
-
-<p>The Paris Café was Paradise to her, and she made friends with all its habitués and
-attracted the attention of Calthrop, who became Mendel’s enemy for life when she told him
-that the youngster had said of him that he had been a good artist once, but was now only
-repeating himself.</p>
-
-<p>With marvellous rapidity she picked up the jargon of the place, and could quite easily
-have taken her career in her own hands, but she would not surrender Mendel, who could no
-more do without her than he could without Mitchell. She clung<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-121">[Pg 121]</a></span> to him and kept him a happy slave to his
-three friends, to whom she devoted herself as though her existence depended on the
-solidarity of the group. From morning to night she was with one or other of them, and
-every evening with the four of them at the Paris, or making a row at a music-hall and
-getting themselves kicked out.</p>
-
-<p>She was learning her trade as they were learning theirs, and she was delighted with the
-ease with which Mendel picked up what she called “sense”; that is to say, he became much
-more like the others, affected their speech, grew his hair long, wore corduroys, a black
-shirt, and a red sash, and talked blatantly and with a slight contempt of great painters.
-But even so, he was disturbing, for he did all these things with passion, so that they
-tinged his soul, and were not as a mere garment upon it. Even in falsehood he was
-sincere.</p>
-
-<p>When Hetty found Calthrop painting a self-portrait, she set her four boys painting
-self-portraits, and when she found the older men talking about the beauty of roofs and
-chimneys, the four were soon ecstatic about roofs and chimneys, and painting them without
-knowing how it had come about. She could feel what was in the air, and had no difficulty
-in making them conform to it, so that they were successful even while they were students,
-and were talked of and discussed and approached by dealers as though they were persons of
-consequence. Their life was one long intoxication: money, praise, wine, and debauchery
-went to their heads, and of all these excitants Mendel had the largest share, and found
-himself the equal even of Kessler, whose father was a millionaire soap-boiler. He attained
-an extraordinary skill at doing what was expected of him, and developed an instinct as
-sharp as Hetty’s for the success of the moment after next.</p>
-
-<p>He won scholarships at the Detmold and, carefully adapting his style, an open prize at
-the Royal<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-122">[Pg 122]</a></span>
-Academy. His patrons were excited and delighted. He was interviewed by the Yiddish papers
-and photographed, palette and brushes in hand, in a dashing attitude. He said many foolish
-things to the reporters, but the printed version made him blush. He was represented as
-saying that art had been reborn during the last ten years, that the Royal Academy was
-exploded and would soon close its doors, that there was no art criticism in England, that
-there had never been a great Jewish artist, and that this deficiency in the most vital and
-enduring race in the world would now be repaired.</p>
-
-<p>He thanked his stars that his friends could not read Yiddish. Two well-known Jewish
-painters wrote to the paper to say that they existed and to trounce his “bumptious and
-ignorant dismissal of respected and respectable art.” And he heartily agreed with them. He
-was shaken out of the hectic dreams of months, yet could not feel or see clearly. His way
-was with Mitchell, and Mitchell was generously rejoicing in it all as though it had
-happened to himself, while Hetty was going from studio to studio spreading the news and
-declaring the arrival of a genius.</p>
-
-<p>He wanted to go and hide his face in his mother’s skirts, but she was so happy and
-elated with the congratulations of the neighbours and visits from the Rabbis of the
-synagogue that he could not but keep up his part before her. For her and for all his
-family he bought extravagant presents, and he went out and sought Artie Beech, whom he had
-not seen for years, and gave him a box of cigars. He had a melancholy idea that he was
-doing them all an injury and that he must somehow repair it. The exact nature of the
-injury he did not know, but his instinct was very sure that the whole business was false.
-Yet it was so actual that he could not help believing in it. He was hypnotized into
-accepting it. There seemed no<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-123">[Pg
-123]</a></span> reason why it should not go on for ever. Here, apparently, was what he had
-always striven for—art and homage—and the idea that they could go on for ever was terrible
-and paralysing. But there was not a soul in the world with whom he could share his
-feeling. If he showed the least hesitation they would accuse him of ingratitude.</p>
-
-<p>He was filled with a smouldering rage against them all which found no vent until
-Maurice Birnbaum came in his motor-car and asked him to bring some of his things to show
-Sir William Hunslet, R.A., who had been much impressed with his prize picture. Once again
-Mendel climbed into the motor-car, and once again he was told not to let his parcel
-scratch the paint.</p>
-
-<p>“Now,” said Maurice, “you have the world at your feet, and I feel proud to have had my
-share in bringing it about. You can have everything you want, and if you don’t grow into
-something really big it won’t be our fault. Everything that money can do it shall do.”</p>
-
-<p>The car rolled through the streets which had been the scene of Mendel’s happy rambles,
-but being carried through them in such magnificence made him feel helpless, a victim to
-something stronger than his own will and that he had always detested. He was being taken
-away from his mother and from Mitchell, and he knew whither motor-cars were driven. All
-roads ended in Sir Julius, who could sit and look at pictures without a word. Everything
-went spinning past him. This was going too fast, too fast, and he would be exhausted
-before he had really known his purpose. Maurice Birnbaum’s exciting, patronizing tones,
-chattering on exasperatingly, infuriated him, until he felt like stabbing him in his
-already dropping stomach. What could a fat man like that have to do with art? How could so
-fat a man drive down to the wretched poverty in Whitechapel and not feel ashamed?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-124">[Pg 124]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But in spite of himself and his confused emotions Mendel enjoyed the drive, which
-showed him more of London than the narrowed area he frequented: more to conquer, more to
-know; shops, strange ugly buildings, polite, mincing people, women like dolls, men like
-marionettes, wide streets and plane-trees, the gardens and squares of the polite
-Southwest. Often there were Georgian houses like that in which his family lived, but so
-neat and trim and newly painted that they looked like doll’s-houses, proper places for the
-dolls and the marionettes. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And it was exhilarating to be in the heart of
-the roaring traffic, bearing down upon scarlet buses, and swift darting taxi-cabs and
-motor-cars as rich as Maurice Birnbaum’s. Out of the traffic they turned suddenly into a
-quiet street of dead houses and vast gloomy piles of flats. Outside a house more gloomy
-than the rest they stopped. Maurice got out fussily, told Mendel to be careful how he
-lifted his parcel out, fussed his way into the house through a dark, luxuriously furnished
-hall, and into a vast studio where there was a group of fashionably dressed women taking
-tea with Sir William and exclaiming about the beauties of a portrait that stood on the
-easel.</p>
-
-<p>Maurice stood awkwardly outside the circle and muttered apologies, while Mendel felt
-utterly and crushingly foreign to the atmosphere of the place. He knew how these people
-would regard him. They would stare at him with a cold interest not unmingled with horror,
-and he would be conscious of bearing the marks of the place he came from, of smelling of
-the gutter. Against that separation even art was powerless. And what had his work to do
-with this huge, hard, brilliant portrait on the easel? If they admired that they would
-never look at his dark little pictures.</p>
-
-<p>Sir William introduced Maurice to the ladies, but did not so much as look at the boy,
-whom his<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-125">[Pg 125]</a></span> mind
-had at once ticked off as a “student,” and therefore to be kept in his place. Maurice
-explained spluttering: words like “scholarship,” “prize,” “genius,” “instinct,” fell in a
-shower from his lips, and one of the ladies put up her lorgnette and stared at Mendel as
-though he were a picture or a wax model.</p>
-
-<p>At last he was told to untie his parcel, and one by one he showed his pictures. Sir
-William blew out his chest and his cheeks, and with a wave of his hand blurted out one
-word:—</p>
-
-<p>“Italy.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s what I say,” said Maurice.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel scented danger. They seemed to him to be conspiring together.</p>
-
-<p>“Italy!” ejaculated Sir William. “Italy! Blue skies, the sun, the light. Give him light
-and landscape with form in it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Am I ill?” thought Mendel with some alarm, for Sir William sounded to him more like a
-doctor than a painter. And he decided that the Academician was not a real artist because
-he showed no sign of the fellow-feeling which had been so strong in Mr. Froitzheim.</p>
-
-<p>Before the ladies he could say nothing. He put his pictures back in the parcel and
-heard Maurice and Sir William still conspiring together to send him to Italy. He was tired
-of being swung from one idea to another. At the Polytechnic they had told him that the
-essential thing in a picture was “tone,” that he must remember the existence of the
-atmosphere between himself and the object he was painting, and that there were no bright
-colours in nature. At the Detmold little was said about “tone,” but he was told that the
-essence of a picture was drawing, “the expression of form.” .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. What next? He
-had a foreboding that Italy was only another name for another essence of a picture.
-Besides, he wanted to live. Though he adored art, yet it did not<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-126">[Pg 126]</a></span> contain all that was precious to
-him—liberty and gaiety, friendship and affection. Always until the Detmold his life had
-been weighed down with poverty and with terrible obsessions like that of his dread of the
-fat, curly-headed boy who, during the six long years of his schooling, had waited for him
-outside the school-gates every day to give him a coward’s blow and to challenge him to
-fight and to jeer at him if he refused. There had been furious, passionate loves to set
-him reeling, gusts of inexplicable desires and ambitions which had often made him weep
-with pain. And now, just as the world was opening out before him and he was warm with the
-friendship of an Englishman (for he was proud of Mitchell’s Public School training), they
-wished to take him away and send him to a far country.</p>
-
-<p>He had had enough of being a foreigner in England, and he loathed the idea of travel.
-His father had told him that England was the best country in the world, and, if he had
-suffered so much there, what would it be in others? Italy? He wanted to paint what he had
-always painted, fish and onions in a London kitchen. How could Italy help him to do
-that?</p>
-
-<p>He would not go. He would refuse to go. These Birnbaums and Fleischmanns had had their
-way with him for long enough.</p>
-
-<p>So lost was he in this growing revolt that he was already some distance away from Sir
-William’s studio before he was aware of having left it.</p>
-
-<p>“Our greatest painter,” said Maurice. “The greatest since Whistler.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Mendel, aghast at the supersession of Calthrop and the idols of the
-Detmold. If Maurice could be so ignorant there was nothing to be said and argument was
-vain.</p>
-
-<p>“He really appreciated your work,” Maurice added.</p>
-
-<p>“He never looked at it!” cried Mendel, enraged.<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-127">[Pg 127]</a></span> “I put them in front of him one by one, but he always
-looked at the fat lady in blue.”</p>
-
-<p>“He could tell with one glance,” protested Maurice, who had been mightily
-impressed.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel saw that it was useless to talk, and shut his lips tight while Maurice chattered
-to him of his extraordinary good fortune in being able to go to Italy, to live among the
-orange groves and with the greatest galleries of the world to roam in, the most beautiful
-scenery and the most delightful food.</p>
-
-<p>The mention of food made Mendel think of his mother’s unsavoury dishes and sluttish
-table, the most distasteful feature of his existence, but he preferred even that to the
-Italy of Maurice Birnbaum and Sir William. Through such people, he knew, lay nothing that
-he could ever desire.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as he reached home he told his mother that they wanted to send him abroad to
-study. He strode about the kitchen and waved his arms, growling:—</p>
-
-<p>“Study? Study? I want to be an artist, not a student. I <i>am</i> an artist. I know art
-students when I see them—the Academy, South Kensington, the Detmold—they are all the same.
-Let them go abroad and never come back. No one will miss them, not even their fathers and
-mothers, if they have anything so natural. I will not go—I will not go!”</p>
-
-<p>“But if the Maurice Birnbaum thinks you must go, then you must,” said Golda. “It is
-their money that has been spent on you.”</p>
-
-<p>“They’ve spent enough,” cried Mendel, “without that. I don’t want their money any more.
-They know that. They want to keep me in their hands and to say that they made me. They?
-People like that! God made me, and they want to keep me all my life saying how grateful I
-am to them. Grateful? I am not.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you could go for a little while.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-128">[Pg 128]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I will not go at all.”</p>
-
-<p>He sat down and wrote to Maurice Birnbaum saying that he would not go to Italy, that he
-did not want any more of his commissions, and that he would not be interfered with any
-more. He would shortly repay every penny he had had, and he asked only to be allowed to
-know best what he wanted to do.</p>
-
-<p>“Everything that I love is here in London, and I can only learn from what I love. I am
-one kind of artist and you want to turn me into another kind. You will only waste your
-money, and I will not let you do it.”</p>
-
-<p>Maurice never answered this letter and patronage and that of his friends was
-withdrawn.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel plunged more ardently than ever into his career with Mitchell and the others,
-but found that they were not prepared to share or to admit the new freedom which he had
-begun to enjoy. The Birnbaum patronage had always to a certain extent restrained him, but
-now that it was shaken off he plunged madly and wildly into every kind of extravagance. He
-was no longer content to be the equal of the others. He wanted to lead them. He was the
-most successful of them all, and he wanted them all to join him in forcing art upon
-London. Calthrop had shown them the way, but he had unaccountably stopped short. He had
-many imitators, and there were even women who looked like his type, but it all ended in
-his personality. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Art was something else: something outside that, an
-impersonal thing, which London should be made to recognize. The pictures of KĂĽhler,
-Mitchell, Weldon, and Kessler should be, as it were, only forerunners of the mighty
-pictures that should be painted. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p>He was just as extreme and violent in his vices as he was in his idealism, and even
-Mitchell was rather upset by his pranks and caprices. It was one thing to take a shy tame
-genius among<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-129">[Pg 129]</a></span>
-your acquaintance, quite another when the genius ran wild and dragged you hither and
-thither and with breathless haste from the vilest human company to the most dizzily
-soaring ideas. Weldon, who was uncommonly shrewd, had begun to see the danger of allowing
-Hetty Finch to arrange their affairs, and when on top of that Mendel, drunk with freedom
-and success, began to take charge, he thought it time to secure himself and began to
-withdraw from their undertakings and adventures.</p>
-
-<p>At last Kessler struck, and told Mendel that he might be the greatest genius that was
-ever born, but should sometimes try to remember that his friends were gentlemen and could
-not always be making allowances for his birth and upbringing. This happened in the Paris
-Café. Mendel fell like a shot bird, like a stone. The eager words froze on his lips, his
-face visibly contracted and became haggard, his eyes blinked for a moment, then stared
-glassily. He sat so for some minutes, then rose from the table and walked quickly out of
-the café.</p>
-
-<p>He did not appear for a week, nor was anything heard of him. He sat at home working
-furiously. Hetty Finch went to see him, but he turned her out, telling her that she was a
-hateful, cold-hearted woman and that he would never see her again.</p>
-
-<p>At last he wrote to Mitchell, a letter of agony, for Mitchell, his friend, seemed to
-him the worst offender, by not having warned him of what was in the air:—</p>
-
-<p>“You are my friend,” he wrote, “my only friend. It is no more to you what I am, where
-or how I was born, than it is to me what you are. The soul of a man chooses his friend,
-and I trusted you even in my folly. You could have defended me and our friendship. You
-have not done so and I must live miserably without you.<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-130">[Pg 130]</a></span> Good-bye. I shall not attempt again to
-enter a life in which my work is not sufficient recommendation. I was happy. I was not
-happy before. I am not happy now. I have been foolish, but I was your friend.”</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell was irritated by this letter, but he was also moved. He valued Mendel’s
-sincerity, which had continually jolted him out of his natural indolence. And, as he had a
-fine talent and a fairly strong desire to use it to the full, the friendship had profited
-him. It had also helped him to come to reasonable terms with that great man, his
-father.</p>
-
-<p>On the other hand he was in this difficulty, that he too had been slipping out of the
-quintette through his new friendship with Miss Greta Morrison and her friend, Miss Edith
-Clowes. Knowing Mendel’s contempt for the “top-knots,” he had said nothing of this matter,
-and had found it sometimes difficult to account for the afternoons and evenings given to
-the dilemma of discovering whether Miss Morrison or Miss Clowes were the love of his life.
-Mendel was an exacting friend, and, as he concealed nothing, expected no concealment.</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell, like the true Englishman he was, deplored the unpleasant complication, but
-left it to time, impulse, or inspiration to unravel. Impulse, in due course, came to his
-aid and he invented a plan. First of all he wrote a manly note to Mendel, confessing his
-inability to understand why he should suffer for Kessler’s caddishness, and declaring that
-friendship could not be so lightly broken. He received no reply to this, and proceeded by
-taking Morrison and Clowes (as in the fashion of the Detmold they were called) to see the
-docks at Rotherhithe. While there he gazed from Morrison to Clowes and from Clowes to
-Morrison, unable to decide which he loved, for both gave him an equal contraction<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-131">[Pg 131]</a></span> of the heart, and
-then he told them that ships had never been properly painted, never <i>expressed</i> in
-form and colour; and then he added that it was clearly a man’s job, and then he informed
-them that only a short distance away lived Mendel KĂĽhler.</p>
-
-<p>“Would you like to go and see him?” he asked. “It is the queerest thing to go and see
-him. A filthy street, a dark house, a ramshackle staircase, and there you are—absolutely
-one of the finest painters the Detmold has ever turned out.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do let us go and see him!” said Clowes, who had decided in her own mind that she was
-the third of the party and in the way. Morrison said nothing, and looked very solemn, as
-though she regarded the visit as an event—something to be half dreaded. She had a very
-charming air of diffidence, as though she were very happy and knew this to be an unusual
-and peculiar condition. Often she smiled to herself, and then seemed to shake the smile
-away, feeling perhaps that she, a slip of a girl, had no right to be amused by a world so
-vast and so varied.</p>
-
-<p>She had enjoyed herself. The ships had stirred her romantically, and she could not at
-all agree with Mitchell about painting them, for were they not works of art in themselves?
-They moved her in the same way, arresting her eyes and delighting them, and touching her
-emotions so that they began to creep and tickle their way through her whole being.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. O wonderful world to contain so much delight! And it pleased her that the
-ships should start out of the squalor of the docks like lilies out of a dark pond.</p>
-
-<p>She smiled and shook the smile away when Mitchell spoke of Mendel KĂĽhler. She
-remembered once meeting Mendel on the stairs at the Detmold. She had often noticed
-him—strange-looking, white-faced, romantic, with a look of suffering in his eyes that
-marked him out from<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-132">[Pg
-132]</a></span> all the other young men. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. After she had passed him on the
-stairs she turned to look at him, and at the same moment he turned and she trembled and
-blushed, and her eyes shone as she hurried on her way.</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell had told her a great deal about him, and she had heard other people say that
-he was detestable, an ill-mannered egoist. She supposed he was so, for she rarely
-questioned what other people said, but he remained a clear figure for her, the
-romantic-looking young man who had looked back on the stairs.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll take him by surprise,” said Mitchell, with a sudden qualm lest they should break
-in upon Mendel and Hetty Finch together. “If we told him he would hide all his work away
-and put on a white shirt and have flowers on the table, for he is terrified of ladies. He
-says they don’t look like women to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure,” said Clowes, “I don’t want to look like a woman to any man.”</p>
-
-<p>This was the most encouraging remark Mitchell had had from either during the day, and
-he decided that he was in love with Clowes.</p>
-
-<p>A brisk walk through narrow dingy streets brought them, with some help from the police,
-to the door of Issy’s house. Mitchell knocked and a grimy little Jewess opened to
-them.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Mendel Kühler?” said Mitchell.</p>
-
-<p>“Upstairs to the top,” replied the Jewess as she hurried away. They climbed the
-shabbily carpeted stairs and knocked at the door of the studio. Mendel opened it. He stood
-with a brush in his hand, blinking. He stared at Mitchell and then beyond him at
-Morrison.</p>
-
-<p>“Come in,” he said. “I’d just finished. I’ve been working rather hard and haven’t
-spoken to a soul for three days. You must forgive me if I don’t seem very
-intelligent.”</p>
-
-<p>They went in and he made tea for them, hardly<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-133">[Pg 133]</a></span> ever taking his eyes off Morrison. He said pointedly to
-Mitchell:—</p>
-
-<p>“So you came down to the East End to find me.”</p>
-
-<p>Clowes explained:—</p>
-
-<p>“I’m a stranger to London and had never seen the docks, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have never seen the docks either, though I live so near,” said he. Then, catching
-Morrison glancing in the direction of his easel, he turned his work for her to see, almost
-ignoring the others. Afterwards he produced drawings for her to see, and he seemed
-entirely bent on pleasing her, which so embarrassed her that, when she could escape his
-gaze, she looked imploringly over at the others. They could not help her, and he went on
-until he had shown her every piece of work in the studio. Whenever she spoke, shyly and
-diffidently, as though she knew her opinion was of no value, he gave a queer little grunt
-of triumph, and his eyes glittered as he looked over at Mitchell, as though to say that he
-too knew how to treat the “top-knots” and to please them.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter110">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-134">[Pg 134]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter110_hdg"><a href="#Chapter110_toc">X<br />
-<span class="chap_title">MORRISON</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">A <small>FEW</small> days later he wired to Morrison at the Detmold to
-ask her to sit for him. She made no reply and did not come.</p>
-
-<p>Very well then: he would not budge. He would only approach Mitchell again through the
-“top-knots,” who lived in a portion of Mitchell’s world that had hitherto been closed to
-him. It promised new adventure, and he was so eager for it that he would not enter upon
-any other outside his work.</p>
-
-<p>The days went by and he began a portrait of his mother, with which he intended to make
-his first appearance at an important exhibition. Golda sat dressed in her best on the
-throne, and tried vainly to soothe him as he cursed and stamped and wept over his
-difficulties:</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t do it! I can’t do it!” he wailed. “I’m a fool, a blockhead, a pig! If I could
-only do one little thing more to it I could make it a great picture.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are always the same,” said Golda. “In Austria, when you were a little boy, the
-soldiers made you a uniform like their own. They used to call you the Captain, and they
-saluted you in the street, only they forgot to give you any boots, and when the soldiers
-marched by, you stamped and roared because you were not allowed to go with them, and I
-could not make you understand that you were not a real captain.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I am a real artist,” he growled. “You’ll<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-135">[Pg 135]</a></span> never make me understand that I am not a real
-artist.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing good was ever done in a hurry,” said she. “If you run so fast you will break
-your head against a wall.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall paint many portraits of you, for I shall never be satisfied. You may as well
-sit here with your hands folded as over there in the kitchen. If I’m not careful your
-hands will grow all over the picture. I have put such a lot of work into them.”</p>
-
-<p>Then for a long time he was silent, and both were lost in a dreamlike happiness—to be
-together, alone with his work, bound together in his delight as they used to be when he
-was a child before the invasion of their peace.</p>
-
-<p>He went to the door in answer to a knock and found Morrison standing there with some
-flowers in her hands.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” he said awkwardly, holding the door. “Won’t you come in? Please. I am painting my
-mother.”</p>
-
-<p>Golda’s eyes lighted with pleasure on the fresh-looking girl and her flowers.</p>
-
-<p>“She is like a flower herself,” she thought, and indeed the girl looked as though she
-were fresh from the country.</p>
-
-<p>She held out her hand to Golda, who stood up on the throne and bobbed to her, then
-folded her hands on her stomach and waited patiently for the lady to break the awkwardness
-that had sprung up between the three of them. Mendel could do nothing. He looked from one
-to the other and felt, with a little tremor of horror, the gulf that separated the
-two.</p>
-
-<p>At last Morrison said to Golda:—</p>
-
-<p>“I am very glad to see you, though I feel I know you quite well from the drawings he
-has done of you.”</p>
-
-<p>Golda broke into inarticulate expressions of the<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-136">[Pg 136]</a></span> delight it was to her to see any of her
-son’s friends, and saying that she would have a special tea sent up, she edged towards the
-door and slipped out.</p>
-
-<p>“Why didn’t you come before?” asked Mendel, when he had heard the door bang. “I sent
-you a telegram. I wanted to paint your portrait, and now I have begun something else.”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t want to come,” replied she, “but something Mitchell said made me want to
-come.”</p>
-
-<p>“What did he say?”</p>
-
-<p>“He told me about Kessler, and I thought it was a shame. I thought it was a horrible
-shame that you should be treated like that, as if anything mattered but your work.”</p>
-
-<p>Her voice rather irritated him. Her accent was rather mincing and precise, and between
-her sentences she gave a little gasp which he took for an affectation.</p>
-
-<p>“Why did Mitchell tell you that?”</p>
-
-<p>“He tells me a great deal about you, and he was really upset by your letter.”</p>
-
-<p>“Was he? Was he?”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel had no thought but for Mitchell. He longed to go to him, to embrace him, to tell
-him that all was different now. He blurted it all out to the girl.</p>
-
-<p>“We were so happy, the four of us together. Every evening we met and we were like
-kings. Everything that we wanted to do we did. We had money and success and all such
-foolish things, and we worked hard, all of us. There were not in London four young men
-like us, and I was free of the terrible people who wanted to turn me into an ordinary
-successful painter—a portrait painter. I tell you, I have never had a commission in my
-life that was not a failure. I only wanted to be young and to work, for I had never been
-young before. And then suddenly, out of nothing, my friends turned on me and told me I was
-a Jew and uneducated, and ought to treat them with more respect.<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-137">[Pg 137]</a></span> Why? The Jews are good people, and what
-do I want with education? Can books teach me how to paint? I tell you the Jews are good
-people.”</p>
-
-<p>Tea was brought up on a lacquer tray—bread, jam, and cake. They were both hungry and
-fell to with a will, hardly speaking at all.</p>
-
-<p>When they had finished they began to talk of pictures and of the lives of the painters,
-and he told her stories of Michael Angelo and Rembrandt: how Michael Angelo never took his
-boots off, and was never in love in his life; and how Rembrandt was practically starved to
-death. Then he showed her reproductions of Cranach and DĂĽrer, whom at the time he adored,
-and they bent over them, the chestnut head and the curly black together. Gradually she led
-him on to tell of his own life, and he began at the beginning in Austria, holding her
-spell-bound with his vivid, picturesque talk.</p>
-
-<p>“It makes me feel very quiet and dull,” she said. “I don’t think I ever regarded places
-outside England as real, somehow. There was just home and London, and London seemed to be
-the end of everything. All the trains stop there, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where is your home?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“In Sussex. It is very beautiful country.”</p>
-
-<p>“How did you come to the Detmold?”</p>
-
-<p>“A girl at home had been there, and at school they said I was no good at anything but
-drawing. Indeed, I was sent away from two schools, and at home I was such a trouble that
-mother decided I must do something to earn my living. So I was sent up to the Detmold. I
-had my hair down my back then.”</p>
-
-<p>“I remember,” said he. “In a plait.”</p>
-
-<p>She smiled with pleasure at that.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” she said. “In a plait. I lived in a hostel, where they bullied me because I was
-so untidy and was always being late for meals. At home,<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-138">[Pg 138]</a></span> you know, there were only my brothers,
-and my mother could never keep them in order, and I was always treated as if I was a boy
-too. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And I think that’s all.”</p>
-
-<p>She ended so lamely that his irritation got the better of him, and he jumped to his
-feet. It seemed to him that his view of the “top-knots” was confirmed. They were simply
-negligible. He was baffled, and stood staring down at her. Was she no more interested in
-herself than that? Comparing the smooth monotony of her life with his, he waxed impatient,
-and told himself he was a fool to have invited her to come to him.</p>
-
-<p>He began to study her face with a view to painting it, and he was absorbed and
-fascinated by it. The lines of her cheek and of her neck made him itch to draw them.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” he said, “I must paint you. I can do something good. I’m sure I can.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wanted to ask if you would mind my painting you,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>He was aghast at her impudence. She, a slip of a girl, a “top-knot,” paint the great
-KĂĽhler!</p>
-
-<p>She saw how horrified he was and added hastily:—</p>
-
-<p>“Of course, I won’t insist if you don’t like sitting.”</p>
-
-<p>She rose to go and he begged her to stay.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t go yet,” he said with sudden emotion. “I don’t want you to go. Somehow I feel as
-if you had been sitting there always and I don’t want you to go. If you don’t want to talk
-you needn’t, but you must stay. I could see that my mother liked you at once, and she
-always knows good people. You made her happy about me. It was like sunshine to her when
-you came in, and I shall be wretched if you go, for I don’t know what to think about
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know what I think about you.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you think?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-139">[Pg 139]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You have made me feel that London isn’t just a place where the trains stop.”</p>
-
-<p>And she began to tell him about her home and the river where she bathed with her
-brothers, the woods where in spring there were primroses and daffodils, and in summer
-bluebells.</p>
-
-<p>“Opposite the house,” she said, “is a hill which is a common, all covered with gorse in
-the summer, and the hot, nutty smell of it comes up and seems to burn your face. There are
-snakes on the common—vipers and adders and grass-snakes. From the top you can see the
-downs, and beyond them, you know, is the sea. On moonlight nights it is glorious, and I
-nearly go mad sometimes with running in and out of the shadows. I believe I did go mad
-once, for I sat up on the top of the hill and sang and shouted and cried, all by myself,
-and I felt that my heart would break if I did not kiss something. The gorse was out, and I
-buried my face in the dewy yellow flowers. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I often think the woods are
-like churches on Easter Day. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And then when I get home and it is just a
-house and I am just a girl living in it, you know, it all seems wrong somehow.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel sat on the floor trying to puzzle out this mysterious rapture of hers. He had
-never heard of gorse or of downs, but he could recognize her emotion. He had had something
-like it the first time he saw a may-tree in blossom, and he had hardly been able to bear
-it. He had rather resented it, for it had interfered with his work for a day or two, and
-he could not help feeling that there was something indecent about an emotion with which he
-could do nothing.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” he said heavily; “it must be very pretty.”</p>
-
-<p>She shivered at the grotesqueness of his words as she sank back into her normal mood of
-happy diffidence. His face wore an expression of black anger as he darted quick, furious
-glances at her. Here was something that he did not understand,<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-140">[Pg 140]</a></span> something that defied his mastery, and
-when she smiled he thought it was at himself, and this strange power that had been behind
-her appeared to him as a mocking, teasing spirit. Let it mock, let it tease! He was strong
-enough to defy it. Sweep through a green girl it might, but he was not to be caught by it.
-He knew better. In him it had tough simplicity to deal with and a will that had broken the
-confinement of Fate, the limits of a meagre religion, to bend before no authority but that
-of art. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He was rather contemptuous, too. Nothing as yet had resisted his
-genius, and he felt it within him stronger than ever, a river with a thousand sources.
-Block one channel and it would find another. Stop that and it would find yet another.</p>
-
-<p>Yet here he knew was no direct, no open menace, only the intolerable suggestion that
-there were other streams, other sources, and the suggestion had come from this foolish,
-empty girl.</p>
-
-<p>“I will not have it,” he said half aloud.</p>
-
-<p>“What did you say?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing. I was thinking—I was thinking that there is nothing so good as London. They
-tried to send me to Italy, but I know that there is nothing so good as London for life,
-and where life is, there is art. I don’t want your pretty places and your pretty feelings.
-I want to go through the streets and to see the girls in the evening leaving the shops,
-and the men in their bowler-hats looking at the girls and wanting them, and the fat men in
-their motor-cars, and the bookstalls on the railway stations, and the public-houses with
-their rows of bottles and the white handles of the beer machines, and the plump barmaids,
-and the long, straight streets going on for ever with the flat houses on either side of
-them, and the markets and the timber-yards and the tall chimneys. It all fills your mind
-and makes patterns and whirling thoughts that take<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-141">[Pg 141]</a></span> a spiral shape, going up and up to mysterious heights. I
-want all that, and nothing shall take it from me, do you hear?”</p>
-
-<p>He turned on her ferociously, as though she were trying to rob him.</p>
-
-<p>“And inside it all is something solid,” he went on. “Do you know that my father never
-loved but one woman in all his life? That’s what Jews are. They know what’s solid. If they
-have to stay in the filth to keep it, then they’ll stay in the filth. And because I’m a
-Jew I’m not to be caught with your pretty things and your little fancies. I shall paint
-the things I understand, and I’ll leave the clouds and the rainbows and the roofs and
-chimneys to fools like Mitchell.”</p>
-
-<p>Morrison sat very meekly while he talked. She hung her head and twitched her fingers
-nervously. She was elated by his passion, but she too had her dreams and was not going to
-surrender them. His strength had given her confidence in them and in herself, and she was
-filled with a teasing spirit.</p>
-
-<p>“Jews aren’t the only people who are solid,” she said. “You see men in buses and trains
-whom an earthquake wouldn’t move, and I’m sure, if an earthquake happened, my mother would
-be left where she was, reading the Bible.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel replied:—</p>
-
-<p>“In a thousand years my mother will be just as she is now.”</p>
-
-<p>Morrison stared at him and began to wonder if he was not a little mad. He added
-simply:—</p>
-
-<p>“I feel like that.”</p>
-
-<p>And she was relieved and thought he was the only sane person she had ever met in her
-life.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you let me come again?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p>“I am going to paint you,” he said; “I am going to paint you as you are. You won’t like
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall if you make me solid,” she answered. “And you need flowers in this dark room.
-You must let me send you some.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter201">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-143">[Pg 143]</a></span></p>
-
-<h3 id="Chapter200_hdg"><a href="#Chapter200_toc">BOOK TWO<br />
-<br />
-<span class="slightlybigfont">BOHEMIA</span></a></h3>
-
-<div class="pagebreak"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-145">[Pg 145]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter201_hdg"><a href="#Chapter201_toc">I<br />
-<span class="chap_title">THE POT-AU-FEU</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">A<small>T</small> the exhibition, the portrait of Golda created no
-small stir. The critics, who, since Whistler, had been chary of denouncing new-comers, had
-swung to the opposite extravagance and were excessively eager to discover new masters. The
-youth of this KĂĽhler made him fair game, for it supplied them with a proviso. They could
-hail his talent as that of a prodigy without committing themselves.</p>
-
-<p>“The portrait of the artist’s mother,” wrote one of them, “has all the essentials of
-great art, as the early compositions of Mozart had all the essentials of great music. Here
-is real achievement, a work of art instinct with racial feeling, and therefore of true
-originality. No trace here of Parisian experiments. This picture is in the direct line
-from Holbein and Dürer.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel took this to mean that he was as good as Holbein and DĂĽrer, and accepted it not
-as praise but as a statement of fact. The picture was bought by a well-known connoisseur,
-who wrote that he was proud to have such a picture in his collection.</p>
-
-<p>“Now,” thought the proud painter, “my career has really begun.”</p>
-
-<p>For once in a way he regarded his success with his father’s eyes and much as
-Moscowitsch would have regarded the successful coup in business for which he was always
-vainly striving. The hectic gambling spirit introduced by Hetty Finch had disappeared, and
-though he still devoted his<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-146">[Pg
-146]</a></span> leisure to Mitchell, their adventurousness was tempered by the
-tantalization of the “top-knots,” Morrison and Clowes. To counteract the disturbing effect
-of their coolness, Mendel became very Jewish and hugged his success, gloating over it
-rather like a cat over a stolen piece of fish.</p>
-
-<p>Morrison’s indifference to the buzz about his name was especially maddening, because he
-wished to prove to her that in painting dwelt a joy beside which her trumpery little
-ecstasy in woods and flowers was nothing, nothing at all. He wished to convince himself
-that he had not been really disturbed by her first visit to his studio. Only the shock of
-novelty he had felt, and by his success, by his triumphant work, he had obliterated it.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. She was nothing, he told himself, only a raw girl, smooth and polished by
-her easy life, good for nothing except to be made love to by such as Mitchell.</p>
-
-<p>Love? They called it love when a young man clasped a maiden’s hand, or when they kissed
-and rode together on the tops of buses! These Christians were rather disgusting with all
-their talk of love. He had heard more talk of it in three years of contact with them than
-in all his life before, and Weldon and others had talked of love in connection with Hetty
-Finch.</p>
-
-<p>Disgusting!</p>
-
-<p>And now here was Mitchell babbling of his love for Morrison. When Mendel wanted to talk
-of pictures and art and the old painters who had worked simply without reference to
-success, Mitchell kept dragging him back to Morrison, her simplicity, her extraordinary
-childlike innocence, her love of beauty, her generous trustfulness, her queer sudden
-impulses.</p>
-
-<p>“What has such a girl as that to do with art or with artists?” said Mendel furiously.
-“An artist wants women as he wants his food, when he has time for them.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-147">[Pg 147]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Gawd!” says Mitchell, trotting along by his side; “you don’t know what you are talking
-about. I tell you I never believed all that trash about a young man being redeemed by a
-virtuous girl until now.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s nonsense!” shouted Mendel; “nonsense, I tell you. It must be nonsense, because it
-didn’t matter to you whether it was Clowes or Morrison, and for all I know, it may be
-both.”</p>
-
-<p>“Clowes is a jolly nice girl too,” replied Mitchell, “but she’s more ordinary. I never
-met anyone like Morrison before. I can’t make her out, but she does make me feel that I am
-an absolute rotter. It is her fresh enjoyment of simple things that disturbs me and makes
-me see what a mess I’ve made of my life. Once an artist loses that, he is finished.”</p>
-
-<p>They had been reading Tolstoi on “What is Art?” and their young conceit had been put
-out by it. Must their extraordinary powers produce work accessible to the smallest
-intelligence? Mendel had been greatly influenced by that theory in his portrait of his
-mother, while Mitchell’s energy had been paralysed so that he could produce nothing at
-all.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” Mitchell went on, “I know now what Tolstoi means. He means that love can speak
-direct to love, and, by Jove! it is absolutely true. Brains are only a nuisance to an
-artist. Look at Calthrop! He hasn’t got the brains of a louse. Of course, that is why
-painters are such an ignorant lot. I must tell my father that when he goes for me for not
-reading.”</p>
-
-<p>“But Tolstoi liked bad artists!” grumbled Mendel. “And my mother does not like some of
-my best things. As for my father, he wants a painted bread to look as if he could eat it:
-never is he satisfied just to look at it. His love and my love are not the same and cannot
-speak to each other.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-148">[Pg 148]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You should see more of Morrison, and then you would understand,” rejoined
-Mitchell.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel felt that Mitchell was slipping away from him, and all this Christian talk of
-love was to him a corrosion upon his imagination and his nervous energy, blurring and
-distorting everything that he valued. There were many things that he hated, and yet
-because he hated them their interest for him was consuming. Issy’s wife, for instance, and
-her squalling children; his father’s bitter tongue; and Mitchell’s odd
-self-importance.</p>
-
-<p>He repeated:—</p>
-
-<p>“Tolstoi liked bad artists.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can’t settle a big man like Tolstoi just by repeating phrases about him.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can settle him by painting good pictures,” retorted Mendel. “I don’t paint pictures
-to please people.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then why do you paint?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know. To be an artist. Because there is a thing called art which matters to me
-more than all the love and all the women and all the little girls in the world.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” sighed Mitchell. “You’ll soon think differently. I shall never do another stroke
-of work without thinking of Greta standing on Kew Bridge and looking up the river at the
-boats with their white sails.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you be quiet?” cried Mendel; “will you be quiet with your little girls and white
-sails?”</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell seemed to be slipping away from him, and he dreaded the thought of being left
-alone with his success, which was blowing a bulb of glass round him, so that he felt
-imprisoned in it, and wherever he looked could see nothing but reflections of himself,
-Mendel KĂĽhler, painting his mother, and his father, and old Jews and loaves and fishes for
-ever and ever. While he clung to Mitchell he knew that he could not be so encased, but
-Mitchell demanded that he should go out with<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-149">[Pg 149]</a></span> him into a world all glowing with love, with rivers of
-milk and honey and meadows pied with buttercups and daisies; to stand on airy bridges and
-gaze at innocent little girls and white sails. The contemplation of this world revolted
-him, and he stiffened himself against it. Better the smells and the dirt than such
-fantastical stuff. His gorge rose against it.</p>
-
-<p>To wean Mitchell from his amorous fancies he pretended that he was tired and wanted a
-holiday, and together they went down to a village on the South Coast near Brighton. There
-it was almost as it had been in the beginning. For a fortnight they were never out of each
-other’s company. They slept in one bed and shared each other’s clothes, paints, and money.
-They sketched the same subjects, took tremendous walks, and in the evening they talked as
-though there were no London, no Paris Café, no exhibitions, no dealers, no critics,
-nothing but themselves and their friendship and their artistic projects. Mendel was
-supremely happy. Never had he known such intimacy since the days of Artie Beech.</p>
-
-<p>But Mitchell was often depressed and moody. He had letters every day, and every evening
-he wrote at great length.</p>
-
-<p>One morning he had a letter which he crumpled up dramatically and thrust into his
-trousers pocket.</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd!” he said. “That’s put the lid on it. I’m done for.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is it?” asked Mendel, aghast.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell you when we get back to London. We must go back this afternoon. Eight
-o’clock in the Pot-au-Feu.”</p>
-
-<p>The Pot-au-Feu was a little restaurant in Soho which Mitchell, Weldon, and some others
-had endeavoured to render immortal by decorating it with panels. In a room above it lived
-Hetty Finch.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-150">[Pg 150]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Mendel’s thoughts flew to her, a figure of ill omen. He had not seen her for some time,
-and had imagined that she had so successfully got all she wanted and was so thoroughly
-established in her composite profession that she had no time for the younger artists. He
-had heard tales about her, and fancied she would succeed in hooking one of the older men
-for a husband.</p>
-
-<p>He said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Why do you want to go back to that beastly place? Here it is good. I could stay here
-for six months.”</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd!” said Mitchell dismally. “’Tis life. There’s absolutely no getting away from it.
-Everything is swallowed up and nothing is left.”</p>
-
-<p>He became very solemn and added:—</p>
-
-<p>“If anything happens to me, Kühler, I want you to go to Greta Morrison and tell her
-that through everything I never forgot my happiness with her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Happen!” cried Mendel. “What can happen?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell you to-night,” replied Mitchell gloomily, “at the Pot-au-Feu.”</p>
-
-<p>And not another word did he say, neither during their morning’s work, nor during lunch,
-nor in the train, nor in the taxi-cab that took them to Soho.</p>
-
-<p>“You wait outside,” said Mitchell mysteriously.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel waited outside and paced up and down, oppressed with the idea that his
-friendship with Mitchell was at an end. He was left helpless and exposed, for all that had
-been built on the friendship had come toppling down, and with it came the extra
-personality he had developed for dealing with the Detmold and the polite world—the Kühler
-who had assiduously learned manners and phrases, vices and enthusiasms, as a part to be
-played at the Paris Café and in the drawing-rooms of the languid ladies who were
-interested in art and artists. Hetty Finch went with it, for she had<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-151">[Pg 151]</a></span> been an adjunct of
-that personality. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He was glad to be rid of her, and shook her off, plucked
-her out of his mind like a burr that was stuck upon it.</p>
-
-<p>After a quarter of an hour or so Mitchell came out more mysterious than ever, took his
-arm and led him into the restaurant, which was hardly bigger than an ordinary room. Full
-of vigour and health as he was, Mendel felt an enormous size in it, as though he must
-knock over the tables and thrust his elbows through the painted panels. Madame Feydeau,
-the proprietress, greeted him with a wide smile and said she had missed him lately. At his
-table was the goggle-eyed man who dined there every night with his newspaper open in front
-of him. Weldon and a girl with short hair were sitting in uncomfortable silence, both with
-the air of doing a secret thing. Near the counter, with its dishes of fruit and
-coffee-glasses, was Hetty Finch, rather drawn and pinched in the face and very dark under
-the eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was filled with impatience. She had no business to be sitting there, for he had
-disposed of her, and she made everything seem fantastic and unreal. He shook hands with
-her and sat at the table. Mitchell took the chair next to Hetty and talked to her in an
-undertone, while her eyes turned on Mendel with a frightened, inquiring expression.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” he said, as though he had understood her question. “I know when to hold my
-tongue.”</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell went on whispering, and every now and then he bowed his head and clenched his
-fists, as though he were racked with inexpressible emotions. He too had become fantastic.
-Mendel knew that he was play-acting, and with a sickening dread he went back over all he
-knew of Mitchell, recognizing this same play-acting in much that he had accepted as
-genuine. Yet he would not believe it, for Mitchell was his friend, and therefore never to
-be criticized.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-152">[Pg 152]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Would neither of them speak? Food was laid before him, and he ate it without tasting
-it. Mitchell led Hetty away to another table and talked to her impressively there. Then he
-brought her back and went on with his whispering.</p>
-
-<p>Coffee was laid before Mendel, and he drank it without tasting it.</p>
-
-<p>At last Hetty said, in a loud voice that rang through the room:—</p>
-
-<p>“No. I will take nothing from you. I ask nothing from you, not a penny.”</p>
-
-<p>“By God,” said Mitchell, hanging his head, “I deserve it.”</p>
-
-<p>Hetty turned to Mendel and asked him sweetly to buy her a bottle of wine, as she needed
-something to pick her up.</p>
-
-<p>“You are a devil,” she said, “sitting there as though nothing had happened. But I
-always said you were a devil and no good. I always said so, but I have my friends and can
-be independent.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t be a fool,” said he roughly. “You’ll have a short run, and you’d better find
-something to fall back on while you can.”</p>
-
-<p>“Get your hair cut!” she replied. “I know which side my bread’s buttered, and the old
-men aren’t so sharp as the young ones. You’ve got a fool’s tongue in your clever head,
-Kühler, and a fool’s tongue makes enemies.”</p>
-
-<p>“Shut up!” he said. “And you leave Mitchell alone. He hasn’t done you any harm.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ho! Hasn’t he?” she cried.</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell groaned, and, giving a withering glance at the two of them, Hetty gathered up
-her vanity-bag and gloves and walked out of the restaurant.</p>
-
-<p>“She’s a slut!” said Mendel. “She always was a slut and always will be.”</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd!” cried Mitchell. “It was you let her loose on the town, and I shall never hold
-up my<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-153">[Pg 153]</a></span> head
-again. I shall never be able to face my people. I shall just let myself be swallowed up in
-London. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. But I shan’t trouble any of my friends. When I’m a pimp I shan’t
-mind if you look the other way. After all, it isn’t so far to fall. There’s not much
-difference between the ordinary artist and a pimp.”</p>
-
-<p>“What has she done to you?” cried Mendel furiously. “Why do you let yourself be put
-down by a drab like that?”</p>
-
-<p>“She’s not a drab,” said Mitchell, in a curious thin of protest. “She is the mother of
-my child.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel brought his fist down on the table with a thump, so that the cups jumped from
-their saucers.</p>
-
-<p>“She is what?”</p>
-
-<p>“The mother of my child,” said Mitchell, burying his face in his hands. “I have offered
-to marry her, to make an honest woman of her, but she refuses, and she will take nothing
-from me. Gawd! How can I ever face Morrison again? How can I face my mother?”</p>
-
-<p>“Rubbish! Rubbish! Rubbish!” cried Mendel. “Why you? Why not Weldon—why not Calthrop?”
-He saw the goggle-eyed man listening eagerly and lowered his voice. “A drab like that
-deserves all she gets. She takes her risks, and I’ll say this for her, that she does not
-complain. She’s clever enough to know how to deal with it. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p>He wanted to say a great deal more, but realized that Mitchell, intent upon his own
-emotions, was not listening to him. Also, through the fantastic atmosphere, he began to be
-aware of a reality powerful and horrible. Against it Hetty seemed to be of no account, and
-Mitchell’s excitement was palpably false.</p>
-
-<p>This reality had been called into being by no one’s will, and therefore it was
-horrible.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-154">[Pg 154]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I shall have to disappear,” said Mitchell.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel did not hear him speak. His own will was aroused by the devastating reality.
-Because it was physical he exulted in it, and his will struggled to master it. He could
-not endure his friend’s helplessness and he wanted above all to help him, to make him see
-that this thing was at least powerful; evil and ugly, perhaps, but much too vital to be
-subdued or conquered by fantasy and theatrical emotions. He found Mitchell bewildering.
-Sentimentality always baffled him, for it seemed to him so superficial as to be not worth
-bothering about and so complicated as to defy unravelling. He knew that Mitchell was
-horrified and afraid, and that it was natural enough, but fear was not a thing to be
-encouraged.</p>
-
-<p>He said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Hetty knows perfectly well that she can manage it better without you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know,” replied Mitchell. “That’s what makes me feel such an awful worm.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel lost all patience. If a man was going to take pleasure in feeling a worm, there
-was nothing to be done with him. He called the waiter, paid the bill, and stumped out of
-the Pot-au-Feu leaving Mitchell staring blankly at the goggle-eyed man.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>A few days later he met Edgar Froitzheim leaving the National Gallery as he entered
-it.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! Kühler,” said Froitzheim. “The very man I wanted to see. I am very proud about the
-picture—very proud. But I wanted to see you about young Mitchell. He is a friend of yours,
-isn’t he? He is behaving very badly to a young model. Such a pretty girl. Hetty Finch. You
-know her? She is in trouble through him, and he refuses to do anything for her. I’m told
-he has Nietzschean ideas. I sent for the girl. It is a very sad story and I have raised a
-subscription<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-155">[Pg 155]</a></span> for
-her: fifty pounds to see her through. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Do try and bring Mitchell to
-reason.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll do what I can,” replied Mendel, and he walked on to pay his daily homage to Van
-Eyck and Chardin, who were his heroes at the time.</p>
-
-<p>That evening at the Paris Café he heard of another subscription having been raised for
-Hetty, and Calthrop growled and grumbled and said he had given her twenty pounds.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel reckoned it up and he found that she was being paid for her delinquency more
-than he could hope to receive for many months of painful work.</p>
-
-<p>As he finished his calculation he was amazed to see Mitchell come in with Morrison,
-whom he had declared he could never face again, and when Mendel rose to go over and join
-them she gave him only a curt little nod which told him plainly that he was not
-wanted.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter202">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-156">[Pg 156]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter202_hdg"><a href="#Chapter202_toc">II<br />
-<span class="chap_title">LOGAN</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">O<small>NCE</small> again Mendel decided that Mitchell, and with him
-London life, had fallen away from him. The Paris Café could never be the same again, and
-he plunged into despair, and thought seriously of accepting a Jewish girl with four
-hundred pounds whom a match-maker offered to him. Four hundred pounds was not to be
-sneezed at. It would keep him going for some years, so that he need not think of selling
-his pictures, which he always hated to part with. And the girl was just bearable.</p>
-
-<p>The figure delighted his father and mother, for it showed them the high opinion of
-their wonder-son held among their own people.</p>
-
-<p>It was terrible to him to find that he had very little pleasure in his work, which very
-often gave him excruciating pain. He took it to mean that he was coming to an end of his
-talent. Night after night he sat on his bed feeling that he must make an end of his life,
-but always there was some piece of painting that he must do in the morning, painful though
-it might be.</p>
-
-<p>He had letters from Mitchell, but did not answer them, and at last “the schoolboy,” as
-Golda called him, turned up, gay and smiling and rather elated.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve discovered a great man,” he said with the awkward, jerky gesture he used in his
-more eloquent moments. “Absolutely a great man. Reminds me of Napoleon. Wonderful head,
-wonderful! His name is Logan—James Logan—and<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-157">[Pg 157]</a></span> he wants to know you. He is a painter, and absolutely
-independent. He comes from the North—Liverpool or one of those places. I haven’t seen his
-work, but I met him at the Pot-au-Feu the other night. He asked me if I was not a friend
-of yours, as he thought he had seen me with you. He said: â€KĂĽhler is the only painter of
-genius we have.’ I spent the evening with him. I never heard such talk. It made the old
-Detmold seem like a girls’ school. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Hallo! Still-life again? What a rum old
-stick you are for never going outside your four walls!”</p>
-
-<p>“What I paint is inside me, not outside,” said Mendel, trembling with rage at Mitchell
-looking at his work before he had offered to show it.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you come and see Logan?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. I am sick of painters. I want to know decent people.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I promised I would bring you, and he admires your work. He is poor too, as poor as
-you are.”</p>
-
-<p>“Can’t he sell?”</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t that so much as that he doesn’t try. He says he had almost despaired of
-English painting until he saw your work.”</p>
-
-<p>“How old is he?”</p>
-
-<p>“A good deal older than us. Twenty-six, I should think.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why don’t you just stick to me?” asked Mendel. “What more do you want? Why must you
-always go off on a new track? First it’s Hetty Finch, then it’s Morrison, and now it’s
-this new man. We were happy enough by ourselves. Why do you want anything more? I
-don’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re used to living on dry bread. I’m not. I want butter with mine, and jam, if I
-can get it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then get it and don’t bother me to go chasing after it. I want to work.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, rot! All that stuff about artists starving in garrets is out of date. It only
-happened<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-158">[Pg 158]</a></span> because
-they couldn’t find patrons, but nowadays there are dealers and buyers. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-Just look at the money you are making.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then why is this Logan poor?”</p>
-
-<p>“He isn’t known yet. He doesn’t know the artists because he never went to a London
-school. He was doing quite well in the North, but threw it all up because he couldn’t
-stand living in such a filthy town. He had a teaching job somewhere in Hammersmith, but he
-threw that up because he wanted his time to himself.”</p>
-
-<p>“That sounds as if painting means something to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do come and see him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! very well.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll send him a wire and we’ll go to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>They dined at the Pot-au-Feu, and later made the expedition to Hammersmith, where they
-came to a block of studios surrounded by a scrubby garden. These studios were large and
-well-kept and did not tally with the description of Logan’s poverty. Still less did the
-inside give any sign of it. There was a huge red-brick fireplace, surmounted by old brass
-and blue china, with great arm-chairs on either side of it: there were Persian rugs on the
-floor; two little windows were filled in with good stained glass, which Mendel knew to be
-costly; there were two or three large easels; and the walls were hung with tapestry. The
-whole effect was deliberately and preciously rich.</p>
-
-<p>Logan, who had admitted them to this vast apartment, rushed back at once to a very
-large easel on which he had a very small canvas, and fell to work on it with a furious
-energy, darting to and fro and stamping his right foot rather like the big trumpet man in
-a German band. He was a medium-sized, plumpish man, with a big, strongly featured face,
-big chin, and compressed lips, and long black hair brushed back from a round, well-shaped
-brow. He frowned and scowled at his<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-159">[Pg 159]</a></span> work. A woman came out of a door and crossed the studio
-behind him. He hurled his palette into the air so that it sailed up and fell with a crash
-among the brass pots, and barked:—</p>
-
-<p>“How can I work with these constant interruptions? Damn it all, an artist must have
-peace!”</p>
-
-<p>He flung his arms behind his back and paced moodily to and fro, with his head down and
-his lips pursed up <i>Ă  la</i> Beethoven. He extended the sphere of his pacing gradually
-so that he came nearer and nearer to Mendel, yet without noticing him. Mendel was
-tremendously excited and impressed with the man’s air of mystery and force. It was like
-Calthrop, but without his awkwardness. Mitchell in comparison looked puny and absurdly
-young.</p>
-
-<p>Nearer and nearer came Logan, and at last he stopped and fixed Mendel with a baleful
-stare, and swung his head up and down three times.</p>
-
-<p>“So you are Kühler?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel opened his lips, but to his astonishment no sound came out of them. So
-desperately anxious was he not to cut a poor figure before this remarkable man, and not to
-seem, like Mitchell, pathetically young.</p>
-
-<p>“Good!” said Logan. “Shake hands.” And he crushed Mendel’s thin fingers together. “What
-I like about you,” he went on, “is your sense of form. Design is all very well in its way,
-but quite worthless without form.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel, whose work was still three parts instinctive, could not attach any precise
-meaning to these expressions, but he was well up in the jargon of his craft and could make
-a good show.</p>
-
-<p>“Art,” said Logan, “is an exacting mistress. Shall we go and have a drink?”</p>
-
-<p>He put on his hat and led the two marvelling youngsters to a public-house, where he
-became a different man altogether. The compression of his lips relaxed, his eyes twinkled
-and his face shone<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-160">[Pg
-160]</a></span> with good humour, and he made them and the barmaid and the two or three
-men who were shyly taking their beer roar with laughter. He had an extraordinary gift of
-mimicry, and told story after story, many of them against himself, most of them without
-point, but in the telling exceedingly comic. Mendel sat up and bristled. It was to him
-half shocking, half enviable, that a man, and an artist, should be able to laugh at
-himself.</p>
-
-<p>“If you’ll give me free drinks for a month,” said Logan to the elderly barmaid, “I’ll
-paint your portrait. Are you married? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. No? I’ll paint you such a beautiful
-portrait that it will get you a husband inside a week.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not on the marrying lay,” said the barmaid.</p>
-
-<p>“Terrible thing, this revolt against marriage,” replied Logan, “and bad luck on us
-artists. I’m always getting babies left on my doorstep.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you do with them?” said Mendel, believing him, and astonished when the others
-roared with laughter.</p>
-
-<p>“I keep the pretty ones and sell them to childless mothers. Ah! Many’s the time I’ve
-gone through the snow, like the heroine in a melodrama taking her child to the
-workhouse.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! go on,” tittered the barmaid.</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly,” said Logan. “Come along.”</p>
-
-<p>As they left the public-house he took Mendel’s arm and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“You have to talk to people in their own language, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” replied Mendel, though this was precisely what he knew least of all.</p>
-
-<p>“Why don’t you go on the stage?” asked Mitchell.</p>
-
-<p>“I have thought of it. I think I might do well on the halls. There’s a life for you! On
-at eight in Bethnal Green:—</p>
-
-<blockquote class="verse">
-<p class="i3">My old woman’s got a wart on her nose;</p>
-
-<p class="i3">How she got it I will now disclose.</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-161">[Pg 161]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="noindent">Off again in a motor-car to the Oxford:—</p>
-
-<blockquote class="verse">
-<p class="i3">My old woman’s got a wart on her nose.</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="noindent">Off again to Hammersmith or Kensal Rise:—</p>
-
-<blockquote class="verse">
-<p class="i3">My old woman’s got a wart on her nose.</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="noindent">My God! What a life! But I love the halls. They are all that is left
-of old England!”</p>
-
-<p>His parody of the low comedian was so apt and his voice had such a delicious roll that
-Mendel could not help laughing, and he began to feel very happy with the man.</p>
-
-<p>Logan swung back to his serious mood and gripped Mendel’s arm tighter as he said:—</p>
-
-<p>“You have a big future before you. Only stick to it. Don’t listen to the fools who want
-you to paint the same picture over and over again with a different subject. There’s more
-stuff in that one little picture of yours than in all the rest of the exhibition put
-together.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think so?” said Mendel, fluttering with excitement.</p>
-
-<p>“I was amazed when I heard you had been to the Detmold with its Calthrop and all the
-little Calthrops.”</p>
-
-<p>Both the youngsters were silent on that. They had often abused the Detmold, but with a
-profound respect in their hearts, and both had done their full share of imitating
-Calthrop.</p>
-
-<p>When they reached the studio Mitchell suggested going, but Logan would not hear of it.
-He dragged them in and produced whisky and soda, and kept them talking far into the small
-hours. His bouncing energy kept Mendel awake and alert, but Mitchell was soon exhausted
-and fell asleep.</p>
-
-<p>“Shall we put him out of the way?” said Logan suddenly. “No one would know, and the
-river is handy. He is too clean, too soft, and there are<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-162">[Pg 162]</a></span> too many like him. They are in the way
-of real men like you and me.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was appalled to find that he could not defend his friend. All the discontents of
-his waning friendship came rushing up in him and he began to babble violently.</p>
-
-<p>“He is a liar and a coward, and he will never be an artist because he is too weak. He
-is not true. He is not good. I have trusted him with my secrets and he tells. He is always
-ashamed of me because of my clothes and because I have not been to Public School, and he
-is jealous because when we meet women they like me. He is soft and deceitful with them,
-but I am honest, and they like that. I wanted him to be my friend, but it is
-impossible.”</p>
-
-<p>“He is an Englishman,” said Logan sepulchrally, with the air of a Grand Inquisitor.</p>
-
-<p>“Aren’t you an Englishman?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, Scotch and French. These Englishmen have no passions, unless they are mad like
-Blake. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. No, no. We’ll drop Mitchell overboard. We’ll make him walk the
-plank, and fishes in the caverns of the sea shall eat his eyes.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan was beginning to assume enormous proportions in Mendel’s eyes. It seemed that
-there was nothing the tremendous fellow did not know. He began to talk of genius and the
-stirring of the creative impulse, and he gave so powerful an account of Blake that Mendel
-began to see visions of heaven and hell. Here was something which he could acknowledge as
-larger than himself without self-humiliation, and, indeed, the larger it loomed the more
-swiftly did he himself seem to grow. It was such a sensation as he had not known since the
-days before his rapture with Sara. All that had intervened fell away. That purity of
-passion returned to him and, choosing Logan for its object, rushed upon him and endowed
-him with its own power and beauty. Logan talking of<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-163">[Pg 163]</a></span> Blake was to Mendel’s innocence as rare
-as Blake, and he adored him.</p>
-
-<p>“I had almost given up art,” said Logan; “I had almost given it up as hopeless. How can
-there be art in a despiritualized country like this, that lets all its traditions rot
-away? I was just on the point of tossing up whether I should go on the stage or take to
-spouting at the street corners; for when a country is in such a condition that its artists
-are stifled, then it is ripe for revolution. I am instinctive, you know, like Napoleon. I
-feel that we are on the threshold of something big, and that I am to have my share in it.
-I used to think it would happen in art, but I despaired of that. It seemed to me that art
-in this country could go doddering on for generations, and then I thought it needed a
-political upheaval to push it into its grave. But when I saw your work, I said to myself:
-Here is the real thing, alive, personal, profound, skilled. I began to hope again. And now
-that I have met you I feel more hopeful still, and, let me tell you, like most painters, I
-don’t find it easy to like another man’s work.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was fired. Trembling in every limb, he said:—</p>
-
-<p>“It has been the dream of my life to find a friend who would work with me, think with
-me, go with me, share with me, not quarrelling with me because I am not this, that, and
-the other, but accepting me as I am—a man who has no country, no home, no love but
-art.”</p>
-
-<p>“That,” said Logan, with a portentous scowl and a downward jab of his thumb, “is what I
-have been looking for—some one, like yourself, who was absolutely sincere, absolutely
-single-minded and resolute. The spirit of art has brought us together. We will serve it
-together.”</p>
-
-<p>They shook hands like young men on the stage, and Logan fetched a deep sigh of
-relief.</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell woke up, saying:—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-164">[Pg 164]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Gawd! I’ve been asleep. Have you two been talking? Gawd! It’s two o’clock.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll walk home with you,” said Logan. “We can keep to the river nearly the whole way
-by going from side to side.”</p>
-
-<p>So they walked while the tide came up, sucking and lapping, while the red dragons’ eyes
-of the barges came swinging up on it, moving up and down in a slow, irregular rhythm. It
-was very cold and the sky was thickly powdered with stars, whose pin-prick lights were
-reflected in the smooth water.</p>
-
-<p>Upon the dome of the young artist’s vision that had before been black with infinite
-space, stars shone with a tender light. He was in ecstasy, and seemed to be skimming above
-the ground, hardly touching it with his feet. This long walk was like an exquisite dance,
-while Logan’s rollings were like a pipe. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Often he sank into a dream that
-he was upon a grassy hill in a mountainy place, he and his friend, who played upon a pipe
-so mournfully yet gaily while he danced, and from the trees fell silvery dewdrops and the
-songs of birds, which turned into pennies as they reached the ground and rolled away down
-the hill.</p>
-
-<p>Both he and Logan were relieved when Mitchell, who had interrupted them with
-inappropriate remarks, turned aside at Vauxhall and vanished into London.</p>
-
-<p>“So much for Mitchell,” said Logan. “You and I need sterner stuff. You and I are sprung
-from those among whom life is lived bravely and bitterly, and we have no use for its
-parasites. You and I will only emerge from the bitterness on condition that we can make of
-life a spiritual thing, for we are of those who seek authority. Life has none to offer us
-now, for all the forms of life are broken. Neither above us nor below is there authority,
-neither in heaven nor in hell. We must seek authority within ourselves, in the<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-165">[Pg 165]</a></span> marriage of heaven
-and hell, in the consummation of good and evil, the two poles of our nature. It is for us,
-the artists, to bring them together, to liberate good and evil in ourselves, that they may
-rush to the consummation. We are the priests and the prophets, and we must in no wise be
-false to our vision.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel could not fit all this in with his mood and his delicious dreams, and when it
-brought him back to his sober senses, he could not see what it had to do with painting.
-However, Logan put things right by saying:—</p>
-
-<p>“You are a poet. You are like Heine. I can see you with your little Josepha the pale,
-the executioner’s daughter. God rot my soul! It is years since I had such inspiration as
-you have given me. I think there must be Jewish blood in me, for I can certainly
-understand you through and through, and you have waked something in me that has always
-been asleep. Oh! we shall paint bonny pictures—bonny, bonny pictures.”</p>
-
-<p>“You must come to see me every day,” said Mendel, “and every night we will go out
-together, and I must introduce you to my mother, for she too has good words.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan smacked his lips as they entered the grimy streets near Spitalfields.</p>
-
-<p>“Pah!” he said; “that’s life, that is, good dirty life. I was littered in a farm-yard
-myself and I like a good smell. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Can you put me up to-night? I don’t mind
-sleeping on the floor.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can have my bed,” said Mendel, “and I will sleep downstairs on my brother’s sofa.
-Please—please. Do sleep in my bed.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan accepted the offer and asked Mendel to stay with him while he undressed. He was
-unpleasantly fat, but strong and well-built.</p>
-
-<p>He stayed for a long time in front of the mirror.</p>
-
-<p>“See that bulge on the side of my head?” he said as he turned.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-166">[Pg 166]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Mendel looked, and sure enough his head had a curious bulge on its right side.</p>
-
-<p>“I had rickets when I was young,” said Logan, “and my skull must have got pushed over.
-I expect that’s what makes me what I am—lop-sided. I need you to balance me.”</p>
-
-<p>He got into bed, and Mendel, reluctant to leave him, sat at his feet and devoured him
-with his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Surely, surely, now,” he thought, “all is perfect now. No more disturbances, no more
-Mitchells, no more Hettys, and I shall do only what I really wish to do.”</p>
-
-<p>He stole out into his studio, which was faintly lit from the street below, and it was
-as though it were filled with some vast spiritual presence, and he imagined how he would
-work, urged on by this new energy that came welling up through all that he could see, all
-that he could know, all that he could remember.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter203">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-167">[Pg 167]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter203_hdg"><a href="#Chapter203_toc">III<br />
-<span class="chap_title">LOGAN SETS TO WORK</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">I<small>N</small> the morning he was awakened by his sister-in-law,
-Rosa, shaking him and saying:—</p>
-
-<p>“Mendel! Mendel! What are you doing on the sofa? Wake up! Wake up! There is some one in
-your studio.”</p>
-
-<p>The house was ringing with Logan’s voice chanting the <i>Magnificat.</i> Mendel ran
-upstairs and found him in bed with a box of cigarettes and the New Testament, that fatal
-book, on his knees.</p>
-
-<p>“Hello!” he said. “I hope I didn’t wake you up. I have been awake for a couple of hours
-looking at your work. I hope you don’t mind. There’s a still-life there that’s a gem, as
-good as Chardin, and even better, for there’s always something sentimental about
-Chardin—always the suggestion of the old folks at home, the false dramatic touch, the idea
-of the hard-working French peasant coming in presently to eat the bread and drink the
-wine. I think it’s time you were written up in the papers. It’s absurd for a man like you
-to have to wait for success. There’s no artistic public in England, so you can’t be
-successful in your own way. The British public must have its touch of melodrama. To accept
-a man’s work it must first have him shrouded in legend. He must be a myth. His work must
-seem to come from some supernatural source.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll just run over and tell my mother you are here,” said Mendel. “I always have
-breakfast<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-168">[Pg 168]</a></span> there,
-and then go for a walk while the studio is dusted.”</p>
-
-<p>“Right you are! I’ll be up in half a jiffy. Can I have a bath?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. There’s no bath.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well; I can do without for once.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel ran round to Golda and told her of the wonderful man who was in his studio, and
-he described the adventure of the previous evening. Golda looked scared and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“What next? What next? Good people sleep in their own beds.”</p>
-
-<p>“But this man is an artist and he talks like a book.”</p>
-
-<p>“Talk is easy,” said Golda. “But it takes years to make a friend.”</p>
-
-<p>However, when Logan was brought to her she was polite to him and rather shy. He told
-her that fame was coming to her son faster than the wind.</p>
-
-<p>“Too fast,” said she.</p>
-
-<p>“It can never come too fast,” replied Logan. “The thirst for fame is a curse to an
-artist. Let it be satisfied and he is free for his work. I know, for I was very famous in
-my own town. I sickened of it and ran away. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I must congratulate you on
-letting your son follow his bent. I had to quarrel with my own people to get my way. I
-haven’t seen them since I was fourteen.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not your mother?” said Golda, greatly upset.</p>
-
-<p>Logan saw that he had made an awkward impression and hastened to put it right by saying
-lugubriously:—</p>
-
-<p>“My mother is dead. She forgave me.”</p>
-
-<p>He allowed that to sink in and was silent for a minute or two. Then he chattered on
-gaily and asked Golda to come and see him, and bragged about his studio and his work and
-his friends, and of a commission he had to decorate a large house in a West End square. He
-talked so fast that<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-169">[Pg
-169]</a></span> Golda understood very little of what he said, but she never took her eyes
-off him, and when he said good-bye, Mendel noticed that she did not bob to him as she did
-to Mitchell and Morrison and his other polite friends. He took that to mean that she
-accepted Logan as a person above these formalities.</p>
-
-<p>For an hour they walked through the streets and squares of the East End, Mendel proud
-to display the vivid scenes he intended later on to make into pictures.</p>
-
-<p>When they returned to the studio Logan insisted on seeing all the pictures and drawings
-again.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you in touch with any dealer?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Cluny has a few pictures and a dozen drawings. He never does anything with them.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hum!” said Logan. “Dealers are mysterious people. They can only sell things that sell
-themselves. By the way, I am giving up my studio in Hammersmith. It is too far away. I
-shall come nearer in. Hammersmith was all very well while I needed isolation, but that is
-all over now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where shall you go to?”</p>
-
-<p>“Bloomsbury, I think. I like to be near the British Museum. Do you go to the British
-Museum? I must show you round. It is no good going there unless you know what to look for.
-By the way, I came out without any money last night. Can you lend me five pounds?”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel wrote a cheque and handed it to him shamefacedly.</p>
-
-<p>“I want to pay a bill on my way home,” said Logan. “I hate being in debt, especially
-for colours.”</p>
-
-<p>“I get my colours from Cluny,” said Mendel, “and he sets them against anything he may
-sell.”</p>
-
-<p>The irruption of money had depressed him, and he began to realize that he was very
-tired. The springs of Rosa’s sofa had bored into him and prevented his getting any real
-sleep.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-170">[Pg 170]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He was not sorry when Logan went, after making him promise to meet him at the
-Pot-au-Feu for dinner.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>He had a model coming at eleven, but when she arrived he sent her away. He was sore and
-dissatisfied. The studio seemed dark and dismal, and he could not get enough light on to
-his work. He took it right up to the window, but still there was not enough light, and his
-picture looked dull and dingy. His nerves throbbed and he was troubled in spirit, for now
-his old dreams of painting quietly among his own people while fame gathered about his name
-had suddenly become childish and pathetic. He was ignorant, futile, conceited, a pigmy by
-the side of the gigantic Logan, who would not wait upon the world, but would compel its
-attention and shape it to his will. What had he said artists were? Priests and prophets?
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. How could a man prophesy with a painting of a fish?</p>
-
-<p>Downstairs he heard Issy come in for his dinner, and there was the usual snarling row
-because Rosa cooked so vilely. Mendel compared Issy’s life and his own: Issy working day
-in, day out, earning just enough to keep himself alive. Why did he go on with it? Why did
-he keep himself alive? Why did he not clear out, like Harry? There was no pleasure in his
-life, neither the time nor the money for it. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. A wretched business.</p>
-
-<p>But was it less wretched than this business of painting? There was more money in
-painting, and that was all anybody seemed to think of. People wanted the same picture over
-and over again, and if he consented to please them, his life would be just as poor a thing
-as Issy’s, except that he would have pleasure, and, through his friends, an occasional
-taste of luxury. At best he could be polite and gentlemanly, like Mitchell, bringing
-no<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-171">[Pg 171]</a></span> more to art
-and getting no more out of it than a boyish excitement, as though art were a game and
-could give no more than a sensation of cleanliness, like a hot bath.</p>
-
-<p>No, it would not do. It would not do.</p>
-
-<p>It was a lie, too, to say that the Jews only cared about money. When they were overfed,
-like Maurice Birnbaum, they were like all the other overfed people, but when they were
-simple and normal they were better than the others, because they had always a sense of
-mystery and did not waste themselves in foolish laughter.</p>
-
-<p>That was where Logan was true. He could laugh, because all the Christians laugh, but
-when it came to solemn things he could talk about them as though he were not half ashamed.
-Mitchell, for instance, always shied away from the truth. Why was he afraid of it? The
-truth, good or bad, was always somehow beautiful, invigorating, and releasing. All the
-pleasant things that Mitchell cared about Mendel found stifling. Nothing, he knew, could
-make life altogether pleasant, and all the falsehoods which were used in that attempt were
-contemptible. They strangled impulse and frankness, and without these how could there be
-art?</p>
-
-<p>In his unhappy dreams Logan appeared like a figure of Blake, immense, looming
-prophetic, beckoning to achievement and away from the chatter and fuss of the world of
-artists.</p>
-
-<p>Yet behind Logan there was still the figure of Mitchell, young and gay, and the idea of
-Mitchell led to the idea of Morrison.</p>
-
-<p>There were some withered flowers on his painting-table, the last she had sent him. None
-had come since that evening in the Paris Café when she had nodded curtly to show him that
-he was not wanted.</p>
-
-<p>He would not be thrust aside like that. He knew himself to be worth a thousand
-Mitchells.<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-172">[Pg 172]</a></span> Logan
-had said that Mitchell was rubbish, and not even in the eyes of a slip of a girl would
-Mendel have Mitchell set above himself. Not for one moment was it tolerable. He would keep
-Morrison to her promises and make her come to have her portrait painted, and he would find
-out what there was in her that made him remember her so distinctly and so clearly separate
-her from all other girls. Somehow the thought of her cooled the intoxication in which he
-had been left by Logan. She offered, perhaps, another way out of his present state of
-congestion and dissatisfaction. Very clearly she brought back to his mind the thrilling
-delight with which he had worked as a boy, and that was true, truer than anything else he
-had ever known. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Ah! If he could only get back to that, with all the tricks
-and cunning he had learned.</p>
-
-<p>He would get back to it some day, but he must fight for it; with Logan he would learn
-how to fight. Logan would lay his immense store of knowledge before him, and give him
-books to read, and teach him how to be so easy and familiar with ideas, which at present
-only frothed in his mind like waves thinning themselves out on the sea-shore.</p>
-
-<p>He wrote an impassioned and insolent letter to Morrison commanding her presence at his
-studio and informing her that he was worth a thousand of her ordinary associates, and that
-she had hurt him, and that girls ought not to hurt men of acknowledged talent. This letter
-cost him a great deal of pain and time, because he was careful not to make any slip in
-spelling or grammar. It was more a manifesto than a letter, and he wished to do nothing to
-impair its dignity.</p>
-
-<p>And all the time he was puzzled to know why he should care about her at all. He was
-prepared to throw everything—his success, the Detmold, his friends—to the winds to follow
-Logan, but Morrison he could not throw away.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-173">[Pg 173]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He decided at last not to send the letter but to go himself, and he went to the Detmold
-just as the light was fading and he knew she would be leaving.</p>
-
-<p>She had gone already, but he met Clowes, who, he knew, lived with her. He pounced on
-her and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“You must come to tea with me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid I .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p>“You must! You must!”</p>
-
-<p>She saw he was very excited and she had heard stories of his bursting into tears when
-he was thwarted. In some alarm she consented to go with him.</p>
-
-<p>He led her to a teashop, a horrible place that smelt of dishwater and melted butter,
-made her sit at a table, and burst at once into a tirade:—</p>
-
-<p>“You are Morrison’s friend. Will you tell me why she has avoided me? She came to my
-studio once and she said she would come again. She sent me flowers for three weeks, but
-she has sent no more.”</p>
-
-<p>“She—she is very forgetful,” said Clowes, who was longing for tea but did not dare to
-tell him to turn to the waitress, who was hovering behind him.</p>
-
-<p>“But she nodded to me as if she had hardly met me before,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“She is very shy,” said Clowes, framing the word “Tea” with her lips and nodding
-brightly to the waitress. She added kindly:—</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think sending flowers means much with her. She gives flowers to heaps of
-people. She is a very odd girl.”</p>
-
-<p>“Does she give flowers to Mitchell?” he asked furiously, coming at last with great
-relief to the consuming thought in his mind.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Clowes. “She is very unhappy about Mitchell and that Hetty Finch
-affair.”</p>
-
-<p>“Has he told her then?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-174">[Pg 174]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why did he tell her?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure I don’t know.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell you,” cried Mendel. “I’ll tell you. To make himself interesting to her,
-because he is not interesting. He is nothing. And I will tell you something more. He has
-been telling her things about me to excuse himself. Now, hasn’t he? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I can
-see by your face that he has.”</p>
-
-<p>Clowes could not deny it, and she found it hard to conceal her distress. She was unused
-to intimate affairs being dragged out into the open like this, and her modesty was
-shocked. She had a pretty, intelligent face, and she looked for the moment like a startled
-hare, the more so when she put her handkerchief up to her nose with a gesture like that of
-a hare brushing its whiskers.</p>
-
-<p>“Very well, then,” Mendel continued; “you can tell her you have seen me, and you can
-tell her that I shall come to explain myself. I hide nothing, for I am ashamed of nothing
-that I do. I have no need to excuse myself. I am not a gentleman one moment and a cad the
-next. And you can tell Morrison that if I see her with Mitchell again I shall knock him
-down.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do please drink your tea,” said Clowes. “It is getting cold.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel gulped down his tea and hastened to add:—</p>
-
-<p>“I am not boasting. He is bigger than I am, but I know something about boxing. My
-brother was nearly a prizefighter.”</p>
-
-<p>Clowes began to recover from her alarm, and his immense seriousness struck her as very
-comic.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you know that Greta has cut her hair short?”</p>
-
-<p>“Her hair?” cried Mendel. “Her beautiful hair?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. She looks so sweet, but the boys call after her in the streets. All the girls are
-wild to do it.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-175">[Pg 175]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Her hair? Her beautiful hair? Why?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! she got sick of putting it up. She is like that. She suddenly does something you
-don’t expect.”</p>
-
-<p>“But she must look terrible!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh no. She looks too sweet. And if all the boys at the Detmold wear their hair long, I
-don’t see why the girls shouldn’t wear theirs short.”</p>
-
-<p>“My mother had her head shaved when she married,” said he, “and she wore a wig.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why did she do that?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is the custom. The woman shows that she belongs wholly to her husband and makes
-herself unattractive to all other men.”</p>
-
-<p>“What a horrible idea!”</p>
-
-<p>“It is a beautiful idea. It is the idea of love independent of everything else. That is
-why I thought Morrison must have some reason for cutting her hair.”</p>
-
-<p>“When you know Greta, you will know that she doesn’t wait for reasons.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why does she like Mitchell?”</p>
-
-<p>“She likes nearly everybody.”</p>
-
-<p>“But she writes to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course she does,” said Clowes, rather bored with his persistence.</p>
-
-<p>“But she doesn’t write to me.”</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t write to her. You can’t expect her to fall at your feet.”</p>
-
-<p>As she said this Clowes realized his extraordinary Orientalism. She could see him
-holding up his finger and expecting a woman to come at his bidding, and for a moment she
-was repelled by him. But she was a kind-hearted creature and felt very sorry for him, for
-he seemed so utterly at sea and was obviously full of genuine and painful emotion.</p>
-
-<p>He detected her repulsion at once and perceived the effort she made to conquer it, and
-was at once<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-176">[Pg 176]</a></span>
-grateful to her, for, as a rule, when that happened, people let it swamp everything
-else.</p>
-
-<p>She said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell Greta what you have said to me, and I am sure she will be very sorry to have
-hurt you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I only want her to come and sit for her portrait. It is very important to me, because
-I want to try new subjects and there is some lovely drawing in her face.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you mustn’t knock Mitchell down. He is quite a nice boy, really, only a little
-wild.”</p>
-
-<p>“He is rotten,” said Mendel dogmatically.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>He felt better, and until dinner-time he prowled about Tottenham Court Road and Soho, a
-region of London that he particularly loved—a vibrant, nondescript region where
-innumerable streams of vitality met and fused, or clashed together to make a froth and a
-spume. It was like himself, chaotic and rawly alive, compounded of elements that knew no
-tradition or had escaped from it. He felt at home in it, and elated because he was also
-conscious of being superior to it, yet without the dizzy sense of superiority that
-assailed him among his own people, while he was never shocked and humiliated, as he was
-sometimes in sedate and prosperous London, by being made suddenly to realize his external
-inferiority. He loved the shop-girls hurrying excitedly from their work to their pleasure,
-and he sometimes spoke to them in their own slang, sometimes went home with them.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. They always liked him because he never wasted time over silly flirtatious
-jokes or pretended to be in love with them. His interest and curiosity, like theirs, were
-purely physical, and his passion gave them a delicious sense of danger.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Logan was waiting for him at the Pot-au-Feu. There was no one else in the restaurant
-but the<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-177">[Pg 177]</a></span>
-goggle-eyed man in his corner. Logan was sitting Napoleonically with his arms on the table
-and his chin sunk on his chest, with his lips compressed.</p>
-
-<p>He nodded, but did not get up.</p>
-
-<p>“Sorry if I’m late,” said Mendel. “I went for a walk. I couldn’t work to-day. My
-sister-in-law’s sofa—I feel as if I had been beaten all over.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s the walk home,” said Logan. “I’m used to it. The hours I’ve spent walking about
-this infernal London! I’ve slept on the Embankment, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“No?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I’ve been as far down as that, though I’m not the sort of man who can be kept
-down. Did you know that Napoleon was out-at-elbows for a whole year?”</p>
-
-<p>“No; I don’t know much about Napoleon.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! You should. I read every book about him I can lay hands on. Gustave!”</p>
-
-<p>The waiter came up and Logan ordered a very special dinner with the air of knowing the
-very inmost secrets of the establishment. He demanded orange bitters before the meal and a
-special brand of cigarette.</p>
-
-<p>“My day hasn’t been wasted,” he said. “I’ve been to Cluny’s and I asked to see your
-stuff. The little man there looked astonished, but I told him people were talking of no
-one else but you, and quite rightly. I talked to him from the dealer’s point of view, and
-assured him that there was a big boom in pictures, coming, and that he had better be
-prepared for it with a handful of new men. I didn’t let him know that I was a painter, but
-I got him quite excited, and I did not leave him until he had hung a picture and two
-drawings.”</p>
-
-<p>“Which picture?”</p>
-
-<p>“The one of your mother’s kitchen. It is one of your best. To-morrow three men will
-walk<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-178">[Pg 178]</a></span> into
-Cluny’s and they will admire your work. On the day after to-morrow a real buyer will walk
-in.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel’s eyes grew larger and larger. Was Logan a magician, that he could direct human
-beings into Cluny’s shop and conduct them straight to his work?</p>
-
-<p>Logan laughed at his amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord love-a-duck!” he said, “you’re not going to sit still and wait for commercial
-fools to discover that you know your job. At my first exhibition in Liverpool I put on a
-false beard and went in and bought one of my own pictures, just to encourage the dealer
-and the timid idiots who were too shy to go and ask him the price of the drawings. It
-worked, and this is going to work too. When I’ve warmed Cluny up into selling you, then
-I’m going to make him sell me. If you don’t mind we’ll have our names bracketed,—Kühler
-and Logan. People will believe in two men when they won’t in one. As for three, you’ve
-only got to look at the Trinity to see what they’ll believe when they get three working
-together. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh! I forgot you were a Jew and brought up to believe in One is
-One and all alone.”</p>
-
-<p>He laughed and gave a fat chuckle as he mimicked the little man in Cluny’s cocking his
-head on one side and pretending to take in the beauties of Mendel’s work as they were
-pointed out to him.</p>
-
-<p>“I have enjoyed myself,” said Logan. “By God! I wish there were a revolution. I’d have
-my finger in the pie. Oh! what lovely legs there’d be to pull—all the world’s and his
-wife’s as well. But it won’t come in my time.”</p>
-
-<p>Under Logan’s influence Mendel began to enjoy his food, which he had always treated as
-a tiresome necessity before. He sat back in his chair and sipped his wine and crumbled up
-his bread exactly as Logan did; and he had a delicious sense of leisure and well-being, as
-though nothing<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-179">[Pg 179]</a></span>
-mattered very much. And, indeed, when he came to think of it, nothing did matter. He had
-years and years ahead of him, and here was good solid pleasure in front of him, so that he
-had only to dip his hands in it and take and take. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p>After the dinner Logan ordered cigars, coffee, and liqueurs, and Mendel felt very
-lordly. The restaurant had filled up, and among the rest were Mitchell and Morrison.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel turned, gave them a curt nod, and could not restrain a grin of satisfaction as
-he thought that score was settled. He leaned forward and gave himself up to the pleasure
-of Logan’s talk.</p>
-
-<p>“What I contend,” said Logan, “is this—and mind you, I let off my youthful gas years
-ago. I’ve been earning my living since I was fourteen, so I know a little of what the
-world’s like. I’ve been in offices and shops, and on the land, in hotels, on the railway,
-on the road as a bagman, from house to house as a tallyman, and I know what I’m talking
-about. The artist is a free man, and therefore an outlaw, because the world is full of
-timid slaves who lie in the laps of women. If an artist is not a free man, then he is not
-an artist. And I say that if the artist is outlawed, then he must use any and every means
-to get out of the world what it denies him. One must live.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s true,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“You may take it from me that there is less room in the world now for artists than ever
-there was. In the old days you chose your patron and he provided for you, as the Pope
-provided for Michael Angelo, and you devoted your art to whatever your patron stood for,
-spiritual power if he happened to be a pope, secular power if he happened to be a duke or
-a king. But, nowadays, suppose you had a patron—say, Sir Julius Fleischmann—and he kept
-you alive, what on earth could you devote your art to? You could paint his portrait, and
-his wife’s portrait, and all his<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-180">[Pg
-180]</a></span> daughters’ portraits, but they’d mean nothing; they’d just be vulgar men
-and women. No. Art is a bigger thing than any power left on the earth. Money has eaten up
-all the other powers, and only art is left uncorrupted by it. Art cannot be patronized. It
-cannot serve religion, because there is no religion vital enough to contain the spirit of
-art. There is nothing left in the world worthy of such noble service, and therefore art
-must be independent and artists must be free, because there is no honourable service open
-to them. They must have their own values, and they must have the courage of them. The
-world’s values are the values fit for the service of Sir Julius Fleischmann, but they are
-not fit for men whose blood is stirring with life, whose minds are eager and active, men
-who will accept any outward humiliation rather than the degradation of the loss of their
-freedom.”</p>
-
-<p>“I met Sir Julius Fleischmann. Once,” Mendel said. “He subscribed for me when I went to
-my first School of Art. They wanted to send me to Italy, but I refused, because I knew my
-place was here in London. There’s more art for me in the Tottenham Court Road than in all
-the blue skies in the world.”</p>
-
-<p>“Quite right, too!” cried Logan. “That shows how sound an artist’s instinct is. He
-knows what is good for him because he is a free man. The others have to be told what is
-good for them because they don’t know themselves and because, however unhappy they are,
-they don’t know the way out. When you and I are unhappy we know that it is because we have
-lost touch with life, or because we have lost touch with art; either the flesh or the
-spirit is choked with thorns, and we set about plucking them out. When it is a question of
-saving your soul, what do morals matter?”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel had heard people talk about morals, and he knew that his own were supposed to be
-bad; but he was not certain what they were. Rather<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-181">[Pg 181]</a></span> timidly he asked Logan, who gave his fat chuckle and
-replied:—</p>
-
-<p>“Morals, my son? No one knows. They change about a hundred years after human practice.
-They are different in different times, places, and circumstances, and Sir Julius
-Fleischmann, like you and me, has none, because he can afford to do without them.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Well, I’ve done a good day’s work and we’ve had a good dinner, and I must
-get back to my beautiful bed—unless you’d like to go to a music-hall.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was loath to let his friend go, and, weary though he was, he said he would like
-the music-hall. Logan bought more cigars and they walked round to the Oxford and spent the
-evening in uneasy and flat conversation with two ladies of the town, one of whom said she
-knew Logan, though he swore he had never seen her before. When they were shaken off, he
-told Mendel mysteriously that she was a friend of a woman of whom he went in terror, who
-had been pursuing him for a couple of years.</p>
-
-<p>“Terrible! Terrible!” he said. “Like a wild beast. They’re awful, these prostitutes,
-when they fall in love. It eats them up, body and soul.”</p>
-
-<p>And he went on talking of women, and from what he said it appeared that he was beset by
-them. He described them lurking in the street for him, forcing their way into his studio,
-clamouring for love, love, love.</p>
-
-<p>“It makes me sick,” he said. “I never yet met a woman who knew how to love. If a man
-has an enthusiasm for anything outside themselves, they plot and scheme with their
-damnable cunning to kill it. They want the carcase of a man, not the lovely life in it.
-And if they’re decent they want babies, which is almost worse if you’re hard up. No, boy;
-for God’s sake don’t take women seriously. If you can’t do without them, hate ’em.<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-182">[Pg 182]</a></span> They’ll lick your
-boots for it. They feed on hatred, and will take it out of your hand.”</p>
-
-<p>He talked in this strain until they reached the Tube station in Piccadilly Circus. It
-was unusually empty, and by the booking-office was standing a very pretty girl, big and
-upstanding. She had a wide mouth and curious slanting eyes, plump cheeks and a roguish
-tilt to her chin. She was well and neatly dressed, and Mendel judged her to be a
-shop-girl.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s a fine lass,” said Logan. “Good-night, boy. I’ll see you to-morrow and tell you
-about Cluny’s.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good-night,” said Mendel, still loath to see his friend go, and he suffered a pang of
-jealousy as he saw Logan go up to the girl, raise his hat, and speak to her. She started,
-blushed, and smiled. They stopped and talked together for a few moments, and then moved
-over towards the lift.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel waited and watched them, Logan talking gaily, the girl smiling and watching him
-intently through her smile. With her eyes she took possession of him, and Mendel was
-filled with misgiving when he heard Logan’s fat chuckle and the rustle and clatter of the
-gate as the lift descended. It reminded him oddly of the Demon King and the Fairy Queen in
-a pantomime he had once seen with Artie Beech, whose father used to get tickets for the
-gallery because he had play-bills in his shop window.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter204">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-183">[Pg 183]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter204_hdg"><a href="#Chapter204_toc">IV<br />
-<span class="chap_title">BURNHAM BEECHES</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">F<small>OR</small> Greta Morrison as for Mendel, London life had been
-opened up through Mitchell. He had been friendly and kind to her when everybody else had
-been harsh, fault-finding, and indifferent. Her first year and a half at the hostel had
-been a period of misery, for the girls and women there regarded her as odd, vague, and
-careless, and thought it their duty to impose on her the discipline she seemed to need,
-for they knew nothing of her suffering through her ambition and her work.</p>
-
-<p>Like Mendel, she had been overwhelmed by her inability to adapt herself easily to the
-Detmold standard of drawing, for it was against her temperament and her habit of mind to
-be precise, and drawing had always been to her rather a trivial thing, though extremely
-pleasant for the purposes of the caricatures in which her teasing humour found an outlet.
-All her girlhood had been thrillingly happy in the execution of large allegorical designs,
-through which she sought to express her delight in the earth—the immense serene power of
-which she became profoundly aware as she lay in the bracken at home and gazed out over the
-rich valley or up into the marvellous, quivering blue sky, through which she felt that she
-was being borne without a sound, without a tremor, irresistibly. Nothing could shake that
-loving knowledge in her, and it hurt her that her mother’s cold, self-centred religion,
-which made her demand<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-184">[Pg
-184]</a></span> a fussy, sentimental attention from her children, forbade all expression
-of it in her daily life. Her brothers, revolting against the sentimentality exacted of
-them, treated all tenderness as ignoble rubbish, and in her rough-and-tumble with them
-Greta was hardened and forced into independence. She had to play their games with them and
-to suffer the same tortures of knuckle-drill, brush, dry-shave, and wrist-screw. But all
-their swagger seemed to her rather fraudulent; and because they laughed at her allegorical
-designs she decided that men were inferior beings. When they laughed at her designs it was
-to her as though they laughed at the beauty she had tried to express in them, and the
-sacrilege enraged her more than her mother’s petulance, for they were young and strong and
-full of life, and they should not have been blind. It was against them that she first
-found relief in caricature, and as they went through their Public Schools and were more
-and more compressed into type, she pilloried them, and, as a consequence, even when she
-was a young woman, big and fine, with the tender, delicate bloom of seventeen upon her,
-she had to submit to the indignity of knuckle-drill, brush, dry-shave, and
-wrist-screw.</p>
-
-<p>She was filled with a horror of men, and especially Public School men, for they seemed
-to her entirely lacking in decency, humility, and honesty. They pretended to be so fine
-and ignored everything that was finer than themselves. Her brothers’ foolish love-affairs
-disgusted her and made her suppress in herself every emotion that tried to find its way to
-a good-looking boy or young man. She was not shy of them or afraid of them, but she would
-not encourage in them what she so detested in her brothers.</p>
-
-<p>During her first year in London she devoted herself heart and soul to her work. There
-were two or three families who were kind to her as<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-185">[Pg 185]</a></span> her mother’s daughter, but their ways were her mother’s,
-and she only visited them as a duty, and to break the monotony of the school and the
-hostel.</p>
-
-<p>Her encounter with Mitchell took place at the time when Mendel’s influence on him had
-set him in revolt against his Public School training. On the other hand, the sight of the
-abyss of poverty into which Mendel descended so easily had set him reeling. He was shrewd
-enough to know that Hetty Finch was using him as a ladder to get out of it, and that there
-was a real danger of her kicking him down into it. In a state of horrible confusion he
-plunged at the most obvious outlet, the “pure girl” of the tradition of his
-upbringing.</p>
-
-<p>He made no concealment of it, but turned to Morrison with a childlike confidence that
-touched her. She was feeling lonely, disappointed, and dissatisfied with herself and was
-glad of his company. It was a change from the woman-ridden atmosphere of the hostel.</p>
-
-<p>By way of making their relationship seemly he introduced her to his family, where as
-the pure young girl who was to save their hope from wild courses she was a great
-success.</p>
-
-<p>“First sensible thing you’ve done, my boy,” said Mr. Mitchell, that great man, a
-journalist who had been a correspondent in a dozen wars. “A pure friendship between a boy
-and a girl has a most ennobling influence—most ennobling.”</p>
-
-<p>“She is truly spiritual,” sighed Mrs. Mitchell, “the type who justifies the
-independence of the modern girl, whatever the Prime Minister may say.”</p>
-
-<p>“That scoundrel!” cried Mr. Mitchell. “That infamous buffoon who has not a grain of
-Liberalism left in his toadying mind!”</p>
-
-<p>“My dear,” said Mrs. Mitchell, “we were talking about little Miss Morrison.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” answered Mr. Mitchell, “we took our<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-186">[Pg 186]</a></span> risk when we let the boy be an artist and we can be
-thankful it is no worse. Did I tell you, my love, that I am going off to the Cocos Islands
-to-morrow?”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, my dear? Then you will not be able to come to my meeting.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, I hear it is worse than the Congo.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh dear! oh dear! I don’t know what the world is coming to. The more civilized we get
-in one part of the world, the worse things are in another part. I declare such horrible
-things seem to me to make it quite unimportant whether we get the vote or not.”</p>
-
-<p>“When you have a Tory Government calling itself Liberal,” said Mr. Mitchell very
-angrily, “it means that neither reform at home nor justice abroad can receive any
-attention. The country has gone to the dogs, and I thank God I spend most of my time out
-of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“And poor Humphrey suffers. I’m sure I am a good mother to him, but I cannot be a
-father as well. I’m thankful to say he seems to be dropping that Jewish friend of his. He
-is a genius, of course, and quite remarkable, considering what he comes from; but with
-Jews it can never be the same, can it?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, my love,” said Mr. Mitchell; “one would never dream of drinking out of the same
-glass, would one? Still, I must say, the Jews in England are much better than they are
-anywhere else, which seems to show that they can respond to decent treatment and thrive in
-the air of liberty.”</p>
-
-<p>Both Mr. and Mrs. Mitchell had a platform manner of speaking, and as Morrison was not a
-subject that suited it, she was soon dropped; but in the end they came back to her, and
-agreed that she was a nice, shy little girl, and that she had no idea of marrying their
-only son, or anyone else, for that matter.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-187">[Pg 187]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She was much impressed with them, for she had never met important people before, and
-she was given to understand that they were very important. They seemed to have their
-fingers on innumerable reforms which were only suppressed by the stupidity of the
-Government. Directly the Government was removed, as of course such idiots soon would be,
-Mr. and Mrs. Mitchell would raise their fingers and, hey presto! women would have votes,
-the slums would be pulled down, maternity would be endowed, prostitutes would be saved,
-prisons would be reformed, capital punishment abolished, the working classes would be
-properly housed, every able-bodied man who wished it should have his small holding, the
-railways would be nationalized, site values would be taxed, divorce would be made easy and
-free from social taint, and education would be made scientific and thorough. In the
-meantime, as the Government did not budge, Mr. Mitchell went to the Cocos Islands and
-Constantinople to procure evidence of horrors abroad and Mrs. Mitchell addressed meetings
-on the subject of horrors at home.</p>
-
-<p>Morrison was impressed. The contrast between these people who thought of everything and
-everybody but themselves and her own home, where nothing was thought of but the family,
-the Church, and the Empire, shocked her into thinking and gave her a sense of liberation.
-It made human beings more interesting than she had thought, and she began to see that they
-did not, as she had heedlessly accepted that they did, fit infallibly into their places,
-and that vast numbers had no places to fit into. She herself, she saw, did not fit into
-any place, and that she had been squeezed, like paint out of a tube, out of her home for
-no other reason than that she was a woman, and there was only just enough money to
-establish the boys. However, she could not quite swallow Mrs. Mitchell’s view that men had
-deliberately, coldly,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-188">[Pg
-188]</a></span> and of set purpose ousted women from their rightful share in the sweets of
-life.</p>
-
-<p>She had a period of despair as these revelations sank into her mind and she had to
-digest Mrs. Mitchell’s awful facts and statistics about the night-life of London. Life
-seemed too terrible for her powers, but, as she soon began to see how comic Mrs. Mitchell
-was, she pulled herself together and found that she was strengthened by the experience,
-and when Mitchell confessed the awful doings of his past, she felt immeasurably older than
-he, and was thankful she was a woman and did not expect such things of herself. For she
-could never quite take his word for all he said. She knew her brothers too well to accept
-his plea of passionate necessity.</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd!” he used to say. “When I think of my past I feel that I must go on my knees and
-worship your purity.”</p>
-
-<p>His absurdity made her blush, but she liked him. He was clever and had read much under
-his father’s guidance, poetry and modern English fiction mostly, and when she went to tea
-with him in his studio he used to read aloud to her, Keats and Shelley and Matthew
-Arnold.</p>
-
-<p>“I think I only like poetry,” she said once, “when it makes pictures. When it doesn’t
-do that it seems to me just words, and it doesn’t seem to matter how nice they sound.”</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd!” he said. “That’s like Kühler. He says nothing makes such pictures as the Bible,
-and he is always quoting that about: â€At her feet he bowed, he fell, he lay down: where he
-fell, there he lay down.’ And he says it must be the words, because his own Hebrew Bible
-never gave him anything like the same—er—vision of it.”</p>
-
-<p>Once he had begun to talk of Mendel she would not let him leave the subject.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think he’s a genius?” she would ask.</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd! I don’t know. He says he is a genius,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-189">[Pg 189]</a></span> and I suppose time will show whether it is true or not.
-But why do you want to talk of him?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know. I’m interested. Perhaps because he is different.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you’ve had tea with him. That is about as much as is good for you. If you were
-my sister I wouldn’t let you know him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why not?”</p>
-
-<p>“My dear girl, there are certain things in life that a young girl ought never to
-know.”</p>
-
-<p>“What things? Is there anything worse than what your mother talks about at her
-meetings? Girls know all about that nowadays, and it is no good pretending we don’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“Talking about them is one thing, coming in contact with them is another. Kühler is a
-Jew, and he comes from the East End, where they don’t have any decent pleasures. He’s
-infernally good-looking in a hurdy-gurdy sort of way. Gawd! Women look at him and off they
-go.”</p>
-
-<p>“But he cares for poetry and the Bible and he loves pictures. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p>“It doesn’t seem to make any difference.”</p>
-
-<p>During this talk he had begun to find Morrison extraordinarily pretty and lovable, and
-he said tenderly:—</p>
-
-<p>“Won’t you take off your hat and let me see your beautiful hair?”</p>
-
-<p>She refused, and asked him more about Mendel, and in exasperation at the unintended
-snub he told her the true story of Hetty Finch, not concealing his own share in it, but
-implying that Mendel’s terrible immorality had corrupted him and led to his downfall.</p>
-
-<p>The story was received in silence.</p>
-
-<p>At last she said:—</p>
-
-<p>“And what is going to become of Hetty Finch?”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s the extraordinary part of it,” said Mitchell. “She has found someone to marry
-her.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-190">[Pg 190]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He leaned against the mantelpiece and dropped his head in his hands and groaned.</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd!” he said. “If it weren’t for you I don’t know what would become of me.” And he
-was so moved by his own thoughts that tears trickled down his nose and made dark spots on
-the whitened hearth.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t ask you to marry me,” he said mournfully. “I’m unworthy, but I want to be your
-friend.”</p>
-
-<p>She made no reply, and he was forced to ask rather lamely:—</p>
-
-<p>“Will you be my friend?”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course.”</p>
-
-<p>“Always?”</p>
-
-<p>“How can I promise that?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>It was then that he took her to the Paris Café, where, all in a turmoil through her new
-knowledge of men and women, she hardly knew what she was doing, and gave Mendel the curt
-nod which had so disgruntled him.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Every summer the Detmold students went for a picnic, either up the river, or to a
-Surrey common, or to one of the forests in the vicinity of London. This year Burnham
-Beeches was chosen. Two charabancs met the party at Slough, and though Mendel tried very
-hard to sit next to Morrison, he was outmanœuvred by Mitchell, and had to put up with
-Clowes.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish you wouldn’t glare at Mitchell so. You make me quite uncomfortable,” said
-she.</p>
-
-<p>“He is telling her lies about me,” growled Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t be absurd,” protested Clowes. “He is not talking about you at all.” She felt
-rather cross with him because he was spoiling her pleasure, and because she had wanted to
-sit next someone else, and she added: “People aren’t always talking about you, and if
-anybody does it’s the models, and that’s your own fault.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-191">[Pg 191]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“How beastly!” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t blame them. They haven’t any other interest.”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t mean that. I meant this country. It is so flat and dull, regular railway
-scenery. What a place to choose for a picnic!”</p>
-
-<p>“Wait until you get to the woods! We’re going to a place called Egypt. Don’t you think
-that’s romantic? Though it reminds me more of Oberon and Titania than of Anthony and
-Cleopatra.”</p>
-
-<p>He looked blank, and she explained:—</p>
-
-<p>“Shakespeare, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve never read Shakespeare.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! you should.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve tried, but I can’t understand him. I suppose it’s because I’m not English. It
-seems ridiculous to me, all those plots and murders.”</p>
-
-<p>“But the fairies in the â€Midsummer Night’s Dream’!”</p>
-
-<p>“I haven’t read it; but what do you want with fairies? A wood’s a wood, and there’s
-quite enough mystery in it for me without pretending to see things that aren’t there.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it’s nice to pretend,” said Clowes rather lamely, almost hating him because he
-seemed so wrong in the country. She knew people like that, people she was quite fond of in
-London, but in the country they were awful.</p>
-
-<p>The charabancs swung through Farnham Royal and they came in sight of the woods,
-brilliant under a vivid blue sky patched with huge, heavy white clouds. Birds hovered
-above the trees, and as they turned out of the street of seaside bungalows and along the
-sandy lane leading to Egypt, they put up rabbits and pheasants.</p>
-
-<p>The art students looked bizarre and almost theatrical in the woods, with the
-long-haired young men and the short-haired girls, many of them wearing the brightest
-colours. Mendel hated the lot of them, giggling girls and bouncing boys,<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-192">[Pg 192]</a></span> and he recognized how
-inappropriate they all were and how he himself was the most inappropriate of them all. He
-felt ashamed, and wanted to go away and hide, to crawl away to some hole and gaze with his
-eyes at the beauty he could not feel. There were too many trees, as there were too many
-people. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. What a poor thing is a man in a crowd which makes it impossible to
-share his thoughts and emotions with anyone! And how bitter it is when he is full of
-thoughts and emotions! It is all so bitter that the crowd must do foolish, inappropriate
-things not to feel it, not to be broken up by it. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Yet the others seemed
-happy enough. The old Professors were beaming and pretending to be young. Perhaps they
-enjoyed it more than anyone because they did not want to be alone, or to steal away with a
-coveted maid, as some of the young men were doing even now. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Had Mitchell
-stolen away with Morrison? Horrible idea! No. There he was, putting up stumps for
-cricket.</p>
-
-<p>Cricket! How Mendel loathed that fatuous game, the kind of inappropriate foolish thing
-the crowd always did! How he dreaded the swift hard ball that would hurt his hand or his
-shins! How humiliated he felt when he was out: and how he raged against the frantic
-excitement he could not help feeling when he hit the ball and made a run. One run seemed
-to him a larger score than anyone else could possibly make, and when he made a run and was
-on the winning side he always felt that he had won the match. In the field, no matter
-where he was placed, he went and stood by the umpire, because he had noticed that the ball
-rarely went that way.</p>
-
-<p>He had to field now, and he went and stood by the umpire. Mitchell came swaggering in.
-He hit a lovely four, a three, a two. The fielders changed at the over, but Mendel stayed
-where he was. The ball came near him. He picked it<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-193">[Pg 193]</a></span> up and threw it as hard as he could at Mitchell’s head.
-Fortunately he missed, and there was a roar of laughter.</p>
-
-<p>“I say, I mean to say,” said one of the Professors, “we are not playing rounders or—or
-baseball.”</p>
-
-<p>And there was more laughter.</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell hit a three, a two, a lost ball (six), a four, and then he skied one. The ball
-went soaring up. With his keen sight Mendel could see it clearly shining red against the
-hot sky. With an awful sinking in his stomach he realized that it was coming down near
-him. It was coming straight to him. It would fall on him, hurt him, stun him. Then he
-thought that if he caught it Mitchell would be out. He never lost sight of the ball for a
-moment. If he caught it Mitchell would be out. He moved back two paces, opened his hands,
-and the ball fell into them.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! well caught, indeed! Well caught!”</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell walked away from the wicket swinging his bat in a deprecating fashion. After
-all, one does not expect miracles even in cricket.</p>
-
-<p>“Beautiful, beautiful ball!” thought Mendel, fondling it with his still tingling hands.
-“You came to me like a lark to its nest, and you shone so red against the sky, you shone
-so red, so red!”</p>
-
-<p>His dissatisfaction vanished. The crowd was a nice beast after all. It was at his feet.
-At no one else had it shouted like that. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. The woods were very beautiful,
-with the bracken nodding under the trees, and the branches swaying, and the soft winds
-murmuring through the leaves, through which the trees seemed to breathe and sigh and to
-envy the moving wind while they were condemned to stay and grow old in one spot. Very,
-very sweet were the green and yellow and blue lights hovering and swinging through the
-woods, dappling the trunks of the trees, weaving an ever-changing pattern on the carpet of
-moss and dead<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-194">[Pg 194]</a></span>
-leaves, and the tufted bracken that sometimes almost looked like the sea, full of a life
-of its own. Surely, surely there were fish swimming in the bracken.</p>
-
-<p>Starting out of his dreams, he saw Morrison at the wicket, very intent, with a stern
-expression on her face. He knew she was desperately anxious to score.</p>
-
-<p>She was most palpably stumped with her second ball, but the umpire gave her “not out,”
-amid general applause, for she was a favourite.</p>
-
-<p>She lashed out awkwardly at the next ball, which came on the leg side. It came towards
-Mendel at an incredible speed. He put his foot on it, picked it up, pretended it had
-passed him, and tore towards the trees in simulated pursuit; and he remained looking for
-it in the bracken while Morrison ran four, five, six, seven, eight, and just as some one
-cried “Lost ball!” he stooped, pretended to pick it up, and threw it back to the
-bowler.</p>
-
-<p>He himself was bowled first ball, but, as it turned out, Morrison’s side won by three
-runs.</p>
-
-<p>She was bubbling over with happiness, and after tea she came over to him and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I say, Kühler, that <i>was</i> a good catch.”</p>
-
-<p>He folded his arms and cocked his chin and looked down his nose as he said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! yes. I can play cricket.”</p>
-
-<p>“You made a blob,” she said with a grin.</p>
-
-<p>“A catch like that,” he answered, “is enough for one day. I have seen many words
-written in the papers about a catch like that. Even Calthrop does not have so many words
-written about his pictures.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall hate to go back to London after this,” she said. “I didn’t know there was
-anything so beautiful near London.”</p>
-
-<p>“There is Hampstead,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve never been there,” she replied.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-195">[Pg 195]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Will you let me take you to Hampstead? It has lilies and water.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes,” she said eagerly. “Do let us go into the woods now before we start. I’m sure
-there must be lovely places.”</p>
-
-<p>He followed her, first looking round to see what had become of Mitchell, whom he saw
-standing with a scowl on his face, a foolish figure.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t talk!” said Morrison. “I’m sure it is lovely through here.”</p>
-
-<p>She led the way through a grove of pines into a beech glade, at the end of which they
-found a dingle, where they stood and gazed back.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, look!” she cried. “Look at the pine stems through the sea-green of the beeches.
-Purple they are, and don’t they swing?”</p>
-
-<p>“I like the wind in the trees,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>He saw that there were tears in her eyes, and he caught some of her ecstasy. But he
-could not understand it at all and it hurt him horribly. She was wonderful and beautiful
-to him, the very heart of all that loveliness, the song of it, its music and its
-mystery.</p>
-
-<p>“She is only a little girl,” he said to himself very clearly, stamping out the words in
-his mind, so that it was as though someone else had spoken to him.</p>
-
-<p>The ecstasy grew in her, and with it the pain in him. She swayed towards him and fell
-against his breast and raised her lips to him. He stooped and almost in terror just
-touched them with his.</p>
-
-<p>He was a sorry prince for a sleeping beauty, for he was afraid lest she should
-awake.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter205">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-196">[Pg 196]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter205_hdg"><a href="#Chapter205_toc">V<br />
-<span class="chap_title">HAPPY HAMPSTEAD</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">O<small>N</small> the morning of the day fixed for their expedition to
-Hampstead Heath she sent him roses—yellow roses. He took them across to his mother and
-gave them to her, saying:—</p>
-
-<p>“I do not need flowers. I am happy.”</p>
-
-<p>Golda laughed at him, and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“You are a big little man since you made the catch at the cricket.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know what it is, but I am happy. It is no longer surprising to me that there
-are happy people in the world, and I think the Christians are not all such fools to wish
-to be happy. I am only astonished that they are happy with such little things.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is nothing,” said Golda. “They are not truly happy; they are only hiding away from
-themselves.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I am finding myself,” cried Mendel. “I shall no more paint fishes and onions. I
-shall paint only what I feel, and it will be beautiful. I am so clever I can paint
-anything I choose.”</p>
-
-<p>“Go to your work now,” said Golda. “You can boast as much as you please when the King
-has sent for you and told you you are the greatest artist in England. Go to your
-work.”</p>
-
-<p>He went back to his studio and there found a letter from Logan, giving his new address
-in Camden Town, and another from Mitchell, asking him why he was so unfriendly. This he
-answered at once:—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-197">[Pg 197]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You are no longer my friend. You have despised and injured me. Superior as I am to
-you, you have thought it your part as a gentleman to try to keep me in my place. You have
-treated me as a kind of animal. You cannot see that as an artist I am the equal of all
-men, the highest and the lowest. My own poor people I do not expect to know this, but of
-an educated man I do expect it. You cannot see this, and I count you lower than the
-lowest, and as such I am prepared to know you, and not otherwise. I have changed
-completely. I no longer believe in the Detmold or in Calthrop or in any of the things I
-reverenced as a student. I prefer the Academy, for it does not pretend to be advanced, and
-is honest though asleep. I am no longer a student. I am an artist. You will always be an
-art student, and so I say good-bye to you, as one says good-bye to friends on a
-station-platform. The train moves and all their affectionate memories and longings cannot
-stop it. The train moves and I am in it, and I say good-bye to you without even looking
-out of the window.”</p>
-
-<p>This done, he sat down to work at a portrait of his father and mother, with which he
-was designing to eclipse his first exhibiting success. It seemed to him important that it
-should be finished. Hearing Issy come in, he shouted to him to come and sit instead of his
-father, who had given out that he was unwell and was indulging in a sleeping bout.</p>
-
-<p>Issy came shambling in, pale, tired, and unhappy. He sat as he was told, and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I wish Harry would come back; the business is being too much for me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I shall soon be rich and then I’ll help you.”</p>
-
-<p>“There’s not much help for me,” said Issy. “I’m like father. There’s always something
-against me to keep me down. It seems funny to me that<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-198">[Pg 198]</a></span> people will give you so much money for
-something they don’t really want.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come and look at it,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>Issy obeyed.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think it’s really like them. Why should anybody buy them who doesn’t know
-them?”</p>
-
-<p>He spoke so heavily and dully that Mendel found it hard to conceal his irritation. When
-Issy had gone back to his chair, he asked:—</p>
-
-<p>“What do you live for, Issy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Live?” said Issy, mystified.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. What do you like best in the world?”</p>
-
-<p>“Playing cards. Playing cards. Every day there’s work and every night there’s Rosa, and
-on Saturday I play cards. Yes. I play cards; and, of course, you are always something to
-think about.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you think about me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! You will be rich and famous, and you will be able to choose among all the girls
-with money. It is like having a play always going on in the family. But I would rather
-play cards, and Rosa is not so bad as you all say she is. I am not a good husband to her,
-for I have moods and I cannot talk to her, for I cannot talk to anyone. What is there to
-say? She has her children, and she only wants more because she is a fool. It is not her
-fault.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’ll do, Issy. I’ve got all I want. I can’t get any more from you. Some day I’ll
-teach you how to be happy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Issy, with a sly leer. “I know how to be happy. I can’t see why anyone
-should want to have father and mother hanging on their walls.”</p>
-
-<p>He slunk away.</p>
-
-<p>How depressing he was! Poor old Issy! as much a part of the street as the doors and
-windows of the houses. He might move a hundred yards to another exactly similar street,
-but he would<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-199">[Pg 199]</a></span>
-always be the same. It was not his fault. Mendel knew the depths of devotion of which his
-brother was capable. It was devotion to his mother that kept him living round the corner,
-devotion to his father that tied him to the unprofitable business. The name of KĂĽhler had
-attained the dignity of a brass-plate on the front door, and he would die rather than see
-it removed, at any rate in his father’s lifetime.</p>
-
-<p>For the first time Mendel faced his circumstances squarely. With something of a shock
-he thought of the family arriving at Liverpool Street and never in all these years moving
-more than half a mile away from it, and that in this amazing London, with its trains and
-buses to take you from end to end of it in a little over an hour. His mother had never
-been west of the Bank. She did not even know where Piccadilly Circus was, or the Detmold,
-or the National Gallery, or the Paris Café, or Calthrop’s studio, or any other important
-centre of life. Liverpool Street she knew, and outside Liverpool Street were the sea and
-Austria. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. When there were no little happenings at home she would always
-fall back on Austria and the troubled days at the inn, and the soldiers who used to come
-in and ask to see the beautiful baby before they thought of ordering drinks, and her rich
-uncle who used to supply the barracks with potatoes and was so mean that he refused to
-give her any when she had not a penny in the world, and the neighbours who used to bring
-food so that the beautiful baby should not starve. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. They stayed where they
-were, stormily passionate, yet with no sense of confinement, while he was drawn off into
-the swiftly moving whirligig of London, going from house to house, studio to studio, café
-to café, atmosphere to atmosphere, and all his passionate storms were spent upon nothing,
-were absorbed in the general movement, leaving him, tottering and dazed, in it, yet alien
-to it, discovering<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-200">[Pg
-200]</a></span> no soul in it all and losing the clear knowledge of his own.</p>
-
-<p>Surely now that was ended. She had sent him the yellow roses, and he had given them to
-his mother to join the two whom he loved. They must have touched her face before they came
-to him, and Golda had buried her face in them.</p>
-
-<p>Impatiently he awaited the time for him to go to the Detmold. He put on a clean collar
-and a black coat, but then he remembered how the old Jews whom he asked to sit for him
-always put on clean clothes and clipped their beards, under the impression that he wanted
-to photograph them. In his clean collar and black coat he felt as though he were going to
-the photographer’s or to a wedding, and remembering how he had been dressed when he saw
-her for the first time on the stairs, he took out an old black shirt, a corduroy coat and
-trousers, and a red sash.</p>
-
-<p>He could not bring himself to wear the red sash. It reminded him of Mitchell, who had
-been with him when he bought it.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>It had been very hot. The walls and the pavements gave out a dry, stifling heat. The
-smell of the street outside came up in waves—a smell of women and babies, leather and
-kosher meat. He must wait for the cool weather, he thought, before he asked her to the
-studio again.</p>
-
-<p>“She is only a little girl,” he said to himself. “She is pretty, but she is only a
-little girl. I will tell her that she must not see Mitchell again, because he is not true.
-I will paint her portrait, and then I will not see her again, because she is only a little
-girl.”</p>
-
-<p>He sat in the window with the clock in front of him, and directly it said half-past
-four he clapped his hat on his head, seized the silver-knobbed stick which at that time
-was an indispensable part of<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-201">[Pg
-201]</a></span> an artist’s apparel, and bolted as though he were late for a train.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>She was waiting for him. He took off his hat, but in his nervousness he could not
-speak, and as he could not remember which side of a lady he ought to walk, he bewildered
-her by dodging from one side to the other with a quick, catlike tread, so that she did not
-hear him, and whenever she turned to speak to him he was not there.</p>
-
-<p>“Wasn’t it a good picnic!” she said enthusiastically. “It’s the best picnic I’ve ever
-been to.”</p>
-
-<p>“They are usually pretty good,” he said lamely. “I think we’d better go by bus.”</p>
-
-<p>They mounted a bus and sat silently side by side.</p>
-
-<p>When they stopped by the Cobden statue he said:—</p>
-
-<p>“A friend of mine has just taken a studio in Camden Town. His name is Logan.”</p>
-
-<p>“Was he at the Detmold?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>That settled Logan for her. She began to feel anxious. Was the afternoon going to be a
-failure? Why could she never, never get the better of her shyness? She wanted to make him
-happy because, on the whole, people had been beastly to him and said such horrid things
-about him. She wanted him to feel for himself, and not only through her, that the world
-was a very wonderful place, a place in which to be happy. He was so stiff and different,
-so taut and tightly strung up, that lounging, loose-limbed Mitchell seemed graceful
-compared with him. Yet there was something unforgettable about him, and he had always had
-for her the vivid romantic reality of the beautiful young men on the stage, who were
-creatures of a delicious, absurd world which she would never enter and never wished to
-enter: a world where young men opened their arms and young women<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-202">[Pg 202]</a></span> sank into them and were provided with
-happiness for ever and ever. Her vigour rejected this world, for she knew and lived in a
-better, but all the same it had its charm and its curious reality. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p>She was not shy because she had kissed him. That had passed with the shifting light
-through the trees and the clouds in the sky. It had been vivid and true for that moment,
-but it had perished and fallen away like a drop of water, like a rainbow.</p>
-
-<p>He remembered it. As he sat by her side and could feel the warm life in her, it became
-terribly actual to him, the cool contact of her lips, and he was glad when the bus reached
-the yard with the painted swing-boats and he need no longer sit by her side. He had begun
-to feel subservient to her, and he would not have that. What Rosa was to Issy, what Golda
-was to his father, that should a woman be to him, for it was good and decent so.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He was almost sorry he had come. He was painfully shy, and knew that she
-was suffering under it.</p>
-
-<p>He walked so fast that she was hard put to keep up with him, but she swung out and
-would not be beaten, and managed his pace without losing her breath. Over to the wooded
-side of the Heath he took her, and stopped under a chestnut-tree.</p>
-
-<p>“Shall we sit down?” he said. “Or would you like to go on walking?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d like to sit down,” she answered. “I love walking, but I can’t talk at the same
-time.”</p>
-
-<p>He sat down at once, without waiting for her to choose a spot.</p>
-
-<p>“This grass is nice and cool,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>It was wet, but he had no thought for her thin cotton frock.</p>
-
-<p>She sat a couple of yards away from him on the short turf and plunged her arm into the
-long, cool grass. Then she lay on her stomach and plucked a blade of grass and chewed
-it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-203">[Pg 203]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Thank you for sending me the roses. I gave them to my mother.”</p>
-
-<p>“I liked your mother.”</p>
-
-<p>“She liked you. She said: â€That is a good girl.’ She is very quick at guessing what
-people are like.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m glad she liked me.”</p>
-
-<p>Once again conversation died away, but she seemed content to lie there with her arms in
-the cool grass. Their round slenderness fascinated him. Her short hair hung over her face,
-so that he could only see the tip of her chin.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly he asked her:—</p>
-
-<p>“Do you send flowers to Mitchell?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” she said, and her head was lowered so that the tip of her chin was hidden by her
-hair.</p>
-
-<p>He said nothing, but he too lay on the grass, flat on his stomach, with his head on his
-arms. His heart began to thump, and, though he tried to control it, it would not be still.
-Without raising his head he said, in a choking voice that astonished him:—</p>
-
-<p>“My father fainted for love of my mother. When he heard her name he fainted away.”</p>
-
-<p>She said nothing, only in the long grass her fingers were still. Her white hands in the
-grass fascinated him, held his eyes transfixed, the green blades coming up through the
-white fingers that were so still. He stared at them as though they were some strange
-flower, and for him they had nothing to do with her at all. He drew himself near to them,
-never taking his eyes off them—white and green, white and green and pink at the
-finger-tips. He must touch them. They were cool, soft, and firm, soft as the petals of a
-rose.</p>
-
-<p>He grasped them like a child seizing a pretty toy, but when they were in his grasp he
-was no longer like a child. A single impulse thrilled through all his body and made it
-strong even as a giant. With one easy swing of his arm he pulled her to him, held her with
-a vast tenderness, and held her so,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-204">[Pg 204]</a></span> gazing into her face. Her lips parted, and he kissed
-them. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p>It was she who first found words:—</p>
-
-<p>“Oh Mendel! I do love you.”</p>
-
-<p>He was amazed at his own strength, at his own tenderness. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. So that was a
-kiss! And this, this, this was love! It was incredible! How sweet and easy were his
-emotions. He was as free and light as the wind in the leaves.</p>
-
-<p>She had slipped from his arms, but she was singing through all his veins, she and no
-other, she and nothing else in the world. And he was in her, perfectly, beautifully aware
-of her body and of the ecstasy in it, of the tree above them, of the dove-coloured clouds,
-of the cool green grass, of the yellow earth crumbling out of the mound yonder, and of the
-ecstasy in them all.</p>
-
-<p>So for many moments they lay in silence, until as suddenly as it had come his strength
-left him, and he broke into a passionate babble of words:—</p>
-
-<p>“You must not send flowers to Mitchell, because he cannot love you and I can. He knows
-nothing, and I know a great deal. I know women and the ways of women, for many have loved
-me, but I have loved none but you. No woman has been my friend except my mother. I did not
-look for any woman to be like my mother. I am not an Englishman who can love with pretty
-words. I love, and it is like that tree, growing silently until it dies. It has stolen on
-me as softly as the night, and I sink into it as I sink into the night, to sleep. It is as
-though the dark night were suddenly filled with stars and all the stars had become flowers
-and poured their honey into my thoughts. When your white hands were in the grass they were
-like flowers and they seemed to belong to me, as all beautiful things belong to me because
-I can love them.”</p>
-
-<p>She came nearer to him and laid her hand on his, and she said:—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-205">[Pg 205]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I am very, very happy.”</p>
-
-<p>And she laughed and added:—</p>
-
-<p>“I <i>was</i> glad when you made that catch.”</p>
-
-<p>He was beyond laughter. For him laughter was for trivial things. She had stopped the
-flow of his thoughts, the rush of his emotions up into his creative consciousness. Wave
-upon wave of passion surged through him, racked him, tortured him, tossing his soul this
-way and that, threatening to hurl it down and smash it on the hardness of his nature. He
-set his teeth and would not wince. If she could laugh she could know nothing of that. She
-was shallow, she was young. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Was it because he was a Jew that he seemed so
-old compared with her? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. What was it she lacked that she could laugh and
-leave him to the torment she had provoked?</p>
-
-<p>But she was aware of the curious blankness that had come over his end of their twilight
-silence, and she suffered from it, thinking: “Am I an awful woman? Can I give nothing?”
-And she turned to him to give, and give all the rare treasures of her soul, of her heart,
-to lay them before him for his delight. But what she had already given had let loose a
-storm in him that blotted out all the beauty of the scene, all the loveliness of their
-love, the gift and the taking of it, and left him with only the dim light of her
-purity.</p>
-
-<p>Soon the storm passed and they had nothing but an easy delight in each other’s company,
-each turning to each as to a warm fire by which to laugh and talk and make merry.</p>
-
-<p>He told her stories of his childhood, of his brothers and his father, and Mr. Kuit, the
-thief, who had bought him his first suit; of his childish joy in painting, and there he
-stopped short. Of his misery he was unable to speak.</p>
-
-<p>“You do believe in yourself,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Why not?” he replied; “I am a man. When I hold my hands before my eyes they are
-real.<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-206">[Pg 206]</a></span> They are
-flesh and blood. I must believe in them. And I am all flesh and blood. I must
-believe.”</p>
-
-<p>“And everything else is real to you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Everything that I love is real. And what I do not love I hate, so that is real
-too.”</p>
-
-<p>They wandered about the Heath until night came and the stars shone, and then they
-plunged into the glitter of London, where all people and things were deliciously fantastic
-and comic, flat and kinematographic, as though, if you walked round to the other side, you
-would discover that they were painted on one side only. It gave them the glorious illusion
-of being the only two living people in the world, for they and only they had loved since
-the world began, and all the other lovers were only people in a story, living happily ever
-after or coming to an end of their love, neither of which could happen to them because
-they were, always had been, and always would be in love.</p>
-
-<p>They dined at the Pot-au-Feu, where they encountered Mitchell, who had the effrontery
-to come and speak to them. He was very friendly and spoke as though nothing had happened.
-They told him they had been to Hampstead and recommended him to try it when he found
-London too stuffy.</p>
-
-<p>When he had gone away, Morrison said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I am going away soon.”</p>
-
-<p>“Going away? But you mustn’t go away.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have to go next week. My mother has fits of anxiety about my being in London every
-now and then, and she drags me off home. She has got one of them now. She can’t see that
-if any harm were going to happen to me it would have happened during my first year, when I
-didn’t know anything and was very lonely. I don’t think I’m very real to her,
-somehow.”</p>
-
-<p>She gave a little shiver of distaste at the thought of going home.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-207">[Pg 207]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“But you mustn’t go away,” said Mendel. “I want you, always.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I want to be with you, but if I refused to go home now, I should have to go for
-always, for I should have no money.”</p>
-
-<p>He was plunged into a dejected silence, and with hardly a word more he took her
-home.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>They had a whole week of this warm happiness. He abandoned every other thought, every
-other pursuit, every other friend. He put aside his work to paint her portrait, and she
-came every day to his studio. At night he hardly slept at all for his longing for the next
-day to come and bring her to his studio, that now seemed immense, airy, ample even for
-such a giant as he felt. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He adored her even when she laughed, even when
-she teased him. He even learned occasionally to laugh at himself. It was worth it to see
-the amazing happiness he gave her.</p>
-
-<p>One morning as he was painting her, he said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t believe you are going away.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is true, more’s the pity.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you are not going, for I will marry you.”</p>
-
-<p>He said this in a matter-of-fact tone as he went on with his painting. The picture was
-coming on well and he was pleased with it. He stepped back and looked at it from different
-angles. It seemed a long time before she made the expected matter-of-fact reply, and he
-looked up at her. She was hanging her head and plucking at her skirt nervously. She heard
-him stop in his work, and she replied:—</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. think .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I want to marry you, Mendel. I don’t
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. think .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I want to marry anybody.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m making plenty of money and I can get commissions for portraits. I could make it up
-with Birnbaum. We could go to Italy together.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-208">[Pg 208]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Don’t make it harder for both of us, Mendel. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I don’t want
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. to marry.”</p>
-
-<p>“You will go back home, then?”</p>
-
-<p>“Please .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. please .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.” she implored him.</p>
-
-<p>A fury began to rise in him. He stamped his foot on the ground and struck his brush
-across the picture. He made a tremendous effort to recover himself, but before he could
-say another word she had slipped through the door and was gone. He darted after her, and
-reached the front-door just in time to see her running as hard as she could down the
-street and round the corner.</p>
-
-<p>Just as he was, in his shirt-sleeves, hatless and collarless, he went in to see his
-mother. He was white-hot with rage, and he walked up to her and looked her up and down as
-though he were trying to persuade himself that she was to blame.</p>
-
-<p>“What do you think the news is now?”</p>
-
-<p>Golda put her hand to her heart and looked at him fearfully as she shook her head.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve been refused,” he said, “refused by the Christian girl.”</p>
-
-<p>“Refused!” cried Golda, who had never heard of such a thing as a girl refusing to marry
-a rich young man.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I proposed to her and she refused.”</p>
-
-<p>“The Christians are all alike,” said Golda. “They keep themselves to themselves, and
-you must do the same.”</p>
-
-<p>She took a smoked herring from the cupboard and cut it into portions.</p>
-
-<p>“And when your time for marrying comes you must look among the Jews, for the Jews are
-good people. No Jewish girl would serve you a trick like that. Jewish girls know that they
-must marry and they are good. But she is young, and you are young, and you will both
-forget.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter206">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-209">[Pg 209]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter206_hdg"><a href="#Chapter206_toc">VI<br />
-<span class="chap_title">CAMDEN TOWN</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">F<small>ROM</small> the magnificent studio in Hammersmith to two rooms
-in Camden Town Mr. James Logan removed his worldly goods, a paint-box, half-a-dozen
-canvases, two pairs of trousers, three shirts, a “Life of Napoleon” in two volumes, and a
-number of photographs of famous pictures. The magnificent studio had been lent to him by
-the mistress of its owner, who had returned unexpectedly from abroad, and Mr. James
-Logan’s departure from it was hurried, but unperturbed.</p>
-
-<p>“In my time,” he said, “I have kept Fortune busy, but her tricks leave me unmoved. She
-will get tired of it some day and leave me alone.”</p>
-
-<p>All the same he did not relish the change. He was nearly thirty and had tasted
-sufficient comfort to relish it and to prize it. Also he could not forget the ambitions
-with which he had come to London five years before. In the North he had won success by
-storm, and he could not understand any other tactics. He was an extraordinary man and
-expected immediate recognition of the fact. Upon his own mind his personality had so
-powerful an effect that he was blind to the fact that it did not have a similar effect
-upon the minds of others. Women and young men he could always stir into admiration, but
-men older than himself were only affronted. He knew it and used to curse them:—</p>
-
-<p>“These clods, these hods, these glue-faced ticks have no more sap in them than a
-withered tree.<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-210">[Pg 210]</a></span>
-They hate me as a mule hates a stallion, and for the same reason. May God and Mary have
-mercy on what little is left of their souls by the time they come to judgment!”</p>
-
-<p>He cursed them now as he laid his trousers on the vast new double-bed he had bought and
-went into his front room to arrange his easel and canvas for work. Whatever happened to
-him he would go on painting, because he saw himself like that, standing as firm as a rock
-before his easel, painting, while the world, for all he cared, went to rack and ruin. What
-else could happen to a world that refused to recognize its artists?</p>
-
-<p>Painting was truly a joy to him. He loved the actual dabbling with the colours, laying
-them out on his palette, mixing them, evolving rare shades; he loved the fiery
-concentration and absorption in the making of a picture; the renewed power of sight when
-he turned from a picture to the world; the glorious nervous energy that came thrilling
-through his fingers in moments of concentration; the feeling of the superiority of this
-power to all others in the world. And so, whatever happened, he turned to his easel and
-painted. Love, debt, passion, quarrels, all the disturbances of life came and went, but
-painting remained, inexhaustible. So he had been happy, free, unfettered, gay, avoiding
-all responsibility because it was his formula that the artist’s only responsibility is to
-his art.</p>
-
-<p>He was doubly happy now because he knew he had made an impression on a young man whose
-sincerity and vigour of purpose he could not but respect. He was himself singularly
-impressionable, and like a sponge for sucking up the colour of any strong personality. And
-Mendel had the further attraction for him that he was pure London, of the shifting, motley
-London that Logan, as a provincial, adored. This London he had touched at many points, but
-never through<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-211">[Pg 211]</a></span> a
-strong living soul that had, and most loyally acknowledged, London as its home.</p>
-
-<p>Logan’s visit to Mendel in the East End had been one of the great events of his life.
-Through it he had found his feet where he had been floundering, though, of course, happily
-and excitedly enough.</p>
-
-<p>He told himself that now he was going to settle down to work, to the great productive
-period of his life, such as was vouchsafed to every real artist who was tough enough to
-pay for it in suffering. He would rescue Mendel’s genius from the Detmold and the ossified
-advanced painters, and together they would smash the English habit of following French art
-a generation late, and they would lay the foundations of a genuine English art, a
-metropolitan art, an art that grew naturally out of the life of the central city of the
-world.</p>
-
-<p>Logan always worked by programme, but hitherto he had changed his programme once a
-week. Now he was sure that this was the programme of his life. It would be amended, of
-course, by inspiration, but its groundwork was permanent. He was enthusiastic over it.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Of course, this was what he had always been seeking, and hitherto he had
-been fighting the London which absorbed the talents of the country, masticated them,
-digested them, and evacuated them in the shape of successful painters for whom neither
-life nor art had any meaning, or in the shape of vicious wrecks who crawled from
-public-house to public-house and died in hospitals.</p>
-
-<p>It was time that was stopped. It was time for London to be made to recognize that it
-had a soul, and this generation must begin the task, for never before had a generation
-been so faced with the blank impossibility of accepting the work, thought, and faith of
-its predecessor. Never had it been so easy to slip out of the stream of<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-212">[Pg 212]</a></span> tradition, for never
-had tradition so completely disappeared underground.</p>
-
-<p>“â€He that hath eyes to see, let him see,’” quoth Logan, and he hurled himself into his
-work, dancing to and fro, squaring his shoulders at it as though the picture were an
-adversary in a boxing-match.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>At half-past four he laid down his brushes and began to arrange the room, pinning
-photographs on the walls, and unpacking certain articles of furniture, as a rug, a great
-chair, and mattresses to make a divan, which he had bought that morning. Every now and
-then he ran to the window, threw up the sash, and looked up and down the street.</p>
-
-<p>At last with a tremor of excitement he leaned out and waved his hand, shut the window,
-and ran downstairs. In a moment or two he returned with the girl of the Tube station. She
-was wearing the same clothes, with the addition of a cheap fur boa, and she panted a
-little from the run upstairs with him.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m glad you came,” he said. “I was afraid you wouldn’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! It’s not far from where I live,” she said. “But you are in a mess.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve only just got in. I would have asked you to my old place, but I had to
-leave.”</p>
-
-<p>“So you’re a nartist,” she said. “I thought you were something funny.”</p>
-
-<p>“Funny!” snorted Logan. “I call a shop-walker funny; or a banker, for that matter, or a
-millionaire. An artist is the most natural thing to be in the world. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Take
-your hat and gloves off and give me a hand, and then we’ll have tea.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I love my tea.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know all about tea. I get it from a friend of mine in the City. I know how to make
-it, too.”</p>
-
-<p>They worked together, arranging, dusting,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-213">[Pg 213]</a></span> keeping deliberately apart and eyeing each other
-surreptitiously. He liked her slow, heavy, indolent movements, and she exaggerated them
-for him. She liked his quick, firm, decisive actions, and he accentuated them for her; and
-she liked his thick, black hair and his strong hands.</p>
-
-<p>He picked up the great chair and held it at arm’s-length.</p>
-
-<p>“Oo! You are strong,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“I could hold you up like that.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d like to see you try,” and she gave a little giggle of protest.</p>
-
-<p>“I will if I don’t like you,” said he, “and I’ll let you drop and break your leg.”</p>
-
-<p>She went off into peals of laughter, and he laughed too.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s such a jolly day,” he said. “It only needed you to come to make everything
-perfect.”</p>
-
-<p>“What made you speak to me the other night?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p>“I liked the look of you.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I’m not that sort, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t a question of being that sort. I wanted to speak to you, and that was enough
-for me. Sit down and have some tea.”</p>
-
-<p>The kettle was boiling, and he had already warmed the pot. He measured out the tea
-carefully, poured the water onto it, and gave her a blue china cup. He produced an old
-biscuit-tin containing some French pastry, and then sat on the floor while she consumed
-the lot.</p>
-
-<p>It gave him great pleasure to see her eat, and he liked her healthy, childish greed.
-She had the face of a spoiled child, a very soft skin, and plump, yielding flesh. He liked
-that. It soothed and comforted him to look at her, while at the same time he was irritated
-by her inward plumpness and easiness.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve always had a good time,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes! I’ve seen to that.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-214">[Pg 214]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You’re not a London girl.”</p>
-
-<p>“No; Yorkshire.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m from Lancashire.”</p>
-
-<p>“Eeh! lad,” she said, her whole voice altering and deepening into an astonishingly full
-note, “are ye fra’ Lancashire? Eeh! a’m fair clemmed wi’ London. Eeh! I am glad ye coom
-fra’ Lancashire.”</p>
-
-<p>“What are you doing in London?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m working in Oxford Street, though not one of the big shops.”</p>
-
-<p>“Like it?”</p>
-
-<p>“M’m! Well enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course you don’t, handing out laces and ribbons——”</p>
-
-<p>“’Tisn’t laces and ribbons. It’s corsets.”</p>
-
-<p>“Corsets, then, to women who haven’t a tenth of your looks or your vitality.”</p>
-
-<p>“It can’t be helped if they have the money and I haven’t, can it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Money doesn’t matter. What’s money to you, with all the rich life in you? Money cannot
-buy that, nor can it buy what will satisfy you.”</p>
-
-<p>“And what’s that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Love and freedom.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ooh! you are a talker.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not flirting with you. I haven’t got time for that.”</p>
-
-<p>He laid his hand on her foot, which was covered with a thin cotton stocking. She did
-not move it.</p>
-
-<p>“You needn’t stare at me like that,” she said, with a curious thickness in her
-voice.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t help staring,” he answered, “when I mean what I say.” He pressed his lips
-together and scowled, and shook her foot playfully. There was an exhilarating pleasure in
-startling and mastering her by directness. It was like peeling the bark off a stick. The
-thin layers of affectation came off easily and cleanly, leaving bare the white sappy
-smoothness of her innocent sensuality.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-215">[Pg 215]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I do mean what I say,” he added. “Why should we beat about the bush? I asked you to
-come to-day because I wanted you. You came because you knew I wanted you.”</p>
-
-<p>“You asked me to tea.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right. And you’ll stay to dinner. People have made love to you before.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, no .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. yes. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Not like .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t tell lies,” he said. “You saw me at the station long before I saw you, and you
-wanted me to see you. That was why you stayed at the booking-office.”</p>
-
-<p>“You were with such a pretty boy,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Boy! You’re not old enough to care for pretty boys.”</p>
-
-<p>“But he <i>was</i> pretty.”</p>
-
-<p>“Be quiet!” he said, kneeling by her side. “You may want me to take weeks over making
-all sorts of foolish advances to you, but I’m not going to waste time. I’ve wasted too
-much time over that sort of rubbish. We both know what we want and you are going to stay
-with me.”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“I say yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“No.” And she sprang to her feet and walked to the door. There she turned. He had
-picked up her gloves.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you give me my gloves, please?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you give me my gloves?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I shall go without them.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well. Good-bye.”</p>
-
-<p>“If I stay, will you promise not to talk like that?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want you to stay under those circumstances.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re an insulting beast.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not at all. I honour your womanhood by not pretending that it isn’t there.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-216">[Pg 216]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Will you give me my gloves?”</p>
-
-<p>She ran across and tried to snatch them out of his hand. He gripped and held her, and
-she gave a wild laugh as he kissed her.</p>
-
-<p>She clung to him as he let her sink back into the great chair. She lay with her eyes
-closed and her lips parted while he sat and poured himself out another cup of tea. His
-hand was shaking so that he spilled some tea on his new rug.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s all right,” he said. “I’ll give you a week to get used to me, and if at the end
-of that time you don’t like me, you can go.”</p>
-
-<p>“I haven’t any friends,” she said in a low voice, “and you get sick of girls and the
-shop. You get sick of going out in the evening up and down the streets and into the
-cinemas, and finding some damn fool to take you to a music-hall. Such a lot of people and
-nobody to know.”</p>
-
-<p>“There’s a lot of fun in living with an artist,” he said. “You meet queer people and
-amusing women, and you wouldn’t find me dull to live with.”</p>
-
-<p>“I felt queer as I came near the house,” she said, “as though I knew something was
-going to happen. I feel very queer now.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s love,” said Logan grimly. “Love isn’t what you thought it was.”</p>
-
-<p>“You must let me go now.”</p>
-
-<p>“When will you come again?”</p>
-
-<p>“Never.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes, you will.”</p>
-
-<p>“Stop it!” she cried. “Stop it! I’m not going to be flummoxed by the like of you.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you are,” he said. “You poor darling!”</p>
-
-<p>He took her hand and stroked it tenderly.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you see that you are flummoxed by something that is stronger than both of us?
-I’m shaken by it, and I’m whipcord. We’re poor starving people, God help us! and we can
-save each other. We knew we could do it at once,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-217">[Pg 217]</a></span> when we met. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. If I said all the pretty
-things in the world it wouldn’t help. We’re too far gone for that. When you’re starving
-you don’t want chocolates. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I’m only saying what I know. It is true of
-myself. If I have made a mistake about you, I am sorry. You can go. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Have I
-made a mistake?”</p>
-
-<p>For answer she turned towards him, gazed at him with glazing eyes, raised her arms, and
-drew him into them.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>A week later Nelly Oliver dined with Logan and Mendel at the Pot-au-Feu. They had a
-special dinner and drank champagne, for it was what Logan called the “nuptial feast.”</p>
-
-<p>Oliver, as they called her, was flushed with excitement, and kept on telling Mendel
-that he was the prettiest boy she had ever seen. She called Logan “Pip”—“Pip darling,”
-“Pip dearest,” “Pipkin” and “Pipsy”—because she said he was like an orange-pip, bitter and
-hard in the midst of sweetness.</p>
-
-<p>“Pip says you’re a genius,” she said to Mendel. “What does he mean?”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel disliked her, though he tried hard to persuade himself that she was charming. He
-was baffled by the solemnity with which Logan was taking her, for she seemed to him the
-type made for occasional solace and not for companionship. Exploring her with his mind and
-instinct, she seemed to him soft and pulpy, not unlike an orange, and if she and Logan
-were to set up a common life, then he would be like a pip indeed. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. How
-could he explain to her the nature of genius? Can you explain the night to an insect that
-lives but an hour in the morning?</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” he said brusquely.</p>
-
-<p>Logan was dimly aware that his friend and his girl were not pleasing each other, and he
-set himself to keep them amused. He succeeded<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-218">[Pg 218]</a></span> fairly well, but his humour was forced, for he was under
-the spell of the girl and the thought of the adventure to which she had consented. She
-knew it, and was loud and shrill and triumphant, continually setting Mendel’s teeth on
-edge, for the purity of his instinct was disgusted by the blurring and swamping of life by
-any emotion, and the quality of hers was not such as to win indulgence.</p>
-
-<p>“Logan will tell you what genius is,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“She’ll find that out soon enough if she lives with me,” growled Logan a little
-pompously.</p>
-
-<p>Oliver put her head on one side and looked languishingly at Mendel as she drawled:—</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a pity you haven’t got a nice girl. Then there would be four of us.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t be a fool!” snapped Logan. “What does he want with girls at his age?”</p>
-
-<p>Oliver’s lips trembled and she pouted in protest.</p>
-
-<p>“I only thought it would be nice to round off the party. When you’re in love you can’t
-help wanting everybody else to have some too.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was torn between dislike of her and admiration of Logan’s masterful handling of
-the problem of desire. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. No nonsense about getting married or falling in
-love. He saw the woman he wanted and took her and made her his property, and the woman
-could not but acquiesce, as Oliver had done. In a dozen different ways she acknowledged
-Logan’s lordship, even in her deliberate efforts to exasperate him. Their relationship
-seemed to Mendel simple and excellent, and he envied them. How easy his life would become
-if he could do the same! What freedom there would be in having a woman to throw in her lot
-with his! It would settle all his difficulties, absolve him from his dependence on his
-family, and deliver him from the attentions of unworthy women.</p>
-
-<p>“How shall we dress her?” asked Logan.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel took out his sketch-book and drew a<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-219">[Pg 219]</a></span> rough portrait of Oliver in a gown tight-fitting above
-the waist and full in the skirt.</p>
-
-<p>“I should look a guy in that,” she said. “It’s nothing like the fashion.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve done with fashion,” said Logan. “You’ve done with the world of shops and snobs
-and bored, idiotic women. You’re above all that now. In the first place there won’t be any
-money for fashion, and in the second place there’s no room in our kind of life for
-rubbish. You’re a free woman now, and don’t you forget it, or I’ll knock your head
-off.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it’s a horrible, ugly dress,” said Oliver, almost in tears.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s what you’re going to wear. I’ll buy the stuff to-morrow and make it myself. What
-colour would you like?”</p>
-
-<p>“I won’t wear it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then you can go back to your shop.”</p>
-
-<p>“You know I can’t. I’ve said good-bye to all the girls.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then you’ll wear the dress.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shan’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“For God’s sake don’t quarrel,” said Mendel. “One would think you had been married for
-ten years. Let her wear what she likes until she wants some new clothes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Highty Tighty! Little boy!” sang Oliver. “You talk as though I were a little
-girl.”</p>
-
-<p>“You behave like one,” snapped Mendel, and her face was overcast with a cloud of
-malignant sulkiness.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>They went on to a music-hall, where Logan and she sat with their arms locked and their
-shoulders pressed together, whispering and babbling to each other.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel sat bolt upright with his arms folded, staring at the stage but seeing nothing,
-so lost was he in the contemplation of the strange turn<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-220">[Pg 220]</a></span> of affairs by which the adventure which
-had promised to lead him straight to art had deposited him in a muddy little pool of life.
-He would not submit to it. He would not surrender Logan and all the hopes he had aroused.
-Prepared as he had been to follow Logan through fire, he would not shrink when the way led
-through the morass. Friendship was to him no fair-weather luxury, and nothing but
-falsehood or faithlessness in his friend could make him relinquish it.</p>
-
-<p>He told himself that Logan would soon tire of it, that Oliver would go the way of her
-kind. She was, after all, better than Hetty Finch, since she had a capacity for childish
-enjoyment.</p>
-
-<p>She revelled in the sentimental ditties and the suggestive humours of the comedians,
-pressed closer and closer to Logan, and grew elated and strangely exalted as the evening
-wore on. And as they left the music-hall she gripped Mendel’s arm and brought her face
-close to his and whispered:—</p>
-
-<p>“Do wish me luck, Kühler. Give me a kiss for luck.”</p>
-
-<p>He kissed her and mumbled: “Good luck!”</p>
-
-<p>“Come and see us to-morrow,” she said. “We shall be all right to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, come along!” cried Logan, dragging her away; and Mendel stood in the glaring light
-of the portico and watched them as, arm in arm, they were swallowed up in the crowd
-hurrying and jostling its way home to the dark outer regions of London.</p>
-
-<p>He had an appalling sense of being left out of it. Everything passed and he remained.
-He lived in a circle of light into which, like moths, came timid, blinking, lovable
-figures, and he loved them; but they passed on and were lost in the tumultuous, heaving
-darkness of life, into which alone he could not enter. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Did he desire to
-enter it? He did not know, but he was hungry for something that lay in it, or, perhaps,
-beyond it.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter207">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-221">[Pg 221]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter207_hdg"><a href="#Chapter207_toc">VII<br />
-<span class="chap_title">MR. TILNEY TYSOE</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">L<small>OGAN</small> with Oliver was more startling and exhilarating
-than before. He was filled with a ferocious energy, and his programme was distended with
-it.</p>
-
-<p>He said to Mendel:—</p>
-
-<p>“She’s an inspiration. I have found what I was seeking. You have given me the
-inspiration of art. Through you I shall reach the heights of the spirit. She has given me
-the inspiration of life, and through her I shall plumb the very depths of humanity. She is
-marvellous. All the exasperation of modern life is in her, all the impatient brooding on
-the threshold of new marvels. You think she is stupid, I know, but that is only because
-she has in herself such an immense wealth of instinctive knowledge of life that she does
-not need to judge it by passing outward appearances. I am amazed at her, almost afraid of
-her. Something tremendous will come out of her. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. By God! It makes me sick
-to think of all the dabbling in paint that goes on, not to speak of all the dabbling in
-love. Love? The word has become foolish and empty. I don’t wish to hear it uttered ever
-again. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I swear that if it doesn’t come out in paint I shall write poetry.
-Oh! I can feel the marrow in my bones again, and my veins are full of sap. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-But I want to talk business.”</p>
-
-<p>“Business?” said Mendel, who had been upset and bewildered by this outburst.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I want you to approve my programme,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-222">[Pg 222]</a></span> for you must have a programme. It is all very well to
-work by the light of inspiration. That can work quite well as far as you yourself are
-concerned, but what about the public? what about the other artists?—damn them! We’re going
-to burst out of the groove, but we must have a good reason for doing so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Surely it is reason enough that one can’t work in it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not enough for them. They must be mystified and impressed. They must be unable to
-place us. They must feel that we are up to something, but they must be unable to say what
-it is.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t care what they say,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“But you must care. When we have carried out the programme, then you can do as you
-like, but till then we must pull together. We must do it for the sake of art. We must make
-a stand, not to found a school or to say that this and no other style of drawing is right,
-but to assert the sacred duty of the artist to paint according to his vision and his
-creative instinct.”</p>
-
-<p>This was coming very near to Mendel’s own feeling, and he remembered the torture he had
-been through to learn the Detmold style of drawing, and how some virtue had gone out of
-his work in the effort.</p>
-
-<p>“It is the artist’s business,” said Logan, “to create out of the life around him an
-expression of it in form.”</p>
-
-<p>“I agree,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“Accurate imitation is not necessarily an expression, is it? You know it isn’t. A
-picture must be a created thing. It must have a life of its own, and to have that it must
-grow through the artist’s passion out of the life around him. It is all rubbish to look
-back, to talk of going back to the Primitives or the Byzantines or Egypt. You can learn a
-great deal from those old people about pictures, but you cannot learn how to paint
-your<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-223">[Pg 223]</a></span> own
-pictures from them, because you can only live in your own life and your own time, and if
-you are a good artist your work will transcend both. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Now, tell me, where
-is the work that is expressing the glorious, many-coloured life of London, where is the
-work that does not give you a shock as you come to it out of the street, the thrilling,
-vibrant street, making you feel that you are stepping back ten, twenty, fifty years?
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Why has life outstripped art?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” said Mendel, whose head had begun to ache.</p>
-
-<p>“It has not only outstripped it,” continued Logan. “It has begun to despise it.”</p>
-
-<p>The postman knocked, and Mendel ran downstairs in feverish expectation of a letter from
-Morrison, to whom he had written imploring her to come again, or, if not, at least to let
-him have her address in the country. There was no letter for him, and as soon as he
-returned with a blank, disappointed face, Logan went on:—</p>
-
-<p>“People collect pictures as they collect postage-stamps, to keep themselves from being
-bored. Naturally they despise pictures, and they despise us for accepting those
-conditions. They are intolerable, and we must make an end of them. We are in a tight
-corner, and we should leave no trick and twist and turn untried to get out of it. If we do
-not do so then there will be no art, as there is no drama, no music, and no literature,
-and there will be no authority among men, and humanity will go to hell. It is on the road
-to it, and the artists have got to stop it.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel had not heard a word. He sat with his head in his hands thinking of Morrison,
-and hating her for the blank misery in which she had plunged him.</p>
-
-<p>“Humanity,” said Logan cheerfully, “is fast going to hell. It likes it; and, as the
-democratic idea is that it should have what it likes, not a<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-224">[Pg 224]</a></span> finger, not a voice is raised to stop
-it. Everything that stands in the way—ideals, decency, responsibility, passion,
-love—everything is smashed. Nothing can stop it unless their eyes are opened and their
-poor frozen hearts are thawed.”</p>
-
-<p>“What did you say?” asked Mendel, having half-caught that last phrase.</p>
-
-<p>“We must try to stop it,” said Logan. “We may be smashed and swept aside, but we must
-try to stop it. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I’ve been to see Cluny to-day. He has sold all your things
-except one drawing.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know,” replied Mendel, who had received an amazing account which showed about
-two-thirds of his earnings swallowed up in colours, brushes, frames, and photographs. He
-knew, but he was not interested. He was unhappy and restless and felt completely
-empty.</p>
-
-<p>“We passionate natures,” said Logan, striding up and down like Napoleon on the
-quarter-deck of the <i>Bellerophon</i>—“we passionate natures must take control. We must
-be the nucleus of true fiery stuff to resist the universal corruption. We must be
-dedicated to the wars of the spirit.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve got a splitting headache,” said Mendel. “Do you mind not talking so much? The
-important thing for a painter is painting. What happens outside that doesn’t matter.”</p>
-
-<p>“You think so now,” said Logan, “but you wait. You’ll find that painting won’t satisfy
-you. You will want to know what it is all for, and one of these days you will be thankful
-to me for telling you. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Cluny has taken on some of my things, and he has
-agreed to our having an exhibition together. What do you say to that?”</p>
-
-<p>“So long as I sell I don’t care where I exhibit. Exhibitions are always horrible. They
-always make pictures look mean and insignificant.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are in a mood to-day.”</p>
-
-<p>“I tell you,” cried Mendel in a fury—“I tell you I know what art is better than
-anybody. It<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-225">[Pg 225]</a></span>
-touches life at one point, and one point only, and there it gives a great light. If life
-is too mean and beastly to reach that point, so much the worse for life. It does not
-affect art, which is another world, where everything is beautiful and true. I know it; I
-have always known it. I have lived in that world. I live in it, and I detest everything
-that drags me away from it and makes me live in the world of filth and thieves and
-scoundrels. Yes, I detest even love, even passion, for they make a fool and a beast of a
-man.”</p>
-
-<p>“Young!” said Logan. “Very young! You’ll learn. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. But do be sensible and
-control your beast of a temper. Never mind my programme if it doesn’t interest you. Will
-you accept Cluny’s offer? It is worth it, for it will make you independent.”</p>
-
-<p>“How much does he want?”</p>
-
-<p>“A dozen exhibits each.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! very well.”</p>
-
-<p>“And will you come and dine to-night with my fool of a patron, Mr. Tilney Tysoe?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want to know fools. I know quite enough already.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I’ve promised to take you. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He adores Bohemians, as he calls us,
-and he buys pictures.”</p>
-
-<p>“Does he give you good food?”</p>
-
-<p>“Some of the best in London.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right.”</p>
-
-<p>“Meet us at the Paris Café at seven-thirty. Don’t dress. Tysoe would be dreadfully
-disappointed if you didn’t turn up reeking of paint. It would be almost better not to
-wash.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is Oliver going?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Do you mind?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. No.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>It was an enormous relief to Mendel when Logan went. His enthusiasm was too exhausting,
-and it was maddening to have him talking of<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-226">[Pg 226]</a></span> success and the triumph of art and the wars of the
-spirit when life had apparently reached up and extinguished the light of art altogether.
-For a brief moment, for a day or two, it had almost seemed to him that life and art were
-one, that everything was solved and simple, that he would henceforth only have to paint
-and pictures would flow from his brush as easily as song from a bird. This illusion had
-survived even the blow of Morrison’s departure. He believed that it was enough for him to
-have had that hour of illumination, and that, if go she must, he could do without her. The
-flash of light had been the same, magnified a thousand times, as the inspiration that set
-him at work on a picture and then left him to wrestle with the task of translating it into
-terms of paint. She had appeared to him exactly in the same visionary way, an image
-shining in truth and beauty, an emanation from that other world, and he had thought he
-would at worst be left with the terrible ordeal of translating the vision into paint.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. But when he looked at his pictures they oppressed him with their
-lifelessness and dark dullness, and the idea of painting disgusted him. It was even an
-acute pain, almost like a wound upon his heart, to handle a brush. He could not finish the
-portrait of his father and mother, and, at best, he could only force himself to paint
-flower-pieces.</p>
-
-<p>He was incapable of deceiving himself. He had never heard of devout lovers sighing in
-vain, and he had no sources of comfort within himself. Never had he shrunk from any
-torment, and this was so cruel as to be almost a glory, except that it meant such a
-deathly stillness and emptiness. He could not understand it, and he knew that it was past
-the comprehension of all whom he knew, even his mother. But he set his teeth and vowed
-that he would understand it if it took years. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. A little girl, a little
-Christian girl! How was it possible?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-227">[Pg 227]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>There was some relief in the thought of her, but very little. She was still too
-visionary, and when he tried to think of her in life, by his side, it was impossibly
-painful.</p>
-
-<p>Where was she? Why did she not write? Her silence was like ice upon his heart.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. What kind of place did she live in? Among what people? How was he to
-imagine her? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. To think of her among the trees or under the chestnut-tree
-was to be torn with impulses that could find no outlet; desires for creation that made
-painting seem a sham and a mockery.</p>
-
-<p>So keen, and fierce, and deep was his suffering that death seemed a little thing in
-comparison. When he tried to think of death he knew that it was not worth thinking of, and
-he was ashamed that the thought should have been in his mind.</p>
-
-<p>He knew that he must understand or perish. To say that he was in love was hopelessly
-inadequate. He knew how people were when they were in love. They were like Rosa, like
-animals, stupid and thick-sighted, with a thickening in their blood. But he was possessed
-with a clairvoyance that made everything round him seem transparent and flimsy, while
-thought crept stealthily, like a cat on a wall, and emotion was confounded.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>For days he had hardly left his studio, and it was only with the greatest effort that
-he could bring himself to join Logan at the Paris Café. He felt weak, and the streets
-looked very strange, clear and bright, as they do to a convalescent. As he entered the
-café it seemed years since he had been there, ages since he had sat there trembling with
-excitement as he waited for the great Calthrop to come in. He remembered that excitement
-so vividly that something like it came rushing up in him, and he clutched at it for
-relief. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Calthrop was there with his little court of<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-228">[Pg 228]</a></span> models and students.
-Mendel found himself laughing nervously as he stood and waited for the great man to
-recognize him. Calthrop looked up and nodded to him. He was wildly, absurdly delighted. He
-rushed over to Logan and Oliver and shook them enthusiastically by the hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Isn’t it a splendid place?” he cried.</p>
-
-<p>“Have something to drink,” said Logan. “You’ve been overworking.”</p>
-
-<p>“You must say it’s a splendid place,” insisted Mendel, “or I shall go home. Just by
-that table where Calthrop is sitting is where I was arrested.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, which is Calthrop?” asked Oliver eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“The big man over there,” said Mendel. “I was arrested just there, and I had to go on
-my knees to the manager to make him allow me to come here again. I had to apologize to
-him. At the time it was the greatest tragedy of my life.”</p>
-
-<p>He had forgotten his dislike for Oliver in his elation at finding himself gay again,
-and he chattered on of the days when the café had seemed to him a heaven full of heroes.
-Oliver listened to him like a child. She loved stories, and she leaned forward and drank
-in his words, and she appeared to him as a very beautiful woman, desirable, intoxicating.
-Yet because Logan was his friend he would not envy him, but rejoiced in his possession of
-this rare treasure, a woman who could deliver up to him all the warm secrets of life. And
-he could not help saying so, and telling them how happy it made him to be with them.</p>
-
-<p>Logan and Oliver glanced at each other, and their hands met in a fierce grip under the
-table. Mendel could not see more than their glance, but the meeting of their eyes sent a
-flame like a white-hot sword darting at his heart. The sharp pain released him, and sent
-him shooting up into a wilder gaiety.</p>
-
-<p>He felt a hand on his shoulder, and, turning<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-229">[Pg 229]</a></span> with a start, he saw Mr. Sivwright, his first master,
-standing above him. He rose and shook hands.</p>
-
-<p>“I am glad to see you,” said Mr. Sivwright. “I’ve been meaning to write to you, but
-I’ve been away, out of London.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel introduced him to his friends and asked him to sit down.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t stop a moment,” said Mr. Sivwright. “I’m very busy. I have just started a club
-for artists—opens at eleven. These absurd closing hours, you know. I hope you’ll join. It
-has been open a week. Great fun, and I want some frescoes painted. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I’m
-very proud of your success, Kühler. I feel I had my hand in it.”</p>
-
-<p>He produced a prospectus and laid it on the table, bowed awkwardly to Oliver, and with
-a self-conscious swagger, as though he felt the eyes of all in the café upon him, made his
-way out.</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s that broken-down tick?” asked Logan.</p>
-
-<p>“Sivwright,” answered Mendel. “He taught me when I was a boy. He’s a very bad artist,
-and he thinks art ended with Corot. I learned to paint like Corot. Really! I used to go
-with him to the Park and weep over the trees in the twilight: I never thought I should see
-him again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! people bob up,” said Logan. “We go on getting longer in the tooth, but people
-recur, like decimals.”</p>
-
-<p>“Would you like to go to his club?” asked Mendel. “It says â€Dancing.’ I feel like
-dancing.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I love dancing,” said she.</p>
-
-<p>Logan assumed his air of mysterious importance and said it was time to go to
-Tysoe’s.</p>
-
-<p>“We’re twenty minutes late,” he said; “Tysoe would be dreadfully put out if we were
-punctual.”</p>
-
-<p>As Mendel had plenty of money they took a taxi-cab.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Tilney Tysoe was an idealist, and he had no other profession. He was a very tall
-man with<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-230">[Pg 230]</a></span> a long
-cadaverous face, great bulging, watery eyes, and extraordinarily long hands, which hung
-limply from his wrist, except when he was excited, when they shot up with extreme
-violence, and carried his arms with them into a gesture so awkward that he had to find
-relief from it in a shrug. He was devoted to the arts, had a stall at the opera, a study
-full of books, and several rooms full of pictures. An artist was to him a great artist, a
-book that pleased him was a great book, and his constant lament was over the dearth of
-great men in public life. It gave him the keenest delight to see Logan, unkempt,
-wild-haired, shaggy, violent and brusque, enter his daintily furnished drawing-room, and
-his eyes passed eagerly to Oliver, looking just as she ought to have done, the mistress of
-a Bohemian.</p>
-
-<p>“Delighted! Delighted!” he said as he coiled his long white hand round Mendel’s
-workmanlike paw. “My wife, I regret to say, is away. She will be so sorry to have missed
-you. Like me, she is tired of the shallow, artificial people we live among. We both adore
-sincere, real people. I adore sincerity. Sincerity is genius.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is true,” said Logan in a sepulchral voice that made Mendel jump. “At least,
-where you find sincerity, you may be sure that genius is not far behind.”</p>
-
-<p>“I bought a picture of yours the other day, Mr. Kühler,” said Tysoe. “I am ashamed to
-think how little I gave for it, but works of art are priceless, are they not?”</p>
-
-<p>“Mine are,” said Mendel, overcoming his disgust and beginning to enjoy the game.</p>
-
-<p>“You think so,” rejoined Tysoe with an undulation of his long body. “And why shouldn’t
-you say so? You are sincere and strong. You must force your talent upon an ungrateful
-world.”</p>
-
-<p>A man-servant announced dinner, and Tysoe gave his arm to Oliver and led her
-downstairs,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-231">[Pg 231]</a></span>
-while Logan put his hand on Mendel’s shoulder and said with a chuckle:—</p>
-
-<p>“Be sincere.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel began at once with the soup, as though he had been wound up.</p>
-
-<p>“I have won every possible prize for painting and drawing, and the first picture I
-exhibited was the sensation of the year in art circles.”</p>
-
-<p>“I remember it,” said Tysoe.</p>
-
-<p>“Like my friend Logan, I am profoundly dissatisfied with the state of art in England,
-and though I am not an Englishman I have sufficient love for the country to wish to do my
-share in redeeming it. The first essential is a new technique, the second essential is a
-new spirit, and the third essential is sincerity.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wonderfully true!” cried Tysoe. “Have some sherry. Wonderfully true! Now, take the
-ordinary man. He might feel all that, but would he dare to say it? No. That is why I, as
-an idealist, delight in the society of artists. You know where you are with them. Facts
-are facts with them.”</p>
-
-<p>“I do like this sherry wine,” said Oliver, beginning to feel very comfortable in the
-warm luxury of the dining-room.</p>
-
-<p>Logan kicked her under the table.</p>
-
-<p>Feeling that more was expected of him, Mendel wound himself up again and went on:—</p>
-
-<p>“Logan and I are going to hold an exhibition together. It will make a great stir, that
-is, if London is not altogether dead to sincerity. We think it is time that independence
-among artists was encouraged. Art must not be allowed to stop short at Calthrop——”</p>
-
-<p>He stopped dead as he realized that the wall opposite him held half a dozen drawings by
-Calthrop. Logan rushed in:—</p>
-
-<p>“Among real artists there is no rivalry. Art is not a competition. It is a
-constellation, like the Milky Way.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-232">[Pg 232]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Ah! La Voie Lactée!” cried Tysoe, dropping into French, as he sometimes did when he
-was moved. “Quite so! La Voie Lactée!”</p>
-
-<p>“At home in Yorkshire,” said Oliver, “there are sometimes two big stars hanging just
-over the top of the moors, and they say it means love or death if you see it at half-past
-nine.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan took charge of the conversation, frowning at Mendel and Oliver as though they
-were naughty children. He described the masterpiece he was painting, and Tysoe said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure I shall like that. It sounds big and forceful, like yourself. Do let me have
-a look at it before anyone else sees it.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he added:—</p>
-
-<p>“I saw a charming still-life of yours once. A melon, I think it was. What has become of
-it?”</p>
-
-<p>“It was sold, I fancy,” replied Mendel, who had never painted a melon in his life.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! A pity. I wanted some little thing for a wedding-present. No one I care about very
-much, so it must be a little thing.”</p>
-
-<p>“He has two or three little things just now,” said Logan. “If you sent a messenger-boy
-round to his studio he would let you see them.”</p>
-
-<p>And suddenly Mendel could keep the game up no longer. He began to feel choked by the
-stuffy, empty luxury of the room, with its excess of plate and glass and flowers and
-furniture and pictures. His head seemed to be on the point of bursting. He must get
-out—out and away. He wanted to laugh, to scream with laughter, to shout, to die of
-laughter, anything to shake off the oppressive folly of his host. And he began to laugh,
-to shake and heave with it. He suppressed it, but at last he burst out with a roar and
-rushed from the room.</p>
-
-<p>“Overworked,” said Logan imperturbably. “That’s what it is. The poor devil hasn’t
-learned sense yet. It’s work, work, work with him, all the time. He thinks of nothing but
-his art, you<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-233">[Pg 233]</a></span>
-know. Never has, ever since he was a boy. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He’ll be a very great genius,
-and I shall be left far behind.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not you,” said Tysoe, “not you. I know no man in whom I have greater faith than
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think him as good as all that?” said Oliver eagerly. “I’m always telling him
-Kühler’s not a patch on him.”</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Mendel had taken refuge in the lavatory, where he shouted and shook and cried
-with laughter. When he had recovered himself he crawled back to the dining-room muttering
-inaudible apologies.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry,” he said. “I’ve not been myself lately.”</p>
-
-<p>“You mustn’t overdo it,” said Tysoe kindly. “You have plenty of time. You need be in no
-hurry to overtake Logan. He is entering upon maturity. Your time will come.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel felt disturbed. He had not thought of Logan seriously as a painter, certainly
-not as a rival or a colleague. Logan was his friend. That Logan painted was incidental. It
-irritated him to have to sit and listen to him holding forth about painting. He had always
-liked Logan’s talk, but had never really connected it with his work. It was just talk,
-like reading, or going to the cinema—a sop, a drug, soothing and pleasant when he was in
-the mood for it, maddening when he was not.</p>
-
-<p>It was as though a spring had been touched, releasing his intelligence, which had
-always been kept apart from his work. For the first time he felt, though never so little,
-detached from it, while at the same moment the awful inward pressure of his emotional
-crisis was relaxed. He was happier, and less wildly gay, and he began to realize that he
-had astonishingly good food in front of him, good wine in plenty, delicious fruits to
-come, and fragrant coffee brewing there on the<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-234">[Pg 234]</a></span> sideboard among bright-hued liqueur bottles.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. There was no need to listen to Logan. There was pleasure enough in eating
-and drinking and watching Oliver, and thinking how good it would be to dance with her, and
-perhaps with others—little women whom he would hold in his arms and feel them yield to
-every movement that he made. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p>He was left alone with Oliver after dinner, while Logan and Tysoe retired to the
-study.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve made him very happy,” he said rather unsteadily.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes!” said she. “It was like a Fate, wasn’t it? I always had a feeling that I
-wasn’t like other girls. I always thought something out of the way would happen to me,
-though I never thought of anything like this.”</p>
-
-<p>“You mustn’t tell me about him,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“I must tell someone or I shall die. He’s so extraordinary. He says it’s something
-deeper than love, and I think it must be.”</p>
-
-<p>“You must not talk about it,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“It makes all the stuff he talks about seem silly. I don’t understand it, do you?”</p>
-
-<p>She lay back in her chair and swung her foot, with her eyes fixed on the door waiting
-for Logan to return.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel’s dislike of her sprang up in him again, and he was a little afraid of her: of
-her big, fleshy body, so full now of little trickling streams of pleasure; of her eyes,
-watching, watching, with the strange, glassy steadiness of the eyes of a bird of prey.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He decided that he would not dance with her. He would dance with the
-others—the little, harmless, pretty fools.</p>
-
-<p>To reassure himself he told himself that Logan was happy, and strong enough to resist
-the growing will in this woman.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter208">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-235">[Pg 235]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter208_hdg"><a href="#Chapter208_toc">VIII<br />
-<span class="chap_title">THE MERLIN’S CAVE</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">L<small>OGAN</small> had cajoled twenty pounds out of Mr. Tysoe, who
-stood on his doorstep, dangling his long hands, while his admired guests crept into a
-taxi-cab. He swung from side to side:—</p>
-
-<p>“I have had a most delightful evening—most charming, most inspiring.”</p>
-
-<p>Inside the cab Logan waved the cheque triumphantly and Oliver tried to snatch it from
-him. They had an excited scuffle, which ended in a kiss.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s the matter with the man?” asked Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s just a fool,” replied Logan, “a padded fool. His only virtue is that he does
-really think me a wonderful fellow, and he is kind. But how I hate such kindness, the last
-virtue, the last refuge of the decrepit! It is a perfume, a herb with which they are
-embalmed.”</p>
-
-<p>“I thought he was a very nice old gentleman,” said Oliver.</p>
-
-<p>“He seemed to me,” said Mendel, “the kind of man who thinks of nothing but women all
-day long.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hit it in once!” cried Logan. “A parrot will not do more for an almond than he will
-for a commodious drab. He could take a nun and by force of living with her and surrounding
-her with every luxury turn her into a whore, because she would in time become only another
-luxury. That is what men grow into if they lose the spirit of freedom. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-Where are we going to?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-236">[Pg 236]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I told the man to go to Sivwright’s club. It is called The Merlin’s Cave.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>The club proved to be a cellar filled with little tables. There was a commissionaire at
-the door and a book had to be signed. The rack of the cloakroom contained several
-silk-lined overcoats and opera-hats.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s going to be damned expensive,” said Logan.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll pay,” replied Mendel. “It’s my fault.”</p>
-
-<p>Two tall young men in immaculate evening dress had entered just after them. They gave
-out an air of wealth and cleanliness and made Logan and Oliver look common and shabby.
-Mendel hated the two young men. What had they done to look so well-fed and unruffled?
-Obviously they had only to hold out their hands to have everything they wanted put into
-them. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. They looked slightly self-conscious and ashamed of themselves, and
-wore a look of alarmed expectancy as they went downstairs.</p>
-
-<p>Why did they come there if they were ashamed? and why did they expect an Asmodean
-lewdness of an artists’ club, they for whom the flesh-markets of the music-hall promenades
-existed?</p>
-
-<p>“Real swells, aren’t they?” said Oliver, overawed.</p>
-
-<p>The strains of a small orchestra came floating up the stairs.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on,” said Mendel, “I want to dance.” And he caught her by the wrist and dragged
-her downstairs.</p>
-
-<p>A girl was standing on a table singing an idiotic song with a syncopated chorus which a
-few people took up in a half-hearted fashion. The sound of it was thin and depressing.</p>
-
-<p>“The same old game,” said Logan. “Playing at being wicked. Why can’t they stick to
-their commercial beastliness? I should be ashamed to bring<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-237">[Pg 237]</a></span> any woman into this. I am ashamed.” He
-half rose from his chair.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! don’t go,” pleaded Oliver, who was entranced with her first sight of what she
-called a gay life. It was to her like a stage spectacle. “Oh! there’s that Calthrop; I
-suppose all those odd women with him are models.”</p>
-
-<p>Calthrop was surrounded by admiring students, among them Morrison, sitting prim and
-astonished and obviously amazed to find herself where she was. Mendel began to tremble,
-and his heart beat violently, as he stared at her—stared and stared.</p>
-
-<p>She had lied to him then! She had not had to go home! She could strike him down and
-then come to amuse herself at such a place as this!</p>
-
-<p>Was she with Mitchell? No, Mitchell was not among the satellites.</p>
-
-<p>How strange she looked! a wild violet in a hot-house. He waited for her to glance in
-his direction, but she seemed to be absorbed in the singer and in the song, and every now
-and then she smiled, though obviously not at the song—at something that amused her or
-pleased her in her thoughts. She could smile then and be happy, and all his wild emotions
-had made no invasion into her life. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. No; she would not look in his
-direction. Perhaps she had seen him come in and refused to see him.</p>
-
-<p>Would the dancing never begin? The dancing took place on a slightly raised floor. If he
-danced there she would have to see him.</p>
-
-<p>He found a warm hand placed on his leg, and turning he saw Jessie Petrie, a model, with
-whom he had danced at the studios and at the Detmold.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought I was never going to see you again,” she said, “and Mitchell said you had
-gone mad.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do I look it?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“No. You look bonnier than ever. I’m on my own again now. Thompson has gone to Paris.
-He says the only painters are there. I think he’s<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-238">[Pg 238]</a></span> going mad, because he paints nothing but stripes and
-triangles. And he <i>was</i> such a dear. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I’m feeling awfully lonely
-because Tilly has gone to Canada. Samuelson gave her the chuck and she went out to her
-cousin in Canada, who had always been wanting to marry her. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Are you still
-down in Whitechapel? I do hate going to see you there. Why don’t you move up to the West
-End? I could come and live with you then, for I do hate being at a loose end.”</p>
-
-<p>She was adorably pretty, dark, with eyes like damsons, lovely red lips, touched up with
-carmine, and a soft white neck that trembled as she spoke like the breast of a singing
-bird.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! who do you think I saw the other day? Hetty Finch! She has a flat and a motor-car,
-but I don’t believe she is married.” She looked suddenly solemn as she added: “The baby’s
-dead.” Then she rattled on: “Isn’t she lucky? But she’s an awful snob. Would hardly speak
-to me!”</p>
-
-<p>“She’s a beast of a woman.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you think of this place? I suppose if the swells come it’ll be a success, but
-they do spoil it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Mendel. “They spoil everything. When do they begin to dance?”</p>
-
-<p>“They’ve nearly finished the programme. They have to have a programme to make people
-eat and drink.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s have some champagne.”</p>
-
-<p>He called the waiter and ordered a bottle.</p>
-
-<p>“Been selling lately?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” he said; “but I want to dance. Do you hear? I want to dance.”</p>
-
-<p>“Dancing,” Logan threw in, “is the beginning of art. It is too primitive for me, or I’m
-too old.”</p>
-
-<p>A thin-faced long-haired poet mounted the table and read some verses, which the popping
-of corks and the clatter of knives and forks rendered inaudible. The poet went on
-interminably, and at<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-239">[Pg
-239]</a></span> last someone began drumming on the table and shouting “Dance! Dance!
-Dance!” The poet stuck to it. Bread was thrown at him and the shouting became general.</p>
-
-<p>At last the orchestra struck up through the poet’s reedy chanting, couples made their
-way to the stage, and the dancing began. Morrison still sat prim and preoccupied. Mendel
-put his arm round Jessie’s waist, his fingers sank into her young, supple body, and he
-lifted her to her feet and rushed with her over to the stage. The whole place was humming
-with life, beating to the chopped rhythm of the vacant American tune.</p>
-
-<p>“I do love dancing with you,” said Jessie, as he swung her into the moving throng of
-brilliantly dressed women and black-coated men, so locked together that they were like one
-creature, a strange, grotesque quadruped. And Jessie so melted into him, so became a part
-of him, that he too became another creature, an organism in the whirling circle supported
-and spun round by the music. It was glorious to feel his will relaxing, to feel the lithe,
-soft woman in his arms yield to every impulse, every movement. He danced with a terrific
-concentration, with a wiry collected force that made Jessie feel as light as a
-feather.</p>
-
-<p>“Oo! That was lovely,” she said when the music stopped. “You do dance lovely.”</p>
-
-<p>“It was pretty good,” said Mendel. “But wait until they play a waltz.”</p>
-
-<p>“I want to dance with you,” cried Oliver. “You said I should dance with you.”</p>
-
-<p>And she had the next dance with him; but there was no lightness in her, only a greedy
-fumbling after sensation.</p>
-
-<p>“This is awful!” thought Mendel, never for a moment losing himself, and all the while
-conscious of Morrison sitting there unmoved: of Morrison, whom he was trying to forget.
-Oliver seemed to envelop him, to swallow him up. He was<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-240">[Pg 240]</a></span> conscious of holding an enormous woman
-in his arms and her contact was distasteful. The dance seemed endless. Would the music
-never stop? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. One, two, three. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. One, two, three.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It was like a dancing class with the fat Jewesses at home. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-And all the time he was conscious of Morrison’s big blue eyes staring at him. Would she
-never stop her damnable smiling?</p>
-
-<p>He returned Oliver to Logan shamefacedly, as though he were paying a long-standing
-debt.</p>
-
-<p>Jessie returned from her other partner to him.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! It isn’t anything like the same,” she said; “and that is such a lovely tune to
-dance to.”</p>
-
-<p>Now that the dancers were warmed up they refused to allow any intervals. They had their
-partners and were unwilling to stop. The orchestra was worked up into a kind of frenzy,
-and Mendel and Jessie were whirled into an ecstasy. They abandoned the conventional steps
-and improvised, gliding, whirling, swooping suddenly through the dancers. Sometimes he
-picked her up and whirled her round, sometimes his hands were locked on her waist and she
-bent backwards—back, back, until he pulled her up and she fell upon his breast, happy,
-panting, deliriously happy.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Morrison sat watching. She was trembling and felt very miserable. She had been brought
-there by Clowes, who had been unable to resist the flattery of Calthrop’s invitation. All
-these people seemed to her to be pretending to be happy, and she was oppressed with it
-all. She had not seen Mendel until he mounted the stage, and then her heart ached. She
-remembered the etched phrases of his letter to her. She had written to him, but nothing
-she could express on paper conveyed her feeling, her sense of being in the wrong, and her
-deep, instinctive conviction of the injustice of that wrong. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He had placed
-her in the wrong by talking of marriage so prematurely. As she<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-241">[Pg 241]</a></span> looked round the room she was oppressed
-by all the men: great, hulking creatures, clumsy, cocksure, insensible, spinning their
-vain thoughts and vainer emotions round the women as a spider spins its threads round a
-caught fly. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. She had often watched spiders dealing with the booty in their
-webs, and Calthrop reminded her of a spider when he looked at Clowes and laid his hand on
-her shoulder or fingered her arm. And Clowes lay still like a caught fly and suffered it.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Morrison was in revolt against it all. She was full of sweet life, and
-would not have it so treated. Her prudery was not shocked, for she had no prudery. The men
-might have their women so, if the women liked it, but never, never would she be so
-treated.</p>
-
-<p>It was because she had been able to sweep aside the sticky threads of vanity with
-Mendel that the ecstasy of the woods and the Heath had been possible.</p>
-
-<p>As she watched him now, she knew that he was different from all the others. He had
-brought an exaltation into the face of the common little girl who was his partner. He was
-giving her life, not taking it from her.</p>
-
-<p>Yet to see him made her unhappy. The music was vulgar, the people were vulgar, and he
-had no true place among them. But how he enjoyed it all!</p>
-
-<p>She shook with impatience at herself. It was hateful to be outside it, looking on,
-looking on. A young student had pestered her to dance with him. She turned to him and
-said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I want to dance, please.”</p>
-
-<p>Delighted, he sprang to his feet, gave her his arm, and whirled her into the dance.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Slowing down to take breath, Mendel looked in her direction. She was gone! A black
-despair seized him, a groan escaped him; he hugged Jessie<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-242">[Pg 242]</a></span> tight against his body and plunged madly
-into the dance.</p>
-
-<p>The musicians had been given champagne. The violinist began to embroider upon the tune
-and the ’cellist followed with voluptuous thrumming chords.</p>
-
-<p>Jessie gave little cries of happiness to feel the growing strength in Mendel’s arms,
-the waxing power of his smooth movements. She gave little cries like the call of a quail,
-and he laughed gleefully every time she cried. He could feel the force rising in him. It
-would surely burst out of him and break into molten streams of laughter, leaving him
-deliciously light, as light and absurd as dear little Jessie, who was swinging on the
-music like a dewdrop on a gossamer. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. If only the music would last long
-enough! He would be as tremulous and light as she, and while that lightness lasted he
-could love her and taste life at its highest point—for her. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. She was aware
-of his desire, and swung to it. It was like a wind swaying her, thistledown as she was;
-like a wind blowing her through the air on a summer’s day. O that it might never end, that
-the sky might never be overcast, that the rain might never come and the night might never
-fall. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Terrible things had happened to Jessie in the night, and she was
-happy in the sun.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was past all dizziness. The room had spun round until it could spin no more, and
-then it had unwound itself, making him feel weak and giddy. He was very nearly
-clear-headed, and every now and then he caught a glimpse of Logan sketching and of Oliver,
-sitting with a sulky pout on her lips and tears in her eyes because she wanted to dance
-and knew she had made a failure of it.</p>
-
-<p>“Lovely! lovely! lovely!” sighed Jessie.</p>
-
-<p>“You are like the white kernel of a nut,” said Mendel, “when the shell is broken.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-243">[Pg 243]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Do let me come and sit for you,” she said. “I won’t want anything except my
-dinner.”</p>
-
-<p>“Better keep to the dancing,” he answered, as he spun her round to stop her
-talking.</p>
-
-<p>She began to stroke his neck and to press her face against his breast. At the same
-moment he saw Morrison among the dancers. He slowed down and then stopped dead. The music
-rose to an exultant riot of sound.</p>
-
-<p>“Please, please!” cried Jessie, clinging to him; but he had forgotten her.</p>
-
-<p>Morrison and her partner swept past him, and he watched them go the full circle. She
-saw him standing, and as she approached broke away from her partner.</p>
-
-<p>“Why aren’t you dancing with me?” he said, shaking with eagerness to hear her
-speak.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m no good at dancing,” she said. “I don’t enjoy it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who brought you here? Calthrop?”</p>
-
-<p>“He brought Clowes and me. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. You mustn’t stop dancing. Your partner.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p>“Please, please!” cried Jessie, stamping her foot; “the music is going to stop.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wait a moment,” he said, turning to Morrison. “Are you going home?”</p>
-
-<p>“The day after to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p>“I must see you.”</p>
-
-<p>Before she could reply her partner, who had lost his temper, seized her and made her
-finish the dance, and when it was over he marched her back to Calthrop’s party, and he
-never left her side again.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel returned to Logan and Oliver, to find them impatient to go. The end of an
-evening always found them in this impatient mood.</p>
-
-<p>“It all bears out what I say,” said Logan. “All this night-club business. People have
-to go mad in London before they can taste life at all.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-244">[Pg 244]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Do you mind if I come home and sleep on your sofa?” asked Mendel. “I can’t face my
-studio to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why don’t you take Jessie home with you?” said Logan; “I’m sure she’d like to.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel winced, and Jessie’s lips began to tremble. She was still suffering from the
-sudden end to her happiness. She looked at him, almost hoping that he was going to make
-reparation to her.</p>
-
-<p>“You know I can’t,” he said; “I live in my brother’s house and he is a respectable
-married man.”</p>
-
-<p>He knew he was in for a terrible night of reaction and desperate blind emotion; at the
-same time he did not wish to hurt Jessie more than he had done.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll take you home in a cab,” he said. “But I won’t stay, if you don’t mind. I’m done
-up. If you and Oliver walk half way, Logan, we ought to be there about the same time.”</p>
-
-<p>Jessie was appeased. A little kindness went a long way with her, and she hated to be a
-nuisance to a man.</p>
-
-<p>When the cab stopped outside the door of her lodgings she flung her arms round Mendel’s
-neck and kissed him, saying:—</p>
-
-<p>“You are a darling, and I would do anything in the world for you.”</p>
-
-<p>“You shall come and sit for me,” he replied. “Good-night!”</p>
-
-<p>“Good-night!”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Good-night! A night of tossing to and fro, of hearing terrifying noises in the
-darkness, of hearing Logan and Oliver in the next room, of shutting his ears to what he
-heard, of fancying he heard someone calling him .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. her voice! Surely she had
-called him, and the ache and the torment in his flesh was the measure of her<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-245">[Pg 245]</a></span> need of him.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Strange, blurred thoughts; gusts of defiance and revolt; glimpses of
-pictures, subjects for pictures, colours and shapes. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. His mother’s hands
-clutching a fish and bringing a knife down on to it. There was a blue light on the knife.
-It would be very hard to get that and to keep it subordinate to the blue in the fish’s
-scales. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. His father and mother, eternally together, in an affection that
-never found any expression, harsh and bitter, but strongly savoured, like everything else
-in their lives. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Issy and Rosa, much the same as Logan and Oliver, and to
-them also he had to shut his ears. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. The goggle-eyed man at the Pot-au-Feu.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. London, London, the roaring fiery furnace of London in which he was
-burning alive, while flames of madness shot up above him. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Music.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. There was a music in his soul, a music and mystery that could rise with an
-easy power above all the flames. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. What did it matter that his body was
-burned, if his soul could rise like that up to the stars and beyond the stars to the point
-where art touched life and gave out its iridescent beneficent light? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Life,
-flames, body, stars, all might perish and fade away, but the soul had its knowledge of
-eternity and could not be quenched. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Eternal art, divine art, the world of
-form, shaped in the knowledge of eternity, wherein life and death are but a day and a
-night. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Sickening doubt of himself, sinking down, down into eternity to be
-a part of it, never to know it, never to see the light of art, lost to eternity in
-eternity. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He sat up in the middle of the night and imagined himself back
-in the one room in Gun Street, looking at the recumbent bodies of his family, lost in
-sleep, huddled together in degradation. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It would have been better to have
-gone home with Jessie. She would have given him rest and sleep. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. No, no,
-no! .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. She was going away the day after to-morrow. He must see her
-before<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-246">[Pg 246]</a></span> she went,
-with her big blue eyes and short chestnut hair. She had stopped in the middle of the
-dance. She had broken away from her partner, and on Hampstead Heath she had said “I love
-you.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter209">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-247">[Pg 247]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter209_hdg"><a href="#Chapter209_toc">IX<br />
-<span class="chap_title">“GOOD-BYE”</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">L<small>OGAN</small> came in early in the morning to make tea. He shut
-the door carefully and came and sat on Mendel’s sofa.</p>
-
-<p>“She says you hate her,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I?” answered Mendel. “No. I. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. What can make her say that? Because I
-didn’t dance with her? I had Jessie. You ought to have danced with her.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m glad she didn’t dance. It might make her break out. Women are very queer things.
-You never know where they will break out. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. You make love to them, touch a
-spring in them, and God knows where it may lead you. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. You’re not in love
-with that mop-haired girl, are you?”</p>
-
-<p>“What if I am?”</p>
-
-<p>“She’s just a doll-faced miss. You’re taken with the type because you’re unused to it.
-For God’s sake don’t take it seriously. You’re much too good to waste yourself on women.
-She’ll drive you mad with purity and chivalrous devotion and all the other schoolgirl
-twaddle. Leave all that to the schoolboy English. It’s all they’re good for. They’ve bred
-it on purpose to be the mother of more schoolboys. It is the basis of the British Empire.
-But what is the British Empire to you or any artist? Nothing.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want to talk about it,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“She won’t marry you,” said Logan. “She won’t live with you. She’ll give you nothing.
-She’ll madden you with her conceited stupidity<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-248">[Pg 248]</a></span> and wreck your work. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. What you want is
-what every decent man wants—to take a woman and keep her in her place, so that she can’t
-interfere with him. That’s what I’ve done, and it’s made a man of me, but I’m not going to
-let her know it. She’d be crowing like an old hen that has laid an egg. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. No
-farmyard life for me, thanks.”</p>
-
-<p>Oliver bawled for her tea and Logan hastened to make it, and disappeared into the
-bedroom.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel got up and dressed, feeling eager for the day. The sun shone in through the
-window and filled the room with a dusty glow, making even the shabby bareness of the place
-seem charming.</p>
-
-<p>“It is a good day,” he said to himself. “I shall work to-day.” And he was annoyed at
-not having his canvas at hand.</p>
-
-<p>On an easel stood the picture which Logan had described to Tysoe, a London street scene
-with a group of people gazing into a shop window. It was a clever piece of work, very
-adroit in the handling of the paint and pleasing in colour, but Mendel had an odd
-uncomfortable feeling of having seen it before, and yet he knew that the technique was
-novel. Yet it was precisely the technique that seemed familiar. Certain liberties had been
-taken with the perspective which, though they were new to him, did not surprise him.</p>
-
-<p>Logan came in dressed and said that Oliver would not be a minute. She appeared in a
-dressing-gown.</p>
-
-<p>“Well?” she said; “none the worse for last night?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, thanks,” said Mendel. “Why should I be? I enjoyed it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did Logan tell you we were going to Paris?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. He said nothing about it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m dying to go to Paris. He says they understand<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-249">[Pg 249]</a></span> the kind of thing we had last night in
-Paris.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re not going for good, are you?” asked Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“No. Just a trip. I want you to come too. We’ll see some pictures and have a good time.
-I can’t speak a word of French, but they say English is good enough anywhere.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I’d like to go,” said Mendel. “I want a change, before I settle down to working
-for the exhibition. Is that picture going to be in it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Do you like it?”</p>
-
-<p>“I like it. It seems to me new. Stronger than most things. All these people going in
-for thin, flat colour and greens and mauves make me long for something solid.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m going to show that and a portrait of Oliver.”</p>
-
-<p>“I want my breakfast,” said she.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! shut up. We’re talking. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I’ve just begun the portrait. No
-psychological nonsense about it. It’s just the head of a woman in paint. I don’t want any
-damn fool writing about my picture: she is wiser than the chair on which she sits and the
-secrets of the antimacassar are hers. A picture’s a picture and a book’s a book.”</p>
-
-<p>“I do want my breakfast,” sang Oliver.</p>
-
-<p>Logan went livid with fury.</p>
-
-<p>“Be silent, woman,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I shan’t, so there. I want my breakfast.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why the hell don’t you get the breakfast then?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because you said you would.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan began to prepare the breakfast—rashers of bacon and eggs.</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t mind eating pork?” he asked Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“No. I like it, but I never get it at home.”</p>
-
-<p>“Fancy Jews being still as strict as that!” said Oliver. “Just like they were in
-Shakespeare’s time.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-250">[Pg 250]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Just as they were in the time of Moses and Aaron,” said Mendel. “They don’t alter
-except that they haven’t got a country to fight for.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank God!” said Logan, “or there’d be a bloody mess every other week. Fancy a Jewish
-Empire, with you sent out, like David, to hit the Czar of Russia or Chaliapine in the eye
-with a stone from a sling. Think of your sister-in-law luring the Kaiser into a tent and
-knocking a nail through his head. I wish she could, upon my soul I do!”</p>
-
-<p>“I think we should only be led into captivity again,” said Mendel. “Our fighting days
-are over, and someone told me the other day that many of the most advanced artists in
-Paris are Jews.”</p>
-
-<p>“If they were all like you,” said Logan, “I shouldn’t mind. But I’m afraid they’re not.
-The Jews have got all the money and they keep the other people fighting for it, and charge
-them a hell of a lot for guns and uniforms to do it with. Oh! there are Christians in it
-too, but they have to be nice to the Jews to be allowed to share the spoils. I don’t
-wonder the Jews left the Promised Land when they found the world was inhabited by fools
-who would let them plunder it.”</p>
-
-<p>“There’s not much plunder in my family,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>After breakfast he declared that he must go, and Logan announced that he would walk
-with him to enjoy the lovely sunny day. Oliver wanted to come too, but he told her to stay
-where she was, and he left her in tears.</p>
-
-<p>“She’s got a bad habit of crying,” he said, “and she must be broken of it. She cries if
-I don’t speak to her for an hour. She cries if I go out without telling her where I am
-going. She cries if I curse and swear over my work, and if I am pleased with it she cries
-because I am never so happy with her. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I feel like hitting her
-sometimes,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-251">[Pg 251]</a></span> but
-it isn’t her fault. She hasn’t settled down to it yet. She says I don’t love her when she
-knows she never expected to be loved so much. And she can’t get used to it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why don’t you paint her crying?” asked Mendel maliciously.</p>
-
-<p>“By Jove! I will,” cried Logan. “Damned interesting drawing, with her eyes all puckered
-up. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. But it’s a shame on a day like this to be out of temper with anything.
-Lord! How women do spoil the universe, to be sure! Do they give us anything to justify the
-mess they make of it? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Women and shopkeepers. I don’t see why one should
-have any mercy on either of them. I have no compunction in stealing anything I want.
-Shopkeepers steal from the public all the little halfpennies and farthings of extra profit
-they exact.”</p>
-
-<p>He led Mendel into a picture shop and asked for a reproduction of a picture by Van
-Tromp, and when the girl retired upstairs to ask about that non-existent artist, he turned
-over the albums and helped himself to half a dozen reproductions, rolled them up, and put
-them in his pocket. When the girl came down and said they were out of Van Tromps, he
-said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry. Very sorry to trouble you.”</p>
-
-<p>When they were out of the shop he chuckled, and was as elated over his success as Mr.
-Kuit had been over his exploits.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I should be an artist in anything I did,” he said. “I don’t wonder thieves can’t
-go straight once they get on the lay. If I weren’t a painter I should be a criminal.”</p>
-
-<p>He walked with Mendel as far as Gray’s Inn, and there left him, saying he had another
-picture-buying flat to go and see, and after that he must pay a visit to Uncle Cluny and
-keep him up to the mark. He was in fine fettle, and went off singing at the top of his
-voice.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-252">[Pg 252]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Mendel bought some flowers on the way home because he wished always to have flowers,
-even if she were to send no more.</p>
-
-<p>He was sure of himself to-day. He was in love and glad to be in love. Surely it could
-have no worse suffering than that through which he had passed, and if it did, well, so
-much the worse for him. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He was glad it had happened. His father would not
-be able to sneer at him any more, as he was always sneering at Issy and Harry—Harry, who
-had deserted his father and mother for the sweetbreads of Paris. (Jacob always called
-sweetmeats sweetbreads.) He had a bitter, biting tongue, had Jacob, and the habit of using
-it was growing on him. Mendel knew that he had deserved many of his sneers, but now they
-could touch him no longer. His life, like his art, now contained a passion as strong as
-any Jacob had known in his life, and stronger, because it was wedded to beauty, to which
-Jacob was a stranger.</p>
-
-<p>He was able to work again at his picture of his father and mother. He could make
-something of it now, he knew, because he could understand his father and appreciate the
-strength in him which had kept his passion alive through poverty and a life of constant
-storms and upheavals. He remembered his father knocking down the schoolmaster, and the
-soldier in the inn with the heavy glass. Oh yes! Jacob was a strong man, and he had nearly
-died of love for Golda, the beautiful.</p>
-
-<p>He worked away with an extraordinary zest, and he knew that it was good. As he grew
-tired during the afternoon he was overcome with a great longing for her to see it, just to
-see it and to say she liked it. It would not matter much if she did not understand it, so
-long as she saw it and liked it.</p>
-
-<p>He turned to the roughly sketched portrait of<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-253">[Pg 253]</a></span> her to ask her if she liked it, and as he did so the
-door opened and she came in. Her arms were full of flowers, so that her face was resting
-in them, her dear face, the sweetest of all flowers.</p>
-
-<p>“You said .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. you must see me, so I brought you these to say good-bye.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do come in and see my picture. It is nearly finished.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! It is good,” she said shyly.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought you’d like it. I wanted you to like it. Do stay a little and talk.”</p>
-
-<p>She sat down and looked about the studio, puckering up her eyebrows nervously and
-making her eyes very round and large.</p>
-
-<p>“You never told me how old you are,” he said nervously.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m nineteen.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m twenty. Just twenty. How long are you going away for?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know. Until the winter, I expect.”</p>
-
-<p>“What will you do there in the country? It is important that you should tell me,
-because I must know how to think of you. What shall you do? Is it a big house? Are you—are
-you rich?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. It is not a very big house. My mother is fairly well off, but I have four
-brothers, and they all have to go to Oxford and Cambridge. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. There’s a good
-garden, and I shall spend a lot of time in that, digging and looking after the flowers.
-And I shall try and do some work. There’s a big barn I can have for a studio.”</p>
-
-<p>“A big barn. Yes. Are your brothers nice men?”</p>
-
-<p>“Two of them.”</p>
-
-<p>“And there’s a river and a common. May I write to you?”</p>
-
-<p>She was silent for a long time, and then she said:—</p>
-
-<p>“No. Please don’t.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-254">[Pg 254]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>His happiness vanished. It was as though a hole had opened in the floor and swallowed
-it up.</p>
-
-<p>“Why not?” he asked. “Why not?”</p>
-
-<p>She shrank into herself for a moment, but shook off her cowardice and answered:—</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want to hurt you.”</p>
-
-<p>“You said you loved me. You can do what you like with me!”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re so different,” she said. “Too different.”</p>
-
-<p>“From what? From whom? Go on, go on!”</p>
-
-<p>She loved his violence and gained courage from it.</p>
-
-<p>“You mustn’t think it mean of me. I don’t care a bit what people say, but I don’t want
-to hurt you—in your work, I mean. It isn’t all that I think and mean, but it is a part of
-it, a little part of it. People are furious at our being seen together. It began at the
-picnic. We were seen walking over the Heath. Clowes told me. She can’t bear it. She’s a
-good friend. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It hurt me when she told me, and I knew that I must tell you.
-It isn’t only old women. It is all the important people, who can hurt your work.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nobody can hurt my work.”</p>
-
-<p>“But they can. They are saying your work is bad, all the people who said it was so good
-only last year, all the people who believed in you. And it’s all through me. It’s my
-fault.”</p>
-
-<p>She began to weep silently. He was unmoved by the sight of it, so appalled was he by
-the sudden devastation of his life. Suffering within himself he knew, but hostility from
-without he had not had to face. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Many little slights were explained—men who
-had given him an indifferent nod, men who had apparently not seen him in the street. In
-the surprise of it he was blind even to her. It was like a sandstorm covering him up,
-filling with grit every little chink and<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-255">[Pg 255]</a></span> crevice of his being. He snorted with fury and
-contempt.</p>
-
-<p>He shook himself free of the oppression of it. This was nothing to do with her; it was
-not what he wanted from her—the gossip and tittle-tattle, the sweepings of the studios.
-The models sickened him of that. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. So it was his turn now. Well, other men
-had survived it.</p>
-
-<p>“That isn’t why you want to say good-bye.”</p>
-
-<p>“No. I’m not pleading to you to let me off, or anything like that. I believe in you
-more than in anybody else, more than I do in myself. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I don’t believe in
-myself much.”</p>
-
-<p>It had all seemed clear to her before she had come. He would understand how wrong and
-twisted the whole thing had become. They would suffer together and they would see how
-useless such suffering was in a world of beauty and charm and youth, and they would part
-because they had to part. He would understand, even if she could not rightly understand,
-for he was strong and simple and direct, and free of the soft vanity of youth.</p>
-
-<p>But he did not understand. He was angry and domineering.</p>
-
-<p>“Why do you say all this?” he said heavily, floundering for words. “What does it mean?
-Nothing at all. You belong to me. You gave up Mitchell because I said you must. Have you
-given up Mitchell?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well then. Nothing else matters. If I want a thing I will break through a Chinese
-wall to get it. Nothing can stop me, because when I want a thing it is mine already. I
-want it because it is mine already.”</p>
-
-<p>He was making it impossible for her—impossible to go, impossible to stay, impossible to
-say anything.</p>
-
-<p>Outside in the street the heavy drays went<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-256">[Pg 256]</a></span> clattering by on the stone setts. When they had passed
-there came up the shrill cries of children playing in the street, the drone of a Rabbi
-taking a class of boys in Hebrew. On the hot air came the smell of the street—a smell of
-women and babies and leather and kosher meat.</p>
-
-<p>“I know the way of women,” he said. “My mother has been my friend always. But I do not
-know your ways. I only know that I love you. You are mine as that picture is mine, and you
-cannot take yourself from me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want to take myself from you,” she said, half angry, half in tears. “I want to
-make you understand me.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is there to understand? Do I understand my pictures?” he cried. “Do you want no
-mystery? How can there be life without mystery? I don’t expect you to understand. I only
-want you to be honest and true to me. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I conceal nothing. I am a Jew. I
-live in this horrible place. My life is as horrible as this place. You know all that, all
-there is to know, and you love me. You cannot alter me. You cannot change my nature.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t say any more,” she said. “It only becomes worse with talking.”</p>
-
-<p>“What becomes worse?”</p>
-
-<p>She could not answer him. She could not say what she felt. The woods, the Heath,
-and—this; the rattle and smell of the street, the dinginess of the studio, the dinginess
-of his soul—the dinginess and yet the fire of it. On the Heath he had been like a faun,
-prick-eared and shaggy, but wild and free as her spirit was wild and free. Here he was
-rough, coarse, harsh, and tyrannical. She could feel him battering at her with his mind,
-searching her out, probing into her, and she resented it with all the passion of her
-modesty. She gathered up all her forces to resist him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-257">[Pg 257]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You are terrible! Terrible!” she cried. “Don’t you see that it must be good-bye?”</p>
-
-<p>“I say it must not,” he shouted. “I say it is nonsense to talk of good-bye, when we
-have just met, when the kiss is yet warm on our lips. For a kiss is a holy thing, and I do
-not kiss unless it is holy. I say it is not good-bye.”</p>
-
-<p>“I say it is and must be,” she said. “You are terrible. You hurt me beyond
-endurance.”</p>
-
-<p>“And why should you not be hurt? Am I to have all the pain? I want to share even that
-with you.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is impossible,” she said dully, unable to share, or deal with, or appreciate the
-violence of his passion, and falling back on the mulishness which had been developed in
-her through her tussles with her brothers. Through her mind shot the horrible
-thought:—</p>
-
-<p>“We are quarrelling—already quarrelling.”</p>
-
-<p>To her he seemed to be dragging her down, defiling her. His eyes were glaring at her
-with a passion that she took for sensuality, because it came out of the dinginess of his
-soul. And he was stiffening into an iron column of egoism, on which she knew she could
-make no impression. She knew, too, that her presence was aggravating the stiffening
-process. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. She felt caught, trapped, and she wanted to get away. Love must
-be free—free as the wind on the heath, as the blossom of the wild cherry. Love must have
-its blossoming time, and he was demanding the full heat of the summer. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. She
-must get away.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-bye,” she said, holding out her hand.</p>
-
-<p>He took her hand and pulled her to him.</p>
-
-<p>“No! No! No!” she cried. “No! Good-bye! Good-bye!”</p>
-
-<p>She turned away and was gone.</p>
-
-<p>Unable to contain his agony, he flung himself on his bed and sobbed out his grief.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-258">[Pg 258]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“She is mine!” he moaned. “She is mine, and she cannot take herself from me.”</p>
-
-<p>And when his tears were shed he began to think of the other women who had come to him
-without love, so easily, so gratefully, some of them, and this little girl who loved him
-could tear herself away—at a fearful cost. He knew that. But if she could tear herself
-away, if she could say good-bye, what could she know of love?</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter210">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-259">[Pg 259]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter210_hdg"><a href="#Chapter210_toc">X<br />
-<span class="chap_title">PARIS</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">M<small>ENDEL</small> was able to finish his portrait of Jacob and
-Golda, but only at the cost of painful and bitter labour. He was torn two ways: longing to
-finish it, yet dreading the end of it, for he could not see beyond it. Every picture he
-had painted had brought with it the certain knowledge that it would lead to a better, that
-he was advancing further on the road to art. But there was a finality about this picture.
-It was an end in itself. It was not like most of his work, one of a possible dozen or
-more. A certain stream of his feeling ended in it and then disappeared, leaving him
-without guide or direction.</p>
-
-<p>Therefore, when the picture was ended he found himself besottedly and uncontrollably in
-love and in a maddeningly sensitive condition, so that any sudden glimpse of beauty—the
-stars in the night sky, a girl’s face in the train, flowers in a window-box—could set him
-reeling. More than once he found himself clinging to the wall or a railing, emerging with
-happy laughter from a momentary lack of consciousness. In the street near his home he
-found a lovely little girl, of the same type as Sara, but more beautiful. Graceful and
-lively she was, fully aware of her vitality and charm, and she used to smile at him when
-he went to meet her as she came out of school, or stood and watched her playing in the
-street.</p>
-
-<p>At last he asked her shyly if she would come to his studio that he might draw her. She
-consented<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-260">[Pg 260]</a></span> and
-came often. She would chatter away, and, studying her, he was astonished at her
-womanishness, and he was overwhelmed when she said one day:—</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t want to draw me. You only want to look at me.”</p>
-
-<p>He was thrust back into the thoughts he had been avoiding. If this child knew already
-so frankly why he was attracted to her, why could not that other? Why did she seem to
-insist that he should regard her with the emotions with which he approached a work of art?
-A work of art could yield up its secret to the emotions, but she could only deliver hers
-to love dwelling not in any abstract region, but here on earth, in the life of the body.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He often thought of her with active dislike, because she seemed to him to
-be lacking in frankness. If she were going to cause so much suffering, as she must have
-known she would with her good-bye, then she must have her reasons for it. What did she
-mean with her neither yes nor no? With women there should be either yes or no. A refusal
-is unpleasant, but it could be swallowed down with other ills; and there were others. But
-this girl, this short-haired Christian, blocked his way, and there were no others except
-as there were cabs on the street and meals on the table.</p>
-
-<p>For a time he avoided Logan and Oliver. He knew that Logan would despise him for his
-weakness in setting his heart on a girl who ran away from him, for he knew and admired the
-tremendous force with which his friend had hurled himself into his life with the girl of
-the station, constantly wooing and winning her afresh and urging her to share his own
-recklessness. He admired, too, Logan’s insistence on an absolute separation of his art and
-his life with Oliver, who was never for one moment admitted to his mind. Rather to his
-dismay, but at the same time with a wild rush of<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-261">[Pg 261]</a></span> almost lyrical impulse, Mendel, finding himself with no
-other emotion than that of being in love, set himself to paint love. He worked with an
-amazing ease, painting one picture one day and covering it with another the next, feeling
-elatedly convinced that everything he did was beautiful, yet knowing within himself that
-he was in a bad way.</p>
-
-<p>He avoided Logan, but Logan needed him, and came to tell him so.</p>
-
-<p>“It is all very well for you to shut yourself up,” he said, “but I can’t live without
-you. You know what Oliver is to me, but it is not enough. The more satisfying she is on
-one plane, the more I need on the other the satisfaction that she cannot give me. Women
-can’t do it. They simply can’t, and it is no good trying. If you try, it means making a
-mess of both love and art. She is jealous? Very well. Let her be jealous. She enjoys it,
-and it helps her to understand a man’s passion.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t stand it when you talk in that cold-blooded way about women.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not cold-blooded,” said Logan, astonished at the adjective.</p>
-
-<p>“I sometimes think you are, but I am apt to think that of all English people,” replied
-Mendel, wondering within himself if that did not explain Morrison. “Yes. I often wonder
-what you would be like if you were in an office, wearing a bowler hat, and going to and
-fro by the morning and evening train.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why think about the impossible?” laughed Logan. “Anyhow, I’m not going to let you shut
-yourself up. I want to go to Paris, and I can’t face three weeks alone with Oliver.
-Twenty-one days, sixty-three meals. No. It can’t be done.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I’ll go to Paris,” thought Mendel. “I will go to Paris and I will forget.”</p>
-
-<p>“You must come,” urged Logan. “Madame at the<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-262">[Pg 262]</a></span> Pot-au-Feu has given me the name of a hotel kept by her
-sister-in-law. Very cheap. Bed and breakfast, and, of course, you feed in restaurants.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. You want digging out of your hole. I don’t know why, but you seem to have
-insisted more on being Jewish lately. It is much more important for you to be an artist
-and a man. I regard you as a sacred trust. I do really. You are the only man in England
-for whom I have any respect, and I need you to keep me decent.” He added: “I need you to
-keep me alive, for, without you, Oliver would gobble me up in a month.”</p>
-
-<p>He seemed to be joking, but Mendel could not help feeling that he was at heart serious,
-and he had the unpleasant sinking of disgust which sometimes seized him when he thought of
-Logan and Oliver together. He could not account for it, and the sensation gave him a
-sickly pleasure which made him weaker with Logan than with anybody else. Besides, Logan
-often bewildered him, and he could not tolerate his inability to grasp ideas except
-through a mad rush of feeling, and he hated the fact that while Logan’s mind seemed to
-move steadily on, his own crumbled to pieces just at the moment when it was on the point
-of absorbing an idea.</p>
-
-<p>For these reasons he consented to go to Paris. The three weeks should consolidate or
-destroy a friendship which had remained for him distressingly inchoate. Deep in his heart
-he hoped that it would become definite enough and strong enough to drive out his
-indeterminate love. To be in love without enjoying love was in his eyes a fatuous
-condition, undignified, vague, a kind of cuckoldry.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Oliver was aflame with excitement over the trip to Paris. She spoke of it with an
-almost religious exaltation. As usual, her emotion was entirely uncontrolled, became a
-physical tremulation, and she reminded Mendel of a wobbling blanc-mange.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-263">[Pg 263]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The plan was to have a fortnight in Paris and a week at Boulogne, for bathing and
-gambling at the Casino.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner had he left London than Mendel felt his cares and anxieties fall away from
-him, and he began to wish he had brought Jessie Petrie. He proposed to wire for her from
-Folkestone, but Logan pointed out that Oliver could not stand women and was jealous of
-them.</p>
-
-<p>“She’d say Jessie was making eyes at me,” he said. “And if she made eyes at you she’d
-be almost as bad.”</p>
-
-<p>In that Mendel could sympathize with Oliver. He was himself often suddenly,
-unreasonably, and violently jealous of other men over women for whom he did not care a
-fig.</p>
-
-<p>He set himself to be nice to Oliver, and she in her holiday mood responded, so that on
-the boat and in the Paris train Logan was sunk in a gloomy silence, and in the hotel at
-night, in the next room, Mendel could hear him storming at her, refusing to have anything
-to do with her, threatening to go home next day unless she promised to keep her claws, as
-he said, off KĂĽhler. She promised, and they embarked further upon their perilous voyage in
-search of an unattainable land of satiety.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Their hotel was near the Montparnasse station, and they discovered a café in the
-Boulevard Raspail which was frequented by artists and models, one or two of whom Mendel
-recognized as former habitués of the Paris Café. They were soon drawn into the artist
-world, and except that he went to the Louvre instead of to the National Gallery for peace
-and refreshment, Mendel often thought he might just as well be in London. There was the
-same feverish talk, the same abuse of successful artists, the same depreciation of old
-masters, but there was more body to the talk, and sometimes a Frenchman, finding
-speech<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-264">[Pg 264]</a></span> useless
-with this shy, good-looking Jew, would make himself clear with what English he could
-muster and a rapid, skilful drawing. For the most part, however, he had to rely on Logan’s
-paraphrase, until one day in the Boulevard St. Germain he ran into that Thompson, lamented
-by Jessie Petrie, the painter of stripes and triangles.</p>
-
-<p>Thompson was a little senior to Mendel at the Detmold, had hardly spoken to him in the
-old days, but was now delighted to meet a familiar London face.</p>
-
-<p>“I <i>am</i> glad!” he said. “Come and see my place. How are they all in London—poor
-old Calthrop and poor old Froitzheim? I should have killed myself if I’d stayed in London;
-nothing but talk and women, with work left to find its way in where it can. Here work
-comes first. I suppose they haven’t even heard of Van Gogh in London?”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel had to confess that he had never heard of Van Gogh.</p>
-
-<p>“A Dutchman,” explained Thompson, “and he cut off his ear and sent it to Gauguin. Ever
-heard of Gauguin?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. But a man doesn’t make himself a great artist by cutting off his ear.”</p>
-
-<p>“Van Gogh was a great artist before that. He killed himself: shot himself in his bed,
-and the doctor found him in bed smoking a pipe. He was quite happy, for he had done all he
-could.”</p>
-
-<p>That sounded more like it to Mendel, more like the deed of a warrior of the spirit.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll show you,” said Thompson, and they went round the galleries.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel’s head was nearly bursting when he came out. The riotous colour, the apparent
-neglect of drawing and abuse of form, the entire absence of tone and atmosphere, shocked
-him. He resented the wrench given to all his training, and he took Thompson to the Louvre
-to go back to Cranach and the early Italians. Thompson would<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-265">[Pg 265]</a></span> not hear of them, and insisted on his
-spending over an hour with Poussin.</p>
-
-<p>“I can see nothing in them. Good painting, good drawing, but dull, so dull! The flat,
-papery figures mean nothing.”</p>
-
-<p>“They mean everything to the picture,” said Thompson, “and you have no right to go
-outside the picture. Poussin kept to his picture, and so must you if you are to understand
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can see all that,” said Mendel, “but he is dull. I can’t help it, he bores me.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is pure art.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I like it impure.”</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t really. But you are all like that when you first come from London. You think
-that because a thing is different it must be wrong. Have you come over alone?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. I’m with a man called Logan and his girl. He is a great painter, or he will be
-one. Anyhow, he is alive and has ideas.”</p>
-
-<p>“Does he know about Van Gogh?”</p>
-
-<p>“No; but he says the next great painter must come from England.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pooh! Whistler!” said Thompson in a tone of vast superiority. “Nous sommes bien loin
-de ça.”</p>
-
-<p>“Please don’t talk French,” said Mendel. “I don’t understand a word.”</p>
-
-<p>“Whistler had good ideas,” continued Thompson. “It is a pity he was not a better
-artist.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was beginning to feel bored. He did not understand this new painting for
-painting’s sake, and did not want to understand it. To change the subject he said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I nearly brought Jessie Petrie with me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wish you had. She is a dear little girl, and I nearly sent for her the other day,
-but I’ve no use for the model now. It is perfectly futile trying to cram a living figure
-into a modern picture.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see why, if you can paint it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Really,” said Thompson, “I don’t see what<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-266">[Pg 266]</a></span> you have come to Paris for, if you haven’t come to learn
-something about painting. One wouldn’t expect you to understand Picasso straight off, but
-anyone who has handled paint ought to be able to grasp Van Gogh.”</p>
-
-<p>“He is trying for the impossible,” grunted Mendel. “The important thing in art is art.
-I’ve come to Paris to have a good time.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! very well,” said Thompson. “Why didn’t you say so before? I’ll show you
-round.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Mendel took Thompson round to his hotel and up to Logan’s room, where, entering without
-knocking, they found Logan kneeling on the floor with Oliver in a swoon in his arms. He
-had opened her blouse at the neck and unlaced her corsage.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel thought Oliver looked as though she was going to die, and his first idea was to
-run for the doctor.</p>
-
-<p>“She’ll come round,” said Logan. “It’s my fault. I was brutal to her. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”
-He nodded to Thompson. “How do you do?” and he covered up Oliver’s large bosom.</p>
-
-<p>She came to in a few moments, opened her eyes slowly, rolled them round, and came back
-to Logan, on whom she fixed a gaze of devouring love. She put up her arms and drew his
-head down and kissed his lips.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel drew Thompson out into the corridor.</p>
-
-<p>“She was shamming,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think so,” replied Thompson. “What has happened? Does he knock her about?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not that I know of. They’ve not been together very long. They can’t settle down.”</p>
-
-<p>“She’s a fine woman,” said Thompson.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>They were called in again and found Oliver sitting up on the bed eating chocolates. She
-greeted Thompson with a queenly gesture, and<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-267">[Pg 267]</a></span> clapped her hands when Mendel told her they were going
-out to see the sights.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sick of artists,” she said. “I have quite enough of them in London. I wish to God
-you weren’t an artist, Logan. You’d be quite a nice man if you worked for your
-living.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t talk rubbish,” mumbled Logan, who was subdued and curiously ashamed of himself.
-“If I were like that I should have a little dried-up wife and an enormous family, and you
-wouldn’t have a look in.”</p>
-
-<p>“And a good job too!” cried Oliver, in her most provoking tone. “A good job too! I’d
-find someone who had a respect for me.”</p>
-
-<p>“D’you find Paris a good place to work in?” Logan turned to Thompson.</p>
-
-<p>“I never knew the meaning of work till I came here. Ever heard of Rousseau?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes,” said Logan.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t mean the writer, I mean .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know, I know,” said Logan nonchalantly. He could never admit ignorance of
-anything.</p>
-
-<p>“A great painter,” cried Thompson eagerly. “A very great painter. I tell you he brought
-Impressionism up sharp. They had overshot the mark, you know. Manet, Monet: they had
-overshot the mark.”</p>
-
-<p>Oliver began to scream at the top of her voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Shut up!” said Logan. “You’ll have us turned out.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t care,” she replied. “I don’t care. I can’t stand all this talk about
-painting.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you want us to talk about?” said Mendel, tingling with exasperation. “Love?
-Three men and one woman can’t talk about love.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I didn’t come to Paris to sit in a dirty bedroom talking about pictures. I want
-to go out to see the streets and the shops and the funny people.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-268">[Pg 268]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“For God’s sake take us somewhere,” said Logan.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Thompson, having ascertained that they had plenty of money, took them to Enghien by the
-river. Oliver was happy at once. She wanted to be amused and to be looked at, and as she
-was bouncing and rowdy she had her desire.</p>
-
-<p>She made Logan play for her at the little horses, but, as she did not win, she was soon
-bored with it. Logan was bitten and could not tear himself away. Mendel stayed with him
-and she disappeared with Thompson.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m bound to win if I go on,” said Logan. “There’s a law of chances, you know, and
-I’ve always been lucky at these things. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It is so exciting, too.”</p>
-
-<p>He changed note after note into five-franc pieces, lost them all, and at last began to
-win a little; won, lost, won.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel dragged him away from the table, protesting:—</p>
-
-<p>“Come along. I have had enough. Do come along. We haven’t had a chance to talk for
-days, and I hate these rooms with all the flashy, noisy people. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. We can
-come back here and find the others. Let us go and find some fun that we can share, for
-this is deadly dull for me. Besides, we don’t want to be stranded without money.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I’m winning. My luck is in.”</p>
-
-<p>He rushed back to the tables and lost—twice, upon which he allowed himself to be
-persuaded, and they went out into the air and sat on a terrace by the lake. Mendel
-produced cigarettes and they smoked in silence for some time. Logan looked pale and worn
-and was obviously smouldering with excitement.</p>
-
-<p>“How amazingly different everything looks here,” he said. “In London I always feel as
-though I had a thumb pressing into my brain.<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-269">[Pg 269]</a></span> Everybody seems indifferent and hostile and everything I
-do is incongruous. I feel almost happy here. I should like to stay here. I told her so and
-she began to cry. I knocked her down. I couldn’t stand her crying any more. I knocked her
-down and she fainted.”</p>
-
-<p>“She was shamming,” thought Mendel, seeing vividly the scene in the bedroom. “He did
-not hurt her. She was shamming.”</p>
-
-<p>“I feel a brute,” said Logan, “and yet I’m glad. I’m tremendously glad. I want to sing.
-I want to get drunk. I’m tremendously glad. It has settled something. I’m her master. She
-was getting on my nerves. She won’t do that any more. Ha! Ha!”</p>
-
-<p>“Why don’t you get rid of her?” asked Mendel. “Leave her here. Come back with me
-to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t be a silly child,” said Logan patronizingly. “I love her. I couldn’t live
-without her now, not for a single day. I could no more do without her than I could do
-without the clothes on my back. I tell you she’s an inspiration. If she left me I should
-lay down my brush for ever. She’s a religion—all the religion I’ve got.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t imagine stopping my work for any woman,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! that’s because you don’t know what a woman can mean. You can’t know while you are
-young.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel’s nerves had been throbbing in sympathy with his friend, but suddenly all that
-place was filled with a soft, clear light and a bright music, the colour and the scent of
-flowers, the soft murmur of flowing water, the whisper of the wind in leafy trees, and his
-heart ached and grew big and seemed to burst into a thousand, thousand rivulets of love,
-searching out every corner of his senses, cleansing his eyes, sharpening his hearing,
-refining every sense, so that the scene before him—the white tables, the white-aproned
-waiters, the<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-270">[Pg 270]</a></span>
-green trees, the soft evening sky, the softer reflection of it in the water—was exquisite
-and magical and full of a mysterious power that permeated even Logan’s brutal revelation
-and made it worthy of beauty. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And this mysterious power he knew was love,
-and she, the girl for whom it had arisen from the depths, was far away in England,
-thinking of him, perhaps, regretting him, perhaps, but knowing nothing of the beauty she
-had denied. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was astonished to find tears in his eyes, trembling on his lashes, trickling
-down his cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>“What a baby you are!” said Logan. “You can’t have me all to yourself.”</p>
-
-<p>His divination was true. Lacking its true object, Mendel’s love had concentrated upon
-his friend, with whom he longed to walk freely in the enchanted world of art, to be as
-David and Jonathan. Indeed, Logan’s state of torment was to him as a wound got in battle,
-over which he gave himself up to lamentation, so single and deep and pure that it obscured
-even the impulse of his love. He longed to rid his friend of this devouring passion that
-was consuming him and thrusting in upon his energy, but because his friend called it love,
-he respected it and bore with it.</p>
-
-<p>“How good it is, this life out of doors!” exclaimed Logan, lolling back in his
-chair.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” replied Mendel. “I think it is too deliberate, too organized. I prefer
-London streets. There is nothing in the world to me to compare with London streets. Nature
-is too beautiful. A tree in blossom, a garden full of flowers, a round hill with the
-shadow of the clouds over them, move me too much. Left alone with them I should go mad. I
-must have human nature if I am to live and work. I only want nature, just as I only want
-God, through human nature.”</p>
-
-<p>“By Jove! you hit the nail on the head sometimes, my boy.<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-271">[Pg 271]</a></span> That is true for all of us. It is what I
-meant when I said that Oliver was a religion to me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t mean women or individuals,” protested Mendel. “I mean human nature in the
-lump. It may be very poor stuff, stupid and foolish and vulgar, but it is all we’ve got,
-and one lives in it and through it.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is all very well while you are young,” said Logan, “but you have to individualize
-it when you are older. One person becomes a point of contact. You can’t just float through
-humanity like an apparition.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel had lost the thread of his argument, though not his confidence in its truth.</p>
-
-<p>“That is not what I meant,” he said, “and I don’t see how a person could be just a
-point of contact.”</p>
-
-<p>“All I know is that Oliver is such a point of contact to me, and I know that unless art
-is inspired with some such feeling as you have described, all the technical skill and all
-the deft trickery in the world won’t make it more than a sop for fools or an interesting
-survival of mediævalism. That is why I think you are going to be so valuable. You have so
-little to unlearn. You have only to shake off the most antiquated religion in the world
-and you can look at life and human nature without prejudice, while I have constantly to be
-uprooting all sorts of prejudices in favour of certain ways of living, morally and
-socially.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was beginning to feel comfortable and easy, for while his mind worked furiously
-he could rarely express what he thought, and Logan in his talk often came near enough to
-it to afford him some relief and to urge him on to renewed digging in the recesses of his
-mind. It was a vast comfort to him to find that there were other vital thoughts besides
-that of Morrison, and that for ecstasy he was not entirely dependent upon her. Warmed
-up<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-272">[Pg 272]</a></span> by his
-confidence in Logan, he resolved to tell him about the girl and the vast change she had
-wrought in his life.</p>
-
-<p>“I used to think,” he said, “that if I stayed among my own people I could work my way
-through the poverty and the dirt and the Jewishness of it all to art. When she came I knew
-that it was impossible. She had something that I needed, something that the Jews do not
-know, or never have known. It is not my poverty that denies it to me, for if the poor Jews
-do not know a good thing, the rich Jews certainly do not, for the rich Jews are rubbish
-who stroke the Christians with one hand and rob them with the other. It is something that
-she knows almost without knowing it herself.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“I am not a fool about her,” cried Mendel. “She is not particularly beautiful to me.
-There is only one line in her face that I think beautiful, from the cheek-bone to the jaw.
-I am not a fool about her, but I had almost given the Christian world up in despair. It
-seemed to me so bad, so inhuman, so hollow, so full of plump, respectable thieves. The
-simple thieves and bullies of my boyhood seemed to me infinitely preferable. And I had met
-some of the most important people in the Christian world: all empty and callous and
-lascivious. And the unimportant people were good enough, but dull, so dull.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Then comes this little girl. She is like Cranach’s Eve among monkeys. She
-becomes at once to me what Cranach’s wife must have been to him. He painted her as child,
-girl, and woman. The chattering apes matter to me no more. The Christian world is no
-longer empty. It is still lascivious and greedy, soft and ill-conditioned, puffy and
-stale, but it is suddenly full of meaning, of beauty, of a joy which, because I am a Jew,
-I cannot understand.”</p>
-
-<p>“Give it up,” growled Logan, “give it up. Paint<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-273">[Pg 273]</a></span> her portrait and let her go. You are a born painter. To
-a painter women are either paintable or nothing. For God’s sake don’t go losing yourself
-in philosophy.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is not philosophy!” cried Mendel indignantly. “It is what I feel.”</p>
-
-<p>“It will probably end in a damned good picture,” retorted Logan. “Why not be content
-with that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because it will not answer what I want to know, and because I feel that there is
-something in the Jews, the real Jews, that she does not understand either. And she is not
-a fool. She has a mind. She has a deep character. She is strong, and she can get the
-better of me. She is secret and she is cruel.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan gave his fat chuckle.</p>
-
-<p>“She is just an English girl with all the raw feeling bred out of her. She is true to
-type: impulsive without being sensual, kind without being affectionate; and she would let
-you or any man go to hell rather than give up anything she has been brought up to believe
-in or admit to her life anything that was strange, unfamiliar, and not good form, like
-yourself. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Give it up, give it up. You are only taking it seriously because
-you have been irresistible so far and it is the first setback you have received.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will not give it up,” said Mendel, setting his teeth. Then he laughed because the
-lights had gone up and the scene was gay and amusing, and he wanted to plunge into the
-merry crowd of Parisians and pleasure-seekers, to move among them and to come in contact
-with the women, to watch the men strutting to please them, to delight in the procession of
-excited faces, to taste the flavour of humanity which is always and everywhere the same,
-rich, astonishing, comforting, satisfying in its variety.</p>
-
-<p>Oliver and Thompson returned with their hands<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-274">[Pg 274]</a></span> full of trinkets, toys, and pretty paper decorations
-which they had bought or won at games of chance and skill. She sat on Logan’s knee and
-insisted on wreathing him with paper streamers, which he removed as fast as she placed
-them on his head.</p>
-
-<p>“Do! do!” she cried. “Do let go for once and let us all be gay. Oh! I do love this
-place, with the band playing, and the lights in the water, and the wonderful deep blue
-sky. Why don’t we have a sky like that in London? Do let us come here every year for the
-summer. Thompson says painters have to come to Paris if they want to be any good.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve been telling her about Van Gogh,” said Thompson.</p>
-
-<p>“So that’s what’s gone to your head!” growled Logan, patting her cheek. “He’s been
-talking to you about painting, has he?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. He’s is a nice man, and doesn’t treat me as if I was a perfect fool.”</p>
-
-<p>She darted a mischievous glance at Mendel, who started under it as though he had been
-stung. He was horrified at the depth of his dislike of her, and he remembered with disgust
-her full, coarse bosom exposed as she lay in her calculated swoon. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. How
-good it had been while she was gone with that fool Thompson, who suited her so perfectly,
-that chattering ape, with his talk of Van Gogh and Gauguin and “abstract art,” who stood
-now coveting her with shining eyes and fatuously smiling lips.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not good enough for some people,” she said. “When I come into the room there is
-silence.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, shut up!” said Logan. “Let’s go and have dinner and get back to Paris. I’m sick of
-this cardboard place, where there is nothing but pleasure.”</p>
-
-<p>They had an excellent dinner, during which Oliver never stopped chattering and Mendel
-never<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-275">[Pg 275]</a></span> once
-opened his lips. His thoughts were away in England, in his studio with his work, and in
-the country with Morrison, and he struggled to bring them together in his mind. How could
-Logan love Oliver and keep her apart from his work? Two such passions must infallibly seek
-each other out and come to grips. They must come together or be flung violently apart.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Passions were to him as real as persons; they had individualities, needs,
-desires; they were entities insisting upon their right to existence; they must express
-themselves, must make their impression upon the circumambient world.</p>
-
-<p>He became critical of Logan, though he hated to be so. Logan stood to him for adventure
-and freedom, independence and courage. It was incomprehensible to him that Logan should
-take Oliver seriously. She was the woman for a holiday, for a wild outburst of
-lawlessness, not for the morning and the evening and the day between.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, do cheer up, Kühler! You are like a death’s-head at a feast.”</p>
-
-<p>He looked at her with a piercing glance which silenced her. No: she was no holiday
-woman. She was the woman for a drab, drudging life, with no other colour or joy in it than
-her own animal warmth. She was like Rosa, made for just such a dreary, simple, devoted
-fool as Issy. What could she do with a strong passion? She could only absorb it like a
-sponge, and nothing could kindle her. Just a drab; just a sponge.</p>
-
-<p>Thinking so, his dislike of her grew into a hatred so passionate that he desired to
-know more of her, to watch her, to beget a clear idea of her. He went and sat by her side
-and teased her, while she teased him and told him he was the prettiest boy she had ever
-seen.</p>
-
-<p>“That night in the Tube I thought you were the prettiest boy I ever saw, and I was
-quite disappointed<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-276">[Pg
-276]</a></span> when Logan came to speak to me instead of you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I would never have taken you from the shop,” he said. “I would have taken you to my
-studio, and perhaps I would have painted you, but I would have sent you back to the
-shop.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wouldn’t have gone, so there!” she said. “What would you have done then?”</p>
-
-<p>“I should have turned you out.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! Would you? Filthy brute! If I’m good enough for one thing I’m good enough for
-another. Do you hear that, Logan? He would have turned me out!”</p>
-
-<p>“You leave Kühler alone,” said Logan. “You’ll never understand him, if you try for a
-thousand years.”</p>
-
-<p>“Turned me out?” muttered Oliver. “Heuh! I like that. He’d turn me out and get another
-girl in! I’ll not have any of those tricks from you, Logan.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can talk about them when I begin them,” he replied.</p>
-
-<p>She turned from Mendel to Thompson and soon had him soft in her snares.</p>
-
-<p>“She would like to do that with me,” thought Mendel, “and she hates me because she
-knows she cannot.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>They returned to Paris by bus all sleepy and a little drunk. Oliver leaned her head on
-Logan’s shoulder and dozed, smiling to herself, while Thompson, sitting by her side,
-fingered her sleeve.</p>
-
-<p>They were carried far beyond the point where they should have descended, and finding
-themselves on the boulevards, they woke up to the liveliness of the Parisian night, and
-Oliver refused to go home.</p>
-
-<p>Thompson suggested the cabarets, and they went from one dreary vicious hole to
-another<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-277">[Pg 277]</a></span> until
-they came on one where a party of Americans were doing in Paris as the Parisians do. They
-had brought on a number of <i>cocottes</i> from the Bal Tabarin, and were drinking,
-shouting, dancing. Thompson led Oliver into the mêlée, and soon she was drinking,
-shouting, dancing with the rest.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was horrified and disgusted. There was no zest in the riot. It was a piece of
-deliberate, cold-blooded bestialization. He trembled with rage, and turned to Logan, who
-was sitting with a sickly smile on his face:—</p>
-
-<p>“You ought not to let her,” he cried—almost moaned. “If she were my woman I would not
-let her. I would kill any man who laid hands on her like that. She is not a prostitute. I
-would not let my woman be a prostitute.”</p>
-
-<p>But Logan did not move. He sat with his sickly smile on his face. He was drunk and
-could not move.</p>
-
-<p>Unable to bear the scene any longer, Mendel rushed away, jumped into a taxi, and drove
-back to the hotel, swearing that he would go back to London the next day. He would write
-and tell Logan that he must get rid of Oliver or no longer be his friend. She was a
-poisonous drab. She would be the ruin of his friend.</p>
-
-<p>An hour or two later Logan came back. He was very white, and his hair was dank, and
-there was a cold sweat on his face.</p>
-
-<p>“My God!” he said, “Kühler! Are you awake? I don’t know where she is. I went to sleep.
-I was so tired, and there was such a row with those blasted Americans. I went to sleep and
-awoke to find a nigger shaking me and the place empty. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Where does Thompson
-live? Do you know?”</p>
-
-<p>“Off the Boulevard Raspail. I went there to look at his rubbishy pictures. I think I
-could find the way. Are you going to kill him?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-278">[Pg 278]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I want to find her,” said Logan. “I must find her. It is killing me to think of her
-lost in Paris. I must find her. I can’t sleep without her. I must find her.”</p>
-
-<p>He hardly seemed to know what he was saying.</p>
-
-<p>“Come along then,” said Mendel. “I think I can find where Thompson lives.”</p>
-
-<p>It was not far. They walked along the deserted boulevard under the new white, florid
-buildings, and turned into an impasse.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s it,” said Mendel. “Impasse. I remember that. A tall, thin house with a big
-yellow door. Here it is.”</p>
-
-<p>They knocked until the yellow door swung mysteriously open and then ran upstairs to the
-top floor.</p>
-
-<p>Thompson came blinking into the passage.</p>
-
-<p>“Where’s Oliver? Where’s Logan’s girl?”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel put up his fist to hit him in the eye.</p>
-
-<p>“I put her into a taxi and sent her home. The Americans took us on to another place.
-They were a jolly lot. A terrific place they took us to. There were negresses dancing and
-a South Seas girl who said Gauguin brought her back. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oliver’s all right. I
-put her in a taxi and sent her back.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re a liar!” shouted Logan. “She’s in there.”</p>
-
-<p>He rushed in, while Mendel put his arms round Thompson and laid him neatly on the
-floor. In a moment Logan was out again.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re a shocking bad painter,” he said to Thompson, “but she isn’t there.”</p>
-
-<p>They left the house and walked slowly back to the hotel. Logan clung to Mendel’s arm,
-saying:—</p>
-
-<p>“It’s my fault. She said if ever I knocked her about she’d clear out. Do you mind
-walking about with me? I couldn’t go to bed. I couldn’t sleep.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-279">[Pg 279]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>All night they walked about; going back to the hotel every half hour to see if she was
-there, talking of anything and everything, even politics, to keep Logan’s mind from the
-fixed horrible idea that had taken possession of it. They saw the sun come out, and the
-workers hurrying along the streets, and the waiters in the cafés push up the heavy iron
-shutters that had only been pulled down an hour or two before, and the market women with
-their baskets, and the tramcars glide and jolt along, the shops open and the girls go
-chattering to their work through the long, leisurely Parisian day.</p>
-
-<p>They returned at eight and had breakfast. At half-past nine Oliver appeared, smiling
-and serene.</p>
-
-<p>“We did have fun last night! You missed something, I tell you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where have you been?” cried Logan. “I’ve been looking for you all night.”</p>
-
-<p>“What a fool you are! I can look after myself.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where have you been?”</p>
-
-<p>She faced him with a bold stare and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I got home about half-past two, and I took another room, partly because I didn’t want
-to disturb you, and partly—you know why.”</p>
-
-<p>“What number was your room?”</p>
-
-<p>“Forty-four.”</p>
-
-<p>From where they sat Mendel could see the keyboard in the concierge’s lodge. There were
-only forty rooms in the hotel.</p>
-
-<p>“Have you had breakfast?” asked Logan, forcing himself to believe her.</p>
-
-<p>“Hours ago. In bed,” she replied. “I paid for it and the bed.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why did you do that?” he snapped.</p>
-
-<p>She caught Mendel’s eyes fixed on her, eager to see her trapped, and she smiled
-insolently as she replied:—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-280">[Pg 280]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I thought it would be a good joke if I let you think I had been out all night. But you
-look such a wreck that I don’t think you could see a joke. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. What are we
-going to do to-day?”</p>
-
-<p>“We are going home,” said Logan.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter301">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-281">[Pg 281]</a></span></p>
-
-<h3 id="Chapter300_hdg"><a href="#Chapter300_toc">BOOK THREE<br />
-<br />
-<span class="slightlybigfont">THE PASSING OF YOUTH</span></a></h3>
-
-<div class="pagebreak"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-283">[Pg 283]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter301_hdg"><a href="#Chapter301_toc">I<br />
-<span class="chap_title">EDWARD TUFNELL</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">A <small>WRETCHED</small> journey home, a miserable journey. There had
-been a high wind, leaving a heavy swell, and Mendel shared the feelings of his
-brother-in-law, Moscowitsch, concerning the sea. It made him ill, and he never wished to
-see it again.</p>
-
-<p>Oliver sat with her eyes closed while Logan held her hand and whispered to her. The
-boat was crowded, for it was the first to make the crossing for two days. Detestable
-people, detestable sea, detestable evil-smelling boat! .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. How lightly they
-had undertaken the trip to Paris! Only seven hours! But what hours!</p>
-
-<p>Mendel’s disgust endured until they reached London. This was home to him, and never,
-never again would he travel. The discomfort of it was too odious, the shock to his habits
-too great. In London he did at least know what to avoid, while in Paris there was no
-knowing when he might be plunged into a dreary, glittering place full of prostitutes and
-Americans.</p>
-
-<p>He was glad to part with Logan and Oliver. They had so much to settle with each other
-that he felt he was an unnecessary third. Paris had done violence to their relationship.
-They had gone there light of heart; they had returned oppressed and entangled.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And in London it was raining; but that was good, because familiar. It was
-good to go out into the friendly streets and to see them shining like black rivers, and to
-see the people hurrying under their dripping umbrellas<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-284">[Pg 284]</a></span> and the women with their skirts up to
-their knees.</p>
-
-<p>He seemed to have been away a very long time, and yet Paris seemed very far off too, an
-unreal memory, like a place of which he had read or seen in photographs. He was glad when
-he mounted a bus and knew that it was bearing him towards his own people.</p>
-
-<p>Golda was very excited. She had had a letter from Harry, who had seen his brother in
-Paris, but had been too shy to speak to him because of his friends.</p>
-
-<p>“You should have gone to see your brother,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“How could I?” asked Mendel. “I did not know where he was.”</p>
-
-<p>“You speak Yiddish. You could have found him. He has done very well, but he is coming
-home to us. He does not like to live away from his people, and he says England is
-best.”</p>
-
-<p>And Mendel thought that England was indeed best. For him, then, England meant his
-mother’s kitchen, with its odd decorations from Tottenham Court Road, its dresser crammed
-with gilded china and fringed with cut green paper, its collection of his early pictures,
-almost all hanging crooked, and the hard wooden chair in which Golda sat all day long with
-her hands on her stomach, dreaming and brooding of her life, which through all her
-hardships had been sweet because of her beautiful child whom everybody loved and spoiled,
-as she herself loved and spoiled him because he was not like other children. England was
-best because it could contain that peace and that beauty, and there was nothing in England
-to harm it or in envy to destroy it.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel could understand his brother wanting to come back to it; for he, too, from all
-his adventures, returned to its simplicity for strength and comfort.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-285">[Pg 285]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Moscowitsch came in with a Jewish paper. He was in a terrible state of anger and
-hatred. His eyes flashed and his nostrils quivered as he read out how a Jew in Russia had
-been accused of killing a Christian boy for his blood, and how over a thousand Jews had
-been massacred on the instigation of the police.</p>
-
-<p>“It grows worse and worse,” he said. “The Jews do not kill. It is the Christians who
-lust for blood. It is the Christians who are so wicked and dishonest that, when they must
-be found out, they say it is the Jews, or that the Jews are more wicked than they. It is
-impossible. But England is good to the Jews. England must send soldiers to Russia or the
-Jews will be all murdered.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, it is bad in Russia,” said Golda, nodding her head. “But life is bad everywhere
-for good people. Only in England one is left alone.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Mr. Artist!” said Moscowitsch genially. “Made your fortune yet?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” replied Mendel; “but I have been to Paris for my holidays and I stayed in a
-hotel. Three of us spent twenty pounds.”</p>
-
-<p>“So?” said Moscowitsch, impressed. “Have you made it up with the Birnbaum, then?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is not the way to get on, to quarrel with money.”</p>
-
-<p>“If he wants money,” said Golda, “he can always get it. What more do you want? There
-are some letters for you, Mendel.”</p>
-
-<p>He opened his letters, and had the satisfaction of telling Moscowitsch that he was
-asked to paint a portrait for thirty pounds.</p>
-
-<p>“Who is it?” asked Moscowitsch. “A lord?” He had an idea that only lords had their
-portraits painted by hand.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s better,” he said. “That’s better than<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-286">[Pg 286]</a></span> painting those pictures that nobody wants. You paint
-what they ask you and you’ll soon make your fortune, and be able to give your mother
-dresses covered with beads and tickets for the theatre and china ornaments. And you can be
-thankful you don’t live in Russia. They wouldn’t let you be an artist there. If you became
-a student they would send you off to Siberia and you would die in the snow.”</p>
-
-<p>It was the first time Moscowitsch had spoken to him since the breach with Birnbaum, and
-Mendel was at his ease with him again, and glad to be with his people. He knew that
-Moscowitsch was greatly attached to Golda, and had more than once urged his being taken
-away from his painting and put to some useful trade.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I shall very soon succeed,” he said boastfully. “This is only a beginning. You
-keep an eye on that paper of yours. You will find something else to read besides what
-Russia does to the Jews. You will see what England does for a Jew when he has talent and
-honesty.”</p>
-
-<p>“They made Disraeli a lord,” said Moscowitsch.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall be something much better than a lord.”</p>
-
-<p>“They only make painters R.A.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall be much better than that,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“It is like old times,” laughed Golda, “to hear him boasting.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel opened another letter. It was an invitation to become a member of an exhibiting
-club which considered itself exclusive.</p>
-
-<p>“I have been invited to become a member of a club.”</p>
-
-<p>That settled Moscowitsch. A club to him was proof of success and social distinction. He
-and his wife had made the acquaintance of a member of the music-hall profession who had
-two clubs, and they counted him a feather in their caps. To have a member of a club in the
-family was almost<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-287">[Pg
-287]</a></span> overwhelming, and he forgot the sorrows of the Jews in Russia.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>The portrait commission was from Edward Tufnell, who had lately married and had been
-adopted as a candidate for Parliament for a northern constituency. Good earnest soul that
-he was, he regarded himself as responsible for launching Mendel upon the world, and once
-he had assumed a responsibility he never forgot it. Nothing made any difference to him. He
-had heard tales of the boy’s wildness, but he accepted responsibility for that too, read
-up the histories of men of genius for precedent, and acknowledged the inevitability of the
-flying of sparks from the collision of a strong individuality and the habits of the
-world.</p>
-
-<p>He had always intended to give his protégé a lift, and had tried in vain to badger his
-father and his uncle, partners in a huge woollen manufactory, into having their portraits
-painted. They preferred to sink their money in men with reputations. He did not see how
-Mendel could acquire a reputation except by giving him work to do. On the other hand, he
-shrank from what he considered the vanity of having his own portrait painted, but his
-charmingly pretty wife gave him the opportunity he desired.</p>
-
-<p>Therefore he invited Mendel to his house in the dales to stay until the picture was
-finished.</p>
-
-<p>A day or two later and Mendel was in the train, being whirled North through the dull,
-rolling Midlands and the black, smirched valleys of the West Riding. The gloomy sky filled
-him with terror. At first he thought there was going to be a storm, but there seemed to be
-no life in the sky, and its strangeness oppressed him. The people in the train spoke a
-language which seemed almost as foreign as French, and when the train darted through
-forests of smoking chimney-stacks and he<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-288">[Pg 288]</a></span> looked down into the grimy, trough-like streets, he was
-dismayed to think that here were depths of misery compared with which the East End was as
-a holiday ground. This, too, was England, and he had said that England was best. He
-remembered Jews in the East End who had fled from the North and said they would rather go
-back to Russia than return to the tailoring shops and the boot factories. So this vile,
-busy blackness was the North!</p>
-
-<p>For some mysterious reason it made him think of Logan and Oliver, and the thought of
-them filled him with an added uneasiness. He had not thought of them once since the trip
-to Paris, and now he felt bound to them, and that they were a weight upon him. They stood
-out vividly against the murky, lifeless sky. He could see them standing hand in hand,
-smiling a little foolishly, and a physical tremor shot through him as he thought of the
-contact of their two hands, thrilling together, pressing together, to tell of their
-terrible need of each other. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. This man and this woman. Mendel was haunted
-by the images of all the couples he knew, and they passed before him like a shadowy
-procession of the damned, all hand in hand, across the lifeless sky, all shadowy except
-Logan and Oliver, and then two others, his father and his mother; but they were not hand
-in hand. They were seated side by side, like two statues, and behind them the lifeless sky
-broke and opened to show the infinite blue space beyond the clouds.</p>
-
-<p>He had changed at the darkest of the chimneyed towns, and the shabby local train went
-grinding and puffing through a tunnel into a vast green valley. At the first station he
-saw Edward Tufnell on the platform. He had changed a good deal, and was no longer the
-lanky, earnest youth of the Settlement, but his eyes still had their steady, serene
-expression and their sunny, beautiful smile.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-289">[Pg 289]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He flung up his hand as he saw Mendel, smiled, and came fussily, as though he were
-meeting the Prime Minister himself. He insisted on carrying Mendel’s bag and canvases and
-made him feel small and young again, as he used to when he went trotting along by Edward’s
-side on his way to the French class.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a long journey,” said Edward. “You must be tired.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh no! I don’t mind any journey as long as I don’t have to cross the sea.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is only two miles now.”</p>
-
-<p>They climbed into a dogcart and drove, for the most part at a walk, up a long, winding
-road that crept like a worm along the flanks of a huge hill.</p>
-
-<p>“Glorious country!” said Edward. “I love it. The South doesn’t seem to me to be country
-at all—just a huge park. One is afraid to walk on the grass. But here there is room and
-freedom. One understands why the North is Liberal.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is too big for me,” replied Mendel. “But then I can’t get used to the country. I’m
-not myself in it. I feel in it as though I were on the edge of the world and in danger of
-falling off. Yes. The country seems dangerous to me, and I could never walk along a road
-at night.”</p>
-
-<p>“How odd that is!” laughed Edward. “If I am ever afraid it is in the town. The vast
-masses of people do really terrify me sometimes, when I think of governing them all.”</p>
-
-<p>“They can look after themselves,” said Mendel simply.</p>
-
-<p>Over the shoulder of the hill they came on a grey stone house with a walled garden.
-Edward turned in at the gate, flicked his horse into a trot up the steep drive, and drew
-up by the front door, in which was standing a dainty little lady in a mauve cotton gown
-and a wide Leghorn straw hat.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-290">[Pg 290]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Here he is, my dear!” said Edward. “My wife, Kühler.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m so glad you could come,” said the little lady. “My husband has told me so much
-about you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not half what he could tell if he only knew,” thought Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid it is a very long way for you to come,” she said, leading him into the
-house while Edward drove round to the stables. “It is very good of you. We are very quiet
-here, but you can do just as you like, and I shall always be ready for you when you want
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>She had a very charming voice that seemed to bubble with happiness, and she had the air
-of being surprised at herself for being so happy. The house was pervaded with her
-atmosphere, fragrant and good, and every corner seemed to be full of surprise, every piece
-of furniture looked astonished at finding itself in its place—so perfectly in its place.
-This fragrant perfection was the more amazing as the outside of the house was more than a
-little grim, and the hill behind it was dark and ominous, while several of the trees were
-blasted and chapped with the wind.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel had never seen such a house, and when Edward took him up to his room he almost
-wept with delight at the comfort and sweetness of it all. There was a fire burning in the
-grate, by the side of which was a huge easy chair. Flowered chintz curtains were drawn
-across the windows, and the same gay chintz covered the bed. On the wash-hand-stand was a
-shining brass can of hot water. There were books by the bedside, the carpet was of a thick
-pile, and the furniture was old and exquisite. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He was filled with delight
-and gratitude.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” he thought, “England is best! Comfortable England.”</p>
-
-<p>And when Edward showed him the big tiled<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-291">[Pg 291]</a></span> bathroom he had a shiver of dismay, and thought what a
-dirty, uncouth fellow he was to come among these exquisite people.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Mary Tufnell put him at his ease at once and encouraged him to talk about himself. He
-was frank and gay and amusing, and told her about his adventures and many of his troubles,
-and even ventured once or twice upon scabrous details.</p>
-
-<p>“He is a darling,” she said to Edward. “But how he must have suffered. He is such a
-boy, but sometimes he seems to me the oldest person I have ever met.”</p>
-
-<p>“You must remember that he is a Jew,” said Edward.</p>
-
-<p>“He doesn’t let you forget it,” replied she.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>The portrait was begun the next day. Mendel took a business-like view of his visit. He
-was there to paint and to make thirty pounds. Every moment that his hostess could spare he
-seized upon. He painted her in her mauve cotton and Leghorn hat and would not talk while
-he worked.</p>
-
-<p>When the light was gone he was ready for any entertainment they might propose. He did
-not find either of them particularly interesting, and their unfailing kindness wearied him
-not a little. They were so invariably good in every thought, word, and deed. It seemed
-impossible for them to fail. There was no combination of circumstances which they could
-not surmount with their smiling patience. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He thought of them as two people
-walking along on either side of a road, smiling across it at each other. Nothing joined
-them. They had never met. There had been no collision. He had overtaken her on the road
-and had taken her step, her pace. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. They had just that air. Dear Edward had
-fallen in with her by the wayside, and she had smiled at him and he was content and held
-for life. To their mutual<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-292">[Pg
-292]</a></span> grave astonishment she would have children, and her smile would become a
-little sad, and with the children she would be an ideal to Edward, like the little Italian
-Madonnas of whom he had so many photographs all over the house. And between them on the
-road would march the brave procession of life—kings and beggars, priests and prostitutes,
-artists and peasants, chariots, and strange engines of peace and war; but they would see
-nothing of it: they would see only each other, and they would smile and go smiling to the
-grave.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was at his ease with them and very happy, but suddenly out of nowhere there
-would arise, as it were, a great stench that pricked his nostrils and set him longing for
-London. And he would think of Logan and Oliver and ache to be with them, so that he knew
-that he was bound to them in the flesh. They were embarked upon a great adventure in which
-he must be with them to the end, for Logan was his friend, with whom he must share even
-the deepest bitterness. With Edward he could share nothing at all, for Edward was
-absurdly, incredibly innocent, content to smile by the wayside.</p>
-
-<p>He wrote to Logan and Oliver and told them how he was longing to be with them, and how
-the country filled him with childish fears, and how Paris seemed a thousand miles away and
-its adventures a thousand years ago. And he was hurt because they did not at once
-reply.</p>
-
-<p>He received two letters one morning. Logan wrote telling him he ought not to waste his
-time over portraits, and that he must come back to London soon, because the autumn was to
-see their triumph: nothing about himself, nothing about Oliver. Mendel was disappointed:
-nobody ever really answered his letters, into which he flung all his feeling.</p>
-
-<p>His other letter was from Morrison. His first letter from her. He knew her hand, though
-he<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-293">[Pg 293]</a></span> had never
-seen it before—round, big, simple. He kept her letter until his day’s work was done, and
-then he went into the garden to read it. There was an arbour at the end of a mossy walk
-which led to a crag above a little waterfall. Out of the crag grew a mountain ash,
-brilliant in berry. This was the most beautiful spot in the garden, and so he chose it for
-reading the letter.</p>
-
-<p>“I want you to forgive me for being so foolish. I want to try again. I hate being
-beaten, and I think it was only my stupidity that beat me. I have been thinking of you all
-the time, and I have been troubled about you. What people said had nothing at all to do
-with it. I admire you more than I can say, and I have been very foolish.</p>
-
-<p>“It has been a lovely summer. I have been working hard and feel hopeless about it.
-Please don’t ask to see my work. While I am at it I am wondering all the time what you are
-doing.</p>
-
-<p>“I am to be allowed to come back to London in October. There is no reason why you
-should not write to me.”</p>
-
-<p>She was there with him, by his side, under the glowing rowan-tree, gazing down at the
-little white waterfall dashing so merrily down into the pebbled beck. She was there with
-him, and his blood sang in his veins and his mind began to work, pounding along as it had
-not done these many weeks. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Weeks? Years—more than a lifetime.</p>
-
-<p>He went back to his picture and thought it very, very bad. Edward and his wife came in
-and looked at it dubiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course,” said Edward, “it is a very jolly picture, but I don’t think you have
-caught all her charm.”</p>
-
-<p>“But the painting of the hat is wonderful,” said Mary.</p>
-
-<p>“What do I care?” thought Mendel. “It is you—you as you are, smiling, eternally
-smiling<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-294">[Pg 294]</a></span> over
-your little clean, comfortable happiness, three parts of which you have bought, with your
-servants and your flowers and your bathroom.”</p>
-
-<p>In a day or two he was being whirled back to London, shouting every now and then from
-sheer exuberance—thirty pounds in his pocket, October to look forward to: October, when
-London shook off its summer listlessness; October, when She would return; and until
-October he would run with his eyes on the trail of the burning, creeping passion that
-bound him to Logan and Oliver.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter302">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-295">[Pg 295]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter302_hdg"><a href="#Chapter302_toc">II<br />
-<span class="chap_title">THE CAMPAIGN OPENS</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">H<small>E</small> reached London in the afternoon, and as soon as it
-was evening went to Camden Town to find Logan. Only Oliver was in. She was sitting in the
-window smoking. There had been a tea-party, and the floor was littered with cups, plates
-of bread and butter and cakes, fragments of biscuit, some of which had been trodden
-on.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel surveyed this litter ruefully, and he said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Why don’t you wash up?”</p>
-
-<p>“Logan said he would. I washed up after breakfast. I’m not a servant, and he keeps on
-promising to have someone in to help.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you wash up if I help you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, thanks. Logan’s got to do it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who has been to tea?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! A funny lot. Some of Logan’s fools who think he is a great man.”</p>
-
-<p>“He is a great man,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“Heuh! You try living with him. What’s the good of being a great man if you don’t make
-any money? It’s all very well for Calthrop to live like a pig. He makes money and can do
-what he likes.”</p>
-
-<p>“If you don’t like it you can always clear out.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where to? Eh? To go the round of the studios and oblige people like you? Not much! It
-isn’t as if I was married to him. I can’t make him keep me. Besides, he wouldn’t let me
-go. If I went he would run after me. I suppose<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-296">[Pg 296]</a></span> you hadn’t thought of that, Mr. Kühler. You don’t know
-what it is to care for anybody. I’d like to see some one play you and play you, and then
-turn you down. That would teach you a lesson, that would.”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s the matter with you?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not going to stand it any longer,” she said. “I’m not going to be put on one side
-like dirt while you go on with your conceited talk. You’re both so conceited you don’t
-know how to hold yourselves. I’m a woman, and I stand for something in the world. A woman
-is more important than the biggest picture that was ever painted.”</p>
-
-<p>“It depends upon the woman.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right, then. <i>I’m</i> more important. You talk about Logan keeping me. He can
-consider himself damned lucky I stay with him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! you’re both in luck,” snapped Mendel, and he sat down and refused to say another
-word.</p>
-
-<p>Oliver began to whistle and then to hum. She fidgeted in her chair. She thought she had
-come off rather well in the sparring match. She had been dreading Mendel’s return, for
-since the Paris adventure she had been asserting herself, as she called it, beating Logan
-down, bewildering him with her extraordinary sweetness and cajolery and sudden outbursts
-of fury. Both had agreed to bury the memory of the last night in Paris, but the thoughts
-of both were centred upon it. She rejoiced that she had served him out, but she had been
-stirred to a degree that alarmed her. Her former condition of lazy sensual security had
-been broken, and she dreaded Logan’s jealousy. She knew that she was not his equal in
-force, but she set herself to overcome him with cunning. His force would spend itself. She
-knew that. She must then bind him fast with tricks and lures, rouse the curiosity of his
-senses and keep it unsatisfied.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-297">[Pg 297]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She had succeeded wonderfully. Logan crumbled and turned soft and sugary under her
-arts, and only one impulse in him resisted her—his love for Mendel; and through that love
-his passion for art. Therefore she dreaded and hated Mendel’s return.</p>
-
-<p>Presently she ceased to hum. She thought suddenly that perhaps it had been a mistake to
-meet Mendel with hostility.</p>
-
-<p>“I say, Kühler, do give us one of your cigarettes. These are awful muck.”</p>
-
-<p>He threw his cigarette-case over to her.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you have a good time up North?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“I come from there, you know. Logan was furious with you for going. He is really very
-fond of you, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t need you to tell me that.”</p>
-
-<p>“He’s very excited just now. He keeps talking about the artistic revolution and the
-twentieth century, and all that, you know. He has been reading a book called â€John
-Christopher,’ and keeps on reading it aloud until I’m sick of it. I believe he thinks he
-is like Christopher, though I’m sure he’s not, because Christopher could never see a joke.
-It is all about women, one after another, just left anyhow. It doesn’t sound like a story
-to me at all.”</p>
-
-<p>“It sounds true,” said Mendel, not paying much attention to what she said.</p>
-
-<p>To his intense relief Logan came in with a frame under his arm.</p>
-
-<p>“Hullo!” he said. “Got back? How did you like the swells?”</p>
-
-<p>“They were good people,” replied Mendel, “and wonderfully peaceful. I don’t think I
-appreciated it enough while I was there, but it seems very clear and beautiful to me
-now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Portrait any good?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan put down his frame and without a word<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-298">[Pg 298]</a></span> to Oliver proceeded to wash up the tea-things. She
-stayed in her chair in the window and hummed.</p>
-
-<p>To Mendel his friend seemed altered. He had lost his good-humour and something of his
-happy recklessness, and he was more concentrated and full of a wary
-self-consciousness.</p>
-
-<p>He came out of the bedroom when the washing up was done and flung himself on the divan,
-stretched himself out, and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I’m tired; done up. Lord! What fools there are in the world! No more portraits for
-you, my boy; at least, not this side of thirty. Ten years good solid work ahead of
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>He laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“I told Cluny he must hurry up or you would slide off into portrait-painting. Dealers
-hate the mere sound of the word. He is going to hurry up. I’ve played you for all I am
-worth, and Cluny is in my pocket. Oh! I’m a man of destiny, I am.”</p>
-
-<p>A snort and a giggle came from Oliver. Logan sat up.</p>
-
-<p>“Leave the room!” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Shan’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“Leave the room. I want to talk to Kühler.”</p>
-
-<p>“Talk away then. I shan’t listen.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan walked over to her, seized her by the arms, and pushed her into the bedroom and
-locked the door. It was done very quickly and dexterously, as though it were a practised
-manœuvre.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m finding out how to treat her,” he said. “Quiet firmness does the trick.”</p>
-
-<p>He met Mendel’s eyes fixed on him in horrified inquiry and turned sharply away.</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t as bad as it looks,” he said. “The fact is, women aren’t fit for liberty and
-an artist ought to have nothing to do with them. But what can a man do? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-What were we talking about?”</p>
-
-<p>“Cluny.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-299">[Pg 299]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes! He wants the exhibition to be the first fortnight in November. Can you be
-ready by then? It must be a turning-point in art, the beginning of big things. I know
-myself enough to realize that it is doubtful if I shall ever be a great creative artist,
-but I shall be the Napoleon of the new movement—the soldier and the organizer of the
-revolution in art. And it won’t be confined to art; it will spread through everything. Art
-will be the central international republic from which the commonwealths which will take
-the place of the present vulgar capitalistic nations will be inspired. What do you think
-of that for an idea?”</p>
-
-<p>“Stick to art,” said Mendel. “I know nothing about the rest.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you remember my saying that the music-hall was all that was left of old England? I
-did not know how true it was. England has become one vast music-hall, with everybody with
-any talent or brains scrambling to top the bill. It runs through everything—art, politics,
-the press, literature, social reform, women’s suffrage, local government; and the people
-who top the bill can’t be dislodged, just like the poor old crocks on the halls, who come
-on and give the same show they were giving twenty years ago, and get applause instead of
-rotten eggs because the British public is so rotten with sentiment and so stupid that it
-can’t tell when a man has lost his talent. Please one generation in England and its
-grandchildren will applaud you, though everything about you is changed except your name.
-The result is, of course, that no talent is ever properly developed. A man reaches the
-point where he can please enough people to make a living, and he sticks there. Now, I ask
-you, is that a state of things which a self-respecting artist can accept?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Mendel. “No.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well. It has to be altered. And who is<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-300">[Pg 300]</a></span> to alter it if not the painters, who are less in contact
-with the general public than any other artists? Painters had a comfortable time last
-century, living on the North-country municipal councils, but that is all over and we are
-reduced to poops like Tysoe. There are any number of them, if one only took the trouble to
-dig them up, but they’re no good. I’ve lived on them for the last ten years, and they’re
-no good. You might as well squeeze your paints into the sink and turn on the tap for all
-the flicker of appreciation you get out of them. Then there are the snobs, the
-semi-demimondaines of the political set; but they are a seedy lot, with the minds and the
-interests of chorus-girls. You might whip up a little excitement at Oxford and Cambridge,
-but it would only vanish as soon as the young idiots came in contact with London and fell
-in love. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. No. Behind the scenes of the music-hall is no good. We must make
-a direct onslaught on the general public. They must be taught that there is such a thing
-as art and that there are men devoted to the disinterested development of their
-talents—men who have no desire to top the bill or to make five hundred a week; men who
-recognize that art is European, universal, the invisible fabric in which human life is
-contained, and are content, like simple workmen, to keep it in repair.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” said Mendel, “if my brother-in-law Moscowitsch is typical, but he
-regards art which does not make money as a waste of time.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! He is a Jew and uneducated. That’s where Tolstoi went so wrong. He confused the
-simplicity of art with the simplicity of the peasant, the dignity of the unsophisticated
-with the dignity that is achieved through sophistication. It may seem absurd to talk of
-bringing about anything so big through little Cluny, but it is not only possible, it is
-inevitable. The staleness of<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-301">[Pg
-301]</a></span> London cannot go on, and Paris seemed just the same to me. Stagnation is
-intolerable. There must come a movement towards freedom and a grander gesture, and the
-only free people are the painters. They are the only people whose work has not become
-servile and vulgarized. Through them lies the natural outlet. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh! I have
-been thinking and thinking, and I thank God we met before you had been spoiled by success
-or I had been ruined by my rotten swindling life—though that has had its advantages too,
-and I can meet the dealers on their own ground, and if necessary advertise as impudently
-as any of the music-hall artists.”</p>
-
-<p>Oliver began to hammer on the door. He went and unlocked it and let her in.</p>
-
-<p>“You can talk as much as you like now,” he said. “I’ve said my say.”</p>
-
-<p>“I heard you,” she replied, “talking to Kühler as if he was a crowd in Hyde Park.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was lost in thought. He was baffled by this association of art with things like
-politics and music-halls, which he had always accepted as part of the world’s constitution
-but essentially unimportant. He had no organized mental life. His ideas came direct from
-his instincts to his mind, and were either used for immediate purposes or dropped back
-again to return when wanted. However, he recognized the passionate nervous energy that
-made Logan’s words full and round, and he was glad to have him so accessible and so eager
-and purposeful. On the whole, it did not matter to him why Logan thought his work so
-important. No one else thought it so, and certainly no one else had taken so much trouble
-to help it to find recognition. Logan seemed to promise him public fame, and that would
-delight and reassure his father and mother more than anything else. They treasured every
-mention of his name in the newspapers,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-302">[Pg 302]</a></span> pasted the cuttings in a book, and produced it for every
-visitor to the house.</p>
-
-<p>Struggling for ideas with which to match Logan’s, he became instinctively aware that
-his friend’s enthusiasm was deliberate, not in itself faked, but artificially heated.
-Behind it lay a deeper passion, from which he was endeavouring to divert the energy it
-claimed.</p>
-
-<p>Sitting between Logan and Oliver, Mendel could almost intercept the current of feeling
-that ran between them. It offended him as an indecency that they should have so little
-control over themselves as to reveal their condition of mutual obsession. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-It reminded him of his impression of the police-court, where the secret sores of society
-were exposed nakedly, and queer, helpless, shameless, unrestrained creatures were dealt
-with almost like parcels in a shop. And again he had the sensation of being bound to them,
-of being confined with them in that little room, of a dead pressure being upon him, until
-he must scream or go mad.</p>
-
-<p>He looked at them. Did they not feel it too? Logan was lying back with his hands
-beneath his head and his lips pressed together and a scowl on his face, looking as though
-his thoughts and his destiny were almost, but, of course, not quite too much for him.
-Oliver was looking out of the window with her hands on her hips, humming. She laughed and
-said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I’d sooner live with an undertaker than an artist. He would be up to a bit of fun
-sometimes, and he’d do his work without making such a fuss about it.”</p>
-
-<p>“There’s an undertaker at the corner of the next street. You’d better ask him to take
-you on.”</p>
-
-<p>“As a corpse?” asked Mendel, exploding and spluttering at what seemed to him a very
-good joke. The others turned and looked at him solemnly, but neither of them laughed,
-and<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-303">[Pg 303]</a></span> gradually
-his amusement subsided and he said lamely:—</p>
-
-<p>“I thought it was very funny.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! for goodness’ sake let’s go and have something to eat,” said Oliver. “You’re
-turning the place into a tomb with your silence. One’d think you were going to be crowned
-King of England instead of just holding a potty little exhibition.”</p>
-
-<p>“He is going to be crowned King of Artists,” said Mendel, making another attempt at a
-joke.</p>
-
-<p>“By God!” said Logan, “they’d kill me if they knew what I was like inside. Do you ever
-feel like that, KĂĽhler, that all the birds in the cage would peck you to death for having
-got outside it? I do. I never see a policeman without feeling he is going to arrest
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I used to feel like that sometimes,” replied Mendel, “until I was arrested and
-realized that policemen are just people like anybody else. The man who arrested me was a
-very nice man.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I’m sick of your feelings,” cried Oliver, “and I want my dinner.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said Logan, reaching for his hat; “we’ll go to the Pot-au-Feu and
-afterwards to the Paris Café and fish for critics. I shall nobble one or two swells
-through Tysoe. We’ll pick up the more crapulous and lecherous at the café, and Oliver
-shall be the bait. So look your prettiest, my dear. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Let’s have a look at
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>He lit the gas and made her stand beneath it.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll do,” he said, patting her cheek. “Come along.”</p>
-
-<p>He put his arm through hers. She gave a wriggle of pleasure and pressed close to
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel followed them downstairs with an omen at his heart. He felt sure that something
-violent would happen.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>But nothing violent did happen. The evening was extraordinarily light-hearted and
-pleasant.<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-304">[Pg 304]</a></span> Logan
-was his old self again, cracking jokes, mimicking people almost to their faces, giving
-absurd descriptions of his interviews with dealers and buyers, and concocting a burlesque
-history of his life. Mendel had never laughed so much since he was at the Detmold. His
-sides ached, and he was hard put to it to keep his countenance when at the café Logan
-caught two critics and told them that they must make no mistake this time: their
-reputations were at stake, nay, the reputation of art criticism was at the cross-roads,
-and art was on the threshold of its greatest period, and criticism should be its herald,
-not its camp-follower.</p>
-
-<p>“You fellows,” said Logan, “use your brains, you are articulate. We are apt to get lost
-in paint, in coloured dreams of to-morrow and the spaces of the night. We lose touch with
-the world, with life. We are dependent on you—even the greatest genius is dependent on
-you. You are the real patrons of art. The herd follows you. Criticism must not shirk its
-duty. The kind of thing that happened with Manet, with Whistler, ought not to happen
-again.”</p>
-
-<p>The two critics were unused to such treatment from painters. Oliver used her eyes upon
-them, detached one of them into a flirtation and left the other to Logan’s mercies.
-Logan’s blood was up. Here was a game he dearly loved, talking, bullying, hypnotizing
-another man out of his individuality. He invented monstrously, outrageously—concocted a
-whole new technique of painting, the discovery of which he ascribed to Mendel’s genius,
-and ended up by saying that painting should be to England what music had been to Germany,
-a national and at the same time a universal art.</p>
-
-<p>The critic had drunk enough to take it all seriously, and he promised to call and see
-the work of both painters. His colleague, on the other<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-305">[Pg 305]</a></span> hand, made arrangements to take Oliver
-out to tea and won her promise to come and see him at his flat.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s all right,” said Logan, as they left the café at closing time. “They will
-remember our names. They will forget how they came to know them and they will write about
-us.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter303">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-306">[Pg 306]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter303_hdg"><a href="#Chapter303_toc">III<br />
-<span class="chap_title">SUCCESS</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">I<small>T</small> was all very well for Logan to talk about modern
-England being a music-hall, but his methods were almost identical with those of the
-publicists whom he decried. The greater part of his energy went to find a market for his
-wares, leaving very little for the production of the wares themselves. Because he was
-excited and busy and full of enthusiasm, he took it for granted that he was in a vigorous
-condition and that his vision of the future of art would be expressed in art. He talked
-volubly of what he was doing and what he intended to do, even while he worked, and his
-nerves were so overwrought that he contracted a horror of being alone. Though Oliver
-jeered at him as he worked he would not let her go out, and when once or twice she
-insisted, he could not work, and went round to see Mendel and prevented his working
-either.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel knew nothing of markets and dealers and the relation of art to the world and its
-habits and institutions. He was carried off his feet by his friend’s torrential energy,
-believed what he said, wore his thoughts as he would have worn his hat, and lived entirely
-for the exhibition which was to do such wonders for him. Twelve exhibits were required of
-him. He would have had forty-eight ready if he had been asked for them. When he missed the
-delight and the pure joy he had had in working, he told himself that these emotions were
-childish and unworthy of a man, and a<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-307">[Pg 307]</a></span> nuisance, because they would have prevented him from
-knowing clearly what he wanted to do. He dashed at his canvas with a fair imitation of
-Logan’s manner, slung the paint on to it with bold strokes, saying to himself: “There!
-That will astonish them! That will make them see what painting is!”</p>
-
-<p>And every now and then he would remember that he was in love. He must paint love as it
-had never been painted before.</p>
-
-<p>For his subject he chose Ruth in the cornfield, but very soon tired of painting ears of
-corn, so he left it looking like a square yellow block, and painted it up until it
-resembled a slice of Dutch cheese. Only when he came to Ruth’s face and tried to make it
-express all the love with which his heart was overflowing did he paint with the old
-fastidious care, but even that could not keep him for long, and he returned to his corn,
-the shape of which had begun to fascinate him, and he wanted somehow to get it into
-relation with the hill on which it was set. But he could do nothing with it, and had to go
-back to Ruth and love.</p>
-
-<p>The effect was certainly startling and novel, and Logan was enthusiastic.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s it,” he said. “The nearest approach to modern art is the poster, which is not
-art, of course, because it is not designed by artists. But it does convey something to the
-modern mind, it does jog it out of its routine and habitual rut. Now, your picture
-wouldn’t do for a poster. It is too good, but it has the same kind of effect. Stop! Look!
-Listen! Wake up, and see that there are beautiful women in the world and blue skies, and
-love radiant over all! This woman has nothing to do with what you felt for your wife when
-you proposed to her, or with what the parson said when the baby died: she is the woman the
-dream of whom lives always in your heart,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-308">[Pg 308]</a></span> although you have long forgotten it. She is the beauty
-you have passed by for the sake of peace and quiet and a balance at your bank.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think it is a good picture?” asked Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“I think it is a good beginning. Two or three more like that and there will be a
-sensation. There will have to be policemen to regulate the crowd.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel caught his mood of driving excitement and really was convinced that he had
-broken through to a style of his own, and to the beginning of something that might be
-called modern art.</p>
-
-<p>He was a little dashed when, after Logan had gone, he fetched his mother over to see
-it, and all she could find to say was:—</p>
-
-<p>“You used not to paint like that.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, of course not,” he said impatiently. “The old way was limited, too limited. It was
-all very well for painting the life down here, just what I saw in front of me. This
-picture is for an exhibition, all by myself with one other man.”</p>
-
-<p>“Logan?” asked Golda dubiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. It is a great honour to give a private exhibition like that at my age. It is most
-unusual. This is the beginning of a new style. I’m beginning a new life.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are not going away?” said Golda in a sudden panic that he was to be snatched away
-from her.</p>
-
-<p>“I should never go away until you gave your permission,” he said. “I am not so very
-different from Harry that I want to go away and leave my people.”</p>
-
-<p>“I never know what will come of that painting of yours.”</p>
-
-<p>“Success!” he said jestingly. “And fame and money, and beautiful ladies in furs and
-diamonds, and carriages and motor-cars, and fine clothes and rings on everybody’s
-fingers.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-309">[Pg 309]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I would rather have you seated quietly in my kitchen than all the gold of King Solomon
-and the Queen of Sheba,” said Golda.</p>
-
-<p>“Then please like my picture.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t like it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then <i>say</i> you like it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t like it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall wipe it out then.”</p>
-
-<p>“Your new friends will like it.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>I</i> like it,” he said. “I don’t think it is a very good picture, but it means
-something to me.”</p>
-
-<p>And he longed for Morrison to come and see it, for it was the first picture that had
-directly to do with her. The portrait of her was hardly more than a drawing. What he
-called an “art student” might have done it, but this Ruth, he felt, was the beginning of
-his work as an artist, and he thought fantastically that when Morrison saw it she would
-see that he was to be treated with respect and would fall in by his side, and they would
-live happily, or at least solidly, ever after.</p>
-
-<p>“Solid” was his great word, and he used it in many senses. It conveyed to his mind the
-quality of which he could most thoroughly approve. If a thing, or a person, or an action,
-or an emotion were what he called “solid,” then it was a matter of indifference to him
-whether it was in the ordinary sense good or bad. He was perfectly convinced that if
-Morrison could only be brought to reason, then his life would solidify and he would be
-able to go on working in peace.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile he was anything but solid. His work, his life, his ideas, his ambition had
-all melted under Logan’s warm touch and were pouring towards the crucial exhibition.
-Mendel looked forward to it feverishly, because it was to put an end to his present
-condition, in which he was like a wax candle, luminous, but fast sinking into nothingness.
-If only he could reach the exhibition in time, the wind of fame would blow out the flame
-that was<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-310">[Pg 310]</a></span>
-reducing him and he would be able to start afresh .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. But all the time as he
-worked words of Logan’s rolled in his mind, and had no meaning whatever, except that they
-made him think of music-halls and motor-buses and women’s legs in tights and newspapers
-and electric sky-signs spelling out words letter by letter. Out of this hotch-potch
-pictures, works of art, were to emerge. They were to take their place in it and, according
-to Logan, reduce it to order. But how was it possible? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. In the quiet,
-ordered, patriarchal world of the Jews a rare nature might arise, but in that
-extraordinary confusion nothing rare could survive. Beauty could never compete on equal
-terms with women’s legs in tights and electric sky-signs; it could never produce an
-impression on minds obsessed and crammed to overflowing with the multitudinous excitements
-of the metropolis.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was convinced that Logan was right, that beauty must emerge to establish
-authority, and he thought of himself as engaged in a combat with a huge, terrible monster.
-Every stroke of his brush was a wound upon its flanks and an abomination the less. Yet he
-loved all the things against which he was fighting, because they made the world gay and
-stimulating and wonderful. He could see no reason why he should change the world. It was
-full enough of change already. Why, in his own time, the electric railways and the
-motor-buses had brought an amazing transformation in the life of the East End. No one now
-worked for such little wages as his father had done at the stick-making, and the life of
-the streets had lost its terrors and dangers. The young men had better things to do than
-to fight each other or to pelt old Jews with mud, and there was no reason to suppose that
-such changes would stop where they were.</p>
-
-<p>However, he had Logan’s word for it, and Logan had given art a new importance in his
-eyes. He<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-311">[Pg 311]</a></span> could
-not think it out himself without getting hopelessly confused, and there was nothing for it
-but to go on with his work.</p>
-
-<p>Other relief he had none. He had written three ardent letters to Morrison, telling her,
-absolutely without restraint, of his love and his need for her, and she had not replied.
-He was too much hurt to write again, and as he worked he began to hate love, being in
-love, and the idea of it. He persuaded himself that it was a weakness, and he had ample
-reason for thinking so, when he compared his loose condition with his old clear singleness
-of purpose. What chiefly exasperated him in this indefinite unsuccessful love of his was
-that it exposed him to the passion, every day growing more furious, between Logan and
-Oliver. It made his own emotions seem fantastic, with the most vital current of his being
-pouring out in a direction far removed from the rest of his life, apparently ignoring the
-solid virtues of his Jewish surroundings and the elated vigour of his career among the
-artists.</p>
-
-<p>“It will not do!” he told himself. “I will not have it! What is this love? Just
-nonsense invented by people who are afraid of their passions. A lady indeed? <i>Is</i>
-she? A lady is only a woman dressed up. She must learn that she is a woman, or I will have
-nothing to do with her.”</p>
-
-<p>And sometimes he could persuade himself that he had driven Morrison from his thoughts.
-He finished the portrait of her from memory and was convinced that it was the end of her.
-It was a good picture and pretty enough to find a buyer, and there it ended. He had got
-what he wanted of her and could pluck her out of his thoughts.</p>
-
-<p>Logan said it was a very fine picture, a real piece of creation.</p>
-
-<p>“And if that doesn’t make them see how damned awful their Public School system is in
-its effect on women, I’ll eat my hat. You’ve had your revenge,<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-312">[Pg 312]</a></span> my boy. You have shown her up. Why don’t
-you call it <i>The Foolish Virgin</i>? Of all the mischievous twaddle that is talked in
-this mischievous twaddling country the notion of love is the worst. You can’t love a woman
-unless you live with her, and a woman is incapable of loving a man unless he lives with
-her. By Jove! We’ll hang it and my portrait of Oliver side by side in the exhibition, and
-I’ll call mine <i>The Woman who Did.</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“I won’t have them side by side,” said Mendel. “I want our pictures kept separate. I
-don’t want it said that we are working together.”</p>
-
-<p>“But we <i>are</i> working together.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. But along our own lines. We’re only together really in our independence. You said
-yourself that we didn’t want to found a school.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s true,” replied Logan, “but I don’t see why we shouldn’t have our little
-joke.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t joke with art,” said Mendel grimly, and that settled the matter.</p>
-
-<p>It was the first time he had set his will against his friend’s, and he was surprised to
-find how soft Logan was. Surely, then, it was he who was the leader, he who was blazing
-the new trail for art. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He had to bow to the fact that Logan had a
-programme while he had none. However, having once asserted his will, he became critical,
-and was not again the docile little disciple he had been.</p>
-
-<p>Logan wanted to draw up a manifesto for the catalogue, to enunciate the first
-principles of modern art, namely, that a picture must have (<i>a</i>) not merely a
-subject, but a conception based on but not bounded by its subject; (<i>b</i>) form,
-meaning the form dictated by the logic of the conception, which must of necessity be
-different from the logic dictated by the subject, which would lead either to the
-preconceptions and prejudices of the schools or to irrelevant and non-pictorial
-considerations. All this was set out at some<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-313">[Pg 313]</a></span> length, and appended were a number of maxims, such
-as:—</p>
-
-<p>“In art the important thing is art.</p>
-
-<p>“Abstraction precedes selection.</p>
-
-<p>“Art exists to keep in circulation those spiritual forces, such as æsthetic emotion,
-which are denied in ordinary human communications.</p>
-
-<p>“Photography has released art from its ancient burden of representation,” etc.,
-etc.</p>
-
-<p>With the spirit of this manifesto Mendel was in agreement, though he could make but
-little of its letter. He refused to agree to it because so much talk seemed to him
-unnecessary.</p>
-
-<p>“If we can say what we mean to say in paint, then we need not talk. If we cannot say it
-in paint, then we have no right to talk.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’d soon bring the world to a standstill,” said Logan, “if you limited talk to the
-people who have a right to it. It is just those people who never open their mouths. I
-think it is criminal of them, just out of shyness and disgust, to give the buffoons and
-knaves an open field.”</p>
-
-<p>“All the same,” grunted Mendel, “I am not going to agree to the manifesto. People will
-read it and laugh at it, and never look at the pictures. You seem to think of everything
-but them. I wonder you don’t set up as a dealer.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re overworking,” said Logan, “that’s what you are doing. And directly the
-exhibition is open I shall pack you off to Brighton.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Already a week before the opening they began to feel that the eyes of London were upon
-them. They crept about the streets half-shamefacedly like conspirators, relaxed and wary,
-waiting for the moment when their triumph should send their shoulders back and their heads
-up, and they would march together through a London which owed its salvation to them. Not
-since his portrait had<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-314">[Pg
-314]</a></span> appeared in the Yiddish paper had Mendel been so defiant and so morosely
-arrogant.</p>
-
-<p>He was ill with excitement and could not do a stroke of work. Every minute of the day
-he spent with Logan and Oliver, to whom Tysoe was often added. He dined with them at the
-Pot-au-Feu, took them all out to lunch and tea at places like Richmond and Kew, had them
-to his house, and was squeezed by the approaching success to buy Logan’s two largest
-pictures before the public could have access to them.</p>
-
-<p>“They are masterpieces!” he cried, swinging his long hands, “absolute masterpieces! You
-don’t know how much good it does me to be with you two. Absolutely sincere, you are!
-That’s what I like about you. Sincere! One looks for sincerity in vain everywhere else.
-Sincerity has vanished from the theatre, the novel, music, poetry. I suppose it is
-democracy—letting the public in behind the scenes, so that they see through all the
-tricks.”</p>
-
-<p>“An artist isn’t a conjurer!” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“That is just what artists have been,” cried Logan, “and they can’t bluff it out any
-more.”</p>
-
-<p>“Exactly!” gurgled Tysoe, who when he was roused from his habitual weak lethargy lost
-control of his voice, so that it wobbled between a shrill treble and a husky bass.
-“Exactly! That’s what I like about you two. No bluff, no tricks. You do what you want to
-do and damn the consequences. Ha! ha!”</p>
-
-<p>So ill was Mendel just before the exhibition that Logan refused to allow him anywhere
-near it, and insisted that they should both go to Brighton, leaving Oliver to go to the
-private view and spy out the land.</p>
-
-<p>Oliver protested. She wanted to go to Brighton.</p>
-
-<p>“You shall have a new dress and a new hat,” said Logan. “You must go to the private
-view like a real lady. Cluny doesn’t know you, and you<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-315">[Pg 315]</a></span> must go up to him every now and then and
-ask him in a loud voice what the prices are. You might even pretend to be a little deaf
-and make him speak clearly and distinctly.”</p>
-
-<p>The idea tickled Mendel so that he began to laugh, could not stop himself, and was soon
-almost hysterical.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s the matter with you?” asked Oliver, shaking him.</p>
-
-<p>He gasped:—</p>
-
-<p>“I—I was laughing at the idea of your being a real lady. Ha! ha! ha!”</p>
-
-<p>She gave him a clout over the head that sobered him. Logan pounced on her like a
-tiger.</p>
-
-<p>“You devil!” he said. “You she-devil! Don’t you see the poor boy’s ill?”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s that to me?” she screamed, with her head wobbling backwards and forwards
-horribly as he shook her. “It’s n-nothing t-to m-me!”</p>
-
-<p>She caught Logan by the wrist and sent him spinning, for she was nearly as strong as
-he.</p>
-
-<p>“Go to Brighton!” she shouted. “I don’t care. I’ll be glad to be rid of you both. You
-won’t find me here when you come back, that’s all, you and your little hurdy-gurdy boy!
-You only need a monkey and an organ to make you complete. Why don’t you try it? You’d do
-better at that than out of pictures.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan could not contain himself. His rage burst out of him in a howl like that of a
-wind in a chimney, a dismal, empty moan. He stood up, and the veins on his neck swelled
-and his mouth opened and shut foolishly, for he could find nothing to say.</p>
-
-<p>“You slut, you squeezed-out dishclout, you sponge!” he roared at last. “Clear out, you
-drab! Clear out into the streets, you trull! Draggle your skirts in the mud, you filth,
-you octopus! Sell the carcase that you don’t know how to give, you marble!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-316">[Pg 316]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She flung up her hands and sank on to her knees, and let down her hair and moaned:—</p>
-
-<p>“O God! O God! O God!”</p>
-
-<p>Logan’s fury snapped.</p>
-
-<p>“For God’s sake! For God’s sake!” he said. “What has come over us? Oh, God help us!
-What are we doing? What are we coming to? Nell! Nell! I didn’t know what I was
-saying!”</p>
-
-<p>He went down on his knees beside her, and Mendel, who had been numbed but inwardly
-elated by the storm, could not endure the craven surrender, the cowardly reconciliation,
-and he left them.</p>
-
-<p>Out in the street he stood tottering on the curb, and spat into the gutter, with
-extreme precision, between the bars of a grating.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>At Brighton, whither they went next day, Logan explained himself.</p>
-
-<p>“It is extraordinary how near love is to hate, and how rotten love becomes if hate is
-suppressed—stale and tasteless and vapid.”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you talking about yourself and Oliver?” asked Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then please don’t. I don’t mind what happens between you and her so long as it doesn’t
-happen in front of me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry,” said Logan; “but it can’t always be prevented. I don’t see the use of
-pretence.”</p>
-
-<p>“Neither do I. But some things are your own affair, and it is indecent to let other
-people see them.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, a row’s a row!” said Logan cheerfully. “And one is all the better for it.”</p>
-
-<p>“But if a woman treated me like that I should never speak to her again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Love’s too deep for that. You can’t stand on your dignity in love.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-317">[Pg 317]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I should make her understand once and for all that I would not have it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then she would deceive you. If you played the tyrant over a girl like Oliver she would
-deceive you.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel stared and his jaw dropped. Had Logan forgotten the night in Paris? Was he such
-a fool as to pretend he did not know, could not see that the whole liberation of frenzy in
-Oliver dated from that night? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh, well! It was no affair of his.</p>
-
-<p>To change the subject he said:—</p>
-
-<p>“We ought to get the press-cuttings to-morrow. I wonder if we shall sell the lot? It’s
-a good beginning, having tickets on your two.”</p>
-
-<p>“I bet we sell the lot in a week. Oliver has two of the critics in her pocket. What do
-you say to giving a party in honour of the event? We can afford to forgive our enemies
-now, and there’s a social side to the movement which we ought not to neglect.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel made no reply. They were sitting on the front. The smooth, glassy sea,
-reflecting the stars and the lights of the pier, soothed and comforted him. Brighton was
-to him like a part of London, and he sank drowsily into the happy fantasy that he was
-being thrust out of the streets towards the stars and the vast power that lay beyond them.
-He was weary of the streets and the clamour, and he wanted peace and serenity, rest from
-his own turbulence, the peace which has no dwelling upon earth and lives only in
-eternity.</p>
-
-<p>“How good it would be,” he said suddenly, “if one could just paint without a thought of
-what became of one’s pictures.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s no good,” replied Logan. “One must live.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>The first batch of cuttings arrived in the morning. They were brief, for the most part,
-quite<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-318">[Pg 318]</a></span> respectful
-and appreciative. Mendel learned, to his astonishment, that he was influenced by Logan,
-and one critic lamented that a promising young painter, who could so simply render the
-life of his race, should have been infected with modern heresies. There was no uproar,
-neither of them was hailed as a master, and Logan in more than one instance was dismissed
-as an imitator of Calthrop.</p>
-
-<p>“Calthrop!” said Logan, gulping down his disappointment and disgust. “Calthrop! Oh
-well, it is good enough for a beginning. It would have been very different if you had let
-me print the manifesto. The swine need to be told, you know. They want a lead.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. We’ll wait for the Sunday papers.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>London was curiously unchanged when they returned. Mendel was half afraid he would be
-recognized as they came out of Charing Cross Station, but no one looked at him. The
-convulsion through which he had lived had left people going about their business, and he
-supposed that if an earthquake happened in Trafalgar Square people would still be going
-about their business in the Strand.</p>
-
-<p>They were eager for Oliver’s account of the private view, and took a taxi-cab to Camden
-Town. She was wearing her new dress and was quite the lady: shook hands with Mendel and
-asked him haughtily in a mincing tone how he was. From all these signs he judged that the
-exhibition had been a success.</p>
-
-<p>“Quite a lot of people came,” she said. “Real swells. There were two motor-cars
-outside.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Logan. “Tysoe agreed to leave his car outside for a couple of hours to
-encourage people to go in.”</p>
-
-<p>“Kühler’s picture of the girl with short hair sold at once,” she said.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-319">[Pg 319]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>His pleasure in this news was swallowed up in his dislike of hearing Morrison spoken of
-by her.</p>
-
-<p>“All your drawings but one are gone, Logan. I listened to what people said. They wanted
-to know who you were, and Cluny said you had a great reputation in the North. People
-laughed out loud at Kühler’s <i>Ruth</i>, and I heard one man say it was only to be
-expected. He said the Jews can never produce art. They can only produce infant
-prodigies.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter304">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-320">[Pg 320]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter304_hdg"><a href="#Chapter304_toc">IV<br />
-<span class="chap_title">REACTION</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">L<small>OGAN</small> made nearly two hundred pounds out of the
-exhibition and Mendel over a hundred. His family rejoiced in his triumph. A hundred pounds
-was a good year’s income to them. They rejoiced, but it was an oppression to him to go
-back to them and to talk in Yiddish, in which there were no words for all that he cared
-for most. Impossible to explain to them about art, for they had neither words nor mental
-conceptions. Art was to them only a wonderful way of making money, a kind of magic that
-went on in the West End, where, once a man was established, he had only to open his
-pockets for money to fall into them.</p>
-
-<p>Up to a point he could share their elation, for in his bitter moments he too was
-predatory. If the Christian world would not admit him on equal terms he had no compunction
-about despoiling it.</p>
-
-<p>The words “infant prodigy” stuck in his throat, and with his family it seemed indeed
-impossible that the Jews could produce art. How could they, when they had no care for it?
-And how had he managed to find his way to it? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Going back over his career
-step by step it seemed miraculous, and as though there were a special providence governing
-his life—Mr. Kuit, the Scotch traveller, Mitchell, Logan, all were as though they had been
-pushed forward at the critical moment. And for what? Merely to exploit an infant prodigy
-with a skilful trick? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He could not, he would not believe it. The pressure
-that had driven him along,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-321">[Pg
-321]</a></span> the pressure within himself, had been too great for that, just to squeeze
-him out into the open and to fill his pockets with money. There was more meaning in it all
-than that, more shape, more design.</p>
-
-<p>Yet when he considered his work he was lacerated with doubt. It ended so palpably in
-the portrait of his father and mother, and he knew that he could never go back to that
-again. An art that was limited to Jewry was no art. Among the Jews no light could live.
-They would not have it. They would snuff it out, for it was their will to dwell in dark
-places and to wait upon the illumination that never came, as of course it never would
-until they looked within themselves.</p>
-
-<p>Within himself he knew there was a most vivid light glowing, a spark which only needed
-a breath of air upon it to burst into flame. He was increasingly conscious of it, and it
-made him feel transparent, as though nothing could be hidden from those who looked his
-way. What was there to hide? If there was evil, it lived but a little while and was soon
-spent, while that which was of worth endured and grew under recognition.</p>
-
-<p>Thence came his devotion to Logan, who simply ignored everything that apparently gave
-offence to others and saluted the rare, rich activity. It was nothing to Logan that he was
-a Jew and poor and uneducated: he was educated in art, and what more did he want? Logan
-was a friend indeed, and had proved it over and over again. He would take his doubts to
-Logan and they would be healed, but first he must go to the exhibition, the thought of
-which made him unhappy and uneasy.</p>
-
-<p>Cluny received him with open arms:—</p>
-
-<p>“A most successful exhibition. A great success. I hope you will let me have some of
-your work by me. A most charming exhibition. There was only one mistake, if I may say so:
-the <i>Ruth.</i>”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-322">[Pg 322]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Mendel walked miserably through the rooms. All Logan’s pictures were in the best light:
-his own were half in shadow.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Logan has the making of a great reputation,” said Cluny, “a very great
-reputation.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, very clever!” said Mendel, suddenly exasperated more by Logan’s pictures than by
-the dealer.</p>
-
-<p>Indeed, “very clever” was the right description for Logan’s work. It attracted and
-charmed and tickled, but it did not satisfy. The pictures gave Mendel the same odd sense
-of familiarity as the picture in Camden Town had done, and turning suddenly, his eye fell
-on his own unhappy <i>Ruth</i>. The figure was shockingly bad. He acknowledged the
-simpering sentimentality of the face. And he had been trying to paint love! But in spite
-of the figure, the picture held him. It was to him the matrix of the whole exhibition.
-Wiping out of consideration his own early drawings, it explained and accounted for every
-other piece of work. The least dexterous of them all, it had freshness and vitality and a
-certain thrust of simplification which everything else lacked. It was “solid,” and worth
-all Logan’s pictures put together.</p>
-
-<p>“Very good prices,” said the dealer. “Very good indeed.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel paid no attention to him. He wanted to study his <i>Ruth</i>, to find out its
-precise meaning for him, and, if possible, in what mysterious part of his talent it had
-originated.</p>
-
-<p>It had made him feel happy again and had restored his confidence. He was serenely sure
-of himself, without arrogance. He was almost humble, yet tantalized because he could not
-think of a whole picture in the terms of that one piece of paint. He remembered the
-strange excitement in which he had conceived it, the almost nonchalance with which he had
-executed it. And to think that not a soul had seen it! The fools! The fools!</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-323">[Pg 323]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He was ashamed to be seen looking so intently at his own work. The next day he was back
-again and told Cluny that it was not for sale.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think it’s a seller, Mr. Kühler,” said Cluny.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s not for sale,” repeated Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>He went every day and had no other thought. He wandered about in a dream, not seeing
-people in the streets, not hearing when he was spoken to.</p>
-
-<p>On the fifth day as he entered Cluny’s he began to tremble, and he fell against a man
-who was coming out. The blood rushed to his heart and beat at his temples. He knew why it
-was. The air seemed full of an enchantment that settled upon him and drew him towards the
-gallery. He knew he was going to see her, and she was there with Clowes, standing in front
-of his <i>Ruth.</i> Clowes was laughing at it, but Morrison, with brows knit, obviously
-angry, was trying to explain it.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m trying to explain the cornfield to Clowes,” she said. “Do come and help me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t explain it myself,” he said, marvelling at the ease of the meeting. At once he
-and she were together and Clowes was out of it, like a dweller in another world.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think you ought to do things you can’t explain,” said Clowes.</p>
-
-<p>“Then you are wiping out Michael Angelo, and El Greco, and Blake, and Piero.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Mendel. “You are wiping out inspiration altogether.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! if you think you are inspired I have nothing more to say,” replied Clowes rather
-tartly. She had felt instinctively that Mendel and Morrison would meet at the gallery, and
-was annoyed all the same that it had happened. She knew how they were regarded, and she
-herself did not approve. Morrison knew how impossible it was, and Clowes thought she ought
-not to allow it to go on.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-324">[Pg 324]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Clowes also recognized how completely she was out of it, and she made excuses and left
-them.</p>
-
-<p>“You are the only one who likes it,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t like it, but I know that it isn’t bad. It isn’t good either, but it is real
-and it is you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I want no more than that,” he said, “from you.”</p>
-
-<p>In his mind he had prepared all sorts of reproaches for his meeting with her, but they
-fell away from his lips. He could only accept that it was good and sweet and natural to be
-with her.</p>
-
-<p>He told her quite simply how he had come to paint the picture, and how he had tried to
-paint his love for her. She smiled and shook away her smile.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m glad it isn’t anything like that really,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“I tried to tell you what it was like when I wrote to you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>That was all she could say. She had been very unhappy, often desperately wretched,
-because her instinct fought so furiously against the idea of love with him whom she
-loved.</p>
-
-<p>“The picture has made me very happy,” she added. “It means that what I have been
-wanting to happen to you has happened. You <i>are</i> different, you know. I can talk to
-you so much more easily.”</p>
-
-<p>He suggested that they should walk in the Park and spend the day together, and she
-consented, glad that all the reproaches and storms she had dreaded should be so lightly
-brushed away.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Happy, happy lovers, for whom nothing can defile the heavenly beauty of this earth;
-happy, from whom Time streams away, bearing with it all the foolish, restless activity of
-men; happy, for whom the pomps and vanities of the world are as though they had never
-been! Thrice happy<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-325">[Pg
-325]</a></span> two, who in your united spirit bear so easily all the beauty, all the
-suffering, all the sorrow in the world, and bring it forth in joy, the flower of life that
-cometh up as a vision, fades, and sheds its seed upon the rich, warm soil of humanity.
-Emblem of immortality for ever shining in the union of spirits, in the enchantment of two
-who are together and in love.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>So happy were they that they wandered for the most part in silence through the avenues
-and over the grassy spaces of the Park.</p>
-
-<p>Of the two, she had the better brain, and, indeed, the stronger character. She had been
-toughened in the struggle to break out of the web of hypocrisy and meaningless tradition
-of gentility in which her family was enmeshed, and the freedom she had won was very
-precious to her. She kept it as a touchstone by which to measure her acquaintance and her
-experience, and, using it now, she realized that there were two distinct delights in being
-with Mendel on this tender autumn day; one tempted her with its promise of furious joys
-and wild, baffling emotions. It seduced her with its suggestion that this way lay
-kindness, the gift to him of his desire, peace, and satisfaction. But behind the
-suggestion of kindness lay a menace to her freedom, which, being so much more precious
-than herself, she longed for him to share, as in the keen happiness of that day he had
-done. That was the other delight, more serene and more rare, infinitely more powerful, and
-she would not have it sacrificed to the less. The gift of herself to which she was tempted
-must mean the blending of her freedom with his, for without that there would be no true
-gift, only a surrender.</p>
-
-<p>She could not think it out or make it clear to herself, but she knew that it was
-surrender he was asking, and she knew that if she surrendered she<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-326">[Pg 326]</a></span> would be no more to him in a little
-while than the other women of passage with whom his life was darkened.</p>
-
-<p>Ought she not then to tell him, to keep him from living in false hopes? She persuaded
-herself that she ought, but she did not wish to spoil this delicious day. It was such
-torture to her when he blazed out at her and he became ugly with egoism.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course,” he said, “the <i>Ruth</i> makes all the difference. I can’t let you go
-now, because you are the only one who has really understood my work. I am almost
-frightened of it myself, and it makes me feel desperately lonely when I think of all I
-shall have to go through to get at what it really means.”</p>
-
-<p>“No. If you want me like that I don’t want you to let me go,” she said, “for it is so
-important.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” he said. “It may mean an entirely new kind of picture, for I don’t know
-anybody’s work that has quite what is hammering away in my head to get out. It must be
-because you love me that you can feel it when no one else can. Even to Logan it is only
-like a superior poster.”</p>
-
-<p>How adorable he was in this mood of simplicity and humility! She could relax her
-vigilance, and sway unreservedly to his mood and give him all that he required of her, her
-clearness, her sensitive purity.</p>
-
-<p>“You are like no other woman in the world to me,” he went on. “You fill me with the
-most wonderful joy, like a Cranach or a DĂĽrer drawing. I can forget almost that you are a
-woman, so that it is a most wonderful surprise that you are one after all. You are the
-only person in the world whom I can place side by side with my mother.”</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t know what it is to me,” she said, “to have a friend so strong and frank as
-you are.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-327">[Pg 327]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He put out his hand and laid it on her arm wonderingly, as if to satisfy himself that
-she was really there, much as on his first visit to Hampstead he had touched the
-grass.</p>
-
-<p>“I think I shall live to be very old,” he said, “and you will be just the same to me
-then as you are now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Mendel!”</p>
-
-<p>“Say that again!” he said, but she could not speak. Her eyes were brimming with tears
-and she hung her head. She longed to take him to her arms and to fondle him, to make him
-young, to charm away the pitiful old weary helplessness that he had. Reacting from this
-mood in her, which he did not understand and took for the first symptoms of surrender, he
-became wild and boastful, and clowned like a silly boy to attract her attention.</p>
-
-<p>Her will set against him. She could not endure the sudden swoop from the highest
-sympathy to the gallantry of the streets, and when he was weary of his tricks she tried to
-bring him to his senses by asking him suddenly:—</p>
-
-<p>“Is Logan a nice man?”</p>
-
-<p>“He is my best friend. He has wonderful ideas and energy like a steam-engine, and he
-has suffered too. He is not like the art students who expect painting pictures to be as
-easy as knitting. He could have been almost anything, but he believes that art is the most
-important thing of all. He has made a great difference to me, by teaching me to be
-independent. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I will take you to see him one day.”</p>
-
-<p>“I should like to meet him, because he has made a great difference in you.”</p>
-
-<p>“He steals.”</p>
-
-<p>That gave Morrison a shock, for Mendel seemed to be stating the fact as a
-recommendation.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. When he has no money he steals. I went with him once and we stole some
-reproductions.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-328">[Pg 328]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She was sorry she had mentioned Logan. Mendel was a different creature at once. Their
-glamourous happiness was gone. Logan seemed to have stalked in between them and the purity
-of their delight withered away.</p>
-
-<p>He felt it as strongly as she, but thought she was deliberately escaping from him, that
-she was fickle and could not stay out the day’s happiness. Women, he knew, were like that.
-They gave out just as the best was still to come.</p>
-
-<p>It was dusk and they were in a lonely glade. He pounced on her and drew her to
-him:—</p>
-
-<p>“I want you to kiss me.”</p>
-
-<p>“No—no!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes—yes—yes! I say you shall. I will not have you let it all slip away.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t! Don’t!” she said, in a passion of resentment. He was spoiling it all. How could
-he be so crude and insensible after this matchless day?</p>
-
-<p>At last he was convinced of her anger.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t understand you,” he said. “Don’t you want anything like that?”</p>
-
-<p>“It has spoiled the day for me,” she answered, “or almost, for nothing could really
-spoil it.”</p>
-
-<p>She walked on and he stood still for a moment. Then he ran after her.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. did you hate me then?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, I didn’t hate you. I hated myself more because I can’t say what I feel.”</p>
-
-<p>“If you don’t love me like that,” he said, “I love you all the same. I must see you
-often—always. I can’t live, I can’t work, if you don’t let me see you. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. No.
-That isn’t true. I shall work whatever happens.”</p>
-
-<p>How she loved his honesty! He was making no attempt to creep behind her defences. They
-had baffled him, and he counted his wounds cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p>“If you don’t love me like that,” he went on<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-329">[Pg 329]</a></span> excitedly, “it doesn’t make any difference. You are my
-love all the same. You are in all my thoughts, in every drop of my blood, and you can do
-with me as you will. If you don’t love me like that I will never touch you. I can
-understand your not wanting to touch me, because I am dirty. I am dirty in my soul. I will
-never touch you. I promise that I will never touch you, and what you do not like in me you
-shall never see. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p>She broke down, and burst into an unrestrained fit of weeping. Why could she not make
-clear to him, to herself, what she felt so clearly? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh! She knew she ought
-to tell him to go, to spare him all the suffering that he must endure, but also she knew
-by the measure of her need for him how sorely he must need her. Their need of each other
-was too profound, too strong, too passionate, easily to find its way to surface life, nor
-could it be satisfied with sweets too easily attained. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. She must wait. To
-leave him or to surrender to him would be a betrayal of that high mystery wherein they had
-their spiritual meeting.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall win,” she said to herself, “I shall win. I know I shall win.”</p>
-
-<p>And she amazed him with her sudden lightness of heart. She laughed and told him how
-solemnly Clowes was taking it all, and how the loose-tongued busybodies were talking.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. As if it mattered what they said! He mattered more than all of them,
-because they took easily what was next to hand and grew fat on it, while he fought his way
-upward step by step and was never satisfied, and would fight his way always step by step
-with bloody pains and suffering.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Mendel!” she cried; “I’m so proud—so proud of you.”</p>
-
-<p>She was too swift for him. He came lumbering after her, puzzled, amazed, confounded at
-finding<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-330">[Pg 330]</a></span> in this
-girl something that was so much more than woman, something that could actually live on the
-high level of his creative thought, something as necessary to his thought as dew to the
-grass and the ripening corn.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter305">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-331">[Pg 331]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter305_hdg"><a href="#Chapter305_toc">V<br />
-<span class="chap_title">LOGAN GIVES A PARTY</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">T<small>HE</small> impulse to take his doubts to Logan endured, and
-was aggravated by the wretchedness into which Mendel was plunged by Morrison’s return and
-her powerful effect upon his life. He raged against himself as an idiot and a fool for
-taking her seriously and for believing that she could realize his work when as yet he
-understood it so little himself. If it was love, then have the love-making and get it
-over. If she refused, then let her go! What did she mean by slipping away just when the
-day’s happiness began to demand utterance, closeness, intimacy, the promise of the dearest
-and most comfortable joys?</p>
-
-<p>He knew that he was deceiving himself, that she could do just as she liked and it would
-make no difference, but he also knew that he mistrusted her. In his heart he suspected her
-of being one of those who like to pretend that life can be all roses and honey, that there
-can be summer without winter, day without night. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Just a pretty English
-girl, he called her, and, in his most bitter moods, he regarded himself as caught; and in
-that there was a certain sardonic satisfaction. It seemed appropriate that, having known
-many women without a particle of love for them, he should be in love with a woman who did
-not wish to have anything to do with him.</p>
-
-<p>When he told Logan about it, that experienced individual smoked three cigarettes and
-was silent for ten minutes by the clock.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-332">[Pg 332]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“It won’t do,” he said; “give it up. You’re in love with her. Oh yes! You were bound to
-have your taste of it, being so young. But, for God’s sake, keep it clear of your work. I
-know it is very delightful and all that, and like the first blush of spring, and that she
-seems to understand everything. First love is always the same. She seems to understand,
-but so do the violets in the woods, and the apple-blossom in an orchard, and the singing
-birds on a spring morning. They all seem to understand everything. Life is solved: there
-are no more problems, and the rarest flower of all is the human heart. Yet the violets and
-the apple-blossoms fade and the birds sing no more: the spring passes and the summer is
-infernally hot and stale, and winter comes at last. So it is with love and women. Nothing
-endures but art, and that they are physically incapable of understanding. My God! Don’t I
-know it? A picture of mine means no more to Oliver than my boot does—rather less, because
-my boot is warmed with the warmth of my body. That’s all <i>she</i> understands.”</p>
-
-<p>He looked down at the boots and fidgeted with his hands.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. That’s all <i>she</i> understands,” he repeated.</p>
-
-<p>He was very haggard, and he looked up at Mendel as though he were trying to say
-something more than he could get into words; but Mendel was preoccupied with his own
-perplexities, and Logan’s appealing glance was lost upon him.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m older than you,” Logan continued, “and of course it is difficult for me to say
-anything that will be of any use to you, but a man like you ought not to let life get in
-his way. It isn’t worth it. Life is only valuable to you as a condition of working.
-Nothing in it ought to be valuable for its own sake. Do you hear? You ought never to have
-anything in your life that you couldn’t sacrifice—couldn’t do without.”</p>
-
-<p>He seemed to be rather thinking aloud than<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-333">[Pg 333]</a></span> talking, and something indescribably solemn in his voice
-made Mendel shiver. He had hardly heard what Logan was saying and, thinking he must be in
-a draught, he looked towards the window.</p>
-
-<p>Logan went on:—</p>
-
-<p>“She’ll be back in a moment. We don’t often get the opportunity to talk like this. She
-has begun to read books, and thinks she knows about pictures now. She won’t leave us
-alone. That damned critic has been stuffing her up and she reads all his articles.”</p>
-
-<p>He made a grimace of weary disgust.</p>
-
-<p>“I care about you, Kühler, almost more than I do about myself, which is saying a good
-deal. Don’t let this love business get mixed up with your work, especially if, as you say,
-it is Platonic—that is the worst poison of all—almost, almost. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Still, I’d
-like to see the girl. Bring her to the party. We might join up and make a quartette—if she
-can stand Oliver. Women can’t, as a rule. They don’t like full-blooded people of their own
-sex.”</p>
-
-<p>“She wants to know you,” replied Mendel half-heartedly. “I’m always talking to her
-about you.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said Logan. “Bring her to the party.”</p>
-
-<p>Downstairs the front door slammed and Logan gave a nervous start. His whole aspect
-changed. He lost the drooping solemnity that had come come over him and was stiff, quick,
-and alert, and prepared to be droll, as he was when it was a question of humbugging Tysoe
-and Cluny.</p>
-
-<p>Oliver came in with a bottle of wine under each arm. She was in very good spirits and
-looking remarkably handsome.</p>
-
-<p>“Hello, Kühler!” she cried. “How do you like being a success? We’re full of beans.
-We’re going to take a house. Did Logan tell you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Mendel. “I hadn’t heard of it.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-334">[Pg 334]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, it’s true. We’ve done with the slums and being poor and all that. We’re going to
-have a house and I’m going to have a servant, and I shall have nothing to do all day but
-eat chocolates and read novels and have people to tea.”</p>
-
-<p>“So you’re going to be a real lady.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I’m going to wear a wedding-ring, and we’re going to give out that we’re married,
-so that Mrs. Tysoe can call on me.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re not going to do anything of the kind,” snapped Logan.</p>
-
-<p>“I am. I don’t see why I should have a beastly time just because you won’t marry me,
-setting yourself up against the world and saying you don’t believe in marriage.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want to be more tied to you than I am,” said Logan, endeavouring to adopt a
-reasonable tone.</p>
-
-<p>He was curiously subdued, and never took his eyes off her. Mendel had the impression
-that they must recently have had a quarrel. Logan was endeavouring to placate her, but she
-was constantly aggressive. She seemed to have gained in personality and to be possessed of
-a definite will. She was no longer shrouded in the mists of sensuality, but stood out
-clearly, a figure of such vitality that Mendel could no longer keep his lazy contempt for
-her. Almost admirable she was, yet he found her detestable. He thought she should be
-thanking her lucky stars for having found such a man as Logan; she should be taking
-gratefully what he chose to give her, instead of setting herself up and putting forward
-her own vulgar needs. If a woman threw in her lot with an artist, she ought to revel in
-her freedom from the petty interests and insignificant courtesies that made the lives of
-ordinary women so humiliating.</p>
-
-<p>What was she up to? He knew that there was a deeper purpose in her, something very
-definite, for which she had been able to summon up her<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-335">[Pg 335]</a></span> raw vitality. He could understand Logan
-being fascinated. If he had been in love with the woman he would have been the same, and
-his mind would have been swamped by sensual curiosity.</p>
-
-<p>Before, he had always been rather mystified to know what Logan saw in the woman, but
-now the infatuation was comprehensible to him. His mind played about it with a strange
-delight, and he was even envious of Logan to be consumed in the heart of that mystery upon
-whose fringes he himself was held. And he thought that if he brought Morrison to see them
-he would be able to understand her better, and might even be able to place his finger on
-the weak place in her armour.</p>
-
-<p>“You two do give me the pip,” said Oliver. “You sit there as glum and silent as though
-you were in church. Taking yourselves too seriously, I call it.”</p>
-
-<p>Still in his forbearing tone Logan said:—</p>
-
-<p>“We talk of things which are very hard to understand.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, give it up!” she said. “Leave all that to folk with brains and education. Why
-can’t you just paint without talking about it? You’d get twice as much work done.”</p>
-
-<p>“Because, don’t you see, unless you’re a blasted amateur, you can’t paint without
-rousing all sorts of questions in your mind—questions that don’t seem to have anything to
-do with painting; but unless you attempt to answer them there’s no satisfaction in
-working.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, cheese it!” she said; “I know what the critics look for, and it has nothing to do
-with brains. It is like being in love.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who told you that?” asked Logan with sudden heat; but before she could answer him
-Mendel had exploded:—</p>
-
-<p>“It is nothing at all like being in love. That is what all the beastly Christians think
-of—being in<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-336">[Pg 336]</a></span>
-love. And they want art always, always to remind them of that—how they have been, are, or
-will be in love, as they call it. And what they call being in love is nothing but a filthy
-lecherous longing, which is a thousand miles beneath love, and twenty thousand miles
-beneath art, which is so rare, so noble, so beautiful a mystery that only those whom God
-has chosen can understand it at all; for while you are in this state of longing you can
-understand, you can feel nothing at all except a hungry delight in yourself and your own
-sticky sensations. What can women know of art? It needs strength and will, and women have
-neither; they have only obstinate fancies.”</p>
-
-<p>When he had done he was so astonished at himself that he gasped for breath. Logan and
-Oliver, gaping at him, seemed ridiculous and little. Talking to them was a waste of
-breath, because when she was there Logan was not himself, but only a kind of excrescence
-upon her monstrous vitality. The room seemed to stink. It was airless and reeking with
-sex. He must get out and away, under the sky, among the trees, upon his beloved Hampstead.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Without another word he stalked away.</p>
-
-<p>“Well! I never!” exclaimed Oliver. “Is Kühler in love?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! shut up!” said Logan wearily.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>For the party the room was cleared and a pianola was hired. The guests were invited to
-bring their own glasses and drink, and also any friends they liked. The result was that
-half the habitués of the Paris Café turned up, including Jessie Petrie, Mitchell, and
-Thompson, who was over for a short time from Paris, very important and mysterious because
-he had something to do with a forthcoming exhibition of Modern French Art which was to
-knock London silly. And there was a rumour that Calthrop himself was coming.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-337">[Pg 337]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Oliver wore a new evening dress, which she had insisted on buying because she was very
-proud of her bust and arms. The dress was of emerald green silk and she looked very lovely
-in it—“Like a water nymph,” said Logan, and he went out and bought her a string of red
-corals to give the finishing touch.</p>
-
-<p>“You won’t have much of this kind of thing when we move,” he said. “It is to be
-farewell to Bohemia. I’m going to settle down to work. I’ve taught Kühler a thing or two,
-but he has taught me how to work.”</p>
-
-<p>“Damn Kühler! I hate him,” said Oliver.</p>
-
-<p>“You can hate him as much as you choose. It won’t hurt him or me. I’m not a Hercules,
-and my work and you are about as much as I can manage.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re a nice one to be giving a party. You talk as though you would be in your grave
-next week.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is a farewell party.”</p>
-
-<p>“â€Farewell to the Piano,’” laughed Oliver. “That was the last piece I learned when I
-had music lessons.”</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell was among the first to arrive. He had been ill, and looked washed-out and
-unwholesome. There was very little of the Public School boy left in him.</p>
-
-<p>“Is Kühler coming?” he asked nervously.</p>
-
-<p>“I expect so,” answered Logan. “Do you know how to manage a pianola?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. We’ve got one at home.”</p>
-
-<p>“You might play it then, to keep things going until they liven up.”</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell was placed at the pianola, and was still there when Mendel arrived with
-Morrison.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m very glad to meet you,” said Logan. “Kühler has talked about you so often.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Morrison.</p>
-
-<p>“I hope you don’t mind a Bohemian party. They are a mixed lot.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-338">[Pg 338]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Morrison.</p>
-
-<p>“Good God!” thought Logan. “Not a word to say for herself!”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel introduced her to Oliver, who looked her up and down superciliously—this little
-schoolgirl in her brown tweed coat and skirt.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry I didn’t dress,” said Morrison. “I didn’t know.”</p>
-
-<p>She shrank from the big, fleshy woman, who made her feel very unhappy. Yet she wanted
-to be fair. She had heard Mendel storm and rage against Oliver and she hated to be
-prejudiced. It distressed her not to like anybody, for she found most people likeable. She
-tried to be amiable:—</p>
-
-<p>“I’m so glad the exhibition was such a success. Everybody is talking about it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! yes, yes,” said Oliver vacantly. Obviously she was not listening. She had eyes
-only for the men, and she bridled with pleasure when she attracted their attention.</p>
-
-<p>Morrison was glad to escape to a corner, where she could watch the strange people and
-be amused by them, their attitudes and gestures and queer, conceited efforts deliberately
-to charm each other.</p>
-
-<p>She blushed when she saw Mitchell at the pianola, and thought she had been rather
-foolish and weak to allow Mendel to bully her into dismissing him from her acquaintance,
-and she was relieved when she saw Mendel take in the situation and go up to Mitchell and
-tap him on the shoulder and enter into eager discussion of the pianola. She was less happy
-when she saw Mendel take Mitchell’s place, and Mitchell make a bee-line for herself.</p>
-
-<p>An astonishing change came over the music, which got into Mendel’s blood. It was
-maddening, it was glorious to feel that he had all that wealth of sound in his hands. He
-knew nothing of music, and it was almost pure rhythm to him, and he wished to beat it out,
-to accentuate<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-339">[Pg 339]</a></span> it
-as much as possible. The machine confounded him every now and then by running too fast or
-too slow, but he soon learned to pedal less violently, and then he was gloriously happy
-and drunk with excitement.</p>
-
-<p>Astonishing, too, was the change in the company. Everybody began to talk and to laugh,
-and space was cleared in the middle of the room, and Clowes and a young man from the
-Detmold began to dance. Jessie Petrie and Weldon joined them, and soon the room was full
-of whirling, gliding couples.</p>
-
-<p>Said Mitchell to Morrison:—</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t expect to find you here. Are you going to dance?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. I like watching.”</p>
-
-<p>He sat on the floor by her side, and, hanging his head, he said woefully:—</p>
-
-<p>“So Kühler’s won! Gawd! He always gets what he wants. There’s no resisting him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t be absurd,” said Morrison. “I hear you’ve been ill.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I’ve been going to the dogs, absolutely to the dogs. I had to pull up.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I didn’t know you knew Logan; but, of course, as he’s so thick with
-Kühler——!”</p>
-
-<p>“I met him for the first time to-night. What do you think of his work?”</p>
-
-<p>“Flashy!” said Mitchell. “Very flashy. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Will you let me come and see you
-again?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d rather not, if you don’t mind.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why do you dislike me so much?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t dislike you. I can’t trust you not to be silly.”</p>
-
-<p>“Gawd! I bet I’m not half so silly as Kühler!”</p>
-
-<p>“He is never silly!”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! Now you’re offended!”</p>
-
-<p>She turned away from him and refused to speak again. His half-flirtatious,
-half-patronizing manner offended her deeply, and was far more<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-340">[Pg 340]</a></span> of an affront to her than Logan’s almost
-open scorn of her as a little bread-and-butter miss. She wished Mendel would leave the
-pianola, but he was enthralled and could not tear himself away. He played the same tune
-over and over again, or went straight from one to another, swaying to and fro, beating
-time with his hands, swinging his head up and down.</p>
-
-<p>Mitchell went very red in the face and slipped away. Presently she saw him dancing with
-Oliver.</p>
-
-<p>After a few moments she found Logan by her side, and he said kindly:—</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid you are not enjoying yourself much.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes!” she gasped, in a frightened voice.</p>
-
-<p>“I was thinking you were not used to this kind of thing.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes! I often go to parties in people’s studios.”</p>
-
-<p>“I remember, I saw you at the Merlin’s Cave one night.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I remember. I didn’t enjoy that a bit. It all seemed such a sham.”</p>
-
-<p>“So it was,” said Logan. “So is most of this. These people aren’t really wicked, though
-they like to pretend they are. I don’t dance myself. I’m too clumsy. Clog-dancing I can
-do, but not dancing with anybody else. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. But perhaps I am keeping
-you——?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh no! I’m very happy looking on.”</p>
-
-<p>“Kühler’s worth watching, isn’t he?”</p>
-
-<p>This was said with such insolent meaning that Morrison wilted like a sensitive plant.
-She managed to gasp out “Yes,” and went on asking wild, pointless questions, with her
-thoughts whirling far removed from her words.</p>
-
-<p>Why were all these people so impertinent, with their trick of plunging into intimate
-life without waiting for intimacy? She felt that in a moment Logan would be telling her
-all about himself and<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-341">[Pg
-341]</a></span> Oliver by way of luring her on to discuss Mendel. That she had no
-intention of doing, with him or with any one else.</p>
-
-<p>“She’s just a shy little fool,” thought Logan, “and hopelessly, hopelessly young.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m unhappy!” thought Morrison, and it seemed to her foolish and mean to be so. Her
-loyalty resented her weakness. She owed it to Mendel to enjoy herself and to share as far
-as she could his friends. But there was in the atmosphere of that gathering something that
-repelled her and roused the fighting quality in her, something indecent, something that
-hurt her as the picture of the flayed man in the anatomy book hurt her.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was playing a wild rag-time tune.</p>
-
-<p>“I think I’d like to dance to this tune. You must dance with me. I don’t think you
-ought to be out of your own party,” she said to Logan, who caught her up in a great bear’s
-hug, trod on her toes, knocked her knees, pressed his fingers so tight into her back that
-she could hardly bear it, and at last, as the music ceased, deposited her by Mendel’s
-side.</p>
-
-<p>“It is a marvellous thing, this machine,” he said. “I should like to go on at it all
-night. Have you been dancing? You look hot. You said you weren’t going to dance.”</p>
-
-<p>“I made Logan dance. He nearly killed me!”</p>
-
-<p>“How did you get on?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not—not very well.”</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t like him?”</p>
-
-<p>Jessie Petrie came running up: “Kühler, Kühler!” she cried. “Do, do dance with me!”</p>
-
-<p>He was very angry with Morrison for daring not to like Logan, for making up her mind in
-two minutes that she did not like him. He gave her a furious glance as Weldon took his
-place and started a waltz, put his arms round Jessie’s waist, and swung into the
-dance.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-342">[Pg 342]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Kühler!” said Jessie in her pretty birdlike voice, “I heard the most awful story
-about you the other day.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do be quiet!” he grunted. “Dance!”</p>
-
-<p>But he was out of temper, out of tune, and the music he had been crashing out on the
-pianola was thudding in his head, so that he could not respond either to the music of the
-waltz or to Jessie’s eagerness.</p>
-
-<p>“Isn’t it funny Thompson being back in London? I don’t like him a bit now. You have
-spoiled me for everybody else. Do you want me to come on Friday as usual?”</p>
-
-<p>“Do be quiet.”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s the matter? You aren’t dancing at all nicely and you haven’t looked at me once
-this evening.”</p>
-
-<p>“No; don’t come on Friday.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not——?”</p>
-
-<p>Her voice was shrill with pain.</p>
-
-<p>“No. That’s all over.”</p>
-
-<p>She hung limp in his arms and her face was a ghastly yellow. She muttered:—</p>
-
-<p>“Take me out. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I think I’m going to faint.”</p>
-
-<p>He half-carried her into the passage, where she sat on the stairs and began to cry.
-Neither of them noticed Clowes and the young man from the Detmold sitting above them.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t cry!” he said roughly; “what have you got to cry about?”</p>
-
-<p>“I never thought you only wanted me for that.”</p>
-
-<p>“You came to me. I didn’t ask you to come.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I do love you so. I only want you to love me a little.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know how to love a little. When I love it is with the whole of me, and it is
-for always.”</p>
-
-<p>“But can’t we be pals, just pals? We’ve been such pals.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sick to death of it all,” he said violently,<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-343">[Pg 343]</a></span> “sick to death. You’re the best girl in
-London, Jessie, but it’s no good—it’s no good.”</p>
-
-<p>Clowes and the young man ostentatiously and with a great clatter went higher up the
-stairs, but neither Jessie nor Mendel heard them. The pain and the shame they were
-suffering absorbed them.</p>
-
-<p>“I never thought,” said Jessie, “it was near the end. I’ve always known when it was
-near the end before. It is like being struck by lightning.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was silent. He could do nothing. There was nothing to be said. Jessie had
-consoled him, comforted him, but she had only made his suffering worse. By the side of
-Morrison she simply did not exist, and it had been a lie to pretend that she did. That lie
-must be cut out.</p>
-
-<p>“I never thought you only wanted me for that,” she repeated, and began to move slowly
-down the stairs. At the bend she stopped and looked up at him, gave a little muffled cry,
-and moved slowly down into the dim lobby of the house.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel gripped the banisters with both hands and shook them until they cracked.</p>
-
-<p>“How horrible!” he muttered to himself; “how horrible!”</p>
-
-<p>Upstairs, Clowes was boiling with rage. She lost all interest in her young man, and as
-soon as Mendel had returned to the room she raced downstairs, almost sobbing, and saying
-to herself:—</p>
-
-<p>“That settles you, Master Kühler! That settles you!”</p>
-
-<p>She darted across to Morrison, who had taken refuge in a corner, seized her by the hand
-and whispered:—</p>
-
-<p>“Greta! Greta! I’ve just heard the most frightful thing. I couldn’t help overhearing it
-and I ought not to tell anybody, but you ought to know. KĂĽhler and Petrie! It must have
-been going on for months. He broke with her in the most cold-blooded way. It was
-heart-rending. I can’t bear it. Oh! these men, these men!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-344">[Pg 344]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Morrison clenched her fists and her eyes blazed.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t tell me any more!” she said. “Don’t tell me any more!”</p>
-
-<p>“I want to go home,” whispered Clowes. “It is a dreadful party. That awful green woman
-spoils everything. It is like a nightmare to me now.</p>
-
-<p>“It wouldn’t be fair to go without telling him,” said Morrison. “It wouldn’t be
-fair.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you can’t think of him after that,” protested Clowes. “Oh! good gracious! There’s
-Calthrop coming in. It is getting worse and worse.”</p>
-
-<p>Calthrop swung into the room with his magnificent stride. As usual, his entrance
-created a dramatic sensation. Logan, who had always decried his work, leaped to meet him
-and Mendel stood shyly waiting for his nod. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Whom would the great man speak
-to? That was the question. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He fixed his eyes on Oliver and strode up to
-her.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re the best-looking woman in the room,” he said. “Do you like cinemas?”</p>
-
-<p>“I adore them,” said Oliver, with an excited giggle.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, now’s the chance!” whispered Clowes. “We can slip away now, before they begin
-drinking.”</p>
-
-<p>“I must tell him,” replied Morrison, and, summoning up all her courage, she went up to
-Mendel and asked if she could speak to him. He went out with her, trembling in every
-limb.</p>
-
-<p>“I am going,” she said. “I have just heard something. Clowes overheard you and Jessie
-Petrie. She ought not to have told me. I don’t know what I feel about it. Very wretched,
-chiefly. Please don’t try to see me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have told you what I am again and again,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. You are very honest, but it is hard for<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-345">[Pg 345]</a></span> a girl to imagine these things. Please, please see how
-hard it is and let me be.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well,” he answered, feeling that the whole world had come to an end. “Very
-well.”</p>
-
-<p>She called Clowes, who had stayed just inside the door, and together, like little
-frightened children, they crept downstairs.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-bye love!” said Mendel. “My God, what rubbish, what folly, what nonsense! Love
-and a Christian girl! That’s over. That’s finished. I am outside it all—outside, outside,
-outside. Oh! Dark and vile and bitter, and no sweetness anywhere but in my own
-thoughts!”</p>
-
-<p>Inside the room someone began to sing:—</p>
-
-<blockquote class="verse">
-<p class="i3">I want to be, I want to be,</p>
-
-<p class="i3">I want to be down home in Dixie. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p>Oh! the mad folly of these Christians, with their childish songs, their idiotic
-pleasures, their preposterous belief in happiness. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Happiness! They ruin
-the world to satisfy their childish longing, and all their happiness lies in words and
-foolish songs. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. The rhythm of the pianola tunes began to beat in his head,
-and another deeper rhythm came up from the depths of his soul and tried to break through
-them. It was the same rhythm that always came up when he had reached the lowest depths of
-misery. It came gushing forth like water from the rock of Moses, and crept through his
-being like ice, up, up into his thoughts, bringing him to an intolerable agony.</p>
-
-<p>In the room glasses clinked. He turned towards the light and plunged into the
-carouse.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter306">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-346">[Pg 346]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter306_hdg"><a href="#Chapter306_toc">VI<br />
-<span class="chap_title">REVELATION</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">T<small>HREE</small> weeks later the exhibition of Modern French Art
-was opened in an important gallery in the West End. It roused indignation, laughter,
-scorn, and made such a stir in the papers that public interest was excited and the
-exhibition was an unparalleled success. People from the suburbs, people who had never been
-to a picture gallery in their lives, flocked to see the show, and most of them, when they
-left, said: “Well, at any rate we’ve had a good laugh.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel never read the papers and knew nothing at all about it. These three weeks had
-been a time of blank misery for him. He could not work. His people set his teeth on edge.
-He could not bear to see a soul, for he could not talk. When he met friends and
-acquaintances, not a word could he find to say to them. There was nothing to say. They
-were living in a world from which he had been expelled. More than once he was on the point
-of going to his father and asking to be taken into the workshop, since the only possible,
-the only bearable life was one of hard manual labour, which left no room for spiritual
-activity, none for happiness, and very little for unhappiness.</p>
-
-<p>He found some consolation in going to the synagogue. His mother was delighted, but the
-religion was no comfort to him. What pleased him was to see the old Jews in their shawls
-and the women in their beaded gowns, praying each in their separate parts of the
-building—praying until they<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-347">[Pg
-347]</a></span> wept, and abasing themselves before the Lord. What woe, what misery they
-expressed! All the year round was this dismal wailing, and there was only happiness on the
-day that Haman was hanged. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It seemed good and decent to him that the sexes
-should be separate before the Lord, as they should be separate before the holy spirit that
-was in them. They should meet in holiness, hover for a moment above life, then sink back
-into it again to gather new strength. So love would be in its place. It could be gathered
-up and distilled. It would not be allowed to spread like a flood of muddy water over life,
-which had other passions, other delights, other glorious flowerings.</p>
-
-<p>It had been a great day for him when, in a little shop near his home, he had come on a
-pair of wooden figures rudely carved by savages—African, the shopman said they were.
-Rudely carved, they were not at all realistic, but admirably simplified, the man and the
-woman sitting side by side, naked. The man was wearing a little round bowler hat, while
-the woman was uncovered. They had the spirit and the idea that he most loved—the idea of
-man and woman sitting side by side, bound in love, unfathomably deep and unimaginably
-high, until one should follow the other to the grave.</p>
-
-<p>He showed them to Golda, and told her they were she and his father.</p>
-
-<p>“What next will you be up to?” she said. “Why, they are blackamoors.”</p>
-
-<p>“They are you and my father,” he said, caressing the figures lovingly.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish you would put the thought of that girl out of your head,” she said tenderly.
-“It is making you so ill and so thin, and I dare not think what your father will say when
-he knows you are drinking again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mother,” he said, “when did you begin to love me?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-348">[Pg 348]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“When you were born,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, yes. I know, as a cow loves its calf. But I mean <i>love</i>, for you do not love
-the others the same as me.”</p>
-
-<p>“You were not so very old when it came to me that you were different.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it is more now that I am a man?”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course.”</p>
-
-<p>That settled his mind on the point that had been bothering him. Everywhere among the
-Christians love—the love that he knew and honoured—seemed to be lost in a soft, spongy
-worship of the mother’s love for her child. The woman seemed to be wiped out of account
-altogether except as a mother. It seemed that she was not expected to love, and she was
-left by herself with the child, with the man looking rather foolish all by himself, seeing
-his strong, beautiful masculine love absorbed and given to the senseless little lump of
-flesh in the woman’s arms. It was like discarding the flower for the seed, like denying
-the wonder of spring for the autumn fruit.</p>
-
-<p>“If that is your Christian love,” he said to himself, “I will have none of it.”</p>
-
-<p>He studied the Madonnas in the National Gallery, and they confirmed his impression of
-the weakness of Christian love, that left out the strong, vital love of a man for a woman,
-of a woman for a man. He characterized it as womanish, and could not see that the ideal
-had served to save women from male tyranny. Moreover, most of the pictures struck him as
-shockingly bad, which confirmed his notion that the ideal that inspired them was
-rotten.</p>
-
-<p>He could not test his ideas by his experience with Morrison, for he dared not think of
-her at all. When his mother spoke of her, it had been like a sharp knife through his
-heart. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Yes. <i>That</i> was love, and it could not be bothered with<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-349">[Pg 349]</a></span> the idea of children.
-If they came, it would make room for them, but it was not going to be robbed by them. Its
-object was the woman, and it detested any idea that got between it and her.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Yet when this love for Morrison stood between himself and his love for
-art, he hated her almost as violently. Sometimes he thought that he would kill her,
-because she stood there smiling. She was always smiling. She could be happy; she could so
-easily be happy. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Logan came to fetch him to go to the exhibition.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want to go to the exhibition. I don’t want to see other people’s pictures. I
-want to paint my own.”</p>
-
-<p>“What are you working at?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing.”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s the matter?”</p>
-
-<p>“Sex.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! That’s always the matter with everybody.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I’ve thought of something.”</p>
-
-<p>“What?”</p>
-
-<p>“Women don’t love their children.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan roared with laughter, and he went on laughing because he enjoyed it. It was long
-since he had laughed so easily.</p>
-
-<p>“Most of them do,” he said. “Even if they’ve hated having them.”</p>
-
-<p>“They don’t,” said Mendel. “It’s instinct just to gloat over them, just as one gloats
-over a picture one has just finished, however bad it may be. It has cost you something,
-and there is something to show for it. It is quite blind and stupid, like an animal. It is
-like lust. It is neither true nor false. It just <i>is</i>, chaotic and half-created. Love
-is a human thing. Love is the most human thing there is. When a clerk marries a girl
-because he wants a woman, I don’t call that love. He is only making himself<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-350">[Pg 350]</a></span> comfortable. There is
-a little more dirt in the world, that is all.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan laughed uncomfortably.</p>
-
-<p>“Please listen,” said Mendel. “I have been nearly mad this last fortnight, ever since
-the party. All my life seems to have broken its way into my mind, and I don’t know when I
-shall be able to get it out again. It is very important that I should talk, and I have no
-one really to talk to except you. I am very lonely because I am a Jew and people do not
-understand me, or rather they think they understand me because I am a Jew. They think all
-Jews are the same. It is very rarely that I feel I am accepted as a man with thoughts,
-feelings, tears, laughter, tastes, bowels, senses like any other man.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know,” said Logan sympathetically.</p>
-
-<p>“How can you know? You have only to live in a world that is ready-made for you. I have
-to make mine as I go, step by step.”</p>
-
-<p>“That isn’t because you are a Jew, but because you are an artist. It is the same for
-all of us.”</p>
-
-<p>“It can’t be the same, for the ordinary world is not utterly foreign to you. You do not
-find that which you were brought up to believe, the wisdom you sucked in with your
-mother’s milk, completely denied. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I tell you, love is all wrong, and
-because love is all wrong, art is all wrong, everything is wrong, and so is everybody.
-Everybody is living with only a part of himself, so that the cleverest people are the
-worst and most mischievous fools. I tell you, there are times in your West End when I can
-hardly breathe because people are such fools. If you are successful, they smile at you. If
-you are not successful, they look the other way. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh! I know it does not
-matter, but it makes success a paltry thing, and when you have lived for it and hungered
-for it, what then? What are you to do when it is like sand trickling through your
-fingers?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-351">[Pg 351]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You can’t stop it,” said Logan. “You can’t throw it away. You can only go on working,
-come what may.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” replied Mendel dubiously, and grievously disappointed. He had so hoped to
-squeeze out his twisted, tortured feelings into words, but at a certain point Logan failed
-him and seemed to shy at his thought. To a certain quality of passion in himself Logan was
-insensible. Where his own passion began to gain in clear force and momentum, swinging from
-the depths of life to the highest imagination, only gaining in strength as the ascent grew
-more arduous, Logan’s remained in an exasperated intensity.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry,” said Mendel. “Talking is no use. I’ve found my way out of as bad times as
-this, and shall again. It is no good talking. I will sit as silent as the little figures
-there, and in time I shall know what I must do.”</p>
-
-<p>“You want taking out of yourself,” muttered Logan irritably. “Come and see Thompson’s
-show.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>As successful artists they entered the gallery self-consciously and rather
-contemptuously. That did not last long. There were many people sniggering at the Van Goghs
-and the Picassos, but Mendel’s thoughts flew back to a still-life he had painted of a blue
-enamel teapot and a yellow matchbox years ago. He had painted them as he had seen them, in
-raw, crude colour, but the picture had been so derided, and he had been so scornfully
-reminded that there were no brilliant colours in nature, that he had painted the same
-subject over again with a very careful rendering of what was called “atmosphere.”</p>
-
-<p>Here were crude colours indeed—almost, in many cases, as they came from the tubes, and
-as for drawing, there was hardly a trace of it, yet in the majority of the pictures there
-was a riotous freedom which rushed like a cleansing wind<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-352">[Pg 352]</a></span> through Mendel’s mind, and it seemed to
-him that here was the answer to many of his doubts—not a clear vision of art, but a
-roughly indicated road to it. It was absurd to sit cramping over rules and difficult
-technicalities when the starting-point of art lay so far beyond them. There was much
-rubbish in the show, but the works of Cézanne and Picasso were undeniably pictures. They
-were not flooded with a clear loveliness, like the pictures of Botticelli or Uccello, but
-they had beauty, and lured the mind on to seek another more mysterious beauty beyond
-them.</p>
-
-<p>The two friends went through the exhibition in silence. As they left, Mendel
-asked:—</p>
-
-<p>“Well! what did you think of it?”</p>
-
-<p>“We’re snuffed out,” replied Logan despondently.</p>
-
-<p>“Not I!” cried Mendel. “I’m only just beginning.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t understand it yet. It has made my eyes and my head ache. At first it seemed to
-me too cerebral to be art at all, but there’s no denying it, and it has to be digested. In
-a way it is what I have always been talking about. It has to do with the life we are
-living, which may not be much of a life, but it is ours and we find it good. It has not
-been a plunge into another world, like a visit to the National Gallery, but into some
-reality a little beyond this extraordinary jumble and hotch-potch of metropolitan
-life.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is painting,” said Mendel. “That is enough for me. And they are not afraid of
-colour. Why should they be? The colours are there: why not use them? I’m going to.”</p>
-
-<p>And he went home and dashed off a savage mother with a green face thrusting a
-straw-coloured breast into the gaping red lips of a child.</p>
-
-<p>So much for maternity and the Madonnas! He knew how a man loved his mother, and it was
-not in that milky way, setting her above nature, she who was tied and bound to natural,
-instinctive,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-353">[Pg 353]</a></span>
-animal life. If a man loved his mother, it was because with her it was the easiest thing
-in the world to be intimate and frank and honest and without pretence of any kind.</p>
-
-<p>His mother was marvellous to him because she was his dearest friend, not because she
-had given him suck. That was a fact like any other, and facts were not marvellous until
-more and more light was thrown on them from the mind, for in the murk and muddle of human
-life they were distorted.</p>
-
-<p>For Mendel this was the wildest and rarest adventure yet. It was a flinging of his cap
-over the windmills, and with it he had the sense of losing all his troubles, all his
-perplexities. Nothing for the time being seemed to matter very much. He had always been
-denied colour, and here he had the right to use it because it had been used by other men
-rightly. In the world of art, or rather of artists, he had always been a sort of Ishmael,
-ever since he had outgrown being a prodigy, and here was a new world of art where he could
-be free. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. True, he had seen the same things in Paris and had not thought
-much of them, but so much had happened since then, and he had passed through the greatest
-crisis of his life.</p>
-
-<p>Always after his crises he expected to find himself, and now he thought he had surely
-done so. He would be entirely free, completely independent.</p>
-
-<p>For three weeks he lived between his studio and the gallery, studying these strange new
-vibrant pictures and experimenting with their manners as now this, now that painter
-influenced him. Picasso baffled him altogether. These queer, violent, angular patterns
-actually hurt him, and he was repelled by their intellectual intensity. Gauguin he found
-too easy, Van Gogh too incoherent. It was when he came to Cézanne that he was bowled out
-and reduced to impotence and all the egoistic excitement oozed out of him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-354">[Pg 354]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He was not so free then. Here was an art before which he must be humbled and subdued if
-he was to understand it at all. He abandoned his experiments and made no attempt to work
-at all, but bought a reproduction of Cézanne’s portrait of his wife and spent many days
-poring over it. It held him and fascinated him, and yet it looked almost like the
-unfinished work of an amateur who could not draw. Of psychological interest the picture
-was bare. It was just a portrait of a woman at peace, with her hands folded in her lap,
-bathed in a serenity beyond mortal understanding, though not beyond mortal perception,
-since a man had rendered it in paint. It released directly the swift, soaring emotion
-which, though it was roused in him by many pictures and by some poetry—passages in the
-Bible, for instance—was quickly entangled in sensual pleasure and never properly set free.
-Here, the more he gazed the more that emotion, pure, disinterested, unearthly, rushed
-through him, exploring all the caverns in his imagination and delivering from them new
-powers of perception. He felt, as he told Logan afterwards, like a tree putting out its
-leaves in the spring.</p>
-
-<p>And yet he could not tell how this miracle was accomplished. No words could explain
-it—abstraction, composition, design, none of these words helped at all. It was not so much
-the doing of the thing, the art of the painter, as the setting out of the woman on the
-canvas without reference to anything in heaven or earth, or any idea, or any emotion or
-desire. It was enough that she was a woman, not especially beautiful, not particularly
-remarkable. So perfect a vision had no need to be tender or affectionate or sensual, or to
-call in aid any of the emotions of life. It needed no force but the rare religious ecstasy
-which has no need of ideas or common human feelings, and this vision of a woman gave
-Mendel<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-355">[Pg 355]</a></span> a new
-appreciation of life and love and art. It gave human beings a new value. It was enough
-that they were alive and upon the earth with all that they contained of good and evil.
-They were in themselves wonderful, and there was no need to worry about whence they came
-or whither they were going, or what was their relation to God and the universe. In each
-man, each woman was enough of God and of the universe to keep them poised for their little
-hour.</p>
-
-<p>What, then, was love? What but the sense of being poised, of being borne up by God, an
-intimation that could only be won through contact with life at its purest. And beyond that
-again lay a further degree of purity which could only find expression in art, since life,
-even at its rarest, was too gross.</p>
-
-<p>Often Mendel kissed his reproduction reverently and hugged it to his bosom, thinking
-childishly that some of its spirit could enter into him by contact. He whispered to
-it:—</p>
-
-<p>“I love you. You are my truth and my joy rising up through life, even from its very
-depths, and shaking free of it at last into pure, serene beauty. You weigh neither upon my
-senses nor upon my thoughts, but, following you, they are joined together to become a high
-sense which can know deliverance.”</p>
-
-<p>Followed days of a supreme delight. He wandered through the streets seeing all men and
-all women and all things as wonderful, since through them all flowed this lovely spirit
-which in the few men here and there could find its freedom and its expression in form.</p>
-
-<p>Through Thompson he met a journalist who was writing a book about the new painting, and
-from him he learned the little that was known about Cézanne: how he worked away
-experimenting unsuccessfully until he was middle-aged, and then withdrew from the world of
-artists in Paris, to<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-356">[Pg
-356]</a></span> live the life of a simple country bourgeois and to paint the vision which
-he had begun to divine: and how he painted out in the fields, leaving his canvases in the
-hedges and by the wayside, because not the painting but the expression of his spirit and
-the solution of his problem mattered to him: and how he never sold a single picture, never
-attempted to sell them.</p>
-
-<p>Such, thought Mendel, should the life of an artist be. But how was it possible if life
-would not let him alone, but was perpetually dragging him down into the mud? What mud,
-what filth he had had to flounder through to get even so far as he had!</p>
-
-<p>And already he began to feel that he was slipping back. He could not accept that
-knowledge of the spirit vicariously, but must fight for his own knowledge of it in direct
-contact with life. To endeavour to escape from life was to isolate himself, to lose the
-driving force of life from darkness into the light, to dwell in the twilight of solitude
-armed only with his puny egoism and the paltry tricks of professional painting. He felt
-that at last he knew his desire, but in no wise how to attain it. Cézanne had had a wife:
-that had settled one of the torments of life. He had had ample means: that had absolved
-him from the ever-present difficulty of money.</p>
-
-<p>These considerations relieved Mendel from another weighty puzzle. Perhaps if Cézanne
-had had to please other people and not only his own spirit, he would have cared more for
-his craft and for the quality of his paint. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. All the same, it was good to
-have pictures reduced to their bare essentials, relieved of ornament and trickery, and yet
-retaining their full pictorial quality.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after the party Logan and Oliver had moved to a little cottage on Hampstead
-Heath, just below Jack Straw’s Castle. Mendel went to<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-357">[Pg 357]</a></span> see them there and met Logan on the
-Spaniard’s Road. He was in a deplorable condition. His right eye was blackened, his nose
-was bloody and scratched, the lobe of his ear was torn and his forehead was purple with
-bruises.</p>
-
-<p>“What on earth have you been doing to yourself!” asked Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve had a fight,” said Logan glibly. “The other night on the Heath I came on a man
-beating a girl. I went for him. He was a huge lout of a man. We had a terrific tussle, and
-just as I was getting him down the girl went for me and scratched my face.”</p>
-
-<p>“If you lived where I do,” said Mendel, “you would know better than to interfere.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I enjoyed it,” said Logan. “I couldn’t stand by and see it done.”</p>
-
-<p>They ran down the grassy slope to the cottage, where they found Oliver entertaining
-Thompson and her critic. She had a slight bruise over her right eye, and Mendel
-thought:—</p>
-
-<p>“Why does he lie? Why should he lie to me? I should think no worse of him for beating
-her. If I could not shake her off I should kill her.”</p>
-
-<p>He was filled with a sudden disgust at the household, which in his eyes had become an
-obscene profanation.</p>
-
-<p>The talk was excited, and formerly he would have found it interesting. Thompson was
-full of the triumph of the exhibition and its success in forcing art upon the public. He
-spoke glibly of abstraction and cubing, and it was clear that they only delighted him as
-new tricks.</p>
-
-<p>Oliver took part in the conversation. She had picked up the jargon of painters and made
-great play with the names of the new masters. To hear her talking glibly of Cézanne and
-saying how he had shown the object of pictorial art to be pattern filled Mendel’s soul
-with loathing. He could not protest. What was the good of protesting<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-358">[Pg 358]</a></span> to such people?
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. If only Logan had not been among them! He wanted to talk to Logan, to tell
-him what this new thing meant, to make him see that he must give up all thought of turning
-art back upon life, because life did not matter so very much. It could look after itself,
-while the integrity of art must at all costs be maintained.</p>
-
-<p>However, when Thompson said that the artist was now free to make up a picture out of
-any shapes he liked, Mendel could not contain himself, and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“The artist is no more free than ever he was. He does not become free by burking
-representation. He is not free merely to work by caprice and fantasy. He is rather more
-strictly bound than ever, because he is working through his imagination and cannot get out
-of it merely by using his eyes and imitating charming things. If he tries to get out of it
-by impudent invention, then pictures will be just as dull and degraded as before.”</p>
-
-<p>“â€I am Sir Oracle,’” said the critic, “â€and when I ope my lips let no dog bark.’”</p>
-
-<p>“You can bark away,” cried Mendel, “but you must not complain if a man loses patience
-with you and kicks you back into your kennel.”</p>
-
-<p>“Just listen to the boy!” cried Oliver. “Success has turned his pretty little head.
-Just listen to him teaching the critics their business!”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel gave her a furious look of contempt and left the room and the house. Logan came
-running after him.</p>
-
-<p>“I say, old man,” he said, “you mustn’t mind what she says. Those damn fools have
-stuffed her head up with their nonsense and she hasn’t the brains of a louse.”</p>
-
-<p>“If it was my house, I would kick them out.”</p>
-
-<p>“They are good fellows enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good fellows! When they make her more idiotic and blatant than she is!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-359">[Pg 359]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I can’t think what made you so angry. There was nothing to flare up about. You are so
-touchy.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was walking at a furious pace. Logan was out of condition and had to beg him to
-go more slowly.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m all to bits,” said Logan. “That row——”</p>
-
-<p>“Why do you tell lies? It was she who mauled you. Why do you tell lies to me? I have
-never told lies to you about anything. You have always jeered at women and said they can
-know nothing about art, and yet you let her talk. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Why don’t you leave
-her?”</p>
-
-<p>“We’re very fond of each other,” replied Logan. “It has gone too deep. We hate each
-other like poison sometimes, but that only makes it—the real thing—go deeper.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t bear it,” said Mendel; “I can’t bear it. It was bad enough when she kept
-quiet, but now that she gives herself airs and talks, I can’t stand it. I hate her so that
-I feel as if the top of my head would blow off. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Perhaps there was nothing
-much in what she said. Perhaps it was only a slow growing detestation coming to a head.
-But there it is. It is final. I have tried to like her, to be decent to her, to make
-allowances for her, but it is impossible.”</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t mean you are not going to come to see us again?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. That is what I do mean. She doesn’t exist for me any longer. If I met her in a
-café or in the streets she would be all right. She would be in her place. There would be
-some truth in her. In connection with you she is a festering lie.”</p>
-
-<p>“She can’t settle down to it,” replied Logan lamely, ashamed of his inability to defend
-Oliver from this onslaught. Defence would be quite useless, for he knew that Mendel would
-detect his untruth. If only Mendel were a little older, if only he could have grown out of
-youth’s dreadful inability to compromise.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-360">[Pg 360]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“She can’t settle down,” Logan continued. “She is a creature of enormous vitality and
-she has no life outside herself, no imagination. Can’t you see that her vitality has no
-outlet? I don’t know, but it seems to me appalling to think of these modern women with
-their independence, and nothing at all to do with it. They won’t admit the authority of
-the male, and they have broken out of the home. A lot of them refuse to have children. I
-feel sorry for them.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t go on talking round and round the subject,” cried Mendel wrathfully. He was
-really alarmed and pained as he saw himself being carried nearer and nearer to a breach
-with his friend. “I can’t feel sorry for her and I don’t. She is ruining you. You never
-laugh nowadays. You are always more dead than alive, and I cannot bear to see you with
-her. I cannot bear even to think of you with her.”</p>
-
-<p>“For God’s sake, don’t talk like that!” muttered Logan, quickening his pace to keep up,
-for Mendel was flying along.</p>
-
-<p>“You must either give her up or me,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t say that!” pleaded Logan; “don’t say that! I can’t get on without you. I don’t
-see how I can get on without you. All the happiness I have ever had has come through you.
-Every hope I have is centred in you. If you go, life will become nothing but work, work,
-work, with nobody to understand. Nobody. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And I have been so full of hope.
-All this new business has made such a stir and has brought such life into painting that I
-had begun to feel that anything was possible. There might be even a stirring of the spirit
-to stem the tide of commercialism. You know what my life has been—one long struggle to
-find a way out of the pressure of vulgarity and sordid money-making, out of sentimentality
-and pretty lying fantasy, out of the corruption that<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-361">[Pg 361]</a></span> from top to bottom is eating up the life
-of the country. You know that when I met you I had almost given up the struggle in
-despair. One man alone could not do it. But two men could—two men who trusted and believed
-in each other. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. You were very young when I first met you, but you have come
-on wonderfully. It has been thrilling for me to watch the growth of your mind and the
-strengthening of your character. You are the only man I ever met who could really stand by
-himself. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It isn’t easy for me to say all this, but I must tell you what
-your friendship has meant to me.”</p>
-
-<p>The more Logan talked, the more he divulged his feelings, his very real affection, the
-more Mendel’s mind was concentrated on the one purpose, to get him away from Oliver.</p>
-
-<p>“You must give her up,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t,” gasped Logan.</p>
-
-<p>They stood facing each other, Mendel staring into his friend’s eyes that looked
-piteously, wearily, miserably out of his haggard, battered face. He could not endure it,
-and he could not yield to the entreaty in Logan’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p>He turned quickly and ran to a bus which had stopped a few yards in front. He rushed up
-the steps and was whirled away. Unable to resist turning round, he saw Logan standing
-where he had left him, with his head bowed, his shoulders hunched up, a figure of shameful
-misery.</p>
-
-<p>After some minutes of numbness, of trying to gather up the threads snapped off by his
-astonishment at the quickness of the affair, Mendel began to tremble. His hands and his
-knees shook, and he could not control them. It was only gradually that he began to realize
-how strong his feelings had been, and how great the horror and the shock of knowing
-through and through, without blinking a single fact, the terrible relationship that bound
-Logan and Oliver—tied together in an<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-362">[Pg 362]</a></span> insatiable sensuality, locked in a deadly embrace, like
-beasts of prey fighting over carrion: a furious, evil conflict over a dead lust.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. At the same time he knew that he was bound with them, that in their life
-together he had his share, and that it was dragging him down, down from the ecstatic
-exaltation he had perceived in his new friend, Cézanne, a friend who could never fail, a
-friend upon whom no devastation could alight, a friend through whom he could never be
-clawed back into life.</p>
-
-<p>By the time he reached home he was completely exhausted, and begged his mother to make
-him a cup of strong tea.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it now?” Golda asked. “What is the trouble? There is always something new, and
-I think you will never be a man. For a man expects trouble and does not make himself ill
-over it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have quarrelled with Logan,” said Mendel, dropping with relief into Yiddish as a
-barrier against the outer world, in which terrible things were always happening.</p>
-
-<p>“A good job too!” said Golda; “a good job too! He was no good to you. He only made
-you do the work that nobody likes. Now you can go back to the old way, and Mr. Froitzheim
-and Mr. Birnbaum will be pleased with you again. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. You had better give up
-your friends. You are like a woman, the way you must always be in love with your friends.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. But it is no good. Men will always fall in love, and then it is over with
-friendship. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Friends are only for moments. They come and disappear and come
-again. It is foolish to think you can keep them. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Is your head bad?”</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty bad.”</p>
-
-<p>“You have not been drinking again?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. I’ve been leading a decent life. I expect it doesn’t suit me.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-363">[Pg 363]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Rubbish. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Rosa says the Christian girl has been to see you.”</p>
-
-<p>He leaped to his feet.</p>
-
-<p>“Didn’t she stay? Didn’t you make her stay? What did she say? How did she look? Did she
-leave no message?”</p>
-
-<p>Golda smiled at him.</p>
-
-<p>“You had better go and see,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>He darted from the room and across to his studio panting with excitement, persuading
-himself at every step that she was there, waiting for him, perhaps hiding to tease him,
-for she was a terrible tease.</p>
-
-<p>By the time he reached his studio he was so convinced that she was there that he hardly
-dared open the door. He pushed it open very gently and peered in. The room was empty, but
-he felt sure that she was there. He peeped round the corner into his bedroom. She was not
-there. He had to believe it, and came dejectedly back into the studio.</p>
-
-<p>On his painting-table were autumn flowers daintily arranged in the old jug he used for
-a vase. He buried his face in them. She was there! She was there in the sweetness and
-fragrance of the flowers.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter307">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-364">[Pg 364]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter307_hdg"><a href="#Chapter307_toc">VII<br />
-<span class="chap_title">CONFLICT</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">M<small>ORRISON</small> had fought bravely through her storms and
-difficulties. She frightened Clowes with the violence of her efforts and the terrible
-strain she inflicted on her vitality. There were times when she thought the simplest way
-would be to cut adrift from all her old associations and to throw in her lot with Mendel,
-to give him his desire and so save him from the terrible life he was leading. But that was
-too drastic, too simple. She could only have done it on a great impulse, but always her
-deepest feelings shrank from it, and without her deepest feelings she could not go to him,
-for they were engaged most of all. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. She felt cramped and confined, as
-though her love were a cord wound round and round her limbs, and she could not, she would
-not go to him bound. He must release her; she must compel him to release her. If it took
-half her lifetime she would so compel him. Her will was concentrated upon him. She would
-not have their love droop from the high sympathy it had known, nor should it be torn from
-it by his savage strength and the adorable violence of his passion. Neither, on the other
-hand, would she turn back from him. That would be to deny her freedom which she had bought
-so dearly. She had thought her freedom would give her the easy joy of flowers and clouds
-and birds, and she still believed in that easy joy, but it lay beyond the tangled web of
-this love for the strange, dark, faunlike creature whom<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-365">&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;[Pg 365]</a></span> she had
-found in the woods. If she turned back, if she denied the urgent emotions that drove her
-on, she had nothing to turn to but the old captivity, the life where all difficulties were
-arranged for, where all roads led to marriage, where men could only talk to women in a
-half-patronizing, half-flirtatious way that led to a ridiculous meeting of the senses,
-then to an engagement, and so to church. To that she would never, never return. She had
-fought her way out of it. She had learned to live by herself, within herself, to wrestle
-with her thoughts and emotions and to get them into shape. (It had been at a great cost to
-her external tidiness and orderliness, but that too she hoped to tackle in time.) She had
-won all this, and she had found a glorious outlet in work. So far as she had gone she had
-been successful, and she was ambitious, terribly ambitious, to show that a woman could do
-good work.</p>
-
-<p>And then there was the dark side of Mendel’s life—Logan, Oliver, Jessie Petrie. At the
-thought of it she shuddered, but her honesty made her confess that it made no difference
-to her central feeling. It had shocked her, outraged her, roused her to a fury of
-jealousy, but that she would not have. She fought it down inch by inch until she had it so
-well in control that, whenever it reared its head, she could crush it down.</p>
-
-<p>Many a tear had it cost her, but she insisted that she must understand.</p>
-
-<p>When she cut her hair short, she found, to her horror, that it was taken by many men as
-a sign that she was open to their advances, and all sorts and conditions of men had found
-to their astonishment that, although she was an artist and lived an independent life, she
-was immovable, and when it came to argument she was more than a match for them.</p>
-
-<p>Again, she had had the confidence of more than one of the models, and she knew how they
-courted<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-366">[Pg 366]</a></span> their
-own disasters. If there was to be any question of blame, the women must share it with the
-men.</p>
-
-<p>She had no thought of blaming Mendel, but she hated to have that underworld in contact
-with the world which it was her whole desire to keep beautiful. It was no good pretending
-that the underworld was not there, but if she could have her way she would keep a tight
-control over it, and suppress it as she suppressed her jealousy, that other source of
-ugliness. If she could only, somehow, find an entrance to Mendel’s life, not only to his
-rare moments, but to the life that went on from day to day, she would suppress it, she
-would cut it out and throw it away. She thought of it almost as a surgical operation, or
-as cutting a bruise out of an apple, for all her thoughts of life were as simple as
-herself, and life too was simple in her eyes. Anything that threatened to complicate it
-she expunged.</p>
-
-<p>After a time she discovered that it was no good hoping to understand so long as she
-regarded the dark aspect of Mendel from outside his life. She must find her way inside it
-and see how it looked there. That was hard.</p>
-
-<p>Clowes could not help her at all. To Clowes it was simply unintelligible that men could
-do these things. They bewildered her, and her only way out of it was to suppose that men
-were like that, and the less said about it the better. She was really very annoyed with
-Morrison for worrying over it, and she was disappointed. She had hoped that the
-unfortunate adventure would be over and that Morrison would wait tranquilly for her
-affections to be engaged by someone who was—presentable. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Still, there was
-no accounting for this strange, impulsive creature, though it was a pity she should throw
-away her growing popularity with people who were, after all, important, both in themselves
-and by their position; for<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-367">[Pg
-367]</a></span> Morrison’s frank charm carried her to places where Clowes would have given
-her eyes to be seen. Clowes was baffled by her friend, but she would not abandon her. She
-was often bored with her, often exasperated, and more than once she said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Well, if you like these wild people so much, why don’t you take the plunge and join
-them? You are wild enough yourself.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not wild in that way,” replied Morrison. “And I know that if I did do it it would
-be wrong.”</p>
-
-<p>And she returned to her task of labouring to understand Mendel. She carried the idea of
-him wherever she went, and was sometimes able to call up a clear image of him, and she was
-fearful for him because he seemed to her so helpless, so much a stranger in a strange
-land, so easily caught up in any strong current of feeling or enthusiasm. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-She, too, often felt outside things, but she so much enjoyed being a looker-on. She loved
-to watch the race among the young artists, and she longed for Mendel to win. It was right
-that he should win, because he was so much the best of them all. He had taken the lead. It
-had looked as though he must infallibly win, and then Logan had appeared and he had
-stumbled in his stride.</p>
-
-<p>Yet this had never been satisfying. She had no right to turn Mendel into a figure on a
-frieze, to see him in the flat, as it were, and it was in revolt against this conception
-that she had agreed to go with him to Logan’s party, which had been so disastrous.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Had she not been cowardly to run away? But what could she do, what else
-could she do, when confronted so suddenly with the appalling fact?</p>
-
-<p>A week before the party Mendel had insisted on lending her “Jean Christophe” volume by
-volume. She had read the first without great interest. The friendship between the two boys
-struck her as<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-368">[Pg 368]</a></span>
-silly and sentimental and not worth writing about, and she had read no further. However,
-when she found that Mendel was becoming a fixed idea, to escape from it she took up the
-second volume, and was enthralled by the tale of Christophe’s love for Ada, thrilled by
-the sudden scene of his assault on the peasant girl in the field, and with a growing sense
-of illumination followed his life as it passed from woman to woman, finding consolation
-with one, relief with another, comfort with another, comradeship with yet another, and the
-physical relationship slipped into its place and was never dominant. And Christophe, too,
-had had women of passage because his vitality was so abundant that it could not be
-contained in his being. It must be always flowing out into art or into life, taking from
-life more and more power to give to art. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. With Gratia she was out of
-patience. Gratia was altogether too complacent an Egeria. Morrison thought she could have
-given Christophe more than that.</p>
-
-<p>She made Clowes read the book, but Clowes found it no help. That was in a story, this
-was actually happening in London; and besides, the book had a rhapsodic, dreamlike quality
-that smoothed away all ugliness, all difficulties. In life things were definitely ugly,
-and it was no good pretending they were anything else.</p>
-
-<p>“Anyhow,” said Morrison, “I’m going on.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are going to see him again?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I will not be beaten. If I were married to him I should put up with everything,
-and I don’t see why not being married should make any difference.”</p>
-
-<p>Clowes threw up her hands and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Well, if you come to grief, don’t blame me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not going to come to grief,” said Morrison. “I’m going to win—I’m going to
-win.”</p>
-
-<p>It was then that she went out and bought the flowers. Her courage nearly failed her as
-she<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-369">[Pg 369]</a></span> approached
-the door in the little slummy street. Suppose he should be angry with her for running
-away, and contemptuous of her cowardice! His anger and contempt were not easy things to
-face.</p>
-
-<p>She was relieved, therefore, when the dirty little Jewish servant opened the door and
-told her Mendel was out. She handed in the flowers shyly and went away without a word.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Mendel wrote to thank her for the flowers, but said nothing about going to see her or
-about what he was doing. She thought he must be contemptuous of her, though it was not
-like him to be so stupid as not to respond to a direct impulse. On the other hand, he had
-always tried to impose his authority on her, and she was not going to do his bidding.
-Either he must take her on her own level or not at all. She would make him understand that
-she too was driving at something, and that love was to her not an end in itself, much
-though she might desire love and its freedom. He had always made her feel that he regarded
-love as sufficient for her. She must curl up in it and be happy while he went on with his
-work. Against that all the free instinct in her cried out. A woman was not a mere embryo
-to be incubated in a man’s passion, hatched out into a wife and a helpmate.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. When she tried to imagine what life with him would be like, she shivered
-until she thought what life with him might be if she could bring to it all her force and
-all her freedom.</p>
-
-<p>At last she began to think that perhaps it was her own fault for not having left a note
-or a message with the flowers, which might be regarded only as a token of sentimental
-forgiveness. She knew how easily he was sickened by any sign of Christian
-sentimentality—“filthy gush” as he called it. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. To safeguard against that
-and to<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-370">[Pg 370]</a></span> have done
-with it once and for all, she wrote to him and told him that she had been reading “Jean
-Christophe,” and that it had helped her to understand both his sufferings and his need of
-what in an ordinary foolish vain man would have to be condemned.</p>
-
-<p>To this letter he did not reply, and she determined that she would go and see him. She
-would take Clowes, in case things had become impossible and their sympathy had somehow
-been undermined and destroyed. Even if it were, she would not accept or believe it, and
-she would fight to restore it. A vague intuition took possession of her by which she
-surely knew that something strange, perhaps even terrible, was happening to him, and she
-felt that he needed her but did not know his need.</p>
-
-<p>It required some persuasion to take Clowes down to Whitechapel. She declared that she
-would stand by her friend whatever happened, but that she did not wish to be personally
-mixed up in it. It would, she said, make her in part responsible for whatever happened,
-and she did not think she could bear it. However, Morrison explained that she only wanted
-her there in case things were impossible, and that, if they were not, she could make good
-her escape as soon as she liked. On that Clowes consented and they journeyed to the East
-End.</p>
-
-<p>The little Jewish servant said that Mr. Mendel was engaged. Would she go up and see if
-he would soon be disengaged? She ran upstairs and came down in a moment to ask if they
-would wait, and to their surprise, darted past them, along the street, beckoned to them to
-follow, and led them to Golda’s kitchen. Golda bobbed to them, dusted chairs for them to
-sit on, and, not knowing enough English to be able to talk to them, went on with her
-ironing. When she had finished that, she shyly produced an album and showed them<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-371">[Pg 371]</a></span> all the photographs
-of Mendel since he was a baby.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, in his studio Mendel was in agitated conversation with Mr. Tilney Tysoe, who
-had arrived half an hour before, wagging his hands, rolling his enormous eyes, almost
-demented by the lamentable news he had to tell. Logan had left Oliver!</p>
-
-<p>“When?” asked Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“A few days ago,” said Tysoe. “The poor fellow came round to me one night after dinner.
-You know, he often drops in in the evening. Such a splendid fellow, so sincere, such a
-force! And his admiration for you is very touching. He came in and raved like a madman and
-said terrible things—oh, terrible things! He told me that I was a fool and did not know a
-picture from my foot, and he denounced himself as a scoundrel and a thief and a liar. He
-wanted me to destroy all the pictures I had bought from him, and said they were not worth
-the stretchers of the canvas they were painted on. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh! it was terrible,
-terrible! He said that for years he had been pulling my leg, and had got such a taste for
-it that he had begun to pull his own leg, and he went on to say that his soul was rotten
-with lies; and then he broke into a torrent of wild, splendid stuff that made my spine
-tingle. I assure you, I could not contain my enthusiasm. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh! he is a
-splendid fellow. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I can’t remember it all very well, but he said that love
-is impossible in the world as it is, and that everybody is living in hate. It sounded most
-true—most true—though you know I adore my wife. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He said that humanity has
-tried aristocracy and failed, and it has tried democracy and failed. It has swung from one
-extreme to the other and found satisfaction in neither, and now it must bend the two
-extremes together so as to get the electric spark which can illumine life, and also<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-372">[Pg 372]</a></span> to create a circle in
-which life can be contained. Of course, I haven’t got it at all clear, but it was most
-inspiring—most inspiring. Certainly life is very unsatisfactory, and it must be maddening
-for artists, maddening, though of course it should drive them on to make a mighty effort.
-We are all looking to the artists nowadays, especially since that wonderful
-exhibition.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, yes,” said Mendel impatiently; “but what about Logan?”</p>
-
-<p>“He told me you had quarrelled with him. Such a pity! Dear me! dear me! You were such a
-splendid pair, so sincere. He said it was irrevocable. But, you know, â€The falling out of
-faithful friends renewing is of love.’ Have you read the Oxford â€Book of Verse’? A
-storehouse of poetry. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I came to see you for that reason. Quarrels ought
-not to be irrevocable. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I have been to see Oliver too. Poor girl! poor
-girl! I am keeping their little nest at Hampstead for them. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I told Logan
-he ought to marry her. Of course, I know, artists have their own view on that subject, but
-there is a great deal to be said for marriage. Most people are married, you know, and a
-woman who is not married must feel out of it. Nothing to do with morality, of course, but
-you know what women are. They can’t bear even their clothes to be different, and, after
-all, marriage is only a garment which we wear for decency’s sake.”</p>
-
-<p>“But where is Logan?”</p>
-
-<p>“That I don’t know,” said Tysoe. “Oliver said he would be here. She said it was your
-fault that they had quarrelled. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Poor girl! So pretty too! .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-I thought if you made it up with Logan, then he could make it up with her and we should
-all be happy again. We might have a nice little dinner of reconciliation at my house.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is no use, no use whatever,” said Mendel.<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-373">[Pg 373]</a></span> “Logan might go back to her, but he will never come back
-to me. We have gone different ways, not only in life, but in our work.”</p>
-
-<p>“You won’t make it up?” asked Tysoe plaintively.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” answered Mendel. “I should like to, but it is impossible. It is very good of you
-to try to intervene. Logan was my friend. He is no longer the same man. He is altered, he
-is changed, he is done for.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing could ruin a man like that. It is disastrous, it is terrible that he should
-lose his friend and the girl he loves at one stroke. KĂĽhler, I implore you, I entreat you,
-if he comes to see you, you will not refuse him.”</p>
-
-<p>“If he comes I will see him, certainly,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! That is all I want,” said Tysoe, beaming hopefully.</p>
-
-<p>“But he will not come.”</p>
-
-<p>“We shall find a way. We shall find a way. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Ah! superb!” he added,
-catching sight of Mendel’s green-faced <i>Mother.</i> “Ah! The new spirit at work in your
-art. Colour! What you have always wanted! .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. How—how much?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ten pounds,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“May I take it with me? I will send you my cheque.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel wrapped the picture up in brown paper and gave it him, told him he must go,
-thanked him for his kindness, and with unutterable relief watched him go shambling down
-the stairs.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>It was very certain that Logan would not come. There could be nothing but futile
-suffering for both of them, and Logan would know that as well as he. Logan knew himself
-better than most men, and he must have felt the finality of that parting in the street.
-The breach was final and irrevocable, for Oliver was definitely a part of Logan, as<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-374">[Pg 374]</a></span> much a part of him as
-his hand or his eyes, and Mendel hated Oliver with a pure, simple, immovable passion. He
-saw in her embodied the natural enemy of all that he loved: order, decency, honesty, art,
-and beauty. He would have liked to blot out all trace of her everywhere, but she lived
-most intensely in his mind. She existed for him hardly at all as a person, but as an evil,
-fixed will set on the destruction of Logan, of friendship, of art, of love, of beauty, of
-everything that lived distinctly and clearly and with a flame-like energy. She existed to
-drag all down into the glowing ashes of lust and lies. There were times when she became
-symbolical of that Christian world that had made him suffer so intensely. In her was the
-only discernible will of that world in which everything was losing shape and form, every
-flame was dying down, and everything, good and bad, was being reduced to ashes.</p>
-
-<p>“Good and bad?” thought Mendel. “I don’t know what they mean. I know what is false and
-what is true. What is false I hate. What is true I love. That woman is a lie and I hate
-her, and I wish she were dead.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan might hate her too, but he would always try, always hope to love her, always
-waste himself in trying to kindle her lust into a passion. The fool, the weak fool! Let
-her rot; let her drop down to her own level, where she could be decently a beast of prey,
-marked out to be shunned except by those who were her natural victims. Logan was too good:
-but if there was so much good in him, might not something be done? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. No.
-Only Logan’s own will could save him. Nothing could be done for him except out of pity:
-and who wants pity? Leave that to men like Tysoe, the kindly, emasculate fools of the
-world.</p>
-
-<p>Yet Mendel knew that he was bound to Logan. At first he thought it must be by pity, but
-it was deeper than that. There was not much capacity<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-375">[Pg 375]</a></span> for pity in Mendel. Ruthless with
-himself, he could see no reason why others should be spared what he himself was ready to
-endure. He had never thought that others might be weaker than he. Logan, for instance,
-with ten years’ more experience behind him, had always seemed infinitely stronger.</p>
-
-<p>And so Logan had left Oliver! There must have been a terrible row. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh,
-well, he would go back to her. There would be no end to the affair, there could be no end
-unless Logan were strong enough to stand by himself. But when had he ever tried to do
-that? Even in his work he borrowed here and there. Mendel was sure now that all Logan’s
-work had grown out of his own, and was often, by some amazing sleight of mind, an
-anticipation of his own ideas. That explained a good deal: his growing sense that Logan
-was really his enemy, and was cramping and thwarting him, a sense that endured even after
-the quarrel. It was strong upon him now. Tysoe had brought Logan vividly to his mind and
-made him feel impotent, possessed by a vision of art but unable to move a step towards it,
-rather dragged further and further away from it. He was ashamed when he thought of how
-often he had excitedly followed Logan’s lead, only to come now to this discovery that he
-was brought back to his own inchoate ideas. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He was reminded oddly of the
-journalist who had interviewed him after his first success and had produced so grotesque a
-parody of his innocently conceited remarks.</p>
-
-<p>A tap at the door reminded him of the “two young ladies” who were waiting to see him.
-He rushed eagerly to the door and flung it open, thinking to find healing and refreshment
-in the sight of Morrison. Only Clowes was standing there, and in his disappointment her
-face seemed to him so foolish and flabby and idiotic that his impulse was to shut the
-door. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He would bang<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-376">[Pg 376]</a></span> the door in her face and it would shut out the Christian
-world for ever. It did not want him, and he did not want it, for it was full of lies.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Then he heard a footstep on the stairs and Morrison appeared.</p>
-
-<p>“Come in,” he said. “Come in.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t stay long,” said Clowes nervously.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” he replied.</p>
-
-<p>Morrison reached the top of the stairs, and he stood looking at her.</p>
-
-<p>“How are you?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m very well.”</p>
-
-<p>She was horrified at the change in him. He looked so tragic and drawn.</p>
-
-<p>“Clowes can’t stop long,” she said. “But I’ll stop, if I may. I should like to.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid I haven’t got anything to show you. I haven’t been working lately.”</p>
-
-<p>“It seems to be a pretty general complaint,” said Clowes. “Everybody is so upset by the
-French pictures. I should like to shake that Thompson until his teeth rattled. He is so
-pleased with himself.”</p>
-
-<p>“He’s an awful man,” muttered Mendel. “He seems to think he told Cézanne and Van Gogh
-how to do it. There seems to be a whole army of men ready to take the credit of a thing
-when someone else has done it. I suppose they are all talking like mad.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is so astonishing is that these things are actually selling, and people who never
-sold a picture in their lives dab a few straight lines on a picture and off it goes.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve just sold one,” he said. “I came straight back from the exhibition and painted
-it. They sell just as if they were a new kind of toy that is all the rage.”</p>
-
-<p>So they kept up a cheerful rattle of conversation until Clowes said she really must go.
-No;<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-377">[Pg 377]</a></span> she would
-not have tea, but she hoped Mendel would come to tea with her one day.</p>
-
-<p>He saw her to the front door and ran upstairs again, three steps at a time.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, then,” he said, “what have you come for, and why did you bring her?”</p>
-
-<p>“In case there was nothing to be said and this visit was another failure. I’m sick of
-failure; aren’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t answer your letter. I thought it was all over.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I told you what had made me change.”</p>
-
-<p>“It was nothing to do with that. Everything seemed all over, and I’m not sure even now
-that it isn’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“I knew something was happening to you. What is it?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve quarrelled with Logan.”</p>
-
-<p>She was silent for a moment or two, and then she said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I’m so glad.”</p>
-
-<p>“You didn’t like him. Why?”</p>
-
-<p>“I thought him second-rate.”</p>
-
-<p>“He isn’t that. He has a good mind, and he was a good friend.”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you so sure of that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Of some things in him—of his affection, for instance—I am as sure as I am of
-myself.”</p>
-
-<p>She smiled at him.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. That is saying a good deal. But why did you quarrel?”</p>
-
-<p>“It was over his woman.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes!”</p>
-
-<p>“He has left her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Has he been to see you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. It was a friend of his. I don’t know what will happen. They are bound to come
-together again. Perhaps they will go through life like that—parting and coming together
-again. I can’t get it out of my head. I shall never<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-378">[Pg 378]</a></span> forget it. It is like my father knocking
-a drunken soldier down with a glass. I never forget that, though it was different. That
-was just something that I saw. This is in my own life. I feel as though it had somehow
-happened through me. I was with him when he met her, you know, and his whole life changed
-when he met me. Perhaps he wasn’t meant to take things seriously. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I didn’t
-write to you because I didn’t want to drag you into it. But I’m glad you’ve come. I’m glad
-you’ve come. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. You know, it was beginning to be a horror with me that Logan
-would come in at that door, looking like a poor, battered, broken little Napoleon, and I
-should have to tell him that I was not his friend. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. You know, he was
-something vital and living in my work, but Cézanne has kicked him out. He was only my
-friend really in my work, and if that goes everything goes. I couldn’t explain it to him,
-for he wouldn’t understand. He used to laugh at me for talking about my work to you. I’m
-afraid I told him more about you than I ought to have done, but, you see, he was my
-friend. He laughed at everything. He ought to have been a very happy man, the way he
-laughed at everything.”</p>
-
-<p>He placed in her hands his reproduction of Cézanne’s portrait of his wife.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s better than Cranach,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“But why is her mouth crooked?” asked Morrison, puzzled by the picture and by his
-setting it above Cranach.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” replied Mendel, “but Cézanne knew when he did it.”</p>
-
-<p>And he tried to explain the making of the picture, but she could not understand it.
-However, she could understand and love his enthusiasm, and they were both happy, talking
-rather aimlessly and often relapsing into silence.</p>
-
-<p>“I never can make out,” he said, “why you are<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-379">[Pg 379]</a></span> more wonderful to me than anybody else. Directly I am
-with you, I am not so much happy as free. Even if I am miserable and you don’t make me any
-happier, I want you with me. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. You mustn’t go away again.”</p>
-
-<p>“No. I don’t want to go away.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why need you actually go? Why shouldn’t you stay here now? Stay with me. Don’t go.
-Don’t think of going. I want you always with me. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. If you don’t like the
-place we will find another studio and go there. And if you want to be married we can get
-married at once. I have nearly a hundred pounds in the bank.”</p>
-
-<p>He knelt by her side and held her knees in his two hands. She took his face in her
-hands and said gently:—</p>
-
-<p>“You mustn’t talk like that, Mendel. Please don’t think I don’t love you because I
-don’t want you to talk like that. It is the first thing to come into your mind, but with
-me it is almost the last thing. I want love to be very, very beautiful before it comes to
-me. I want love to be as beautiful to me as that picture of Cézanne’s is to you. Do you
-understand me?”</p>
-
-<p>He sprang to his feet and turned away from her.</p>
-
-<p>“No, I don’t!” he shouted; “no, I don’t!”</p>
-
-<p>He was wildly angry. Her words had acted like salt upon his raw feelings.</p>
-
-<p>“No, I don’t understand you. You want love to be like art. You want to mix love up with
-art. Love belongs to life. Love is rich and ripe and warm. You want it to be like the dew
-on the grass. It can’t be!—it can’t be! Love bursts out of a man’s body into his soul, and
-you want it to live in his soul and to leave him with an impotent, cold body. You want me
-to bend to your woman’s will, for you know I cannot break away from you. You are with your
-soul like Oliver with her body. You are with your love like Oliver with her lust,<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-380">[Pg 380]</a></span> and Logan and I are a
-pair—a miserable, broken pair.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” she cried, hiding her face in her hands. “You are wrong, wrong, hideously wrong.
-You have understood nothing at all. Your mind has rushed away with you. For God’s sake be
-quiet for a little, to see if we can’t get it straight.”</p>
-
-<p>His desire was to batter down her opposition, yet he could not but realize that she was
-too strong, and that he would only do grievous and useless harm. He controlled himself,
-therefore, and was silent. At last he grunted:—</p>
-
-<p>“Can’t you make me see what you mean?”</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t a thing I could say in cold blood,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>He moved towards her, but she held up her hands to ward him off.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no!’” she almost whispered. “That only makes my heart grow colder and colder until
-it aches.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you mean that you—don’t—want me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Foolish, foolish, foolish!” she said. “If you loved me one tenth part as much as I
-love you, you would know what I mean.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t,” he said simply. “I don’t, honestly I don’t. Perhaps you are so beautiful to
-me that I am blinded with it.”</p>
-
-<p>Of the truth of her feeling against him he had no doubt, but though he laboured
-bitterly to understand it, he could make nothing of it. He was driven back on his simple
-need for her.</p>
-
-<p>“Very well,” he said; “if it makes you feel like that for me to touch you, I never
-will. Only don’t talk of loving me more than I love you. It isn’t true.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. It was silly of me to say that,” she agreed. “It isn’t true.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you want, then?”</p>
-
-<p>“I want to share as much of your life as I can.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is a bleak, grimy business, a good deal of it.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-381">[Pg 381]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I want to share it.”</p>
-
-<p>“There is a good deal in it that will horrify you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I must get used to that. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. When I am in London I want you to promise
-that you will see me at least once a week.”</p>
-
-<p>“There are seven days in the week. Let it be seven times.”</p>
-
-<p>She laughed at that.</p>
-
-<p>“And some day,” she went on, “I want to take you down into the country.”</p>
-
-<p>He began to suspect her of wanting to meddle with his work.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want the country,” he rapped out. “I am a Londoner. All the life I care about
-is in the streets and in the houses, in the restaurants and the shops, and the costers’
-barrows and the cinemas and the picture galleries. That is why I live here, because I love
-the coarse, thrumming vitality all round me.”</p>
-
-<p>“But <i>I</i> want the country,” she said, “and you should know the life <i>I</i>
-love.”</p>
-
-<p>For a moment it seemed to him that the key to the mystery she talked of was in his
-hands. He clutched at it and it evaded him, but his idolatry of her was shaken, and he
-began dimly to see her as a creature like himself, with feelings, thoughts, desires, and a
-will. There was no doubt at all about the will, and he had to recognize it.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter308">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-382">[Pg 382]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter308_hdg"><a href="#Chapter308_toc">VIII<br />
-<span class="chap_title">OLIVER</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">T<small>HEN</small> began a period of quiet, happy friendship for them
-both. Mendel was astonishingly amenable to many of her disciplinary suggestions and
-allowed her to cut his hair (though not without thinking of Delilah), and when she ordered
-him to get some new clothes he went off obediently to a friend of Issy’s and had a suit
-made—West End style at East End prices.</p>
-
-<p>“You will soon have me looking like a Public School gentleman,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Never!” she replied. “You will never move like one—thank goodness.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why thank goodness?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because they walk about as though they owned the earth and the fatness thereof, as
-though the earth existed for them to walk about on it without their needing even to look
-at it to see how beautiful it is.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s like Logan,” he said. “He used always to be railing against the English. He
-said they had no eyes, only stomachs. But I think the English must be the nicest people in
-the world, for there is no place like London for living in.”</p>
-
-<p>Indeed, they both thought there could be no place like London. Once or twice a week
-they dined together at the Pot-au-Feu and went on to a party or to a music-hall or to the
-cinema, which he adored. He said it gave him ideas for pictures and that there were often
-wonderful momentary pictures thrown on the screen.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-383">[Pg 383]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“The cinema does what the bad artists have been trying to do for generations. It is a
-great relief to have it done by a machine. The artist need not any more try to be a
-machine. There is no need for him now to please the public. He can leave all that to the
-machine and go straight for art. The few decent people will follow him, and what more does
-he want? Art is not for the fools. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Logan was wrong. He wanted art to go to
-the people. That is all wrong. The people must come up to art. When they are sick of the
-machine, art is there, ready for them.” He added naïvely, “I shall be there, waiting for
-them.”</p>
-
-<p>He loved especially the dramas, when they were not clogged and obscured with
-sentimentality. The simple values that governed them, the triumph of virtue and the
-downfall of evil, appealed to him as solid, as related to a process, a drama, that went on
-in himself, and, he supposed, in everybody else. It worried and annoyed him when Morrison
-made fun of these values and jeered at them.</p>
-
-<p>“But things don’t work like that,” she protested.</p>
-
-<p>“I think they do,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Good people are often crushed,” she replied, “and bad people often have things all
-their own way.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it is inside people that it happens like that. False people have their souls eaten
-away with lies, and true people have free, happy souls like yours. Being rich or poor, or
-what you call good or bad, has nothing to do with it. Yes. It is inside people that it
-happens like that, and I am more often the villain than the hero inside myself.”</p>
-
-<p>“It seems absurd to me, and I can’t think why you should take it seriously.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is because you are so idiotically good. You have only one side to your nature. You
-are like a heroine in your Dickens.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-384">[Pg 384]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I’m not. I’m sure I’m not. I’m bad-tempered and mean and unjust.”</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t even know how bad I am. You have no more idea of what my life is like than a
-rose has of an onion’s.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t like onions.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s the trouble. You don’t like the smell of onions, and so you don’t eat them.
-Very poor people live on bread and onions and they find them good. I have no patience with
-you. You want to be a rose growing in a sheltered English garden.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t. I don’t want anything of the kind.”</p>
-
-<p>“A wild rose, then; and you have no right to want such a life. You are not a flower.
-You are a human being, and you can’t have a sheltered life, or a summer hedgerow life,
-because you have truth and falsehood in you, and if you will not live for the truth you
-will die for the falsehood. That is why cinemas are good and theatres are rotten. All the
-plays are false, because they have forgotten truth and falsehood and are all about being
-rich or poor, or old or young, or married or unmarried, and in the worst plays of all they
-are about people pretending to be children so as to get out of the whole thing. I hate you
-sometimes when you seem to be trying that game of refusing to be grown up, denying your
-own feelings and letting men love you and pretending you don’t know what it is all
-about.”</p>
-
-<p>“I never do that,” she cried indignantly.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not so sure,” he said, unable to resist the temptation to press home the advantage
-he had won in rousing her out of her placid happiness. “I’m not so sure. There are too
-many girls do that.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t. I may have done it. But I have never done it with you. It is a wicked lie to
-say anything of the kind.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can’t blame me if I catch at any idea that will help me to understand you.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-385">[Pg 385]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You never will, if you go grubbing about with your mind.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! my mind is no good, is it? Then take your hands off my feelings. They’ll
-understand you right enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“No. They won’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why not?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because they’re blind.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good God! What am I to do, then?”</p>
-
-<p>“Wait.”</p>
-
-<p>“How long?”</p>
-
-<p>“Till you can see.”</p>
-
-<p>“I never shall see more than I do now. If you love me, why don’t you love me as I
-am?”</p>
-
-<p>“I do. But you don’t know what you are—yet, and you don’t know what I am.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know what I want.”</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t what I want.”</p>
-
-<p>“If you knew at all what I wanted, you would want it too.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Love.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve got it.”</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t call this love?”</p>
-
-<p>“I do.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I don’t. It is just playing the fool—wasting time.”</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t wasting time. We are much better friends than we were.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want to be friends. I’ve had enough of friends. They have never done me any
-good. It’s a silly, thin kind of happiness at best.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is better than no happiness at all, which the other would be.”</p>
-
-<p>“How can you say that?” he cried, revolted. “How can you say that? Every thought, every
-dream I have is centred on it. It is such happiness that my imagination, is baffled by
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Please let us stop talking about it. We are only getting horribly at
-cross-purposes.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-386">[Pg 386]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He had learned when it was wise to stop, but he needed every now and then the assurance
-that her serene confidence was shot with doubt. Once or twice when he had tried to thrust
-her back on her doubts she had flared up, and had fought tooth and nail, declaring that
-she would never see him again. And, as he knew she meant it, he yielded, and said that any
-sacrifice was better than that.</p>
-
-<p>On her part, as she came more nearly to see his point of view, she was often shaken and
-tempted to admit that he was right. There was no looseness or formlessness about his
-ideas. He lived in a world that apparently made room for everything, a world in which he
-stood solidly on his feet while the waves of life broke upon him, and he only absorbed
-into himself that which his passions needed. It was a plain, simple world, where good and
-evil were equally true, and, apparently, largely a matter of chance—a world in which he
-was gloriously independent. But was he free? Sometimes she thought that he was amazingly
-free. His only prejudice seemed to be against pink, fleshy young men who had to do nothing
-for a living—young men like her brothers, for instance, of whom she had drawn an amusing
-series of caricatures showing the effect of introducing Mendel to them. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-Sometimes she wondered if her own longing for freedom was not just her ignorance, just a
-craven desire to escape from knowing anything about life, to remain an amused but
-fundamentally indifferent onlooker. And when she had to face the suffering she inflicted
-on him, then she was often moved to cry out within herself:—</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! Take me, take me! Have your will. It will make an end of it all, and you will pass
-on and forget me, but you will no longer suffer through me.”</p>
-
-<p>But she could not bend her own will, which<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-387">[Pg 387]</a></span> insisted that the treasure she desired lay through him,
-and that he needed it even more than she. It was because of his need that he clung to her
-through all his suffering and exasperation. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Why, why was he so blind that
-he could not see it? Why could he, who was so sure and so strong, not see what was to her
-so clear through all her vacillation and all the confusion of her idealism?
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. She tried to make him read English poetry, but he could make little of it,
-and said none of it was worth the Bible. He declared that Shelley wrote romantical
-nonsense, because men could never be made perfect, and it was cruelly absurd to try
-it—like dressing a monkey up in human clothes. And he countered by making her read
-“Candide.”</p>
-
-<p>“When you have been through as much as Cunegonde,” he said, “I’ll believe in your
-purity.”</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t purity that I’m fussing about.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, then?”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t let us begin it all over again.”</p>
-
-<p>They found common ground in Blake, whom Mendel consented to read because Blake was the
-only English painter who had had any idea of art at all.</p>
-
-<p>Blake brought them much closer together, and their tussles were sharper, but less
-futile and exasperating.</p>
-
-<p>“Why don’t you take a lesson from Mrs. Blake?” he asked, after they had read the
-Life.</p>
-
-<p>“What? And sit and hold your hand? You’d turn round and hit me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I believe I would,” he laughed. “By Jove! I believe I would.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>He was not easy for her to handle. It was like playing with high explosives, save that
-she was not playing.</p>
-
-<p>She said to him once, when they had come very near the intimacy she desired:—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-388">[Pg 388]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I believe you would understand me if only you could let go.”</p>
-
-<p>“How can I let go,” he roared, “when I feel that you are weighing and judging and
-criticizing every word I say, every thing I do?”</p>
-
-<p>And she was silent for a long time. It was a new and dreadful idea, that she was
-hemming him in by making him feel that she was judging him. It was so far from her
-intention that she protested:—</p>
-
-<p>“I am not judging you. I accept you just as you are.”</p>
-
-<p>“Accept!” he grumbled. “Accept! When you keep me at arm’s-length!”</p>
-
-<p>“I go as far as we can, then it breaks down.”</p>
-
-<p>“What breaks down?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know what to call it. Sympathy, if you like.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! then if it breaks down it isn’t any good, and we may as well give it up for ever.
-I will learn to shuffle along without you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I won’t shuffle. I refuse to hear of your shuffling.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then you want to know what to do?”</p>
-
-<p>“What?”</p>
-
-<p>“Take your place by my side, walk along with me like a sober, decent woman.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I want to fly with you, hand in hand.”</p>
-
-<p>She was elated, exalted. Her eyes shone and she glowed with excitement and hope. Surely
-he would understand now! Surely she had found words for it at last!</p>
-
-<p>“That’s rubbish,” he said. “Men aren’t birds, and they are not angels. If you want to
-fly, go up in an airyoplane. That’s another machine like the cinema. It relieves human
-beings of another mania.”</p>
-
-<p>She turned away to hide the tears that had gushed to her eyes. Why did he waste his
-strength? Why did he keep his force from entering into his imagination?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-389">[Pg 389]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>That evening was most miserable for her, and she was glad when it came to an end.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>To add to her difficulties he was making himself ill over his work, which, as he said,
-had gone completely rotten, and he did not scruple to ascribe it to her. He would spend a
-delightful happy evening with her and feel that his difficulties were over, that in the
-morning he would be able to make a beginning upon all the ideas that were so jumbled and
-close-packed in his head. But in the morning he would be dull and nerveless, and though he
-might work himself up into a frenzy, yet he could produce nothing that was any good. His
-work was easier, and even a little better, after the evenings when they almost
-quarrelled.</p>
-
-<p>Again and again he told himself that he could not go on, that life was as thick and
-heavy as the air before a thunderstorm. Often he thought that this density, this
-opaqueness, with which he was surrounded, meant that he must quarrel and break with her
-once and for all. It would nearly kill him to do it, but if it must be done, the sooner
-the better. Perhaps it was wrong for him to have anything to do with the Christian world
-at all. No single friendship or relationship that he had had in it had been successful or
-of any profit to him. Little by little his peace of mind had been taken from him.
-Everything had been taken from him, even, now, his work. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. That he would not
-have. He set his teeth and stuck to it, every day and all day, but the few pictures he
-turned out did not sell. Cluny would not have them, and they were rejected by the
-exhibitions, even by the club of which he was a member.</p>
-
-<p>Of all this he said not a word to a soul, not even to Morrison, not even to Golda. His
-money was dwindling. That put marriage out of the question. Fate, or the ominous pressure
-of life, or whatever it was, played into Morrison’s hands.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-390">[Pg 390]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Every now and then, unable to endure this pressure, he plunged into excesses. There
-seemed to be no other way out. The Christian world refused him. He no longer belonged to
-his own people. Their poverty disgusted him. People had no right to be so poor as that, to
-have no relief from the joyless daily grind for bread. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It was the fault of
-the Christians who prayed to the Lord for their daily bread and stole it from each other
-because they had forgotten that it was not given them except in return for daily work.</p>
-
-<p>That was the one strand of sympathy he had left with his father—Jacob’s absolute
-refusal to receive his daily bread from any other hands than his own, and his almost crazy
-refusal to let Issy and Harry go out and work for other masters. They could work for their
-father because he had authority over them, but other masters had no authority except what
-they bought or stole.</p>
-
-<p>But a talk with Harry decided Mendel that his people’s way, the Jewish way, was no
-longer his.</p>
-
-<p>Harry was bored. He had bouts of boredom when he could not endure the workshop and
-refused to go near it, however great the pressure of business might be. Like his father,
-he said:—</p>
-
-<p>“I want nothing.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well then,” said Mendel; “you’ve got nothing. What are you grumbling at?”</p>
-
-<p>“But there <i>is</i> nothing.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then it is easy to want nothing and you should be satisfied.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s it. It is too easy. Work, work, work. Play, play, play. How disgusting it all
-is!”</p>
-
-<p>“Why didn’t you stay in Paris?”</p>
-
-<p>“I could not bear to be away from the people.”</p>
-
-<p>“But if they give you nothing?”</p>
-
-<p>“They have nothing to give. Nothing but old Jews who believe and young Jews who cannot
-believe and are nothing.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-391">[Pg 391]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“It is the same everywhere. The Christians do not believe either.”</p>
-
-<p>“But they are fools and can make themselves happy with their cinemas and their
-newspapers and their forward women.”</p>
-
-<p>“I thought you liked women, Harry.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t like women who like me. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I don’t want to marry, I don’t want
-anything. I shall see the old people into their graves, and then I don’t know what I shall
-do. You are the only one I know who has anything to live for or any life in him.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have little enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh God! don’t you start talking like me, or we shall all go to the cemetery at
-once.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right, Harry. I’ll keep you going. I’ll keep you astonished.”</p>
-
-<p>His brother’s despondency helped Mendel on a little, but what a mean incentive to work,
-to astonish his poor ignorant family!</p>
-
-<p>Very soon there came a terrible day when he had to tell them that he had not a penny in
-the world and that he was a failure. It would have gone hardly with him but for Harry, who
-espoused his cause, saying dramatically that he believed in his young brother as he
-believed in God, and that Mendel should not be stopped for want of money. And he went
-upstairs and came down with his savings, nearly thirty pounds.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t be a fool!” said Jacob. “He will only spend it on drink and women.”</p>
-
-<p>“He is a genius,” said Harry simply, and Issy, fired by his brother’s example, said he
-had saved ten pounds and he would add that. Together they shouted Jacob down when he tried
-to raise his voice, until at last he produced his cash-box and gave Mendel a ten-pound
-note, saying:—</p>
-
-<p>“If the Christians are liars when they say they believe in you, we are not. You must
-learn that the Christians are all liars and you must show<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-392">[Pg 392]</a></span> them that you are the greatest artist in
-the world.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll show them,” mumbled Mendel. “Yes, I’ll show them.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>He returned to his work with a better determination to succeed, but he felt more barren
-than ever, and had nothing to work with but his will. Into that he gathered all his force
-and determined to go back and pick up the thread of his work at the point where Logan had
-broken into the weaving of it. He would paint yet another portrait of his mother, and then
-he would choose a subject from among the life of the Jews. He would start again. The Jews
-believed in him; he would glorify them, although he no longer believed in but only admired
-them. When he came to look at them clearly, they were squat and stunted, because he could
-only look at them from a superior height. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He turned over his early work,
-and studied it carefully, but he could not recover his childish acceptance of that
-existence.</p>
-
-<p>For some weeks he did not go near Morrison and frequented the Paris Café, where he felt
-hopelessly out of it. No one spoke to him. Hardly a soul nodded to him. Night after night
-he sat there despondently, conjuring up the exciting evenings he had spent there. They
-were like ashes in his mouth.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>One night, to his amazement and almost fear, someone slipped into the seat at his side.
-It was Oliver. She laid her hand on his knee and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“You look pretty bad, Kühler. Anything wrong?”</p>
-
-<p>“Much as usual. How are you? What’ll you drink?”</p>
-
-<p>“Kümmel’s mine,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>He ordered two KĂĽmmels.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m all right. How are you?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-393">[Pg 393]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I’ve told you how I am,” he said testily.</p>
-
-<p>“All right, all right!” she said, “I haven’t been here for a long time. I wish you’d
-come and see me, Kühler. We never did get on, but I’d like to have a talk about old
-times.”</p>
-
-<p>“Old times!” he said. “It seems only yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s nearly a year since I saw you. Logan came back, you know. Mr. Tysoe was so good.
-He kept on the house for me. Wasn’t it good of him?”</p>
-
-<p>The waiter brought the Kümmel. She drank hers off at a gulp, and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“It is like old times to see you, Kühler. I <i>am</i> glad.”</p>
-
-<p>“Go on about Logan.”</p>
-
-<p>“He went back to that Camden Town place, you know, and we didn’t see each other for
-nearly two months. It was awful. I couldn’t sleep at nights, and I knew he wouldn’t be
-able to sleep. He never slept, you know, when we had had one of our hells and I wouldn’t
-speak to him. He! he!” she gasped and giggled nervously at the memory.</p>
-
-<p>“Go on,” said Mendel. He was icy cold. All the strange oppression that was brooding in
-his life seemed to gather into a thick snowy cloud about his head and to fit it like a cap
-of ice. “Go on.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Tysoe gave me money. Wasn’t it good of him? He used to see Logan. Not very
-often—just occasionally. Logan was painting a wonderful portrait of me, in my green dress
-and the corals he gave me. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. See: I always wear them, even now.”</p>
-
-<p>She thrust her hand into her bosom and produced the string of corals.</p>
-
-<p>“I lived all alone and refused to see anyone. I got so thin, all my skirts had to be
-taken in. I knew Logan was jealous, so I didn’t see anyone, and when I heard about the
-portrait I knew he would come back. So I used to wear the green<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-394">[Pg 394]</a></span> dress every evening and wait for him
-till twelve, one, two, three in the morning, all alone, in that little cottage on the
-Heath. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. My, I <i>was</i> tired, I can tell you. But I never was one for
-getting up in the morning. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. At last, one night, he came. He walked in quite
-quietly, as though nothing had happened. He had brought the picture with him. My word, it
-<i>is</i> good. You’d love it. He had offers for it, but he wouldn’t sell it. He said a
-funny thing about it. He said: â€It’s literature. It isn’t art.’ So he wouldn’t sell it.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. We had a glorious time—a glorious time! It was better even than the
-beginning.”</p>
-
-<p>She stopped to linger over the memory, and she drew her hand caressingly along her
-thigh.</p>
-
-<p>“Go on,” said Mendel, to break in upon her heavy silence.</p>
-
-<p>“He had plenty of money. He sold everything he did. There were one or two society
-ladies, the cats! Common property, I call them.”</p>
-
-<p>“So it broke down again,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. He got—— You know what he could be like. Sometimes I thought he was going off his
-head, and I often wonder if he wasn’t a bit touched. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I haven’t seen him
-since. I wondered if you had seen him.”</p>
-
-<p>“No. I haven’t seen him. He doesn’t come back to me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Tysoe hasn’t seen him. Cluny has some of his things, but won’t say a word. I think
-he must have left London.”</p>
-
-<p>“I should think so,” said Mendel wearily, suddenly losing all interest. “I should think
-so.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve left Hampstead. I’m living over the Pot-au-Feu, I’m working as a model. Don’t
-forget me, and if you hear of Logan, do let me know, and come and have a talk over old
-times.”</p>
-
-<p>She had caught sight of an acquaintance smiling at her and went over to him, for all
-the world, as Mendel thought, like a fly-by-night.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-395">[Pg 395]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He half ran, half staggered out of the place, saying to himself:—</p>
-
-<p>“I must see Morrison. I must see her at once.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>He tried to see her next day, but Clowes told him she had gone to the country.</p>
-
-<p>“I insisted on her going, she was looking so pale. You know when she feels lonely she
-won’t eat. When she is miserable she gets so shy that she can’t even go into a shop.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I have taken a cottage in the country, just outside London. Two rooms, two
-shillings a week. Isn’t it cheap? So I packed her off there two days ago.”</p>
-
-<p>“When will she be back?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know. When she is tired of being alone. She said she wanted to be alone.”</p>
-
-<p>“I want to see her. It is a very important for me to see her.”</p>
-
-<p>“I won’t have you making her ill,” said Clowes.</p>
-
-<p>“I must see her. Will you give me her address, so that I can write to her?”</p>
-
-<p>Clowes gave him the address, and he wrote saying that life was intolerable without
-her.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Morrison did not need his letter, and, indeed, it only reached the cottage after she
-had left. She knew he needed her. Never for an instant was his image absent from her mind,
-and at night, when she lay awake, she could have sworn she heard a moaning cry from him.
-No wind ever made a sound like that.</p>
-
-<p>There was a pouring rain and a howling wind, but she walked the four miles to the
-station and sent him a wire telling him to meet her at the station in London. He received
-it just in time and was on the platform.</p>
-
-<p>He took her in his arms and kissed her.</p>
-
-<p>“What is the matter?”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you get my letter?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. But I knew. What is it?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-396">[Pg 396]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know. My work, I think. I met Oliver last night. It upset me. But I wanted you
-for my work. It is like a knife stuck through my brain. I wanted to be with you, just to
-see you and to hear your voice. Nothing else. That part of me feels dead. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-Oliver is living over the Pot-au-Feu, where Hetty Finch used to be. I wonder what’s become
-of her. I expect she has found a millionaire by now. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. We’ll have the
-evening together. We’ll dine at the Pot-au-Feu. We might meet Oliver, but I can’t think of
-any other place.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll dine with Clowes, if you like.”</p>
-
-<p>“No; I want to go to the Pot-au-Feu.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well. Are you very tired? Your voice sounds tired.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll be all right now I am with you. Mr. Sivwright asked me to go to the Merlin’s Cave
-to-night. He has to shut it up. I thought I wouldn’t go, but I want to go, if you will
-come with me.”</p>
-
-<p>“It might cheer us up, and you love dancing.”</p>
-
-<p>They both thought of the night when he had danced with Jessie Petrie.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m painting a picture of a Jewish market. I want you to see it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m glad you’ve gone back. I’m sure it is right.”</p>
-
-<p>“What are you doing?”</p>
-
-<p>It was the first time he had asked after her work and a glow of happiness overcame
-her.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I’m doing a landscape—just a road running up a hill with some
-houses on top.”</p>
-
-<p>“Like Rousseau. He was good at roads.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mine’s just painting. It isn’t abstract.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can’t paint without being abstract,” he said irritably. “Even Academicians can’t
-really imitate, but they abstract without using their brains. You can’t really copy
-nature, so what’s the good of trying?”</p>
-
-<p>“You can suggest.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-397">[Pg 397]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Then it’s a sketch and not a picture.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps mine is only a sketch,” she said rather forlornly, because she had been rather
-hopeful of her work.</p>
-
-<p>They went back to his studio, where he showed her his studies and drawings for the new
-picture. She saw that he was working again with his old love of his craft.</p>
-
-<p>They dined at the Pot-au-Feu, and had it all to themselves because the weather was so
-bad. There were only the goggle-eyed man in the corner with his green evening paper and
-Madame Feydeau and Gustave, the waiter.</p>
-
-<p>Over the dinner Mendel waxed very gay and gave her a very comic description of the
-scene when he had gone to his family to confess his failure. He had a wonderful power of
-making them comic without laughing at them.</p>
-
-<p>“They are wonderful people,” he said. “They know what is sense and what is nonsense. If
-you gave them the biggest problem in the world they would know what was true in it and
-what was false. They are always right about politics and public men. But when it comes to
-art, they are hopeless.”</p>
-
-<p>“But they believe in you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Because I belong to them. They believe in themselves. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. My mother was
-quite sound about Logan. She said it could not go on. I thought it was for ever. I’ve been
-thinking about Logan. He could never be himself. He was always wanting to be
-something—something big. I thought he was big for a long time. But he’s just a man. I
-don’t think Cézanne was ever anything but just a man. It makes one think, doesn’t it? All
-these people who are written about as though they were something terrific, all trying to
-be something more than they are—just men. And then a quiet little man comes along and he
-is bigger than the lot of them, because he has never<span class="pagenum"><a
-class="newpage" id="page-398">[Pg 398]</a></span> tried to blow himself out, but has given
-himself room to grow.”</p>
-
-<p>She had never known him so gentle and tender and wise, and if he had wanted to love her
-she would not have denied him. She trusted him so completely. And he looked so ill and
-tired. But he only wanted to be with her, and to talk to her and to hear her voice.</p>
-
-<p>After dinner they went to a cinema to fill in time, and he shouted with laughter like a
-boy, threw himself about, and stamped his feet at the comic film. And she laughed too, and
-took his hand in hers and held it in her lap.</p>
-
-<p>“That was good!” he said. “I think I should like to be a cinema actor. If I get really
-hard up I shall try it. I might be a star, if I could learn to wear my clothes properly
-and could get my hair to lie down in a solid shiny block.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll go with you. I’m sure I could roll my eyes properly.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come along,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>It was still raining hard, so they took a taxi to the Merlin’s Cave, though it was not
-half a mile away.</p>
-
-<p>Everything was the same, even to the two rich young men who entered just after them.
-They signed the book, and then, hearing the music, Mendel seized Morrison by the wrist and
-dragged her down the stairs.</p>
-
-<p>The place was astonishingly full. Nearly all the tables were occupied, and they had to
-take one between the orchestra and the door. Calthrop, Mitchell, Weldon, Jessie Petrie,
-everybody from the Paris Café was there. Oliver was sitting with Thompson and the critic.
-In a far corner Clowes was sitting with the young man from the Detmold. There were models,
-male and female, all the strange people who for one reason or another had lived in or on
-the Calthrop tradition. In the middle of the room were two large tables<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-399">[Pg 399]</a></span> which Sivwright had
-packed with celebrities—authors, journalists, editors, actors, and music-hall comedians.
-They were being fed royally, as became lions, and there were champagne bottles gleaming on
-the tables. Tall young soldiers in mufti began to arrive with chorus-girls who had not
-troubled to remove their make-up.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a gala!” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>Oliver saw him, and beamed and raised her glass. He rose and bowed with mock
-solemnity.</p>
-
-<p>Dancing had not begun. Apparently the lions were to sing for their supper.</p>
-
-<p>An author read a short play, which he explained had been suppressed by the censor. To
-Mendel it sounded very mild and foolish. It was a tragedy, but no one was moved; the
-audience much preferred the music-hall comedian, who followed with a song about a series
-of mishaps to his trousers.</p>
-
-<p>The same reedy-voiced poet recited the same poem as before, and the same foolish girl
-sang the same foolish song, and it looked as though the programme would never end.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel was irritated and bored, and called for champagne.</p>
-
-<p>“Waiter!”</p>
-
-<p>But the waiter did not hear him.</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t want any champagne,” said Morrison.</p>
-
-<p>“Waiter!”</p>
-
-<p>The door by them opened and Logan slipped in. He was almost a shadow of his old self.
-The plump flesh had gone from his face, which was all eyes and bones. He looked famished.
-His eyes swept round the room, and, fastening on Oliver, lit up with a gleam of
-satisfaction. He was like a starving man looking at a nice pink ham in a shop window. He
-moved swiftly towards her, but stopped on seeing the men she was with and swerved to a
-table a few yards behind her. From where Mendel was sitting it looked as though he<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-400">[Pg 400]</a></span> were peering over her
-shoulder, an evil, menacing face.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel shivered, and his eyes suddenly felt dry and hot, as though they were being
-pushed out of his face. His throat went dry, and when he tried to call the waiter he could
-make no sound. The waiter met his eyes and came.</p>
-
-<p>“Champagne!” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“Very good, sir. One bottle?”</p>
-
-<p>“Half-a-bottle,” said Morrison.</p>
-
-<p>“One bottle,” roared Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>A young artist, who knew them both slightly, hearing the order, came and sat with
-them.</p>
-
-<p>The dancing began.</p>
-
-<p>“Come and dance,” said Morrison.</p>
-
-<p>“No, I don’t want to dance. That was Logan who came in. He hasn’t seen me yet.”</p>
-
-<p>“Which is Logan?” asked the young artist. “He’s done some good things. Someone told me
-the other day he had softening of the brain.”</p>
-
-<p>“Rubbish!” said Mendel. “They say that of every man who makes a success, as though it
-needed something strange to account for it. It’s either softening of the brain, or
-consumption, or three wives, or he is killing himself with drink. They talk as though art
-itself were some kind of disease.”</p>
-
-<p>Logan had seen Mendel, and their eyes met. Mendel felt that Logan was looking clean
-through him, looking at him as a ghost might look at a man whom he had known in life,
-fondly, tenderly, icily through him, without expecting him to be aware of the terrible
-scrutiny. But Mendel was aware of it, and it chilled him to the marrow. Logan gave no
-sign, but stared and stared, and presently turned his eyes away without a sign, without a
-tremor. It was like turning away the light of a lantern. He turned his eyes from Mendel to
-Oliver in one sweep. No one else but those two seemed to exist for him, and Mendel felt
-that he<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-401">[Pg 401]</a></span> no
-longer existed. And more than ever Logan looked as if he were peering over Oliver’s
-shoulder with those staring, piercing eyes of his from which the soul had gone out. Only
-the glowing spark of a fixed will was left in them to keep them sane and human.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel began to drink. The orchestra behind him sent the rhythm of a waltz thumping
-through him. But it went heavily, without music or tune. One—two—three. It was like having
-molten lead poured on the nape of his neck, threatening to jerk his head off his spine.
-From where he sat he could not see the dancing-floor, except reflected in a mirror
-opposite him. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh! it was a gay sight and a silly It had nothing to do with
-him. He could see nothing but Oliver with the grim, haggard face looking over her
-shoulder. He gulped down a glass of wine. That was better. It made things bearable. He
-poured out another glass of wine.</p>
-
-<p>“I think there is more in the Futurists than the Cubists,” said the young artist.</p>
-
-<p>“In art,” said Mendel, turning on him savagely, “there is neither past nor present nor
-future; there is only eternity. You try to make a group out of that, and see how you will
-get on. You can put that at the head of your manifesto and your group would melt away
-under it like the fat on a basted pigeon.”</p>
-
-<p>He put out his hand for his glass, but Morrison had taken it and was drinking.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll make yourself drunk,” he said, taking it from her gently.</p>
-
-<p>“I finished it all,” she said, with an unhappy smile. “I didn’t want you to drink it,
-and you looked so tragic I knew it would be bad for you.”</p>
-
-<p>The young artist crept away. Mendel took Morrison’s hand and gripped it.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m glad you are with me,” he said. “Look at Logan!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-402">[Pg 402]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Never taking his eyes off Oliver, Logan had begun to move towards her with his hand in
-his breast pocket. He had nearly reached her, with his eyes glowing almost yellow under
-the electric light, when he changed his mind, swung round, and went to another table and
-sat with his head down, biting his nails.</p>
-
-<p>The dancing was fast and furious, and this time it was the flute which played an
-obbligato, thin, fantastic, and comic, real silvery fun, like a trickle of water down a
-crag into a pool in sunshine.</p>
-
-<p>Thompson went to the dancing-floor with a girl in fancy dress—a columbine’s costume.
-That seemed to relieve Logan, who jumped to his feet, walked quickly round to Oliver, bent
-over her, and spoke to her. Her face wore an expression of amazed delight. Her eyes were
-drawn to his, and though she shrank under them, she seemed to go soft and flabby: she
-could not resist them. There was no menace in Logan now, only an attitude of fixed
-mastery, an air of taking possession of her once and for all, of knowing that at last he
-would get the longed-for satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p>They spoke together for a little longer, then she rose and put her hand up and caressed
-his cheek and neck as though it hurt her to see them so thin—as though, indeed, she
-refused to believe what her eyes told her.</p>
-
-<p>They walked past Mendel and Morrison without seeing them. Mendel gripped Morrison’s
-hand until she felt that the blood must gush out of her nails. Logan opened the swing-door
-for Oliver, devouring her with his burning eyes, in which there was a desperate set
-purpose of which he seemed to be almost weary. So frail he looked, as if but a little more
-and he would loose his hold even on that to which he clung. And Oliver smiled at him with
-a malicious promise in her eyes that he should have his will, that his hold should be
-loosened and his weariness come to an end.<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-403">[Pg 403]</a></span> Clearly she knew that he had no thought outside
-herself.</p>
-
-<p>And outside the two of them Mendel had no thought. His mind became as a tunnel down
-which they were moving, and soon they were lost to his sight and he was left to wait.
-There his thoughts stopped, while he waited.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter309">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-404">[Pg 404]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter309_hdg"><a href="#Chapter309_toc">IX<br />
-<span class="chap_title">LOGAN MAKES AN END</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">A<small>LL</small> night long he paced up and down his studio. His
-thoughts would not move, but went over and over the scene in the Cave, and probed vainly
-in the darkness for the next move. When he heard footsteps in the street he hung out of
-the window, making sure that it must be Logan come for him. But no one stopped at the
-door, and soon within himself and without was complete silence, save for his footsteps on
-the floor and the matches he struck to light cigarette after cigarette, though he could
-not keep one of them alight.</p>
-
-<p>His imagination rejected the facts and refused to work on them. The scene in the Cave
-had left an impression upon his retina, like that of the cinema—just a plain flat
-impression containing no material for his imagination. And yet he knew that he was deeply
-engaged in whatever was happening.</p>
-
-<p>With his chin in his hands he leaned out of his window and watched the dawn paint the
-eastern sky and the day wipe out the colours. Doors were opened in the street. Windows
-were lit with the glow of the fires, and the day’s activity had begun, but he had no share
-in it, for he knew that this day was like no other. For him it was a day lost in
-impenetrable shadow, and he could not tell what should take him out of it. And still he
-expected Logan would come.</p>
-
-<p>He heard Rosa get up and go downstairs and light the fire and bawl up to Issy to jump
-out of<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-405">[Pg 405]</a></span> his bed,
-filthy snoring sluggard that he was. He heard the voices of the children and the baby
-yelling. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. How indecent, how abominable it was to cram so many people into
-one small house!</p>
-
-<p>At the usual time he went over to his mother’s kitchen for breakfast, and gulped down
-his tea, but made no attempt to eat. Golda looked at him reproachfully, but said nothing,
-for she saw that he was in some deep trouble.</p>
-
-<p>After breakfast, as usual, he went for his walk down through Whitechapel almost as far
-as Bow Church and back.</p>
-
-<p>In his studio when he returned he found a policeman, who said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Mendel Kühler?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>The policeman handed him a letter from Logan who had scrawled:—</p>
-
-<p>“I believe in you to the end.”</p>
-
-<p>To the end?</p>
-
-<p>“Is he dead?” asked Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>“Next door to it,” said the policeman. “The woman’s done in.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where?”</p>
-
-<p>“At the Pot-au-Feu, Soho.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where is he now?”</p>
-
-<p>“Workhouse infirmary. If you want to see him the police will raise no objection.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you,” said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>He asked the direction and set out at once.</p>
-
-<p>The workhouse was a dull grey mass of buildings, rising out of a dull grey district
-like an inevitable creation of its dullness, and it seemed an inevitable contrast to the
-Merlin’s Cave, so that it was right that Logan should walk out of the glitter into it.
-This was the very contrast that Mendel’s imagination had been vainly seeking, and now,
-with the violence of a sudden release, his thoughts began to work again. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-Oliver was dead. That was inevitable too. But why?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-406">[Pg 406]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Logan had surrendered to her. They would go home from the Merlin’s Cave to the
-Pot-au-Feu, to Hetty Finch’s room. He would surrender to her absolutely, because she had
-willed his destruction and could not see that his destruction meant her own. She wanted
-recognition, acknowledgment that her vitality was more important than anything else in the
-world, and she had brought Logan to it. There had been a cold, set purpose in his eyes
-last night—an intellectual purpose. The equation was worked out. She could have what she
-wanted, at a price. She could destroy the will and the desire of a man, but not his mind,
-not his spirit, which would still be obedient to a higher will, and that would break her
-as she had broken.</p>
-
-<p>Very bare and grim was the waiting-room in which Mendel had to bide until the nurse
-came for him. Its walls were of a faded green, dim and grimy, and when the door was opened
-as people went in or out, there was wafted in a smell of antiseptics. But as his thoughts
-gathered force the room seemed to be filled with a great light, which revealed beauty in
-the poor people waiting patiently to see their sick. They became detached and pictorial,
-but he could not think of them in terms of paint. His mind had begun to work in a new way,
-and he felt more solid, more human, more firmly planted on the ground, as though at last
-he was admitted to a place in life. It mattered to him no more that he was a Jew and
-strange and foreign to the Christian world. There were neither Jews nor Christians now.
-There were only people—tragic, wonderful people .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He even forgot that he was
-in love. All his mind was concentrated upon Logan, who was now also tragic and wonderful,
-a source of tragedy and wonder, and his whole effort was to discover and to make plain to
-himself his share in the tragedy: not to weigh and measure and to wonder whether at one
-point<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-407">[Pg 407]</a></span> or another
-he could have stopped it. Nothing could have stopped it.</p>
-
-<p>There was no room for judgment in this tragic world.</p>
-
-<p>A nurse came to fetch him.</p>
-
-<p>She said:—</p>
-
-<p>“He is very weak, but he will be strong enough to know you. Don’t excite him.”</p>
-
-<p>She led him into the bare, white ward, across which the sun threw great shafts of
-light, to Logan’s bedside. At the head of the bed a policeman was sitting with his helmet
-on his knees, staring straight in front of him. He turned his eyes on Mendel, who thought
-he looked a very nice man, something amusingly imperturbable in this racking world of
-tragedy.</p>
-
-<p>He stood by the bedside and looked down at Logan, in whose face there was at last the
-noble, conquering expression at which, through all his foolish striving, he had always
-aimed. His brow was strong and massive, his mouth relentless as Beethoven’s, his nose
-sharp and stubborn, and there was something exquisite and sensitive in the drawn skin
-about his eyes. From his white brow his shock of black hair fell back on the pillow.</p>
-
-<p>His hand was outside the grey coverlet. Mendel took it in his. Logan opened his eyes,
-and into them came an expression of almost incredulous surprise, of ecstatic, intolerable
-happiness. He had wakened out of his dream into his dream, to be with Mendel, to have gone
-through the very depths to be with Mendel. His hand closed tight on his friend’s and his
-lids drooped over his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>He opened them again after a few moments and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“You!”</p>
-
-<p>The nurse placed a chair for Mendel, and he sat down and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“How are you feeling?”</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty weak. I dreamed of your coming, but<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-408">[Pg 408]</a></span> I didn’t really believe it. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I’ve done
-it, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“What are you doing?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve painted another portrait of my mother. A good one, this time. She is sitting in a
-wooden chair as she always sits, with her hands folded on her stomach. And I am planning a
-picture of a Jewish market, something bigger than I have attempted yet.”</p>
-
-<p>“I see. Good—good. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. We must work together. We can do it now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Mendel, rather mystified. It was very strange to have Logan talking like
-that, as though he were going back to the first days of their friendship.</p>
-
-<p>“It is such peace,” said Logan; and indeed he looked as if he were at peace, lying
-there so still and white, with the hard strain gone from his eyes, in which there was none
-of the old roguish twinkle, but an expression of pain through which there shone a
-penetrating and most tender light.</p>
-
-<p>“Peace,” murmured Logan again. “Tell me more. There is only art.”</p>
-
-<p>“There is nothing else,” answered Mendel, carried away on the impulse of Logan’s spirit
-and understanding what he meant when he said “we.” Life, the turbulent life of every day,
-the life of desire, was broken and had fallen away from him, so that he was living without
-desire, only in his enduring will, which had lost patience with his desires and had
-destroyed them.</p>
-
-<p>Through Mendel trembled a new and strange elation. He recognized that his friendship
-with Logan was just beginning, and that he was absolved from all share in the catastrophe,
-if such there had been. And from him too the turbulent life of desire fell away, and he
-could be at one with his friend. There was no need to talk of the past—it was as though it
-had never been.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-409">[Pg 409]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He described the design he had made for his picture: two fat old women bargaining, and
-a strong man carrying a basket of fruit on his head.</p>
-
-<p>“A good beginning,” said Logan. “I .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I could never get going. I was
-always overseen in my work.”</p>
-
-<p>“Overseen!” said Mendel, puzzled by the word.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I was always outside the picture, working at it. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Too
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. too much brains, too little force.”</p>
-
-<p>“I see,” said Mendel, for whom a cold finger had been put on one of his own outstanding
-offences against art. For a moment it brought him to an ashamed silence, but Logan’s words
-slipped so easily into his understanding and took up their habitation there, that he was
-powerless to resent or to attempt to dislodge them.</p>
-
-<p>“Overseen,” Logan repeated, with an obvious pleasure in plucking out the weeds from
-their friendship, in the fair promise of which he found peace and joy. “That was the
-trouble. It couldn’t go on. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. City life, I think. Too much for us. Things
-too much our own way. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Egoism. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know that I am feeling my way towards something and that it is no good forcing it,”
-said Mendel.</p>
-
-<p>An acute attack of pain seized Logan, and he closed his eyes and was silent for a long
-time, with his brows knit in a kind of impatient boredom at having to submit to such a
-thing as pain.</p>
-
-<p>“They’ve been very good to me,” he said. “Given me everything as if I were really
-ill.”</p>
-
-<p>He sank back into pain again.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel looked across at the policeman with a feeling of irritation that he should be
-there, a typical figure of the absurd chaotic life which had fallen away, a symbol of the
-factitious pretence of order which could only deceive a child.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-410">[Pg 410]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Can’t you leave me alone with him?” he whispered.</p>
-
-<p>The policeman shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“You mustn’t worry about outside things,” said Logan, with an effort. “We <i>are</i>
-alone. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Have you found a new friend?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“You will. Better men than I have been. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Do you see that girl
-still?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“She was the strongest of us.”</p>
-
-<p>“How?”</p>
-
-<p>Logan made no answer, and gave a slight shake of impatience at Mendel’s not
-understanding him.</p>
-
-<p>“Something,” he said, “that I never got anywhere near. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I was overseen in that too.”</p>
-
-<p>The blood drummed in Mendel’s temples. Logan’s cold finger went probing into his life
-too, and showed him always casting his own shadow over his passions. In love it was the
-same as in art. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It was very odd that, with every nerve at stretch to
-understand Logan and how he had been brought to smash the clotted passion of his life, it
-should only be important to understand himself, and that he should be able to understand
-so coldly, so clearly, so easily.</p>
-
-<p>And now the presence of the policeman became a relief. It was a guarantee that the
-whole visible world would not be swept away by the frozen will in Logan, which was like a
-floe of ice bearing everything with it, nipping at Mendel’s life, squeezing it up high and
-dry and bearing it along. He felt that if the policeman were to go away he would be drawn
-down into the doom that was upon Logan, into the valley of the shadow, even while the good
-sun came streaming in through the tall windows. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He had lost all the
-emotional interest which had kept him awake through the night. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It had been
-simple enough. There had<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-411">[Pg
-411]</a></span> been himself, Logan and Oliver, three people, living in London the gay,
-reckless life of artists in London, a city so huge that men and women could do in it as
-they pleased. Oliver and he had hated each other, and Logan had had to choose between
-them. He had chosen wrongly and had put an end to his misery in the only possible way.</p>
-
-<p>Mendel fought back out of the shadow—back to the policeman, and the sick men lying in
-the rows of beds, and the dead man lying in the bed which had just been surrounded by a
-screen, and the simple, wonderful people in the waiting-room downstairs, and the sun
-streaming through the windows, and the teeming life outside in London—wonderful, splendid
-London, the very heart of the world. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It was well for Logan to lose sight
-of these things. He was a dying man. But Mendel was alive, never more alive than now, in
-face of the shadow of death, and he would not think the thoughts of a dying man unless
-they could be shaped in the likeness of life. He gathered together all his forces,
-summoned up everything that urged him towards life and towards art, and of his own strong
-living will plunged after Logan, no longer in obedience to Logan’s frozen purpose, but as
-a friend giving to his friend the meed that was due to him.</p>
-
-<p>He took Logan’s hand and pressed it, and chafed it gently to make it warm, and Logan
-smiled at him, and an expression of anguish came into his face as the warmth of his friend
-wrapped him round, penetrated him, thawed and melted his purpose, with which he had lived
-for so many empty, solitary days until it had driven him to make an end. The coldness in
-his friend touched Mendel’s heart and was like a stab through it, and he felt soon a
-marvellous release, as if his blood were flowing again, and it seemed that the weaknesses
-on which Logan had laid his finger were borne down with him into the shadow.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-412">[Pg 412]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Mendel remembered Cézanne’s portrait of his wife, and how he had intended to tell Logan
-that it had made him feel like a tree with the sap running through it to the budding
-leaves in spring.</p>
-
-<p>He told him now, and added:—</p>
-
-<p>“It doesn’t matter that I did not understand you in life.”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Logan. “Don’t go away!”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll stay,” replied Mendel; “I’ll stay.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he was in a horrible agony again, as the marvellous clarity he had just won
-disappeared. Logan knew what he was doing, that he was taking with him all the weaknesses
-and vain follies which had so nearly brought them both to baseness, and Mendel knew that
-Logan must continue as a powerful force in his work; but he crushed the rising revolt in
-himself, the last despairing effort of his weakness, and gave himself up to feeding the
-extraordinary delight it was to the poor wretch, lying there with his force ebbing away,
-to give himself up to a pure artistic purpose such as had been denied him in his tangled
-life. Through this artistic purpose Logan could rise above the natural ebbing process of
-his vitality, which sucked away with it the baseness and the folly he had brought into his
-friend’s life. He could rejoice in the contact of their minds, the mingling of their
-souls, the proud salute of this meeting and farewell. It was nothing to him that he was
-dying, little enough that he had lived, for he knew that he had never lived until now.</p>
-
-<p>The nurse came and said the patient must rest.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t go away!” pleaded Logan.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll wait,” said Mendel, patting his hand to reassure him.</p>
-
-<p>“Half-past two,” said the nurse as she followed Mendel out. “What a remarkable man!”
-she added. “What a tragedy! I suppose the girl was to blame too.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-413">[Pg 413]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Blame?” said Mendel, rather dazed at being brought back to customary values.
-“Blame?”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>He went down to the dingy waiting-room and sat there subdued, cowering, exhausted. He
-felt very cold and miserable. It was so terrible waiting for a thing that had happened.
-The physical fact could make no difference. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Logan had made an end, a very
-complete and thorough end. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh! the relief of it, the relief of having
-Logan for his friend at last, of having seen him freely and fully tasting at last his
-heart’s desire, of being himself brought up to that level, that pure contact with another
-human being, for which he had always longed. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. That desire in both of them
-had been violated and despoiled, God knows how. Lies? Lust? Profanation of the holy spirit
-of art? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. What words could describe the evil that everywhere in life lay in
-wait for the adventurous, letting the foolish and the timid, the faint of heart and the
-blind of soul, go by, and waiting for strong men who walked with purpose and a single
-mind?</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>At half-past two the nurse came to fetch him.</p>
-
-<p>“He is very weak now,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Logan’s face wore a noble gathering serenity. He was too weak to talk much, and only
-wanted Mendel to hold his hand and to talk to him about art, about pictures “they” were
-going to paint, and about pictures they had both loved: Cranach, DĂĽrer, Uccello, Giotto,
-Blake, Cézanne.</p>
-
-<p>“Good men, those,” said Logan. “Good company.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good, decent, quiet little men.”</p>
-
-<p>“We shall do good things.”</p>
-
-<p>His hand closed more tightly on Mendel’s, who surrendered himself to the force of the
-ebb in his friend, felt the cold, salt waves of death close about him and drag him out,
-out until Logan was lost, and<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-414">[Pg
-414]</a></span> with a frightful wrench all that was dead in himself was torn away, and he
-was left prostrate upon the fringes of his life. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He became conscious to
-find himself leaning over Logan, gazing at his lips, with his own lips near them, waiting
-for the breath that would come no more.</p>
-
-<p>It was finished. Logan had made an end.</p>
-
-<p>Turning away, Mendel saw through the window the lovely grey-blue sky, fleecy with
-mauve-grey clouds heaped up by the driving wind—beautiful, beautiful. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter" id="Chapter310">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-415">[Pg 415]</a></span></p>
-
-<h4 id="Chapter310_hdg"><a href="#Chapter310_toc">X<br />
-<span class="chap_title">PASSOVER</span></a></h4>
-
-<p class="noindent">I<small>T</small> was many days before Mendel could take up his work
-again. His mind simply could not express itself in paint.</p>
-
-<p>His first clear thought as he emerged from the numbness of the crisis was for Morrison,
-and to her he wrote, telling her what had happened, describing in minute detail his
-experience in the hospital, and adding that he was without the least wish to see her, and
-would write to her if his life ever became again what it had been before Logan’s violent
-end.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed to him that Logan had claimed him, that he was destined to go through life
-with Logan, a dead man, for sole companion, and always behind Logan was the ominous and
-dreadful shadow of Oliver, from whom he had thought to escape those many months ago.</p>
-
-<p>His isolation was complete. It seemed that he had not a friend in the world, and there
-was not a soul towards whom he could move or wished to move. He could only rake over the
-ashes of the dead past and marvel that there had ever been a flame stirring in them. And
-as he raked them, he thrust into them much that only a short while ago had been living and
-delightful.</p>
-
-<p>What had happened? Youth could not be gone while he was yet so young, but he felt
-immeasurably old, and, in his worst condition, outside Time, which took shape as a stream
-flowing past him, bearing with it all his dreams, loves, aspirations,<span
-class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-416">[Pg 416]</a></span> hopes, thoughts. When
-he tried to cast himself into it, to rescue these treasured possessions, he was clutched
-back, thrown down, and left prostrate with his eyes darkened and the smell of death in his
-nostrils.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes he thought with terror that he had plunged too far, had given too much to
-Logan, had committed some obscure blasphemy, had been perhaps “overseen” even in that
-moment when the weakness and all that was dead in him had been wrenched away. And he said
-to himself:—</p>
-
-<p>“No. This is much worse than death. It is foolish to seek any meaning in death, for
-death is not the worst.”</p>
-
-<p>It was no good turning to his people, for he knew that he was cut off from them. They
-were confined in their Judaism, from which he had broken free. That was one of the dead
-things which had been taken from him.</p>
-
-<p>His mother could not help him, because she could not endure his unhappiness. The pain
-of it was too great for her, and he had to invent a spurious happiness, to pretend that he
-was working as usual, though with great difficulty, and that, as usual, he was out and
-about, seeing his friends. And in a way this pretence gave him relief, though he suffered
-for it afterwards. He suffered so cruelly that he was forced by it into making an effort
-to grope back into life.</p>
-
-<p>He was able to take up his work again, and the exercise of his craft soothed him,
-though it gave him no escape. The conception of his market picture was dead. It was
-enclosed in Judaism, from which he was free. Yet he had no other conception in his mind,
-and he knew that any picture he might paint must spring from it. So he clung to the dead
-conception and made studies and drawings for its execution.</p>
-
-<p>Some of these drawings he was able to sell to Tysoe, who worried him by coming to talk
-about<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-417">[Pg 417]</a></span> Logan and
-was nearly always ashamed to leave the studio without buying. Mendel was saved from
-borrowing of his people, which had become repugnant to him now that he no longer belonged
-to them.</p>
-
-<p>It was through Tysoe’s talk that he was able to push his way through the tragedy of
-Logan and Oliver back to life. Tysoe insisted that the cause of it was jealousy, but
-Mendel knew that Logan was beyond jealousy, and, piecing the story together, he saw how
-Oliver had set herself to smash their friendship because it fortified in her lover what
-she detested, his intellect, which, because she could not satisfy it, stood between him
-and his passion for her. If anyone was responsible it was she, for she had tried to smash
-a spiritual thing and had herself been smashed. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And Mendel saw that had he
-tried to smash the relationship between Logan and Oliver he too would have been broken,
-for that also was a spiritual thing, though an evil. And he saw that, but for Morrison, he
-must have tried to smash it. His obligation to her had given him the strength to resist,
-to make his escape. Oliver had triumphed, evil had triumphed, and she and Logan were dead
-and he had to grope his way back to life, and if he could not succeed in doing that, then
-she and evil would have triumphed indeed, and what was left of him would have to follow
-the dead that had gone with Logan.</p>
-
-<p>He sought the society of his father and of the old Jews, the friends of the family, and
-was left marvelling at their indifference to good and evil. They knew neither joy nor
-despair. They had yielded up their will to God, upon Whom, through fair weather and foul,
-their thoughts were centred. They lived in a complete stagnation which made him shudder.
-Their lives were like stale water, like unmoved puddles, from which every now and then
-their passions broke in bubbles, broke vainly,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-418">[Pg 418]</a></span> in bubbles. Nothing brought them any nearer to the God
-upon Whom their thoughts were centred, and only Time brought them any nearer to the
-earth.</p>
-
-<p>And yet Mendel loved them in their simple dignity. They had a quality which he had
-found nowhere in the Christian world, where men and women had their thoughts centred on
-the good, leaving evil to triumph as it had triumphed in Oliver. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. She had
-wanted good. With all the power of her insensate passion, her blind sensuality, she had
-wanted love, the highest good she could conceive. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. But these old Jews were
-wiser: they wanted God, Whom they knew not how to attain. Yet God was ever present to
-them.</p>
-
-<p>In Mendel, too, this desire for God became active and kindled his creative will. He
-plunged into his work with a frenzy, but soon recognized that he was committing the old
-offence and was “overseen.” .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Yet how shall a man approach his God if not
-through art?</p>
-
-<p>“Something is lacking!” cried Mendel desperately. “Something is lacking!”</p>
-
-<p>His imagination flew back to that last sublime moment of friendship with Logan, but it
-lacked warmth. It seemed that he could not take it back into life with him, or that until
-he had established contact with life its force could not be kindled. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Oh!
-for sweet, comfortable things—flowers, and rare music, a white, gleaming tablecloth, and
-good meats!</p>
-
-<p>He thought, with envy, of Edward Tufnell and his wife going along the road on either
-side smiling at each other, so happily smiling. And then he thought with more satisfaction
-of the old Jews. They were the wiser and the more solid. They walked in the middle of the
-way, and good and evil went on either side and neither could attain them. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-His thoughts swung between<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-419">[Pg
-419]</a></span> those two extremes like a pendulum, and out of the momentum thus created
-grew a force in his mind which began to find its way towards the God he was seeking. But
-it was only in his mind. His force, his passion, were left slumbering in the hypnotic
-sleep imposed on them by the tragedy.</p>
-
-<p>Yet the mental impulse kept him working in a serene ecstasy. He could make the design
-for his picture, and simplify his figures into a form in which he knew there was some
-beauty, or at least that it could hold beauty and let no drop of it escape.</p>
-
-<p>He could return then to his normal life, and made Golda very happy by joking with her
-and spending many evenings in her kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>“You should take a holiday,” she said. “You look tired out.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will,” he said, “when the spring comes. I am going to be an artist, but I am afraid
-it will not mean carriages and horses and the King commanding his portrait to be
-painted.”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>He had the very great joy of beginning to understand Cézanne’s delight in the
-intellectual craft of painting and to see why he had neglected the easier delights of
-handicraft and the mere pleasure of the eye. But the more he understood, the harder it
-became to finish his picture. He slaved at it, but there was still no beauty in it.</p>
-
-<p>He would not surrender. It would have been so easy to slip back to fake a pictorial
-quality. He had only to go to the National Gallery to come out with his head buzzing with
-ideas and impressions. He had only to go into the street to have a thousand mental notes
-from which to give his work a human and dramatic quality.</p>
-
-<p>He stuck to it and slaved away until he was forced to give in.</p>
-
-<p>“You devil!” he said, as he shook his fist at the picture. “You empty jug!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-420">[Pg 420]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But there was some satisfaction in it, unfinished failure as it was, and he wanted
-Morrison to see it.</p>
-
-<p>He wrote and asked her to come.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>She and Clowes were in the country, painting, and they wired to him to come and stay
-with them for a week. Clowes wrote to tell him that she could put him up in the farm of
-which her cottage was a part.</p>
-
-<p>With her letter he went racing over to see his mother.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m going away,” he said, “I’m going away to the country. The Christian girl has a
-house in the country and I am going to stay in it.”</p>
-
-<p>“You will have fresh air and new milk to make you well again,” cried Golda, scarcely
-able to contain her joy at seeing him once more his happy, elated, robustious self. “You
-will be well again, but you should have done with that nonsense about the Christian girl.
-A sparrow does not mate with a robin, and a cock robin is what you are.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I’m a robin,” said Mendel, and he whistled blithely, “Tit-a-weet! tit-a-weet!
-tit-a-weet! I shall go on the halls as a whistler. Tit-a-weet! and I shall make three
-hundred pounds a week. Tit-a-weet! tit-a-weet!”</p>
-
-<p>Golda laughed at him till the tears ran, so happy was she to have him come back to
-her.</p>
-
-<p>“It is not nonsense about the Christian girl,” he said. “She is going to turn me into a
-Public School gentleman, and I shall bring her to see you, so that you can know for
-yourself that it is not nonsense.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is not the girl who is nonsensical, but you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tit-a-weet!”</p>
-
-<p>“I will bake her a Jewish bread and you shall take it to her. Yes. Bring her to me and
-I will thank her for bearing with you.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-421">[Pg 421]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Tit-a-weet! Tit-a-weet!”</p>
-
-<p>“Cock robin!”</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>His luggage consisted of a brown-paper parcel, a paint-box and two canvases.</p>
-
-<p>Morrison met him at the station. She was glowing with health and good spirits and began
-to tease him at once about his luggage, of which she insisted on taking charge.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s the loveliest little cottage!” she said; “only two rooms. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I hope
-you don’t mind walking along the road. There is another way through the fields, but I
-daren’t try to find it; besides, it goes through the woods, and I don’t want you to see
-any woods before you have been to mine. I don’t believe there’ll be room for you in the
-cottage. You’ll have to sit in the garden and have your meals handed out to you, among the
-chickens and the pigs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pigs?” said Mendel, “I want to draw pigs. Marvellous animals!”</p>
-
-<p>“These are the most marvellous pigs that ever were.”</p>
-
-<p>So they chattered in a growing glee as they walked along the winding road up into the
-hills. They were unwilling to let their deep thoughts emerge until they had been caught up
-in the beauty of the place, the serene lines of the comfortable folding hills, the
-farmsteads tucked in the hollows, the rich velvet plough-lands, the blue masses of woods,
-the gorse-grown common, and the single sentinels the trees, and the hedges where the birds
-sang and twittered, Tit-a-weet! tit-a-weet! .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And over the hills hung the
-wide sky, vast and open, with great clouds that seemed to be drawn from the edge of the
-earth and sent floating up and up to show how limitless was the space above the earth.</p>
-
-<p>For the first time Mendel had no sting of anger at the exhilaration in the English
-girl, no desire<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-422">[Pg 422]</a></span>
-to pluck her out from the surroundings of the lovely English country in which it seemed to
-be her desire to lose herself. She was one with the rich fields and the mighty trees and
-the singing birds in the hedges, and when his heart sang Tit-a-weet, he knew it for a
-comic Cockney note. It was he who was at fault, not she, and she was the very comfort he
-had come to seek.</p>
-
-<p>The farmer’s wife received him with a kindly pity—the poor, pale London foreigner—and
-told him he must have plenty of good plain country food, plenty of milk, plenty of fresh
-air.</p>
-
-<p>“I do the cooking for Miss Clowes,” she said, “and if you’ll excuse my saying so, the
-young ladies take a deal of tempting.”</p>
-
-<p>Mendel thought her a wonderful woman, his room a wonderful room, the cottage a
-wonderful cottage, and the place the finest in the world. The air was rare and buoyant and
-he had never felt so free and so strong. His life in London looked to him like a bubble
-which he could break with a touch or with a puff of his breath. But he was reluctant to
-break it yet, for the time had not come.</p>
-
-<p>The girls showed him their work and he praised it, and began to talk of his own
-picture. Clowes led him on to explain what she called the modern movement, which she could
-not pretend to understand.</p>
-
-<p>Conversation that first evening was all between Clowes and Mendel, while Morrison sat
-silent, curled up on the floor by the fire, gazing into it, sometimes listening, sometimes
-dreaming, sometimes shaking with a happy dread as she thought how near she was to her
-heart’s desire. It had been for so long her central thought that she would take him down
-to the country and get him away from the terrible pressure of London upon his spirit, so
-that she could see released in him, perhaps slowly, perhaps painfully, what she
-loved—the<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-423">[Pg 423]</a></span> vivid,
-clear vitality. And now she had won. She had him sitting there within reach, with good,
-faithful Clowes, and already she could feel the new glow of health in him. Almost she
-could detect a new tone in his lovely rich voice. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Sometimes, as she gazed
-into the fire, her eyes were clouded with tears. It seemed so incredible that she could
-have won against the innumerable enemies, invisible and intangible, against whom action
-had been impossible, even if she had known what to do.</p>
-
-<p>She had been happy enough with Clowes in this place, but now she could not help a
-wickedly ungrateful desire that Clowes should be spirited away.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Clowes absented herself in the day-time, but Mendel had very little energy, and for the
-most part of the day sat by the fire brooding over the bubble of his London life, which he
-knew he must break with a touch. Often Morrison sat with him, and neither spoke a word for
-hours together.</p>
-
-<p>On the fifth day, when the sun shone so that it was wicked to be indoors, Morrison
-suggested lunch in the woods. Clowes excused herself, but Mendel agreed to go with her,
-and the farmer’s wife packed them a basket of food. They set out gaily, over the common,
-up the rolling field green with winter corn, down through the jolly farm-yard full of
-gobbling turkeys and strutting guinea-fowl, under the wild cherry-trees to the woods,
-where in a clearing they made a fire, and Morrison, declaring that she was a gipsy, sang
-the only song she could remember, “God Save the King,” and told his fortune by his hand.
-He was to meet a dark woman who would make a great change in his life, and money would
-come his way, but he must beware of the Knave of Clubs.</p>
-
-<p>Entering into her mood, he insisted that they must act a Wild West cinema drama, and
-he<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-424">[Pg 424]</a></span> rescued her
-from Indians and a Dago ravisher, and in the end claimed her hand from a grateful father;
-and so hilarious did they become that the cinema drama turned into an opera, and he was
-Caruso to her Melba. In the end they laughed until they were exhausted, and decided that
-it was time for lunch.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>After they had eaten they were silent for a long time, and at last, rather to her
-surprise, she found herself beginning to explain to him that this was love, this the
-heaven at which she had been aiming, the full song whereof they had played the first few
-notes as boy and girl at the picnic and again in the dewy grass on the Heath. And she told
-him quite simply that she had loved him always, from the time when they had met on the
-stairs at the Detmold, and even before that, though she could not remember clearly. And
-she told him that love dwelt in the woods and the hedgerows, in the sweet air and the song
-of the birds, not only in the springtime but in the harsh winter weather and in the summer
-heat of the sun. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Mendel,” she said, “I have been wanting you to know, but it seemed that you would
-never know while you looked for love in the heat and the dust of London.”</p>
-
-<p>And he as simply believed her. It was lovely there in the woods, among the tall
-grey-green pillars of the trees, with the pale yellow sunlight falling on the emerald of
-the moss and the russet of the dead bracken, and the brilliant enamel of the blackberry
-leaves. He was overcome with his exquisite delight, and she, to comfort him, held him in
-her arms, her weary shaggy faun, so bitterly conscious of his own ugliness. She soothed
-him and caressed him, and won him over to her own serene joy, which passed from her to him
-in wave upon wave of flooding warmth,<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage"
-id="page-425">[Pg 425]</a></span> melting the last coldness in his soul, healing the last
-wounds upon his spirit.</p>
-
-<p>He roused himself, flung up his head, and began to whistle:—</p>
-
-<p>“Tit-a-weet!”</p>
-
-<p>And he looked so comical that she laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“That isn’t anything like a bird,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“It is. It is very like cock robin.”</p>
-
-<p>To their mutual amazement it seemed entirely unnecessary to discuss the future or the
-past, and the present demanded only happy silence. Here in the enchantment of the woods
-was love, and it was enough.</p>
-
-<p>While they stayed in the woods they hardly talked at all, but as they walked home he
-became solemn and said, as though it pained and puzzled him:—</p>
-
-<p>“We are no longer young.”</p>
-
-<p>“We shall never be anything else,” she protested, for she was pained by the change in
-his mood.</p>
-
-<p>“Youth passes,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>And her exhilaration died in her, for she knew she had touched his obstinacy. He saw
-her droop and was sorry, and began to whistle and to laugh, but she could not be revived.
-She had thought to have secured him, to have made him safe with the charm of love for
-ever, but she was sure now that the hardest of all was yet to come.</p>
-
-<p>In the evening, as they sat by the fire in the little white room, Mendel and Clowes
-talking and Morrison curled up on the floor gazing into the coals, he suddenly ceased to
-hear Clowes’ voice, and saw very clearly the bubble of his life in London before him—Mr.
-Kuit, Issy, Hetty Finch, Mitchell, Logan and Oliver—Logan and Oliver leaving the Merlin’s
-Cave and going out into the street and walking home to the Pot-au-Feu, up the narrow, dark
-stairs to Hetty Finch’s room.<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-426">[Pg
-426]</a></span> .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. He put out his hand to touch the bubble and it broke, and
-with a shuddering, gasping cry he heard Clowes saying:—</p>
-
-<p>“On the whole I don’t think all this modern stuff can be good for anything but
-decoration.”</p>
-
-<p>And he began to think of his own picture, which was full of life. Wherever he picked up
-the design he could follow it all round the picture, and through and through it, beyond it
-into the mystery of art, and out of it back into life. It was poised, a wonderful, lovely
-created thing, with a complete, unaccountable, serene life of its own. The harsh, gloomy
-background of London fell away, and in its place shone green hills and a clear blue sky,
-fleecy with mauve-grey clouds. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p>Following the clouds, he came easily back to life again, to the two girls sitting in
-this wonderful snug cottage, and he was overwhelmed by a feeling that he was sharing their
-comfortable happiness on false pretences. It was not to him the perfectly satisfying
-wonder they so obviously wished it to be for him, and at last he could not contain
-himself, and burst out:—</p>
-
-<p>“You must not expect me to be happy. I cannot be happy. I will swing up to it as high
-as ever you like, but I must swing back again. Happiness is not life, love is not life,
-any more than misery is life. If I stay in happiness I die as surely as if I stay in
-misery. I must be like a pendulum. I must swing to and fro or the clock will stop.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I can’t make it clear to you, but it is so. What matters is that the clock
-should go. Jews understand, but they forget that they are the pendulum and they do not
-live at all. Jews are wonderful people. They know that what matters is the impulse of the
-soul. It matters so much to them that they have forgotten everything else. And those who
-are not<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-427">[Pg 427]</a></span> Jews
-think of everything else and forget the impulse of the soul. But I know that when I swing
-from happiness to unhappiness, from good to bad, from light to dark, then a force comes
-into my soul and it can move up to art, and beyond art, into that place where it can be
-free. .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Don’t, please, misunderstand me.” He addressed himself frankly to
-Morrison, who dropped her head a little lower. “In love I can no more be free than I can
-in misery. I will swing as high on one side as I will on the other, and then I can be
-free.”</p>
-
-<p>Morrison folded her hands in her lap and her hair fell over her face. Mendel got up,
-said good-night, and went over to the farm.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Clowes uneasily, “I really think he must be a genius.”</p>
-
-<p>Morrison made no reply, and presently Clowes went upstairs to bed, leaving her with her
-hair drooping over her face, staring into the glowing fire.</p>
-
-<p>“I must learn my lesson,” said Morrison to herself. “I must learn my lesson.”</p>
-
-<p>She was so little trained for misery, but this was misery enough. But she sat and
-brooded over it, and summoned up all her strength for the supreme effort of her will, not
-to be broken and cast down in the swing back from love. She had taught him to surrender
-himself to love; she must learn to surrender herself to misery, to swing as high on one
-side as on the other.</p>
-
-<p>For many, many hours she wrestled with herself and broke down fear after fear, weakness
-after weakness, until she was utterly exposed to the enemies of love and knew that she
-could be with Mendel through everything. She took out from her paint-box his letter
-describing the scene in the hospital, which had shocked and horrified her before, and now
-read and re-read it until she<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-428">[Pg
-428]</a></span> had lived through all the story and could understand both Logan and
-Oliver.</p>
-
-<p>At last, when she could endure no more, relief came, a new vision of love, no longer
-lost in the woods or in any earthly beauty, but a clear light illuminating men and women
-and the earth upon which they dwell. And in her soul, too, the upward impulse began to
-thrill, and with a sob of thankfulness she lay on her bed fully clothed and went to
-sleep.</p>
-
-<p class="transition">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>She was not at all disturbed when Mendel said in the morning that he must go back to
-London to work on his picture. It was right. Their happiness was too tremulous. There was
-plenty of time for them to take up their ordinary jolly human lives, plenty of time now
-that they were no longer young.</p>
-
-<p>She walked with him to the station, and on the way they laughed and sang, and he
-whistled and talked breathlessly about his picture.</p>
-
-<p>“My mother says a cock robin can never mate with a sparrow,” he said. “I promised I
-would take you to see her.”</p>
-
-<p>“I should love to come, for I love your mother.”</p>
-
-<p>“I would like you to see the Jews as they are,” he said, “so simply serving God that
-their souls have gone to sleep.”</p>
-
-<p>As they stood on the platform she said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Mendel, I did .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. begin to understand last night, and it has made you and
-your work more important than anything else in my life.”</p>
-
-<p>He gripped her fiercely by the arm.</p>
-
-<p>“Come to London, now,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Not now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Soon.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very soon.”</p>
-
-<p>He got into the train, and as it carried him off she could not bear him to go, and,
-forgetting all<span class="pagenum"><a class="newpage" id="page-429">[Pg 429]</a></span>
-the other people, she ran as hard as she could along the platform, and stood at its
-extremity until the train disappeared round the corner of the embankment, and even then
-she called after him:—</p>
-
-<p>“Mendel! Mendel!”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter tnote">
-<h3 class="tnote" id="tnote">Transcriber’s Note</h3>
-
-<p>This transcription is based on the British edition published by T. Fisher Unwin in
-1916. Scans of this edition are available through the Hathi Trust Digital Library at:</p>
-
-<p class="link"><a
-href="http://catalog.hathitrust.org/Record/100597585">
-catalog.hathitrust.org/Record/100597585</a></p>
-
-<p class="noindent">As an additional resource, the American edition published by George H.
-Doran in 1916 was also used. Scans of this edition are posted by the Internet Archive
-at:</p>
-
-<p class="link"><a
-href="https://archive.org/details/mendelstoryofyou00canniala">
-archive.org/details/mendelstoryofyou00canniala</a></p>
-
-<p>The right margins of several page scans of the Unwin edition available through the
-Hathi Trust were cut off, so the Doran edition was used to correct for the missing text.
-No attempt was made to list all these corrections.</p>
-
-<p>The following changes to the text were noted:</p>
-
-<ul>
-<li>Cover: The cover image is from the Doran edition.</li>
-
-<li>p. 20: what you want, that you shall have.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.—Added an additional period at
-the end of the sentence in keeping with the Doran edition.</li>
-
-<li>p. 20: “These children have only to go out into London and all will be given to
-them,”—Changed the comma to a period.</li>
-
-<li>p. 42: their voices seemed to him to come from very far away, The unheaval had stunned
-him, had destroyed his volition and paralysed his dreams.—Changed the comma after “away”
-to a period and “unheaval” to “upheaval” in keeping with the Doran edition.</li>
-
-<li>p. 48: “That’ll do. That’ll do,” said Moscowitch.—Changed “Moscowitch” to
-“Moscowitsch” for consistency.</li>
-
-<li>p. 84: “No,” said the Professor.” I don’t know what that is. It certainly isn’t
-drawing.”—Changed the closing quotation mark after “Professor” to an opening quotation
-mark before “I”.</li>
-
-<li>p. 84: and he says: “I mean to say, that isn’t drawing.—Changed the opening double
-quotation mark to an opening single quotation mark.</li>
-
-<li>p. 116: You may renember her—glorious chestnut hair, big blue eyes, but as shy as a
-little mouse.—Changed “renember” to “remember”.</li>
-
-<li>p. 139: And then when I get home and it is just a house and I am just a girl living it
-it—Changed the first “it” after “living” to “in”.</li>
-
-<li>p. 158: hair brushed back from a round, well shaped brow.—Inserted a hyphen between
-“well” and “shaped”.</li>
-
-<li>p. 184: as they went through their Public Schools and were more and compressed into
-type—Inserted the word “more” between “and” and “compressed” in keeping with the Doran
-edition.</li>
-
-<li>p. 189: “But he cares for poetry and the Bible and he loves
-pictures.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”—Added an additional period at the end of the sentence in keeping
-with the Doran edition.</li>
-
-<li>p. 216: finding some dam fool to take you to a music-hall—For consistency and in
-keeping with the Doran edition, changed “dam” to “damn”.</li>
-
-<li>p. 217: When you’re starving you don’t want chocolates.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.—Added an
-additional period at the end of the sentence in keeping with the Doran edition.</li>
-
-<li>p. 234: He says its something deeper—Changed “its” to “it’s”.</li>
-
-<li>p. 245: No, no, no! . .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.—Deleted the fourth period in keeping with the
-Doran edition.</li>
-
-<li>p. 266: “What has happened?” Does he knock her about?”—Deleted the closing quotation
-mark after “happened?”</li>
-
-<li>p. 271: “That is all very well while you are young ” said Logan—Inserted a comma
-between “young” and the closing quotation mark.</li>
-
-<li>p. 290: the furniture was old and exquisite.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.—Added an additional period
-at the end of the sentence in keeping with the Doran edition.</li>
-
-<li>p. 297: and through that love his passion for art—Added a period at the end of the
-sentence.</li>
-
-<li>p. 298: Cluny.”—Inserted an opening double quotation mark at the beginning of the
-sentence.</li>
-
-<li>p. 316: “O God! O God! O God!’—Changed the closing single quotation mark to a closing
-double quotation mark.</li>
-
-<li>p. 341: You said you were’nt going to dance.—Changed “were’nt” to “weren’t”.</li>
-
-<li>p. 344: “Yes You are very honest—Added a period after “Yes”.</li>
-
-<li>p. 351: “You can’t stop it,” said Logan—Added a period at the end of the
-sentence.</li>
-
-<li>p. 358: “If it was my house, I would kick them out.’—Changed the closing single
-quotation mark to a closing double quotation mark.</li>
-
-<li>p. 380: “What do you want, then?—Added a closing double quotation mark at the end of
-the sentence.</li>
-
-<li>p. 397: “Then it’s a sketch and not a picture.’—Changed the closing single quotation
-mark to a closing double quotation mark.</li>
-
-<li>p. 414: clouds heaped up by the driving wind—beautiful, beautiful.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.—Added
-a fourth period at the end of the sentence.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class="noindent">In the original text, section breaks within a chapter are indicated
-with space between paragraphs. This convention has been retained in the html-based files.
-For clarity, section breaks in the text file are indicated with a row of asterisks.</p>
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Mendel, by Gilbert Cannan
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MENDEL ***
-
-***** This file should be named 54931-h.htm or 54931-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/4/9/3/54931/
-
-Produced by Paul Haxo with special thanks to the University
-of Illinois at Urbana-Champaign, the Hathi Trust Digital
-Library, the University of California, and the Internet
-Archive.
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/54931-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/54931-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 927f7ce..0000000
--- a/old/54931-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ